23861 lines
1.1 MiB
23861 lines
1.1 MiB
1880
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR: A TALE OF THE CHRIST
|
|
|
|
by Lew Wallace
|
|
|
|
BOOK FIRST.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
INTO THE DESERT.
|
|
|
|
THE Jebel es Zubleh is a mountain fifty miles and more in length,
|
|
and so narrow that its tracery on the map gives it a likeness to a
|
|
caterpillar crawling from the south to the north. Standing on its
|
|
red-and-white cliffs, and looking off under the path of the rising
|
|
sun, one sees only the Desert of Arabia, where the east winds, so
|
|
hateful to the vine-growers of Jericho, have kept their playgrounds
|
|
since the beginning. Its feet are well covered by sands tossed from
|
|
the Euphrates, there to lie; for the mountain is a wall to the
|
|
pasture-lands of Moab and Ammon on the west- lands which else had been
|
|
of the desert a part.
|
|
|
|
The Arab has impressed his language upon everything south and east
|
|
of Judea; so, in his tongue, the old Jebel is the parent of numberless
|
|
wadies which, intersecting the Roman road- now a dim suggestion of
|
|
what once it was, a dusty path for Syrian pilgrims to and from
|
|
Mecca- run their furrows, deepening as they go, to pass the torrents
|
|
of the rainy season into the Jordan, or their last receptacle, the
|
|
Dead Sea. Out of one of these wadies- or, more particularly, out of
|
|
that one which rises at the extreme end of the Jebel, and, extending
|
|
east of north, becomes at length the bed of the Jabbok River- a
|
|
traveller passed, going to the tablelands of the desert. To this
|
|
person the attention of the reader is first besought.
|
|
|
|
Judged by his appearance, he was quite forty-five years old. His
|
|
beard, once of the deepest black, flowing broadly over his breast, was
|
|
streaked with white. His face was brown as a parched coffee-berry, and
|
|
so hidden by a red kufiyeh (as the kerchief of the head is at this day
|
|
called by the children of the desert) as to be but in part visible.
|
|
Now and then he raised his eyes, and they were large and dark. He
|
|
was clad in the flowing garments so universal in the East; but their
|
|
style may not be described more particularly, for he sat under a
|
|
miniature tent, and rode a great white dromedary.
|
|
|
|
It may be doubted if the people of the West ever overcome the
|
|
impression made upon them by the first view of a camel equipped and
|
|
loaded for the desert. Custom, so fatal to other novelties, affects
|
|
this feeling but little. At the end of long journeys with caravans,
|
|
after years of residence with the Bedawin, the Western-born,
|
|
wherever they may be, will stop and wait the passing of the stately
|
|
brute. The charm is not in the figure, which not even love can make
|
|
beautiful; nor in the movement, the noiseless stepping, or the broad
|
|
careen. As is the kindness of the sea to a ship, so is that of the
|
|
desert to its creature. It clothes him with all its mysteries; in such
|
|
manner, too, that while we are looking at him we are thinking of them:
|
|
therein is the wonder. The animal which now came out of the wady might
|
|
well have claimed the customary homage. Its colour and height; its
|
|
breadth of foot; its bulk of body, not fat, but overlaid with
|
|
muscle; its long, slender neck, of swan-like curvature; the head, wide
|
|
between the eyes, and tapering to a muzzle which a lady's bracelet
|
|
might have almost clasped; its motion, step long and elastic, tread
|
|
sure and soundless- all certified its Syrian blood, old as the days of
|
|
Cyrus, and absolutely priceless. There was the usual bridle,
|
|
covering the forehead with scarlet fringe and garnishing the throat
|
|
with pendent brazen chains, each ending with a tinkling silver bell;
|
|
but to the bridle there was neither rein for the rider nor strap for a
|
|
driver. The furniture perched on the back was an invention which
|
|
with any other people than those of the East would have made the
|
|
inventor renowned. It consisted of two wooden boxes, scarce four
|
|
feet in length, balanced so that one hung at each side; the inner
|
|
space, softly lined and carpeted, was arranged to allow the master
|
|
to sit or lie half reclined; over it all was stretched a green awning.
|
|
Broad back and breast straps, and girths, secured with countless knots
|
|
and ties, held the device in place. In such manner the ingenious
|
|
sons of Cush had contrived to make comfortable the sunburnt ways of
|
|
the wilderness, along which lay their duty as often as their pleasure.
|
|
|
|
When the dromedary lifted itself out of the last break of the
|
|
wady, the traveller had passed the boundary of El Belka, the ancient
|
|
Ammon. It was morning time. Before him was the sun, half curtained
|
|
in fleecy mist; before him also spread the desert; not the realm of
|
|
drifting sands, which was farther on, but the region where the herbage
|
|
began to dwarf; where the surface is strewn with boulders of
|
|
granite, and grey and brown stones, interspersed with languishing
|
|
acacias and tufts of camel-grass. The oak, bramble and arbutus lay
|
|
behind as if they had come to a line, looked over into the well-less
|
|
waste, and crouched with fear.
|
|
|
|
And now there was an end of path or road. More, than ever the
|
|
camel seemed insensibly driven; it lengthened and quickened its
|
|
pace, its head pointed straight towards the horizon; through the
|
|
wide nostrils it drank the wind in great draughts. The litter
|
|
swayed, and rose and fell like a boat in the waves. Dried leaves in
|
|
occasional beds rustled underfoot. Sometimes a perfume like absinthe
|
|
sweetened all the air. Lark, and chat, and rock-swallow leaped to
|
|
wing, and white partridges ran whistling and clucking out of the
|
|
way. More rarely a fox or a hyena quickened his gallop, to study the
|
|
intruders at a safe distance. Off to the right rose the hills of the
|
|
Jebel, the pearl-grey veil resting upon them changing momentarily into
|
|
a purple which the sun would make matchless a little later. Over their
|
|
highest peaks a vulture sailed on broad wings into widening circles.
|
|
But of all these things the tenant under the green tent saw nothing,
|
|
or, at least, made no sign of recognition. His eyes were fixed and
|
|
dreamy. The going of the man, like that of the animal, was as one
|
|
being led.
|
|
|
|
For two hours the dromedary swung forward, keeping the trot steadily
|
|
and the line due east. In that time the traveller never changed his
|
|
position, nor looked to the right or left. On the desert, distance
|
|
is not measured by miles or leagues, but by the saat, or hour, and the
|
|
manzil, or halt: three-and-a-half leagues fill the former, fifteen
|
|
or twenty-five the latter; but they are the rates for the common
|
|
camel. A carrier of the genuine Syrian stock can make three leagues
|
|
easily. At full speed he overtakes the ordinary winds. As one of the
|
|
results of the rapid advance, the face of the landscape underwent a
|
|
change. The Jebel stretched along the western horizon, like a
|
|
pale-blue ribbon. A tell, or hummock of clay and cemented sand,
|
|
arose here and there. Now and then basaltic stones lifted their
|
|
round crowns, outposts of the mountain against the forces of the
|
|
plain; all else, however, was sand, sometimes smooth as the beaten
|
|
beach, then heaped in rolling ridges; here chopped waves, there long
|
|
swells. So, too, the condition of the atmosphere changed. The sun,
|
|
high risen, had drunk his fill of dew and mist, and warmed the
|
|
breeze that kissed the wanderer under the awning; far and near he
|
|
was tinting the earth with faint milk-whiteness, and shimmering all
|
|
the sky.
|
|
|
|
Two hours more passed without rest or deviation from the course.
|
|
Vegetation entirely ceased. The sand, so crusted on the surface that
|
|
it broke into rattling flakes at every step, held undisputed sway. The
|
|
Jebel was out of view, and there was no landmark visible. The shadow
|
|
that before followed had now shifted to the north, and was keeping
|
|
even race with the objects which cast it; and as there was no sign
|
|
of halting, the conduct of the traveller became each moment more
|
|
strange.
|
|
|
|
No one, be it remembered, seeks the desert for a pleasure-ground.
|
|
Life and business traverse it by paths along which the bones of things
|
|
dead are strewn as so many blazons. Such are the roads from well to
|
|
well, from pasture to pasture. The heart of the most veteran sheik
|
|
beats quicker when he finds himself alone in the pathless tracts. So
|
|
the man with whom we are dealing could not have been in search of
|
|
pleasure; neither was his manner that of a fugitive: not once did he
|
|
look behind him. In such situations fear and curiosity are the most
|
|
common sensations; he was not moved by them. When men are lonely, they
|
|
stoop to any companionship; the dog becomes a comrade, the horse a
|
|
friend, and it is no shame to shower them with caresses and speeches
|
|
of love. The camel received no such token, not a touch, not a word.
|
|
|
|
Exactly at noon the dromedary, of its own will, stopped, and uttered
|
|
the cry or moan, peculiarly piteous, by which its kind always
|
|
protest against an overload, and sometimes crave attention and rest.
|
|
The master thereupon bestirred himself, waking, as it were, from
|
|
sleep. He threw the curtains of the houdah up, looked at the sun,
|
|
surveyed the country on every side long and carefully, as if to
|
|
identify an appointed place. Satisfied with the inspection, he drew
|
|
a deep breath and nodded, much as to say, "At last, at last!" A moment
|
|
after, he crossed his hands upon his breast, bowed his head, and
|
|
prayed silently. The pious duty done, he prepared to dismount. From
|
|
his throat proceeded the sound heard doubtless by the favourite camels
|
|
of Job- ikh! ikh!- the signal to kneel. Slowly the animal obeyed,
|
|
grunting the while. The rider then put his foot upon the slender neck,
|
|
and stepped upon the sand.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
MEETING OF THE WISE MEN.
|
|
|
|
THE man as now revealed was of admirable proportions, not so tall as
|
|
powerful. Loosening the silken rope which held the kufiyeh on his
|
|
head, he brushed the fringed folds back until his face was bare- a
|
|
strong face, almost negro in color; yet the low, broad forehead,
|
|
aquiline nose, the outer corners of the eyes turned slightly upward,
|
|
the hair profuse, straight, harsh, of metallic lustre, and falling
|
|
to the shoulder in many plaits, were signs of origin impossible to
|
|
disguise. So looked the Pharaohs and the later Ptolemies; so looked
|
|
Mizraim, father of the Egyptian race. He wore the kamis, a white
|
|
cotton shirt, tight-sleeved, open in front, extending to the ankles
|
|
and embroidered down the collar and breast, over which was thrown a
|
|
brown woollen cloak, now, as in all probability it was then, called
|
|
the aba, an outer garment with long skirt and short sleeves, lined
|
|
inside with stuff of mixed cotton and silk, edged all round with a
|
|
margin of clouded yellow. His feet were protected by sandals, attached
|
|
by thongs of soft leather. A sash held the kamis to his waist. What
|
|
was very noticeable, considering he was alone and that the desert
|
|
was the haunt of leopards and lions, and men quite as wild, he carried
|
|
no arms, not even the crooked stick used for guiding camels; wherefore
|
|
we may at least infer his errand peaceful, and that he was either
|
|
uncommonly bold or under extraordinary protection.
|
|
|
|
The traveller's limbs were numb, for the ride had been long and
|
|
wearisome; so he rubbed his hands and stamped his feet, and walked
|
|
round the faithful servant, whose lustrous eyes were closing in calm
|
|
content with the cud he had already found. Often, while making the
|
|
circuit, he paused and, shading his eyes with his hands, examined
|
|
the desert to the extremest verge of vision; and always, when the
|
|
survey was ended, his face clouded with disappointment, slight, but
|
|
enough to advise a shrewd spectator that he was there expecting
|
|
company, if not by appointment; at the same time, the spectator
|
|
would have been conscious of a sharpening of the curiosity to learn
|
|
what the business could be that required transaction in a place so far
|
|
from civilized abode.
|
|
|
|
However disappointed, there could be little doubt of the
|
|
stranger's confidence in the coming of the expected company. In
|
|
token thereof, he went first to the litter, and, from the cot or box
|
|
opposite the one he had occupied in coming, produced a sponge and a
|
|
small gurglet of water, with which he washed the eyes, face, and
|
|
nostrils of the camel; that done, from the same depository he drew a
|
|
circular cloth, red-and-white-striped, a bundle of rods, and a stout
|
|
cane. The latter, after some manipulation, proved to be a cunning
|
|
device of lesser joints, one within another, which, when united
|
|
together, formed a centre pole higher than his head. When the pole was
|
|
planted, and the rods set around it, he spread the cloth over them,
|
|
and was literally at home- a home much smaller than the habitations of
|
|
emir and sheik, yet their counterpart in all other respects. From
|
|
the litter again he brought a carpet or square rug, and covered the
|
|
floor of the tent on the side from the sun. That done, he went out,
|
|
and once more, and with greater care and more eager eyes, swept the
|
|
encircling country. Except a distant jackal galloping across the
|
|
plain, and an eagle flying towards the Gulf of Akaba, the waste below,
|
|
like the blue above it, was lifeless.
|
|
|
|
He turned to the camel, saying low, and in a tongue strange to the
|
|
desert, "We are far from home, O racer with the swiftest winds- we are
|
|
far from home, but God is with us. Let us be patient."
|
|
|
|
Then he took some beans from a pocket in the saddle, and put them in
|
|
a bag made to hang below the animal's nose; and when he saw the relish
|
|
with which the good servant took to the food, he turned and again
|
|
scanned the world of sand, dim with the glow of the vertical sun.
|
|
|
|
"They will come," he said, calmly. "He that led me is leading
|
|
them. I will make ready."
|
|
|
|
From the pouches which lined the interior of the cot, and from a
|
|
willow basket which was part of its furniture, he brought forth
|
|
materials for a meal: platters close-woven of the fibres of palms;
|
|
wine in small gurglets of skin; mutton dried and smoked; stoneless
|
|
shami, or Syrian pomegranates; dates of El Shelebi, wondrous rich
|
|
and grown in the nakhil, or palm orchards, of Central Arabia;
|
|
cheese, like David's "slices of milk"; and leavened bread from the
|
|
city bakery- all which he carried and set upon the carpet under the
|
|
tent. As the final preparation, about the provisions he laid three
|
|
pieces of silk cloth, used among refined people of the East to cover
|
|
the knees of guests while at table- a circumstance significant of
|
|
the number of persons who were to partake of his entertainment- the
|
|
number he was awaiting.
|
|
|
|
All was now ready. He stepped out: lo! in the east a dark speck on
|
|
the face of the desert. He stood as if rooted to the ground; his
|
|
eyes dilated; his flesh crept chilly, as if touched by something
|
|
supernatural. The speck grew; became large as a hand; at length
|
|
assumed defined proportions. A little later, full into view swung a
|
|
duplication of his own dromedary, tall and white, and bearing a
|
|
houdah, the travelling litter of Hindostan. Then the Egyptian
|
|
crossed his hands upon his breast, and looked to heaven.
|
|
|
|
"God only is great!" he exclaimed, his eyes full of tears, his
|
|
soul in awe.
|
|
|
|
The stranger drew nigh- at last stopped. Then he, too, seemed just
|
|
waking. He beheld the kneeling camel, the tent, and the man standing
|
|
prayerfully at the door. He crossed his hands, bent his head, and
|
|
prayed silently; after which, in a little while, he stepped from his
|
|
camel's neck to the sand, and advanced towards the Egyptian, as did
|
|
the Egyptian towards him. A moment they looked at each other; then
|
|
they embraced- that is, each threw his right arm over the other's
|
|
shoulder, and the left round the side, placing his chin first upon the
|
|
left, then upon the right breast.
|
|
|
|
"Peace be with thee, O servant of the true God!" the stranger said.
|
|
|
|
"And to thee, O brother of the true faith!- to thee peace and
|
|
welcome," the Egyptian replied, with fervour.
|
|
|
|
The new-comer was tall and gaunt, with lean face, sunken eyes, white
|
|
hair and beard, and a complexion between the hue of cinnamon and
|
|
bronze. He, too, was unarmed. His costume was Hindostani; over the
|
|
skull-cap a shawl was wound in great folds, forming a turban; his body
|
|
garments were in the style of the Egyptian's, except that the aba
|
|
was shorter, exposing wide flowing breeches gathered at the ankles. In
|
|
place of sandals, his feet were clad in half-slippers of red
|
|
leather, pointed at the toes. Save the slippers, the costume from head
|
|
to foot was of white linen. The air of the man was high, stately,
|
|
severe. Visvamitra, the greatest of the ascetic heroes of the Iliad of
|
|
the East, had in him a perfect representative. He might have been
|
|
called a Life drenched with the wisdom of Brahma- Devotion
|
|
Incarnate. Only in his eyes was there proof of humanity; when he
|
|
lifted his face from the Egyptian's breast they were glistening with
|
|
tears.
|
|
|
|
"God only is great!" he exclaimed, when the embrace was finished.
|
|
|
|
"And blessed are they that serve Him!" the Egyptian answered,
|
|
wondering at the paraphrase of his own exclamation. "But let us wait,"
|
|
he added, "Let us wait; for see, the other comes yonder!"
|
|
|
|
They looked to the north, where, already plain to view, a third
|
|
camel, of the whiteness of the others came careening like a ship. They
|
|
waited, standing together- waited until the new-comer arrived,
|
|
dismounted, and advanced towards them.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you, O my brother!" he said, while embracing the Hindoo.
|
|
|
|
And the Hindoo answered, "God's will be done!"
|
|
|
|
The last comer was all unlike his friends; his frame was slighter;
|
|
his complexion white; a mass of waving light hair was a perfect
|
|
crown for his small but beautiful head; the warmth of his dark-blue
|
|
eyes certified a delicate mind, and a cordial, brave nature. He was
|
|
bareheaded and unarmed. Under the folds of the Tyrian blanket which he
|
|
wore with unconscious grace appeared a tunic, short-sleeved and
|
|
low-necked, gathered to the waist by a band, and reaching nearly to
|
|
the knee; leaving the neck, arms, and legs bare. Sandals guarded his
|
|
feet. Fifty years, probably more, had spent themselves upon him,
|
|
with no other effect, apparently, than to tinge his demeanour with
|
|
gravity and temper his words with forethought. The physical
|
|
organization and the brightness of soul were untouched. No need to
|
|
tell the student from what kindred he was sprung; if he came not
|
|
himself from the groves of Athene, his ancestry did.
|
|
|
|
When his arms fell from the Egyptian, the latter said, with a
|
|
tremulous voice, "The Spirit brought me first; wherefore I know myself
|
|
chosen to be the servant of my brethren. The tent is set, and the
|
|
bread is ready for the breaking. Let me perform my office."
|
|
|
|
Taking each by the hand, he led them within, and removed their
|
|
sandals and washed their feet, and he poured water upon their hands,
|
|
and dried them with napkins.
|
|
|
|
Then, when he had laved his own hands, he said, "Let us take care of
|
|
ourselves, brethren, as our service requires, and eat, that we may
|
|
be strong for what remains of the day's duty. While we eat, we will
|
|
each learn who the others are, and whence they come, and how they
|
|
are called."
|
|
|
|
He took them to the repast, and seated them so that they faced
|
|
each other. Simultaneously their heads bent forward, their hands
|
|
crossed upon their breasts, and, speaking together, they said aloud
|
|
this simple grace-
|
|
|
|
"Father of all- God!- what we have here is of Thee; take our
|
|
thanks and bless us, that we may continue to do Thy will."
|
|
|
|
With the last word they raised their eyes, and looked at each
|
|
other in wonder. Each had spoken in a language never before heard by
|
|
the others; yet each understood perfectly what was said. Their souls
|
|
thrilled with divine emotion; for by the miracle they recognized the
|
|
Divine Presence.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
THE ATHENIAN SPEAKS- FAITH.
|
|
|
|
To speak in the style of the period, the meeting just described took
|
|
place in the year of Rome 747. The month was December, and winter
|
|
reigned over all the regions east of the Mediterranean. Such as ride
|
|
upon the desert in this season go not far until smitten with a keen
|
|
appetite. The company under the little tent were not exceptions to the
|
|
rule. They were hungry, and ate heartily; and, after the wine, they
|
|
talked.
|
|
|
|
"To a wayfarer in a strange land nothing is so sweet as to hear
|
|
his name on the tongue of a friend," said the Egyptian, who assumed to
|
|
be president of the repast. "Before us lie many days of companionship.
|
|
It is time we knew each other. So, if it be agreeable, he who came
|
|
last shall be first to speak."
|
|
|
|
Then, slowly at first, like one watchful of himself, the Greek
|
|
began-
|
|
|
|
"What I have to tell, my brethren, is so strange that I hardly
|
|
know where to begin or what I may with propriety speak. I do not yet
|
|
understand myself. The most I am sure of is that I am doing a Master's
|
|
will, and that the service is a constant ecstasy. When I think of
|
|
the purpose I am sent to fulfill, there is in me a joy so
|
|
inexpressible that I know the will is God's."
|
|
|
|
The good man paused, unable to proceed, while the others, in
|
|
sympathy with his feelings, dropped their gaze.
|
|
|
|
"Far to the west of this," he began again, "there is a land which
|
|
may never be forgotten; if only because the world is too much its
|
|
debtor, and because the indebtedness is for things that bring to men
|
|
their purest pleasures. I will say nothing of the arts, nothing of
|
|
philosophy, of eloquence, of poetry, of war: O my brethren, hers is
|
|
the glory which must shine forever in perfected letters, by which He
|
|
we go to find and proclaim will be made known to all the earth. The
|
|
land I speak of is Greece. I am Gaspar, son of Cleanthes the
|
|
Athenian."
|
|
|
|
"My people," he continued, "were given wholly to study, and from
|
|
them I derived the same passion. It happens that two of our
|
|
philosophers, the very greatest of the many teach, one the doctrine of
|
|
a Soul in every man, and its Immortality; the other the doctrine of
|
|
One God, infinitely just. From the multitude of subjects about which
|
|
the schools were disputing, I separated them, as alone worth the
|
|
labour of solution; for I thought there was a relation between God and
|
|
the soul as yet unknown. On this theme the mind can reason to a point,
|
|
a dead, impassable wall; arrived there, all that remains is to stand
|
|
and cry aloud for help. So I did; but no voice came to me over the
|
|
wall. In despair, I tore myself from the cities and the schools."
|
|
|
|
At these words a grave smile of approval lighted the gaunt face of
|
|
the Hindoo.
|
|
|
|
"In the northern part of my country- in Thessaly," the Greek
|
|
proceeded to say, "there is a mountain famous as the home of the gods,
|
|
where Theus, whom my countrymen believe supreme, has his abode:
|
|
Olympus is its name. Thither I betook myself. I found a cave in a hill
|
|
where the mountain, coming from the west, bends to the south-east;
|
|
there I dwelt, giving myself up to meditation- no, I gave myself up to
|
|
waiting for what every breath was a prayer- for revelation.
|
|
Believing in God, invisible yet supreme, I also believed it possible
|
|
so to yearn for Him with all my soul that He would take compassion and
|
|
give me answer."
|
|
|
|
"And He did- He did!" exclaimed the Hindoo, lifting his hands from
|
|
the silken cloth upon his lap.
|
|
|
|
"Hear me, brethren," said the Greek, calming himself with an effort.
|
|
"The door of my hermitage looks over an arm of the sea, over the
|
|
Themaic Gulf. One day I saw a man flung overboard from a ship
|
|
sailing by. He swam ashore. I received and took care of him. He was
|
|
a Jew, learned in the history and laws of his people; and from him I
|
|
came to know that the God of my prayers did indeed exist, and had been
|
|
for ages their lawmaker, ruler, and king. What was that but the
|
|
Revelation I dreamed of? My faith had not been fruitless; God answered
|
|
me!"
|
|
|
|
"As He does all who cry to Him with such faith," said the Hindoo.
|
|
|
|
"But, alas!" the Egyptian added, "how few are there wise enough to
|
|
know when He answers them!"
|
|
|
|
"That was not all," the Greek continued. "The man so sent to me told
|
|
me more. He said the prophets who, in the ages which followed the
|
|
first revelation, walked and talked with God, declared He would come
|
|
again. He gave me the names of the prophets, and from the sacred books
|
|
quoted their very language. He told me, further, that the second
|
|
coming was at hand- was looked for momentarily in Jerusalem."
|
|
|
|
The Greek paused, and the brightness of his countenance faded.
|
|
|
|
"It is true," he said after a little- "it is true the man told me
|
|
that as God and the revelation of which he spoke had been for the Jews
|
|
alone, so it would be again. He that was to come should be King of the
|
|
Jews. 'Had He nothing for the rest of the world?' I asked. 'No,' was
|
|
the answer, given in a proud voice- 'No, we are His chosen people.'
|
|
The answer did not crush my hope. Why should such a God limit His love
|
|
and benefaction to one land, and, as it were, to one family? I set
|
|
my heart upon knowing. At last I broke through the man's pride, and
|
|
found that his fathers had been merely chosen servants to keep the
|
|
Truth alive, that the world might at last know it and be saved. When
|
|
the Jew was gone, and I was alone again, I chastened my soul with a
|
|
new prayer- that I might be permitted to see the King when He was
|
|
come, and worship Him. One night I sat by the door of my cave trying
|
|
to get nearer the mysteries of my existence, knowing which is to
|
|
know God; suddenly, on the sea below me, or rather in the darkness
|
|
that covered its face, I saw a star begin to burn; slowly it arose and
|
|
drew nigh, and stood over the hill and above my door, so that its
|
|
light shone full. upon me. I fell down, and slept, and in my dream I
|
|
heard a voice say:-
|
|
|
|
"'O Gaspar! Thy faith hath conquered! Blessed art thou! With two
|
|
others, come from the uttermost parts of the earth, thou shalt see Him
|
|
that is promised, and be a witness for Him, and the occasion of
|
|
testimony in His behalf. In the morning arise, and go meet them, and
|
|
keep trust in the Spirit that shall guide thee.'
|
|
|
|
"And in the morning I awoke with the Spirit as a light within me
|
|
surpassing that of the sun. I put off my hermit's garb, and dressed
|
|
myself as of old. From a hiding-place I took the treasure which I
|
|
had brought from the city. A ship went sailing past. I hailed it,
|
|
was taken aboard, and landed at Antioch. There I bought the camel
|
|
and his furniture. Through the gardens and orchards that enamel the
|
|
banks of the Orontes, I journeyed to Emesa, Damascus, Bostra, and
|
|
Philadelphia; thence hither. And so, O brethren, you have my story.
|
|
Let me now listen to you."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
SPEECH OF THE HINDOO- LOVE.
|
|
|
|
THE Egyptian and the Hindoo looked at each other; the former waved
|
|
his hand; the latter bowed, and began-
|
|
|
|
"Our brother has spoken well. May my words be as wise."
|
|
|
|
He broke off, reflected a moment, then resumed-
|
|
|
|
"You may know me, brethren, by the name of Melchior. I speak to
|
|
you in a language which, if not the oldest in the world, was at
|
|
least the soonest to be reduced to letters- I mean the Sanscrit of
|
|
India. I am a Hindoo by birth. My people were the first to walk in the
|
|
fields of knowledge, first to divide them, first to make them
|
|
beautiful. Whatever may hereafter befall, the four Vedas must live,
|
|
for they are the primal fountains of religion and useful intelligence.
|
|
From them were derived the Upa-Vedas, which delivered by Brahma, treat
|
|
of medicine, archery, architecture, music, and the four-and-sixty
|
|
mechanical arts, the Ved-Angas, revealed by inspired saints, and
|
|
devoted to astronomy, grammar, prosody, pronunciation, charms and
|
|
incantations, religious rites and ceremonies; the Up-Angas, written by
|
|
the sage Vyasa, and given to cosmogony, chronology, and geography;
|
|
therein also are the Ramayana and the Mahabharata, heroic poems
|
|
designed for the perpetuation of our gods and demi-gods. Such, O
|
|
brethren, are the Great Shastras, or books of sacred ordinances.
|
|
They are dead to me now; yet through all time they will serve to
|
|
illustrate the budding genius of my race. They were promises of
|
|
quick perfection. Ask you why the promises failed? Alas! the books
|
|
themselves closed all the gates of progress. Under pretext of care for
|
|
the creature, their authors imposed the fatal principle that a man
|
|
must not address himself to discovery or invention, as Heaven had
|
|
provided him all things needful. When that condition became a sacred
|
|
law, the lamp of Hindoo genius was let down a well, where ever since
|
|
it has lighted narrow walls and bitter waters.
|
|
|
|
"These allusions, brethren, are not from pride, as you will
|
|
understand when I tell you that the Shastras teach a Supreme God
|
|
called Brahm; also, that the Puranas, or sacred poems of the Up-Angas,
|
|
tell us of Virtue and Good Works, and of the Soul. So, if my brother
|
|
will permit the saying"- the speaker bowed deferentially to the Greek-
|
|
"ages before his people were known, the two great ideas, God and the
|
|
Soul, had absorbed all the forces of the Hindoo mind. In further
|
|
explanation, let me say that Brahm is taught, by the same sacred
|
|
books, as a Triad- Brahma, Vishnu, and Shiva. Of these, Brahma is said
|
|
to have been the author of our race; which, in course of creation,
|
|
he divided into four castes. First, he peopled the worlds below and
|
|
the heavens above; next, he made the earth ready for terrestrial
|
|
spirits; then from his mouth proceeded the Brahman caste, nearest in
|
|
likeness to himself, highest and noblest, sole teachers of the
|
|
Vedas, which at the same time flowed from his lips in finished
|
|
state, perfect in all useful knowledge. From his arms next issued
|
|
the Kshatriya, or warriors; from his breast, the seat of life, came
|
|
the Vaisya, or producers- shepherds, farmers, merchants; from his
|
|
foot, in sign of degradation, sprang the Sudra, or serviles, doomed to
|
|
menial duties for the other classes- serfs, domestics, labourers,
|
|
artisans. Take notice, further, that the law, so born with them,
|
|
forbade a man of one caste becoming a member of another; the Brahman
|
|
could not enter a lower order; if he violated the laws of his own
|
|
grade, he became an outcast, lost to all but outcasts like himself."
|
|
|
|
At this point, the imagination of the Greek, flashing forward upon
|
|
all the consequences of such a degradation, overcame his eager
|
|
attention, and he exclaimed, "In such a state, O brethren, what mighty
|
|
need of a loving God!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," added the Egyptian, "of a loving God like ours."
|
|
|
|
The brows of the Hindoo knit painfully; when the emotion was
|
|
spent, he proceeded, in a softened voice-
|
|
|
|
"I was born a Brahman. My life, consequently, was ordered down to
|
|
its least act, its last hour. My first draught of nourishment; the
|
|
giving me my compound name; taking me out the first time to see the
|
|
sun; investing me with the triple thread by which I became one of
|
|
the twice-born; my induction into the first order- were all celebrated
|
|
with sacred texts and rigid ceremonies. I might not walk, eat,
|
|
drink, or sleep without danger of violating a rule. And the penalty, O
|
|
brethren, the penalty was to my soul! According to the degrees of
|
|
omission, my soul went to one of the heavens- Indra's the lowest,
|
|
Brahma's the highest; or it was driven back to become the life of a
|
|
worm, a fly, a fish, or a brute. The reward for perfect observance was
|
|
Beatitude, or absorption into the being of Brahm, which was not
|
|
existence as much as absolute rest."
|
|
|
|
The Hindoo gave himself a moment's thought; proceeding, he said,
|
|
"The part of a Brahman's life called the first order is his student
|
|
life. When I was ready to enter the second order- that is to say, when
|
|
I was ready to marry and became a householder- I questioned
|
|
everything, even Brahm; I was a heretic. From the depths of the well I
|
|
had discovered a light above, and yearned to go up and see what all it
|
|
shone upon. At last- ah, with what years of toil!- I stood in the
|
|
perfect day, and beheld the principle of life, the element of
|
|
religion, the link between the soul and God- Love!"
|
|
|
|
The shrunken face of the good man kindled visibly, and he clasped
|
|
his hands with force. A silence ensued, during which the others looked
|
|
at him, the Greek through tears. At length he resumed:
|
|
|
|
"The happiness of love is in action; its test is what one is willing
|
|
to do for others. I could not rest. Brahm had filled the world with so
|
|
much wretchedness. The Sudra appealed to me; so did the countless
|
|
devotees and victims. The island of Ganga Lagor lies where the
|
|
sacred waters of the Ganges disappear in the Indian Ocean. Thither I
|
|
betook myself. In the shade of the temple built there to the sage
|
|
Kapila, in a union of prayers with the disciples whom the sanctified
|
|
memory of the holy man keeps around his house, I thought to find rest.
|
|
But twice every year came pilgrimages of Hindoos seeking the
|
|
purification of the waters. Their misery strengthened my love. Against
|
|
its impulse to speak, I clenched my jaws; for one word against Brahm
|
|
or the Triad or the Shastras would doom me; one act of kindness to the
|
|
outcast Brahmans who now and then dragged themselves to die on the
|
|
burning sands- a blessing said, a cup of water given- and I became one
|
|
of them, lost to family, country, privileges, caste. The love
|
|
conquered! I spoke to the disciples in the temple; they drove me
|
|
out. I spoke to the pilgrims; they stoned me from the island. On the
|
|
highways I attempted to preach; my hearers fled from me, or sought
|
|
my life. In all India, finally, there was not a place in which I could
|
|
find peace or safety- not even among the outcasts; for though
|
|
fallen, they were still believers in Brahm. In my extremity, I
|
|
looked for a solitude in which to hide from all but God. I followed
|
|
the Ganges to its source, far up in the Himalayas. When I entered
|
|
the pass at Hurdwar, where the river, in unstained purity leaps to its
|
|
course through the muddy lowlands, I prayed for my race, and thought
|
|
myself lost to them forever. Through gorges, over cliffs, across
|
|
glaciers, by peaks that seemed star-high, I made my way to the Lang
|
|
Tso, a lake of marvellous beauty, asleep at the feet of the Tise
|
|
Gangri, the Gurla, and the Kailas Parbot, giants which flaunt their
|
|
crowns of snow everlastingly in the face of the sun. There, in the
|
|
centre of the earth; where the Indus, Ganges, and Brahma-pootra rise
|
|
to run their different courses; where mankind took up their first
|
|
abode, and separated to replete the world, leaving Balk, the mother of
|
|
cities, to attest the great fact; where Nature, gone back to its
|
|
primeval condition, and secure in its immensities, invites the sage
|
|
and the exile, with promise of safety to the one and solitude to the
|
|
other- there I went to abide alone with God, praying, fasting, waiting
|
|
for death."
|
|
|
|
Again the voice fell, and the bony hands met in a fervent clasp.
|
|
|
|
"One night I walked by the shores of the lake, and spoke to the
|
|
listening silence, 'When will God come and claim His own? Is there
|
|
to be no redemption?' Suddenly a light began to glow tremulously out
|
|
on the water; soon a star arose, and moved towards me, and stood
|
|
overhead. The brightness stunned me. While I lay upon the ground, I
|
|
heard a voice of infinite sweetness say, 'Thy love hath conquered.
|
|
Blessed art thou, O son of India! The redemption is at hand. With
|
|
two others, from far quarters of the earth, thou shalt see the
|
|
Redeemer, and be a witness that He hath come. In the morning arise,
|
|
and go meet them, and put all thy trust in the Spirit which shall
|
|
guide thee.'
|
|
|
|
"And from that time the light has stayed with me; so I knew it was
|
|
the visible presence of the Spirit. In the morning I started to the
|
|
world by the way I had come. In a cleft of the mountain I found a
|
|
stone of vast worth, which I sold in Hurdwar. By Lahore, and Cabool,
|
|
and Yezd, I came to Ispahan. There I bought the camel, and thence
|
|
was led to Bagdad, not waiting for caravans. Alone I travelled,
|
|
fearless, for the Spirit was with me, and is with me yet. What glory
|
|
is ours, O brethren! We are to see the Redeemer- to speak to Him- to
|
|
worship Him! I am done!"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
THE EGYPTIAN'S STORY- GOOD WORKS.
|
|
|
|
THE vivacious Greek broke forth in expressions of joy and
|
|
congratulations; after which the Egyptian said, with characteristic
|
|
gravity-
|
|
|
|
"I salute you, my brother. You have suffered much, and I rejoice
|
|
in your triumph. If you are both pleased to hear me, I will now tell
|
|
you who I am, and how I came to be called. Wait for me a moment."
|
|
|
|
He went out and tended the camels; coming back, he resumed his seat.
|
|
|
|
"Your words, brethren, were of the Spirit," he said, in
|
|
commencement; "and the Spirit gives me to understand them. You each
|
|
spoke particularly of your countries; in that there was a great object
|
|
which I will explain; but to make the interpretation complete, let
|
|
me first speak of myself and my people. I am Balthasar the Egyptian."
|
|
|
|
The last words were spoken quietly, but with so much dignity that
|
|
both listeners bowed to the speaker.
|
|
|
|
"There are many distinctions I might claim for my race," he
|
|
continued; "but I will content myself with one. History began with us.
|
|
We were the first to perpetuate events by records kept. So we have
|
|
no traditions; and instead of poetry, we offer you certainty. On the
|
|
facades of palaces and temples, on obelisks, on the inner walls of
|
|
tombs, we wrote the names of our kings, and what they did; and to
|
|
the delicate papyri we entrusted the wisdom of our philosophers and
|
|
the secrets of our religion- all the secrets but one, whereof I will
|
|
presently speak. Older than the Vedas of Para-Brahm or the Up-Angas of
|
|
Vyasa, O Melchior; older than the songs of Homer or the metaphysics of
|
|
Plato, O my Gaspar; older than the sacred books or kings of the people
|
|
of China, or those of Siddartha, son of the beautiful Maya; older than
|
|
the Genesis of Mosche the Hebrew- oldest of human records are the
|
|
writings of Menes, our first king." Pausing an instant, he fixed his
|
|
large eyes kindly upon the Greek, saying, "In the youth of Hellas,
|
|
who, O Gaspar, were the teachers of her teachers?"
|
|
|
|
The Greek bowed, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"By those records," Balthasar continued, "we know that when the
|
|
fathers came from the far East, from the region of the birth of the
|
|
three sacred rivers, from the centre of the earth- the Old Iran of
|
|
which you spoke, O Melchior- came bringing with them the history of
|
|
the world before the Flood, and of the Flood itself, as given to the
|
|
Aryans by the sons of Noah, they taught God, the Creator and the
|
|
Beginning, and the Soul, deathless as God. When the duty which calls
|
|
us now is happily done, if you choose to go with me, I will show you
|
|
the sacred library of our priesthood; among others, the Book of the
|
|
Dead, in which is the ritual to be observed by the soul after Death
|
|
has despatched it on its journey to judgment. The ideas- God and the
|
|
Immortal Soul- where borne to Mizraim over the desert, and by him to
|
|
the banks of the Nile. They were then in their purity, easy of
|
|
understanding, as what God intends for our happiness always is; so,
|
|
also, was the first worship- a song and a prayer natural to a soul
|
|
joyous, hopeful, and in love with its Maker."
|
|
|
|
Here the Greek threw up his hands, exclaiming, "Oh the light deepens
|
|
within me!"
|
|
|
|
"And in me!" said the Hindoo, with equal fervour.
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian regarded them benignantly, then went on, saying,
|
|
"Religion is merely the law which binds man to his Creator: in
|
|
purity it has but these elements- God, the Soul, and their Mutual
|
|
Recognition; out of which, when put in practice, spring Worship, Love,
|
|
and Reward. This law, like all others of divine origin- like that, for
|
|
instance, which binds the earth to the sun- was perfected in the
|
|
beginning by its Author. Such, my brothers was the religion of the
|
|
first family; such was the religion of our father Mizraim, who could
|
|
not have been blind to the formula of creation, nowhere so discernible
|
|
as in the first faith and the earliest worship. Perfection is God;
|
|
simplicity is perfection. The curse of curses is that men will not let
|
|
truths like these alone."
|
|
|
|
He stopped, as if considering in what manner to continue.
|
|
|
|
"Many nations have loved the sweet waters of the Nile," he said
|
|
next; "the Ethiopian, the Pali-Putra, the Hebrew, the Assyrian, the
|
|
Persian, the Macedonian, the Roman- of whom all, except the Hebrew,
|
|
have at one time or another been its masters. So much coming and going
|
|
of peoples corrupted the old Mizraimic faith. The Valley of Palms
|
|
became a Valley of Gods. The Supreme One was divided into eight,
|
|
each personating a creative principle in nature, with Ammon-Re at
|
|
the head. Then Isis and Osiris, and their circle, representing
|
|
water, fire, air, and other forces, were invented. Still the
|
|
multiplication went on until we had another order, suggested by
|
|
human qualities, such as strength, knowledge, love, and the like."
|
|
|
|
"In all which there was the old folly!" cried the Greek,
|
|
impulsively. "Only the things out of reach remain as they came to us."
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian bowed, and proceeded-
|
|
|
|
"Yet a little further, O my Brethren, a little further, before I
|
|
come to myself. What we go to will seem all the holier of comparison
|
|
with what it is and has been. The records show that Mizraim found
|
|
the Nile in possession of the Ethopians, who were spread thence
|
|
through the African desert; a people of rich, fantastic genius, wholly
|
|
given to the worship of nature. The poetic Persian sacrificed to the
|
|
sun, as the completest image of Ormuzd, his God; the devout children
|
|
of the far East carved their deities out of wood and ivory; but the
|
|
Ethiopian, without writing, without books, without mechanical
|
|
faculty of any kind, quieted his soul by the worship of animals,
|
|
birds, and insects, holding the cat sacred to Re, the bull to Isis,
|
|
the beetle to Pthah. A long struggle against their rude, faith ended
|
|
in its adoption as the religion of the new empire. Then rose the
|
|
mighty monuments that cumber the riverbank and the desert- obelisk,
|
|
labyrinth, pyramid, and tomb of king, blent with tomb of crocodile.
|
|
Into such deep debasement, O brethren, the sons of the Aryan fell!"
|
|
|
|
Here, for the first time, the calmness of the Egyptian forsook
|
|
him: though his countenance remained impassive, his voice gave way.
|
|
|
|
"Do not too much despise my countrymen," he began again. "They did
|
|
not all forget God. I said awhile ago, you may remember, that to
|
|
papyri we entrusted all the secrets of our religion except one; of
|
|
that I will now tell you. We had as king once a certain Pharaoh, who
|
|
lent himself to all manner of changes and additions. To establish
|
|
the new system, he strove to drive the old entirely out of mind. The
|
|
Hebrews then dwelt with us as slaves. They clung to their God; and
|
|
when the persecution became intolerable, they were delivered in a
|
|
manner never to be forgotten. I speak from the records now. Mosche,
|
|
himself a Hebrew, came to the palace, and demanded permission for
|
|
the slaves, then millions in number, to leave the country. The
|
|
demand was in the name of the Lord God of Israel. Pharaoh refused.
|
|
Hear what followed. First, all the water, that in the lakes and
|
|
rivers, like that in the wells and vessels, turned to blood. Yet the
|
|
monarch refused. Then frogs came up and covered all the land. Still he
|
|
was firm. Then Mosche threw ashes in the air, and plague attacked
|
|
the Egyptians. Next, all the cattle, except of the Hebrews, were
|
|
struck dead. Locusts devoured the green things of the valley. At
|
|
noon the day was turned into a darkness so thick that lamps would
|
|
not burn. Finally, in the night all the first-born of the Egyptians
|
|
died; not even Pharaoh's escaped. Then he yielded. But when the
|
|
Hebrews were gone he followed them with his army. At the last moment
|
|
the sea was divided, so that the fugitives passed it dry-shod. When
|
|
the pursuers drove in after them, the waves rushed back, and
|
|
drowned- horse, foot, charioteers, and king. You spoke of
|
|
revelation, my Gaspar- "
|
|
|
|
The blue eyes of the Greek sparkled.
|
|
|
|
"I had the story from the Jew," he cried. "You confirm it, O
|
|
Balthasar!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, but through me Egypt speaks, not Mosche. I interpret the
|
|
marbles. The priests of that time wrote in their way what they
|
|
witnessed, and the revelation has lived. So I come to the one
|
|
unrecorded secret. In my country, brethren, we have, from the day of
|
|
the unfortunate Pharaoh, always had two religions- one private, the
|
|
other public; one of many gods, practised by the people; the other
|
|
of one God, cherished only by the priesthood. Rejoice with me, O
|
|
brothers! All the trampling by the many nations, all the harrowing
|
|
by kings, all the inventions of enemies, all the changes of time, have
|
|
been in vain. Like a seed under the mountains waiting its hour, the
|
|
glorious Truth has lived; and this- this is its day!"
|
|
|
|
The wasted frame of the Hindoo trembled with delight, and the
|
|
Greek cried aloud-
|
|
|
|
"It seems to me the very desert is singing."
|
|
|
|
From a gurglet of water near-by the Egyptian took a draught, and
|
|
proceeded-
|
|
|
|
"I was born at Alexandria, a prince and a priest, and had the
|
|
education usual to my class. But very early I became discontented.
|
|
Part of the faith imposed was that after death, upon the destruction
|
|
of my body, the soul at once began its former progression from the
|
|
lowest up to humanity, the highest and last existence; and that
|
|
without reference to conduct in the mortal life. When I heard of the
|
|
Persian's Realm of Light, his Paradise across the bridge Chinevat,
|
|
where only the good go, the thought haunted me; insomuch that in the
|
|
day, as in the night, I brooded over the comparative ideas Eternal
|
|
Transmigration and Eternal Life in Heaven. If, as my teacher taught,
|
|
God was just, why was there no distinction between the good and the
|
|
bad? At length it became clear to me, a certainty, a corollary of
|
|
the law to which I reduced pure religion, that death was only the
|
|
point of separation at which the wicked are left or lost, and the
|
|
faithful rise to a higher life; not the nirvana of Buddha, or the
|
|
negative rest of Brahma, O Melchior; nor the better condition in hell,
|
|
which is all of Heaven allowed by the Olympic faith, O Gaspar; but
|
|
life- life active, joyous, everlasting- LIFE WITH GOD! The discovery
|
|
led to another inquiry. Why should the Truth be longer kept a secret
|
|
for the selfish solace of the priesthood? The reason for the
|
|
suppression was gone. Philosophy had at least brought us toleration.
|
|
In Egypt we had Rome instead of Rameses. One day, in the Brucheium,
|
|
the most splendid and crowded quarter of Alexandria, I arose and
|
|
preached. The East and West contributed to my audience. Students going
|
|
to the Library, priests from the Serapeion, idlers from the Museum,
|
|
patrons of the race-course, countrymen from the Rhacotis- a multitude-
|
|
stopped to hear me. I preached God, the Soul, Right and Wrong, and
|
|
Heaven, the reward of a virtuous life. You, O Melchior, were stoned;
|
|
my auditors first wondered, then laughed. I tried again; they pelted
|
|
me with epigrams, covered my God with ridicule, and darkened my Heaven
|
|
with mockery. Not to linger needlessly, I fell before them."
|
|
|
|
The Hindoo here drew a long sigh, as he said, "The enemy of man is
|
|
man, my brother."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar lapsed into silence.
|
|
|
|
"I gave much thought to finding the cause of my failure, and at last
|
|
succeeded," he said, upon beginning again. "Up the river, a day's
|
|
journey from the city, there is a village of herdsmen and gardeners. I
|
|
took a boat and went there. In the evening I called the people
|
|
together, men and women, the poorest of the poor. I preached to them
|
|
exactly as I had preached in the Brucheium. They did not laugh. Next
|
|
evening I spoke again, and they believed and rejoiced, and carried the
|
|
news abroad. At the third meeting a society was formed for prayer. I
|
|
returned to the city then. Drifting down the river, under the stars,
|
|
which never seemed so bright and so near, I evolved this lesson:- To
|
|
begin a reform, go not into the places of the great and rich; go
|
|
rather to those whose cups of happiness are empty- to the poor and
|
|
humble. And then I laid a plan and devoted my life. As a first step, I
|
|
secured my vast property, so that the income would be certain, and
|
|
always at call for the relief of the suffering. From that day, O
|
|
brethren, I travelled up and down the Nile in the villages, and to all
|
|
the tribes, preaching One God, a righteous life, and reward in Heaven.
|
|
I have done good- it does not become me to say how much. I also know
|
|
that part of the world to be ripe for the reception of Him we go to
|
|
find."
|
|
|
|
A flush suffused the swarthy cheek of the speaker; but he overcame
|
|
the feeling, and continued:-
|
|
|
|
"The years so given, O my brothers, were troubled by one thought-
|
|
When I was gone, what would become of the cause I had started? Was
|
|
it to end with me? I had dreamed many times of organization as a
|
|
fitting crown for my work. To hide nothing from you, I had tried to
|
|
effect it, and failed. Brethren, the world is now in the condition
|
|
that, to restore the old Mizraimic faith, the reformer must have a
|
|
more than human sanction; he must not merely come in God's name, he
|
|
must have the proofs subject to His word; he must demonstrate all he
|
|
says, even God. So preoccupied is the mind with myths and systems;
|
|
so much do false deities crowd every place- earth, air, sky; so have
|
|
they become of everything a part, that return to the first religion
|
|
can only be along bloody paths, through fields of persecution; that is
|
|
to say, the converts must be willing to die rather than recant. And
|
|
who in this age can carry the faith of men to such a point but God
|
|
Himself? To redeem the race- I do not mean to destroy it- to redeem
|
|
the race, He must make Himself once more manifest: HE MUST COME IN
|
|
PERSON."
|
|
|
|
Intense emotion seized the three.
|
|
|
|
"Are we not going to find Him?" exclaimed the Greek.
|
|
|
|
"You understand why I failed in the attempt to organize," said the
|
|
Egyptian, when the spell was passed. "I had not the sanction. To
|
|
know that my work must be lost made me intolerably wretched. I
|
|
believed in prayer; and to make my appeals pure and strong, like
|
|
you, my brethren, I went out of the beaten ways- I went where man
|
|
had not been, where only God was. Above the fifth cataract, above
|
|
the meeting of rivers in Sennar, up the Bahr el Abiad, into the far
|
|
unknown of Africa, I went. There, in the morning, a mountain blue as
|
|
the sky flings a cooling shadow wide over the western desert, and,
|
|
with its cascades of melted snow, feeds a broad lake nestling at its
|
|
base on the east. The lake is the mother of the great river. For a
|
|
year and more the mountain gave me a home. The fruit of the palm fed
|
|
my body, prayer my spirit. One night I walked in the orchard close
|
|
by the little sea. 'The world is dying. When wilt Thou come? Why may I
|
|
not see the redemption, O God?' So I prayed. The glassy water was
|
|
sparkling with stars. One of them seemed to leave its place and rise
|
|
to the surface, where it became a brilliancy burning to the eyes. Then
|
|
it moved towards me, and stood over my head, apparently in hand's
|
|
reach. I fell down and hid my face. A voice, not of the earth, said,
|
|
'Thy good works have conquered. Blessed art thou, O son of Mizraim!
|
|
The redemption cometh. With two others, from the remoteness of the
|
|
world, thou shalt see the Saviour, and testify for Him. In the morning
|
|
arise, and go meet them. And when ye have all come to the holy city of
|
|
Jerusalem, ask of the people, Where is He that is born King of the
|
|
Jews? for we have seen His star in the East, and are sent to worship
|
|
Him. Put all thy trust in the Spirit which will guide thee.'
|
|
|
|
"And the light became an inward illumination not to be doubted,
|
|
and has stayed with me, a governor and a guide. It led me down the
|
|
river to Memphis, where I made ready for the desert. I bought my
|
|
camel, and came hither without rest, by way of Suez and Kufileh, and
|
|
up through the lands of Moab and Ammon. God is with us, O my
|
|
brethren!"
|
|
|
|
He paused, and thereupon, with a prompting not their own, they all
|
|
arose, and looked at each other.
|
|
|
|
"I said there was a purpose in the particularity with which we
|
|
described our peoples and their histories," so the Egyptian proceeded.
|
|
"He we go to find was called 'King of the Jews;' by that name we are
|
|
bidden to ask for Him. But, now that we have met, and heard from
|
|
each other, we may know Him to be the Redeemer, not of the Jews alone,
|
|
but of all the nations of the earth. The patriarch who survived the
|
|
Flood had with him three sons, and their families, by whom the world
|
|
was repeopled. From the old Aryana-Vaejo, the well-remembered Region
|
|
of Delight in the heart of Asia, they parted. India and the far East
|
|
received the children of the first; the descendants of the youngest,
|
|
through the North, streamed into Europe; those of the second
|
|
overflowed the deserts about the Red Sea, passing into Africa; and
|
|
though most of the latter are yet dwellers in shifting tents, some
|
|
of them became builders along the Nile."
|
|
|
|
By a simultaneous impulse the three joined hands.
|
|
|
|
"Could anything be more divinely ordered?" Balthasar continued.
|
|
"When we have found the Lord, the brothers, and all the generations
|
|
that have succeeded them, will kneel to Him in homage with us. And
|
|
when we part to go our separate ways, the world will have learned a
|
|
new lesson- that Heaven may be won, not by the sword, not by human
|
|
wisdom, but by Faith, Love, and Good Works."
|
|
|
|
There was silence, broken by sighs and sanctified with tears; for
|
|
the joy that filled them might not be stayed. It was the unspeakable
|
|
joy of souls on the shores of the River of Life, resting with the
|
|
Redeemed in God's presence.
|
|
|
|
Presently their hands fell apart, and together they went out of
|
|
the tent. The desert was still as the sky. The sun was sinking fast.
|
|
The camels slept.
|
|
|
|
A little while after, the tent was struck, and, with the remains
|
|
of the repast, restored to the cot; then the friends mounted, and
|
|
set out single file, led by the Egyptian. Their course was due west,
|
|
into the chilly night. The camels swung forward in steady trot,
|
|
keeping the line and the intervals so exactly that those following
|
|
seemed to tread in the tracks of the leader. The riders spoke not
|
|
once.
|
|
|
|
By-and-by the moon came up. And as the three tall, white figures
|
|
sped, with soundless tread, through the opalescent light, they
|
|
appeared like spectres flying from hateful shadows. Suddenly, in the
|
|
air before them, not farther up than a low hill-top, flared a
|
|
lambent flame; as they looked at it, the apparition contracted into
|
|
a focus of dazzling lustre. Their hearts beat fast; their souls
|
|
thrilled; and they shouted as with one voice, "The Star! the Star! God
|
|
is with us!"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
THE JOPPA GATE.
|
|
|
|
IN an aperture of the western wall of Jerusalem hang the "oaken
|
|
valves" called the Bethlehem or Joppa Gate. The area outside of them
|
|
is one of the notable places of the city. Long before David coveted
|
|
Zion, there was a citadel there. When at last the son of Jesse
|
|
ousted the Jebusite, and began to build, the site of the citadel
|
|
became the northwest corner of his new wall, defended by a tower
|
|
much more imposing than the old one. The location of the gate,
|
|
however, was not disturbed, for the reasons, most likely, that the
|
|
roads which met and merged in front of it could not well be
|
|
transferred to any other point, while the area outside had become a
|
|
recognized market-place. In Solomon's day there was great traffic at
|
|
the locality, shared in by traders from Egypt, and the rich dealers
|
|
from Tyre and Sidon. Nearly three thousand years have passed, and
|
|
yet a kind of commerce clings to the spot. A pilgrim wanting a pin
|
|
or a pistol, a cucumber or a camel, a house or a horse, a loan or a
|
|
lentil, a date or a dragoman, a melon or a man, a dove or a donkey,
|
|
has only to inquire for the article at the Joppa Gate. Sometimes the
|
|
scene is quite animated, and then it suggests, What a place the old
|
|
market must have been in the days of Herod the Builder! And to that
|
|
period and that market the reader is now to be transferred.
|
|
|
|
Following the Hebrew system, the meeting of the wise men described
|
|
in the preceding chapters took place in the afternoon of the
|
|
twenty-fifth day of the third month of the year; that is to say, on
|
|
the twenty-fifth day of December. The year was the second of the 193rd
|
|
Olympiad, or the 747th of Rome; the sixty-seventh of Herod the
|
|
Great, and the thirty-fifth of his reign; the fourth before the
|
|
beginning of the Christian era. The hours of the day, by Judean
|
|
custom, begin with the sun, the first hour being the first after
|
|
sunrise; so, to be precise, the market at the Joppa Gate during the
|
|
first hour of the day stated was in full session, and very lively. The
|
|
massive walls had been wide open since dawn. Business, always
|
|
aggressive, had pushed, through the arched entrance into a narrow lane
|
|
and court, which, passing by the walls of the great tower, conducted
|
|
on into the city. As Jerusalem is in the hill country, the morning air
|
|
on this occasion was not a little crisp. The rays of the sun, with
|
|
their promise of warmth, lingered provokingly far up on the
|
|
battlements and turrets of the great piles about, down from which fell
|
|
the crooning of pigeons, and the whir of the flocks coming and going.
|
|
|
|
As a passing acquaintance with the people of the Holy City,
|
|
strangers as well as residents, will be necessary to an
|
|
understanding of some of the pages which follow, it will be well to
|
|
stop at the gate and pass the scene in review. Better opportunity will
|
|
not offer to get sight of the populace who will afterwhile go
|
|
forward in a mood very different from that which now possesses them.
|
|
|
|
The scene is at first one of utter confusion- confusion of action,
|
|
sounds, colours, and things. It is especially so in the lane and
|
|
court. The ground there is paved with broad unshaped flags, from which
|
|
each cry and jar and hoof-stamp arises to swell the medley that
|
|
rings and roars up between the solid impending walls. A little
|
|
mixing with the throng; however, a little familiarity with the
|
|
business going on, will make analysis possible.
|
|
|
|
Here stands a donkey, dozing under panniers full of lentils,
|
|
beans, onions, and cucumbers, brought fresh from the gardens and
|
|
terraces of Galilee. When not engaged in serving customers, the
|
|
master, in a voice which only the initiated can understand, cries
|
|
his stock. Nothing can be simpler than his costume- sandals, and an
|
|
unbleached, undyed blanket, crossed over one shoulder and girt round
|
|
the waist. Near-by, and far more imposing and grotesque, though
|
|
scarcely as patient as the donkey, kneels a camel, rawboned, rough,
|
|
and grey, with long shaggy tufts of fox-coloured hair under its
|
|
throat, neck, and body, and a load of boxes and baskets curiously
|
|
arranged upon an enormous saddle. The owner is an Egyptian, small,
|
|
lithe, and of a complexion which has borrowed a good deal from the
|
|
dust of the roads and the sands of the desert. He wears a faded
|
|
tarbooshe, a loose gown, sleeveless, unbelted, and dropping from the
|
|
neck to the knee. His feet are bare. The camel, restless under the
|
|
load, groans and occasionally shows his teeth; but the man paces
|
|
indifferently to and fro, holding the driving-strap, and all the
|
|
time advertising his fruits fresh from the orchards of the Kedron-
|
|
grapes, dates, figs, apples, and pomegranates.
|
|
|
|
At the corner where the lane opens out into the court, some women
|
|
sit with their backs against the grey stones of the wall. Their
|
|
dress is that common to the humbler class of the country- a linen
|
|
frock extending the full length of the person, loosely gathered at the
|
|
waist; and a veil or wimple broad enough, after covering the head,
|
|
to wrap the shoulders. Their merchandise is contained in a number of
|
|
earthen jars, such as are still used in the East for bringing water
|
|
from the wells, and some leathern bottles. Among the jars and bottles,
|
|
rolling upon the stony floor, regardless of the crowd and cold,
|
|
often in danger but never hurt, play half-a-dozen half-naked children;
|
|
their brown bodies, jetty eyes, and thick blade hair attesting the
|
|
blood of Israel. Sometimes, from under the wimples, the mothers look
|
|
up, and in the vernacular modestly bespeak their trade: in the bottles
|
|
"honey of grapes," in the jars "strong drink." Their entreaties are
|
|
generally lost in the general uproar, and they fare illy against the
|
|
many competitors: brawny fellows with bare legs, dirty tunics, and
|
|
long beards, going about with bottles lashed to their backs, and
|
|
shouting, "Honey of wine! Grapes of En-Gedi!" When a customer halts
|
|
one of them, round comes the bottle, and, upon lifting the thumb
|
|
from the nozzle, out into the ready cup gushes the deep-red blood of
|
|
the luscious berry.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely less blatant are the dealers in birds- doves, ducks, and
|
|
frequently the singing bulbul, or nightingale, most frequently
|
|
pigeons; and buyers, receiving them from the nets, seldom fail to
|
|
think of the perilous life of the catchers, bold climbers of the
|
|
cliffs; now hanging with hand and foot to the face of the crag, now
|
|
swinging in a basket far down the mountain fissure.
|
|
|
|
Blent with peddlers of jewellery- sharp men cloaked in scarlet and
|
|
blue, top-heavy under prodigious white turbans, and fully conscious of
|
|
the power there is in the lustre of a ribbon and the incisive gleam of
|
|
gold, whether in bracelet or necklace, or in rings for the finger or
|
|
the nose- and with peddlers of household utensils, and with dealers in
|
|
wearing-apparel, and with retailers of unguents for anointing the
|
|
person, and with hucksters of all articles, fanciful as well as of
|
|
need, hither and thither, tugging at halters and ropes, now screaming,
|
|
now coaxing, toil the vendors of animals- donkeys, horses, calves,
|
|
sheep, bleating kids, and awkward camels; animals of every kind except
|
|
the outlawed swine. All these are there; not singly, as described, but
|
|
many times repeated; not in one place, but everywhere in the market.
|
|
|
|
Turning from this scene in the lane and court, this glance at the
|
|
sellers and their commodities, the reader has need to give
|
|
attention, in the next place, to visitors and buyers, for which the
|
|
best studies will be found outside the gates, where the spectacle is
|
|
quite as varied and animated; indeed, it may be more so, for there are
|
|
superadded the effects of tent, booth, and sook, greater space, larger
|
|
crowd, more unqualified freedom, and the glory of the Eastern
|
|
sunshine.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
TYPICAL CHARACTERS AT THE JOPPA GATE.
|
|
|
|
LET us take our stand by the gate, just out of the edge of the
|
|
currents- one flowing in, the other out- and use our eyes and ears
|
|
awhile.
|
|
|
|
In good time! Here come two men of a most noteworthy class.
|
|
|
|
"Gods! How cold it is!" says one of them, a powerful figure in
|
|
armour; on his head a brazen helmet, on his body a shining breastplate
|
|
and skirts of mail. "How cold it is! Dost thou remember, my Caius,
|
|
that vault in the Comitium at home which the flamens say is the
|
|
entrance to the lower world? By Pluto, I could stand there this
|
|
morning long enough at least to get warm again!"
|
|
|
|
The party addressed drops the hood of his military cloak, leaving
|
|
bare his head and face, and replies, with an ironic smile, "The
|
|
helmets of the legions which conquered Mark Antony were full of Gallic
|
|
snow; but thou- ah, my poor friend!- thou has just come from Egypt,
|
|
bringing its summer in thy blood."
|
|
|
|
And with the last word they disappear through the entrance. Though
|
|
they had been silent, the armour and the sturdy step would have
|
|
published them Roman soldiers.
|
|
|
|
From the throng a Jew comes next, meagre of frame, round-shouldered,
|
|
and wearing a coarse brown robe; over his eyes and face, and down
|
|
his back, hangs a mat of long, uncombed hair. He is alone. Those who
|
|
meet him laugh, if they do not worse; for he is a Nazarite, one of a
|
|
despised sect which rejects the books of Moses, devotes itself to
|
|
abhorred vows, and goes unshorn while the vows endure.
|
|
|
|
As we watch his retiring figure, suddenly there is a commotion in
|
|
the crowd, a parting quickly to the right and left, with
|
|
exclamations sharp and decisive. Then the cause comes- a man, Hebrew
|
|
in feature and dress. The mantle of snow-white linen, held to his head
|
|
by cords of yellow silk, flows free over his shoulders; his robe is
|
|
richly embroidered; a red sash with fringes of gold wraps his waist
|
|
several times. His demeanour is calm; he even smiles upon those who,
|
|
with such rude haste, make room for him. A leper? No; he is only a
|
|
Samaritan. The shrinking crowd, if asked, would say he is a mongrel-
|
|
an Assyrian- whose touch of the robe is pollution; from whom,
|
|
consequently, an Israelite, though dying, might not accept life. In
|
|
fact, the feud is not of blood. When David set his throne here on
|
|
Mount Zion, with only Judah to support him, the ten tribes betook
|
|
themselves to Shechem, a city much older, and, at that date,
|
|
infinitely richer in holy memories. The final union of the tribes
|
|
did not settle the dispute thus begun. The Samaritans clung to their
|
|
tabernacle on Gerizim, and, while maintaining its superior sanctity,
|
|
laughed at the irate doctors in Jerusalem. Time brought no assuagement
|
|
of the hate. Under Herod, conversion to the faith was open to all
|
|
the world except the Samaritans; they alone were absolutely and
|
|
forever shut out from communion with Jews.
|
|
|
|
As the Samaritan goes in under the arch of the gate, out come
|
|
three men so unlike all whom we have yet seen that they fix our
|
|
gaze, whether we will or not. They are of unusual stature and
|
|
immense brawn; their eyes are blue, and so fair is their complexion
|
|
that the blood shines through the skin like blue pencilling; their
|
|
hair is light and short; their heads, small and round, rest squarely
|
|
upon necks columnar as the trunks of trees. Woollen tunics, open at
|
|
the breast, sleeveless and loosely girt, drape their bodies, leaving
|
|
bare arms and legs of such development that they at once suggest the
|
|
arena; and when thereto we add their careless, confident, insolent
|
|
manner, we cease to wonder that the people give them way, and stop
|
|
after they have passed to look at them again. They are gladiators-
|
|
wrestlers, runners, boxers, swordsmen; professionals unknown in
|
|
Judea before the coming of the Roman; fellows who, what time they
|
|
are not in training, may be seen strolling through the king's
|
|
gardens or sitting with the guards at the palace gates; or possibly
|
|
they are visitors from Caesarea, Sebaste, or Jericho; in which
|
|
Herod, more Greek than Jew, and with all a Roman's love of games and
|
|
bloody spectacles, has built vast theatres, and now keeps schools of
|
|
fighting-men, drawn, as is the custom, from the Gallic provinces, or
|
|
the Slavic tribes on the Danube.
|
|
|
|
"By Bacchus!" says one of them, drawing his clenched hand to his
|
|
shoulder, "their skulls are not thicker than egg-shells."
|
|
|
|
The brutal look which goes with the gesture disgusts us, and we turn
|
|
happily to something more pleasant.
|
|
|
|
Opposite us is a fruit-stand. The proprietor has a bald head, a long
|
|
face, and a nose like the beak of a hawk. He sits upon a carpet spread
|
|
upon the dust; the wall is at his back; overhead hangs a scant
|
|
curtain; around him, within hand's reach and arranged upon little
|
|
stools, lie osier boxes full of almonds, grapes, figs, and
|
|
pomegranates. To him now comes one at whom we cannot help looking,
|
|
though for another reason than that which fixed our eyes upon the
|
|
gladiators: he is really beautiful- a beautiful Greek. Around his
|
|
temples, holding the waving hair, is a crown of myrtle, to which still
|
|
cling the pale flowers and half-ripe berries. His tunic, scarlet in
|
|
colour, is of the softest woollen fabric; below the girdle of buff
|
|
leather, which is clasped in front by a fantastic device of shining
|
|
gold, the skirt drops to the knee in folds heavy with embroidery of
|
|
the same royal metal; a scarf, also woollen, and of mixed white and
|
|
yellow, crosses his throat and falls trailing at his back; his arms
|
|
and legs, where exposed, are white as ivory, and of the polish
|
|
impossible except by perfect treatment with bath, oil, brushes, and
|
|
pincers.
|
|
|
|
The dealer, keeping his seat, bends forward, and throws his hands up
|
|
until they meet in front of him, palm downwards and fingers extended.
|
|
|
|
"What hast thou, this morning, O son of Paphos?" says the young
|
|
Greek, looking at the boxes rather than at the Cypriote. "I am hungry.
|
|
What hast thou for breakfast?"
|
|
|
|
"Fruits from the Pedius- genuine- such as the singers of Antioch
|
|
take of mornings to restore the waste of their voices," the dealer
|
|
answers, in a querulous nasal tone.
|
|
|
|
"A fig, but not one of thy best, for the singers of Antioch!" says
|
|
the Greek. "Thou art a worshipper of Aphrodite, and so am I, as the
|
|
myrtle I wear proves; therefore I tell thee their voices have the
|
|
chill of a Caspian wind. Seest thou this girdle?- a gift of the mighty
|
|
Salome- "
|
|
|
|
"The king's sister!" exclaims the Cypriote, with another salaam.
|
|
|
|
"And of royal taste and divine judgment. And why not? She is more
|
|
Greek than the king. But- my breakfast! Here is thy money- red coppers
|
|
of Cyprus. Give me grapes, and- "
|
|
|
|
"Wilt thou not take the dates also?"
|
|
|
|
"No, I am not an Arab."
|
|
|
|
"Nor figs?"
|
|
|
|
"That would make me a Jew. No, nothing but the grapes. Never
|
|
waters mixed so sweetly as the blood of the Greek and the blood of the
|
|
grape."
|
|
|
|
The singer in the grimed and seething market, with all his airs of
|
|
the court, is a vision not easily shut out of mind by such as see him;
|
|
as if for the purpose, however, a person follows him challenging all
|
|
our wonder. He comes up the road slowly, his face towards the
|
|
ground; at intervals he stops, crosses his hands upon his breast,
|
|
lengthens his countenance, and turns his eyes towards heaven, as if
|
|
about to break into prayer. Nowhere, except in Jerusalem, can such a
|
|
character be found. On his forehead, attached to the band which
|
|
keeps the mantle in place, projects a leathern case, square in form;
|
|
another similar case is tied by a thong to the left arm; the borders
|
|
of his robe are decorated with deep fringe; and by such signs- the
|
|
phylacteries, the enlarged borders of the garment, and the savour of
|
|
intense holiness pervading the whole man- we know him to be a
|
|
Pharisee, one of an organization (in religion a sect, in politics a
|
|
party) whose bigotry and power will shortly bring the world to grief.
|
|
|
|
The densest of the throng outside the gate covers the road leading
|
|
off to Joppa. Turning from the Pharisee, we are attracted by some
|
|
parties who, as subjects of study, opportunely separate themselves
|
|
from the motley crowd. First among them a man of very noble
|
|
appearance- clear, healthful complexion; bright black eyes; beard long
|
|
and flowing, and rich with unguents; apparel well-fitting, costly, and
|
|
suitable for the season. He carries a staff, and wears, suspended by a
|
|
cord from his neck, a large golden seal. Several servants attend
|
|
him, some of them with short swords stuck through their sashes; when
|
|
they address him, it is with the utmost deference. The rest of the
|
|
party consists of two Arabs of the pure desert stock; thin, wiry
|
|
men, deeply bronzed, and with hollow cheeks, and eyes of almost evil
|
|
brightness; on their heads red tarbooshes; over their abas, and
|
|
wrapping the left shoulder and the body so as to leave the right arm
|
|
free, brown woollen haicks, or blankets. There is loud chaffering; for
|
|
the Arabs are leading horses and trying to sell them; and, in their
|
|
eagerness, they speak in high, shrill voices. The courtly person
|
|
leaves the talking mostly to his servants; occasionally he answers
|
|
with much dignity; directly, seeing the Cypriote, he stops and buys
|
|
some figs. And when the whole party has passed the portal, close after
|
|
the Pharisee, if we betake ourselves to the dealer in fruits, he
|
|
will tell, with a wonderful salaam, that the stranger is a Jew, one of
|
|
the princes of the city, who has travelled, and learned the difference
|
|
between the common grapes of Syria and those of Cyprus, so
|
|
surpassingly rich with the dews of the sea.
|
|
|
|
And so, till towards noon, sometimes later, the steady currents of
|
|
business habitually flow in and out of the Joppa Gate, carrying with
|
|
them every variety of character; including representatives of all
|
|
the tribes of Israel, all the sects among whom the ancient faith has
|
|
been parcelled and refined away, all the religious and social
|
|
divisions, all the adventurous rabble who, as children of art and
|
|
ministers of pleasure, riot in the prodigalities of Herod, and all the
|
|
peoples of note at any time compassed by the Caesars and their
|
|
predecessors, especially those dwelling within the circuit of the
|
|
Mediterranean.
|
|
|
|
In other words, Jerusalem, rich in sacred history, richer in
|
|
connection with sacred prophecies- the Jerusalem of Solomon, in
|
|
which silver was as stones, and cedars as the sycamores of the vale-
|
|
had come to be but a copy of Rome, a centre of unholy practices, a
|
|
seat of pagan power. A Jewish king one day put on priestly garments,
|
|
and went into the Holy of Holies of the first temple to offer incense,
|
|
and he came out a leper; but in the time of which we are reading,
|
|
Pompey entered Herod's temple and the same Holy of Holies, and came
|
|
out without harm, finding but an empty chamber, and of God not a sign.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.
|
|
|
|
JOSEPH AND MARY GOING TO BETHLEHEM.
|
|
|
|
THE reader is now besought to return to the court described as
|
|
part of the market at the Joppa Gate. It was the third hour of the
|
|
day, and many of the people had gone away; yet the press continued
|
|
without apparent abatement. Of the new-comers, there was a group
|
|
over by the south wall, consisting of a man, a woman, and a donkey,
|
|
which requires extended notice.
|
|
|
|
The man stood by the animal's head, holding a leading-strap, and
|
|
leaning upon a stick which seemed to have been chosen for the double
|
|
purpose of goad and staff. His dress was like that of the ordinary
|
|
Jews around him, except that it had an appearance of newness. The
|
|
mantle dropping from his head, and the robe or frock which clothed his
|
|
person from neck to heel were probably the garments he was
|
|
accustomed to wear to the synagogue on Sabbath days. His features were
|
|
exposed and they told of fifty years of life, a surmise confirmed by
|
|
the grey that streaked his otherwise black beard. He looked around him
|
|
with the half-curious, half-vacant stare of a stranger and provincial.
|
|
|
|
The donkey ate leisurely from an armful of green grass, of which
|
|
there was an abundance in the market. In its sleepy content, the brute
|
|
did not admit of disturbance from the bustle and clamour about; no
|
|
more was it mindful of the woman sitting upon its back in a
|
|
cushioned pillion. An outer robe of dull woollen stuff completely
|
|
covered her person, while a white wimple veiled her head and neck.
|
|
Once in a while, impelled by curiosity to see or hear something
|
|
passing, she drew the wimple aside, but so slightly that the face
|
|
remained invisible.
|
|
|
|
At length the man was accosted.
|
|
|
|
"Are you not Joseph of Nazareth?"
|
|
|
|
The speaker was standing close by.
|
|
|
|
"I am so called," answered Joseph, turning gravely around. "And you-
|
|
ah, peace be unto you! my friend, Rabbi Samuel!"
|
|
|
|
"The same give I back to you." The Rabbi paused, looking at the
|
|
woman, then added, "To you, and unto your house and all your
|
|
helpers, be peace."
|
|
|
|
With the last word, he placed one hand upon his breast, and inclined
|
|
his head to the woman, who, to see him, had by this time withdrawn the
|
|
wimple enough to show the face of one but a short time out of
|
|
girlhood. Thereupon the acquaintances grasped right hands, as if to
|
|
carry them to their lips; at the last moment, however, the clasp was
|
|
let go, and each kissed his own hand, then put its palm upon his
|
|
forehead.
|
|
|
|
"There is so little dust upon your garments," the Rabbi said,
|
|
familiarly, "that I infer you passed the night in this city of our
|
|
fathers."
|
|
|
|
"No," Joseph replied, "as we could only make Bethany before the
|
|
night came, we stayed in the khan there, and took the road again at
|
|
daybreak."
|
|
|
|
"The journey before you is long, then- not to Joppa, I hope."
|
|
|
|
"Only to Bethlehem."
|
|
|
|
The countenance of the Rabbi, theretofore open and friendly,
|
|
became lowering and sinister, and he cleared his throat with a growl
|
|
instead of a cough.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes- I see," he said. "You were born in Bethlehem and wend
|
|
thither now, with your daughter, to be counted for taxation, as
|
|
ordered by Caesar. The children of Jacob are as the tribes in Egypt
|
|
were- only they have neither a Moses nor a Joshua. How are the
|
|
mighty fallen!"
|
|
|
|
Joseph answered, without change of posture or countenance-
|
|
|
|
"The woman is not my daughter."
|
|
|
|
But the Rabbi clung to the political idea; and he went on, without
|
|
noticing the explanation, "What are the Zealots doing down in
|
|
Galilee?"
|
|
|
|
"I am a carpenter, and Nazareth is a village," said Joseph,
|
|
cautiously. "The street on which my bench stands is not a road leading
|
|
to any city. Hewing wood and sawing plank leave me no time to take
|
|
part in the disputes of parties."
|
|
|
|
"But you are a Jew," said the Rabbi earnestly. "You. are a Jew,
|
|
and of the line of David. It is not possible you can find pleasure
|
|
in the payment of any tax except the shekel given by ancient custom to
|
|
Jehovah."
|
|
|
|
Joseph held his peace.
|
|
|
|
"I do not complain," his friend continued, "of the amount of the
|
|
tax- a denarius is a trifle. Oh, no! The imposition of the tax is
|
|
the offence. And, besides, what is paying it but submission to
|
|
tyranny? Tell me, is it true that Judas claims to be the Messiah?
|
|
You live in the midst of his followers."
|
|
|
|
"I have heard his followers say he was the Messiah," Joseph replied.
|
|
|
|
At this point the wimple was drawn aside, and for an instant the
|
|
whole face of the woman was exposed. The eyes of the Rabbi wandered
|
|
that way, and he had time to see a countenance of rare beauty, kindled
|
|
by a look of intense interest; then a blush overspread her cheeks
|
|
and brow, and the veil was returned to its place.
|
|
|
|
The politician forgot his subject.
|
|
|
|
"Your daughter is comely," he said, speaking lower.
|
|
|
|
"She is not my daughter," Joseph repeated.
|
|
|
|
The curiosity of the Rabbi was aroused; seeing which, the Nazarene
|
|
hastened to say further, "She is the child of Joachim and Anna of
|
|
Bethlehem, of whom you have at least heard; for they were of great
|
|
repute- "
|
|
|
|
"Yes," remarked the Rabbi, deferentially, "I know them. They were
|
|
lineally descended from David. I knew them well."
|
|
|
|
"Well, they are dead now," the Nazarene proceeded. "They died in
|
|
Nazareth. Joachim was not rich, yet he left a house and garden to be
|
|
divided between his daughters Marian and Mary. This is one of them;
|
|
and to save her portion of the property, the law required her to marry
|
|
her next of kin. She is now my wife."
|
|
|
|
"And you were- "
|
|
|
|
"Her uncle."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes! And as you were both born in Bethlehem, the Roman compels
|
|
you to take her there with you to be also counted."
|
|
|
|
The Rabbi clasped his hands, and looked indignantly to heaven,
|
|
exclaiming, "The God of Israel still lives! The vengeance is His!"
|
|
|
|
With that he turned and abruptly departed. A stranger near by,
|
|
observing Joseph's amazement, said quietly, "Rabbi Samuel is a zealot.
|
|
Judas himself is not more fierce."
|
|
|
|
Joseph, not wishing to talk with the man, appeared not to hear,
|
|
and busied himself gathering in a little heap the grass which the
|
|
donkey had tossed abroad; after which he leaned upon his staff
|
|
again, and waited.
|
|
|
|
In another hour the party passed out the gate, and, turning to the
|
|
left, took the road to Bethlehem. The descent into the valley of
|
|
Hinnom was quite broken, garnished here and there with straggling wild
|
|
olive-trees. Carefully, tenderly, the Nazarene walked by the woman's
|
|
side, leading-strap in hand. On their left, reaching to the south
|
|
and east round Mount Zion, rose the city wall, and on their right
|
|
the steep prominences which form the western boundary of the valley.
|
|
|
|
Slowly they passed the Lower Pool of Gihon, out of which the sun was
|
|
fast driving the lessening shadow of the royal hill; slowly they
|
|
proceeded, keeping parallel with the aqueduct from the Pools of
|
|
Solomon, until near the site of the country-house on what is now
|
|
called the Hill of Evil Counsel; there they began to ascend to the
|
|
plain of Rephaim. The sun streamed garishly over the stony face of the
|
|
famous locality, and under its influence Mary, the daughter of
|
|
Joachim, dropped the wimple entirely, and bared her head. Joseph
|
|
told the story of the Philistines surprised in their camp there by
|
|
David. He was tedious in the narrative, speaking with the solemn
|
|
countenance and lifeless manner of a dull man. She did not always hear
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Wherever on the land men go, and on the sea ships, the face and
|
|
figure of the Jew are familiar. The physical type of the race has
|
|
always been the same; yet there have been some individual
|
|
variations. "Now he was ruddy, and withal of a beautiful
|
|
countenance, and goodly to look to." Such was the son of Jesse when
|
|
brought before Samuel. The fancies of men have been ever since ruled
|
|
by the description. Poetic license has extended the peculiarities of
|
|
the ancestor to his notable descendants. So all our ideal Solomons
|
|
have fair faces, and hair and beard chestnut in the shade, and of
|
|
the tint of gold in the sun. Such, we are also made believe, were
|
|
the locks of Absolom the beloved. And, in the absence of authentic
|
|
history, tradition has dealt no less lovingly by her whom we are now
|
|
following down to the native city of the ruddy king.
|
|
|
|
She was not more than fifteen. Her form, voice, and manner
|
|
belonged to the period of transition from girlhood. Her face was
|
|
perfectly oval, her complexion more pale than fair. The nose was
|
|
faultless; the lips, slightly parted, were full and ripe, giving to
|
|
the lines of the mouth warmth, tenderness, and trust; the eyes were
|
|
blue and large, and shaded by drooping lids and long lashes; and, in
|
|
harmony with all, a flood of golden hair, in the style permitted to
|
|
Jewish brides, fell unconfined down her back to the pillion on which
|
|
she sat. The throat and neck had the downy softness sometimes seen
|
|
which leaves the artist in doubt whether it is an effect of contour or
|
|
colour. To these charms of feature and person were added others more
|
|
indefinable- an air of purity which only the soul can impart, and of
|
|
abstraction natural to such as think much of things impalpable. Often,
|
|
with trembling lips, she raised her eyes to heaven, itself not more
|
|
deeply blue; often she crossed her hands upon her breast, as in
|
|
adoration and prayer; often she raised her head like one listening
|
|
eagerly for a calling voice. Now and then, midst his slow
|
|
utterances, Joseph turned to look at her, and, catching the expression
|
|
kindling her face as with light, forgot his theme, and with bowed
|
|
head, wondering, plodded on.
|
|
|
|
So they skirted the great plain, and at length reached the elevation
|
|
Mar Elias; from which, across a valley, they beheld Bethlehem, the
|
|
old, old House of Bread, its white walls crowning a ridge, and shining
|
|
above the brown scumbling of leafless orchards. They paused there
|
|
and rested, while Joseph pointed out the places of sacred renown; then
|
|
they went down into the valley to the well which was the scene of
|
|
one of the marvellous exploits of David's strong men. The narrow space
|
|
was crowded with people and animals. A fear came upon Joseph- a fear
|
|
lest, if the town were so thronged, there might not be house-room
|
|
for the gentle Mary. Without delay, he hurried on, past the pillar
|
|
of stone, marking the tomb of Rachel, up the gardened slope,
|
|
saluting none of the many persons he met on the way, until he
|
|
stopped before the portal of the khan that then stood outside the
|
|
village gates, near a junction of roads.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.
|
|
|
|
THE CAVE AT BETHLEHEM.
|
|
|
|
To understand thoroughly what happened to the Nazarene at the
|
|
khan, the reader must be reminded that Eastern inns were different
|
|
from the inns of the Western world. They were called khans, from the
|
|
Persian, and, in simplest form, were fenced enclosures, without
|
|
house or shed, often without a gate or entrance. Their sites were
|
|
chosen with reference to shade, defence, or water. Such were the
|
|
inns that sheltered Jacob when he went to seek a wife in Padan-Aram.
|
|
Their like may be seen at this day in the stopping-places of the
|
|
desert. On the other hand, some of them, especially those on the roads
|
|
between great cities, like Jerusalem and Alexandria, were princely
|
|
establishments, monuments to the piety of the kings who built them. In
|
|
ordinary, however, they were no more than the house or possession of a
|
|
sheik, in which, as in headquarters, he swayed his tribe. Lodging
|
|
the traveller was the least of their uses; they were markets,
|
|
factories, forts; places of assemblage and residence for merchants and
|
|
artisans quite as much as places of shelter for belated and
|
|
wandering wayfarers. Within their walls, all the year round,
|
|
occurred the multiplied daily transactions of a town.
|
|
|
|
The singular management of these hostelries was the feature likely
|
|
to strike a Western mind with most force. There was no host or
|
|
hostess; no clerk, cook, or kitchen; a steward at the gate was all the
|
|
assertion of government or proprietorship anywhere visible.
|
|
Strangers arriving stayed at will without rendering account. A
|
|
consequence of the system was that whoever came had to bring his
|
|
food and culinary outfit with him, or buy them of dealers in the khan.
|
|
The same rule held good as to his bed and bedding, and forage, for his
|
|
beasts. Water, rest, shelter, and protection were all he looked for
|
|
from the proprietor, and they were gratuities. The peace of synagogues
|
|
was sometimes broken by brawling disputants, but that of the khans
|
|
never. The houses and all their appurtenances were sacred: a well
|
|
was not more so.
|
|
|
|
The khan at Bethlehem, before which Joseph and his wife stopped, was
|
|
a good specimen of its class, being neither very primitive nor very
|
|
princely. The building was purely Oriental; that is to say, a
|
|
quadrangular block of rough stones, one storey high, flat-roofed,
|
|
externally unbroken by a window, and with but one principal
|
|
entrance- a doorway, which was also a gateway, on the eastern side, or
|
|
front. The road ran by the door so near that the chalk dust half
|
|
covered the lintel. A fence of flat rocks, beginning at the
|
|
northeastern corner of the pile, extended many yards down the slope to
|
|
a point from whence it swept westwardly to a limestone bluff; making
|
|
what was in the highest degree essential to a respectable khan- a safe
|
|
enclosure for animals.
|
|
|
|
In a village like Bethlehem, as there was but one sheik, there could
|
|
not well be more than one khan; and, though born in the place, the
|
|
Nazarene, from long residence elsewhere, had no claim to hospitality
|
|
in the town. Moreover, the enumeration for which he was coming might
|
|
be the work of weeks or months; Roman deputies in the provinces were
|
|
proverbially slow; and to impose himself and wife for a period so
|
|
uncertain upon acquaintances or relations was out of the question. So,
|
|
before he drew nigh the great house, while he was yet climbing the
|
|
slope, in the steep places toiling to hasten the donkey, the fear that
|
|
he might not find accommodations in the khan became a painful anxiety;
|
|
for he found the road thronged with men and boys who, with great
|
|
ado, were taking their cattle, horses, and camels to and from the
|
|
valley, some to water, some to the neighbouring caves. And when he was
|
|
come close by, his alarm was not allayed by the discovery of a crowd
|
|
investing the door of the establishment, while the enclosure
|
|
adjoining, broad as it was, seemed already full.
|
|
|
|
"We cannot reach the door," Joseph said, in his slow way. "Let us
|
|
stop here, and learn, if we can, what has happened."
|
|
|
|
The wife, without answering, quietly drew the wimple aside. The look
|
|
of fatigue at first upon her face changed to one of interest. She
|
|
found herself at the edge of an assemblage that could not be other
|
|
than a matter of curiosity to her, although it was common enough at
|
|
the khans on any of the highways which the great caravans were
|
|
accustomed to traverse. There were men on foot, running hither and
|
|
thither, talking shrilly and in all the tongues of Syria; men on
|
|
horseback screaming to men on camels; men struggling doubtfully with
|
|
fractious cows and frightened sheep; men peddling bread and wine;
|
|
and among the mass a herd of boys apparently in chase of a herd of
|
|
dogs. Everybody and everything seemed to be in motion at the same
|
|
time. Possibly the fair spectator was too weary to be long attracted
|
|
by the scene; in a little while she sighed, and settled down on the
|
|
pillion, and, as if in search of peace and rest, or in expectation
|
|
of some one, looked off to the south, and up to the tall cliffs of the
|
|
Mount of Paradise, then faintly reddening under the setting sun.
|
|
|
|
While she was thus looking, a man pushed his way out of the press,
|
|
and, stopping close by the donkey, faced about with an angry brow. The
|
|
Nazarene spoke to him.
|
|
|
|
"As I am what I take you to be, good friend- a son of Judah- may I
|
|
ask the cause of this multitude?"
|
|
|
|
The stranger turned fiercely; but, seeing the solemn countenance
|
|
of Joseph, so in keeping with his deep, slow voice and speech, he
|
|
raised his hand in half-salutation, and replied-
|
|
|
|
"Peace be to you, Rabbi! I am a son of Judah, and will answer you. I
|
|
dwell in Beth-Dagon, which, you know, is in what used to be the land
|
|
of the tribe of Dan."
|
|
|
|
"On the road to Joppa from Modin," said Joseph.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, you have been in Beth-Dagon," the man said, his face
|
|
softening yet more. "What wanderers we of Judah are! I have been
|
|
away from the ridge- old Ephrath, as our father Jacob called it- for
|
|
many years. When the proclamation went abroad requiring all Hebrews to
|
|
be numbered at the cities of their birth- That is my business here,
|
|
Rabbi."
|
|
|
|
Joseph's face remained stolid as a mask, while he remarked, "I
|
|
have come for that also- I and my wife."
|
|
|
|
The stranger glanced at Mary and kept silence. She was looking up at
|
|
the bald top of Gedor. The sun touched her upturned face, and filled
|
|
the violet depths of her eyes; and upon her parted lips trembled an
|
|
aspiration which could not have been to a mortal. For the moment,
|
|
all the humanity of her beauty seemed refined away: she was as we
|
|
fancy they are who sit close by the gate in the transfiguring light of
|
|
Heaven. The Beth-Dagonite saw the original of what, centuries after,
|
|
came as a vision of genius to Sanzio the divine, and left him
|
|
immortal.
|
|
|
|
"Of what was I speaking? Ah! I remember. I was about to say that
|
|
when I heard of the order to come here, I was angry. Then I thought of
|
|
the old hill, and the town, and the valley falling away into the
|
|
depths of Cedron; of the vines and orchards, and fields of grain,
|
|
unfailing since the days of Boaz and Ruth; of the familiar
|
|
mountains- Gedor here, Gibeah yonder, Mar Elias there- which, when I
|
|
was a boy, were the walls of the world to me; and I forgave the
|
|
tyrants and came- I, and Rachel, my wife, and Deborah and Michal,
|
|
our roses of Sharon."
|
|
|
|
The man paused again, looking abruptly at Mary, who was now
|
|
looking at him and listening. Then he said, "Rabbi, will not your wife
|
|
go to mine? You may see her yonder with the children, under the
|
|
leaning olive-tree at the bend of the road. I tell you"- he turned
|
|
to Joseph and spoke positively- "I tell you the khan is full. It is
|
|
useless to ask at the gate."
|
|
|
|
Joseph's will was slow, like his mind; he hesitated, but at length
|
|
replied, "The offer is kind. Whether there be room for us or not in
|
|
the house, we will go see your people. Let me speak to the
|
|
gatekeeper myself. I will return quickly."
|
|
|
|
And, putting the leading-strap in the stranger's hand, he pushed
|
|
into the stirring crowd.
|
|
|
|
The keeper sat on a great cedar block outside the gate. Against
|
|
the wall behind him leaned a javelin. A dog squatted on the block by
|
|
his side.
|
|
|
|
"The peace of Jehovah be with you," said Joseph, at last confronting
|
|
the keeper.
|
|
|
|
"What you give, may you find again; and, when found, be it many
|
|
times multiplied to you and yours," returned the watchman, gravely,
|
|
though without moving.
|
|
|
|
"I am a Bethlehemite," said Joseph, in his most deliberate way.
|
|
"Is there not room for- "
|
|
|
|
"There is not."
|
|
|
|
"You may have heard of me- Joseph of Nazareth. This is the house
|
|
of my fathers. I am of the line of David."
|
|
|
|
These words held the Nazarene's hope. If they failed him, further
|
|
appeal was idle, even that of the offer of many shekels. To be a son
|
|
of Judah was one thing- in the tribal opinion a great thing; to be
|
|
of the house of David was yet another; on the tongue of a Hebrew there
|
|
could be no higher boast. A thousand years and more had passed since
|
|
the boyish shepherd became the successor of Saul and founded a royal
|
|
family. Wars, calamities, other kings, and the countless obscuring
|
|
processes of time had, as respects fortune, lowered his descendants to
|
|
the common Jewish level; the bread they ate came to them of toil never
|
|
more humble; yet they had the benefit of history sacredly kept, of
|
|
which genealogy was the first chapter and the last; they could not
|
|
become unknown; while, wherever they went in Israel, acquaintance drew
|
|
after it a respect amounting to reverence.
|
|
|
|
If this were so in Jerusalem and elsewhere, certainly one of the
|
|
sacred line might reasonably rely upon it at the door of the khan of
|
|
Bethlehem. To say, as Joseph said, "This is the house of my
|
|
fathers," was to say the truth most simply and literally; for it was
|
|
the very house Ruth ruled as the wife of Boaz; the very house in which
|
|
Jesse and his ten sons, David the youngest, were born; the very
|
|
house in which Samuel came seeking a king, and found him; the very
|
|
house which David gave to the son of Barzillai, the friendly
|
|
Gileadite; the very house in which Jeremiah, by prayer, rescued the
|
|
remnant of his race flying before the Babylonians.
|
|
|
|
The appeal was not without effect. The keeper of the gate slid
|
|
down from the cedar block, and, laying his hand upon his beard,
|
|
said, respectfully, "Rabbi, I cannot tell you when this door first
|
|
opened in welcome to the traveller, but it was more than a thousand
|
|
years ago; and in all that time there is no known instance of a good
|
|
man turned away, save when there was no room to rest him in. If it has
|
|
been so with the stranger, just cause must the steward have who says
|
|
no to one of the line of David. Wherefore, I salute you again; and, if
|
|
you care to go with me, I will show you that there is not a
|
|
lodging-place left in the house; neither in the chambers, nor in the
|
|
lewens, nor in the court- not even on the roof. May I ask when you
|
|
came?"
|
|
|
|
"But now."
|
|
|
|
The keeper smiled.
|
|
|
|
"'The stranger that dwelleth with you shall be as one born among
|
|
you, and thou shalt love him as thyself.' Is not that the law, Rabbi?"
|
|
|
|
Joseph was silent.
|
|
|
|
"If it be the law, can I say to one a long time come, 'Go thy way;
|
|
another is here to take thy place'?"
|
|
|
|
Yet Joseph held his peace.
|
|
|
|
"And, if I said so, to whom would the place belong? See the many
|
|
that have been waiting, some of them since noon."
|
|
|
|
"Who are all these people?" asked Joseph, turning to the crowd. "And
|
|
why are they here at this time?"
|
|
|
|
"That which doubtless brought you, Rabbi- the decree of the Caesar"-
|
|
the keeper threw an interrogative glance at the Nazarene, then
|
|
continued- "brought most of those who have lodging in the house. And
|
|
yesterday the caravan passing from Damascus to Arabia and Lower
|
|
Egypt arrived. These you see here belong to it- men and camels."
|
|
|
|
Still Joseph persisted.
|
|
|
|
"The court is large," he said.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, but it is heaped with cargoes- with bales of silk, and pockets
|
|
of spices, and goods of every kind."
|
|
|
|
Then for a moment the face of the applicant lost its stolidity;
|
|
the lustreless, staring eyes dropped. With some warmth he next said,
|
|
"I do not care for myself, but I have with me my wife, and the night
|
|
is cold- colder on these heights than in Nazareth. She cannot live
|
|
in the open air. Is there not room in the town?"
|
|
|
|
"These people"- the keeper waved his hand to the throng before the
|
|
door- "have all besought the town, and they report its
|
|
accommodations all engaged."
|
|
|
|
Again Joseph studied the ground, saying, half to himself, "She is so
|
|
young! if I make her bed on the hill, the frosts will kill her."
|
|
|
|
Then he spoke to the keeper again.
|
|
|
|
"It may be you knew her parents, Joachim and Anna, once of
|
|
Bethlehem, and, like myself, of the line of David."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I knew them. They were good people. That was in my youth."
|
|
|
|
This time the keeper's eyes sought the ground in thought. Suddenly
|
|
he raised his head.
|
|
|
|
"If I cannot make room for you," he said, "I cannot turn you away.
|
|
Rabbi, I will do the best I can for you. How many are of your party?"
|
|
|
|
Joseph reflected, then replied, "My wife and a friend with his
|
|
family, from Beth-Dagon, a little town over by Joppa; in all, six of
|
|
us."
|
|
|
|
"Very well. You shall not lie out on the ridge. Bring your people
|
|
and hasten; for, when the sun goes down behind the mountain, you
|
|
know the night comes quickly, and it is nearly there now."
|
|
|
|
"I give you the blessing of the houseless traveller; that of the
|
|
sojourner will follow."
|
|
|
|
So saying, the Nazarene went back joyfully to Mary and the
|
|
Beth-Dagonite. In a little while the latter brought up his family, the
|
|
women mounted on donkeys. The wife was matronly, the daughters were
|
|
images of what she must have been in youth; and as they drew nigh
|
|
the door, the keeper knew them to be of the humble class.
|
|
|
|
"This is she of whom I spoke," said the Nazarene; "and these are our
|
|
friends."
|
|
|
|
Mary's veil was raised.
|
|
|
|
"Blue eyes and hair of gold," muttered the steward to himself,
|
|
seeing but her. "So looked the young king when he went to sing
|
|
before Saul."
|
|
|
|
Then he took the leading-strap from Joseph and said to Mary,
|
|
"Peace to you, O daughter of David!" Then to the others, "Peace to you
|
|
all!" Then to Joseph, "Rabbi, follow me!"
|
|
|
|
The party were conducted into a wide passage paved with stone,
|
|
from which they entered the court of the khan. To a stranger the scene
|
|
would have been curious; but they noticed the lewens that yawned
|
|
darkly upon them from all sides, and the court itself, only to
|
|
remark how crowded they were. By a lane reserved in the stowage of the
|
|
cargoes, and thence by a passage similar to the one at the entrance,
|
|
they emerged into the enclosure adjoining the house, and came upon
|
|
camels, horses, and donkeys, tethered and dozing in close groups;
|
|
among them were the keepers, men of many lands; and they, too, slept
|
|
or kept silent watch. They went down the slope of the crowded yard
|
|
slowly, for the dull carriers of the women had wills of their own.
|
|
At length they turned into a path running towards the grey limestone
|
|
bluff overlooking the khan on the west.
|
|
|
|
"We are going to the cave," said Joseph, laconically.
|
|
|
|
The guide lingered till Mary came to his side.
|
|
|
|
"The cave to which we are going," he said to her, "must have been
|
|
a resort of your ancestor David. From the field below us, and from the
|
|
well down in the valley, he used to drive his flock to it for
|
|
safety; and afterwards, when he was king, he came back to the old
|
|
house here for rest and health, bringing great trains of animals.
|
|
The mangers yet remain as they were in his day. Better a bed upon
|
|
the floor where he has slept than one in the court-yard or out by
|
|
the roadside. Ah, here is the house before the cave!"
|
|
|
|
This speech must not be taken as an apology for the lodging offered.
|
|
There was no need of apology. The place was the best then at disposal.
|
|
The guests were simple folks, by habits of life easily satisfied. To
|
|
the Jew of that period, moreover, abode in caverns was a familiar
|
|
idea, made so by every-day occurrences, and by what he heard of
|
|
Sabbaths in the synagogues. How much of Jewish history, how many of
|
|
the most exciting incidents in that history, had transpired in
|
|
caves! Yet further, these people were Jews of Bethlehem, with whom the
|
|
idea was especially commonplace; for their locality abounded with
|
|
caves great and small, some of which had been dwelling-places from the
|
|
time of the Emim and Horites. No more was there offence to them in the
|
|
fact that the cavern to which they were being taken had been, or
|
|
was, a stable. They were the descendants of a race of herdsmen,
|
|
whose flocks habitually shared both their habitations and
|
|
wanderings. In keeping with a custom derived from Abraham, the tent of
|
|
the Bedawin yet shelters his horses and children alike. So they obeyed
|
|
the keeper cheerfully, and gazed at the house, feeling only a
|
|
natural curiosity. Everything associated with the history of David was
|
|
interesting to them.
|
|
|
|
The building was low and narrow, projecting but a little from the
|
|
rock to which it was joined at the rear, and wholly without a
|
|
window. In its blank front there was a door, swung on enormous hinges,
|
|
and thickly daubed with ochreous clay. While the wooden bolt of the
|
|
lock was being pushed back, the women were assisted from their
|
|
pillions. Upon the opening of the door, the keeper called out-
|
|
|
|
"Come in!"
|
|
|
|
The guests entered, and stared about them. It became apparent
|
|
immediately that the house was but a mask or covering for the mouth of
|
|
a natural cave or grotto, probably forty feet long, nine or ten
|
|
high, and twelve or fifteen in width. The light streamed through the
|
|
doorway, over an uneven floor, falling upon piles of grain and fodder,
|
|
and earthenware and household property, occupying the centre of the
|
|
chamber. Along the sides were mangers, low enough for sleep, and built
|
|
of stones laid in cement. There were no stalls or partitions of any
|
|
kind. Dust and chaff yellowed the floor, filled all the crevices and
|
|
hollows, and thickened the spider-webs, which dropped from the ceiling
|
|
like bits of dirty linen; otherwise the place was cleanly, and, to
|
|
appearance, as comfortable as any of the arched lewens of the khan
|
|
proper. In fact, a cave was the model and first suggestion of the
|
|
lewen.
|
|
|
|
"Come in!" said the guide. "These piles upon the floor are for
|
|
travellers like yourselves. Take what of them you need."
|
|
|
|
Then he spoke to Mary.
|
|
|
|
"Can you rest here?"
|
|
|
|
"The place is sanctified," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"I leave you then. Peace be with you all!"
|
|
|
|
When he was gone, they busied themselves making the cave habitable.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.
|
|
|
|
THE LIGHT IN THE SKY.
|
|
|
|
AT a certain hour in the evening the shouting and stir of the people
|
|
in and about the khan ceased; at the same time, every Israelite, if
|
|
not already upon his feet, arose, solemnized his face, looked
|
|
towards Jerusalem, crossed his hands upon his breast, and prayed;
|
|
for it was the sacred ninth hour, when sacrifices were offered in
|
|
the temple on Moriah, and God was supposed to be there. When the hands
|
|
of the worshippers fell down, the commotion broke forth again;
|
|
everybody hastened to bread, or to make his pallet. A little later the
|
|
lights were put out, and there was silence, and then sleep.
|
|
|
|
* * * * *
|
|
|
|
About midnight some one on the roof cried, "What light is that in
|
|
the sky? Awake, brethren, awake and see!"
|
|
|
|
The people, half asleep, sat up and looked; then they became
|
|
wide-awake, though wonder-struck. And the stir spread to the court
|
|
below, and into the lewens; soon the entire tenantry of the house
|
|
and court and enclosure were out gazing at the sky.
|
|
|
|
And this was what they saw. A ray of light, beginning at a height
|
|
immeasurably beyond the nearest stars, and dropping obliquely to the
|
|
earth; at its top, a diminishing point; at its base, many furlongs
|
|
in width; its sides blending softly with the darkness of the night;
|
|
its core a roseate electrical splendour. The apparition seemed to rest
|
|
on the nearest mountain south-east of the town, making a pale corona
|
|
along the line of the summit. The khan was touched luminously, so that
|
|
those upon the roof saw each other's faces, all filled with wonder.
|
|
|
|
Steadily, through minutes, the ray lingered, and then the wonder
|
|
changed to awe and fear; the timid trembled; the boldest spoke in
|
|
whispers.
|
|
|
|
"Saw you ever the like?" asked one.
|
|
|
|
"It seems just over the mountain there. I cannot tell what it is,
|
|
nor did I ever see anything like it," was the answer.
|
|
|
|
"Can it be that a star has burst and fallen?" asked another, his
|
|
tongue faltering.
|
|
|
|
"When a star falls, its light goes out."
|
|
|
|
"I have it!" cried one, confidently. "The shepherds have seen a
|
|
lion, and made fires to keep him from the flocks."
|
|
|
|
The men next the speaker drew a breath of relief, and said, "Yes,
|
|
that is it! The flocks were grazing in the valley over there to-day."
|
|
|
|
A bystander dispelled the comfort.
|
|
|
|
"No, no! Though all the wood in all the valleys of Judah was brought
|
|
together in one pile and fired, the blaze would not throw a light so
|
|
strong and high."
|
|
|
|
After that there was silence on the house-top, broken but once again
|
|
while the mystery continued.
|
|
|
|
"Brethren!" exclaimed a Jew of venerable mien, "what we see is the
|
|
ladder our father Jacob saw in his dream. Blessed be the Lord God of
|
|
our fathers!"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI.
|
|
|
|
CHRIST IS BORN.
|
|
|
|
A MILE and a half, it may be two miles, south-east of Bethlehem,
|
|
there is a plain separated from the town by an intervening swell of
|
|
the mountain. Besides being well sheltered from the north winds, the
|
|
vale was covered with a growth of sycamore, dwarf-oak, and pine trees,
|
|
while in the glens and ravines adjoining there were thickets of
|
|
olive and mulberry; all at this season of the year invaluable for
|
|
the support of sheep, goats, and cattle, of which the wandering flocks
|
|
consisted.
|
|
|
|
At the side farthest from the town, close under a bluff, there was
|
|
an extensive marah, or sheepcot, ages old. In some long-forgotten
|
|
foray the building had been unroofed and almost demolished. The
|
|
enclosure attached to it remained intact, however, and that was of
|
|
more importance to the shepherds who drove their charges thither
|
|
than the house itself. The stone wall around the lot was high as a
|
|
man's head, yet not so high but that sometimes a panther or a lion,
|
|
hungering from the wilderness, leaped boldly in. On the inside of
|
|
the wall, and as an additional security against the constant danger
|
|
a hedge of the rhamnus had been planted, an invention so successful
|
|
that now a sparrow could hardly penetrate the overtopping branches,
|
|
armed as they were with great clusters of thorns hard as spikes.
|
|
|
|
The day of the occurrences which occupy the preceding chapters, a
|
|
number of shepherds, seeking fresh walks for their flocks, led them up
|
|
to this plain; and from early morning the groves had been made ring
|
|
with calls, and the blows of axes, the bleating of sheep and goats,
|
|
the tinkling of bells, the lowing of cattle, and the barking of
|
|
dogs. When the sun went down, they led the way to the marah, and by
|
|
nightfall had everything safe in the field; then they kindled a fire
|
|
down by the gate, partook of their humble supper, and sat down to rest
|
|
and talk, leaving one on watch.
|
|
|
|
There were six of these men, omitting the watchman; and afterwhile
|
|
they assembled in a group near the fire, some sitting, some lying
|
|
prone. As they went bareheaded habitually, their hair stood out in
|
|
thick, coarse, sunburnt shocks; their beard covered their throats, and
|
|
fell in mats down the breast; mantles of the skin of kids and lambs,
|
|
with the fleece on, wrapped them from neck to knee, leaving the arms
|
|
exposed; broad belts girthed the rude garments to their waists;
|
|
their sandals were of the coarsest quality; from their right shoulders
|
|
hung scrips containing food and selected stones for slings, with which
|
|
they were armed; on the ground near each one lay his crook, a symbol
|
|
of his calling and a weapon of offence.
|
|
|
|
Such were the shepherds of Judea! In appearance, rough and savage as
|
|
the gaunt dogs sitting with them around the blaze; in fact,
|
|
simple-minded, tender-hearted; effects due, in part, to the
|
|
primitive life they led, but chiefly to their constant care of
|
|
things lovable and helpless.
|
|
|
|
They rested and talked; and their talk was all about their flocks- a
|
|
dull theme to the world, yet a theme which was all the world to
|
|
them. If in narrative they dwelt long upon affairs of trifling moment;
|
|
if one of them omitted nothing of detail in recounting the loss of a
|
|
lamb, the relation between him and the unfortunate should be
|
|
remembered: at birth it became his charge, his to keep all its days,
|
|
to help over the floods, to carry down the hollows, to name and train;
|
|
it was to be his companion, his object of thought and interest, the
|
|
subject of his will; it was to enliven and share his wanderings; in
|
|
its defence he might be called on to face the lion or robber- to die.
|
|
|
|
The great events, such as blotted out nations and changed the
|
|
mastery of the world, were trifles to them, if perchance they came
|
|
to their knowledge. Of what Herod was doing in this city or that,
|
|
building palaces and gymnasia, and indulging forbidden practices, they
|
|
occasionally heard. As was her habit in those days, Rome did not
|
|
wait for people slow to inquire about her; she came to them. Over
|
|
the hills along which he was leading his lagging herd, or in the
|
|
fastnesses in which he was hiding them, not unfrequently the
|
|
shepherd was startled by the blare of trumpets, and, peering out
|
|
beheld a cohort, sometimes a legion, in march; and when the glittering
|
|
crests were gone, and the excitement incident to the intrusion over,
|
|
he bent himself to evolve the meaning of the eagle and gilded globes
|
|
of the soldiery, and the charm of a life so the opposite of his own.
|
|
|
|
Yet these men, rude and simple as they were, had a knowledge and a
|
|
wisdom of their own. On Sabbaths they were accustomed to purify
|
|
themselves, and go up into the synagogues, and sit on the benches
|
|
farthest from the ark. When the chazzan bore the Torah round, none
|
|
kissed it with greater zest; when the sheliach read the text, none
|
|
listened to the interpreter with more absolute faith; and none took
|
|
away with them more of the elder's sermon, or gave it more thought
|
|
afterwards. In a verse of the Shema they found all the learning and
|
|
all the law of their simple lives- that their Lord was One God, and
|
|
that they must love Him with all their souls. And they loved Him,
|
|
and such was their wisdom, surpassing that of kings.
|
|
|
|
While they talked, and before the first watch was over, one by one
|
|
the shepherds went to sleep, each lying where he had sat.
|
|
|
|
The night, like most nights of the winter season in the hill
|
|
country, was clear, crisp, and sparkling with stars. There was no
|
|
wind. The atmosphere seemed never so pure, and the stillness was
|
|
more than silence; it was a holy hush, a warning that heaven was
|
|
stooping low to whisper some good thing to the listening earth.
|
|
|
|
By the gate, hugging his mantle close, the watchman walked; at times
|
|
he stopped, attracted by a stir among the sleeping herds, or by a
|
|
Jackal's cry off on the mountain-side. The midnight was slow coming to
|
|
him; but at last it came. His task was done; now for the dreamless
|
|
sleep with which labour blesses its wearied children! He moved towards
|
|
the fire, but paused; a light was breaking around him, soft and white,
|
|
like the moon's. He waited breathlessly. The light, deepened; things
|
|
before invisible came to view; he saw the whole field, and all it
|
|
sheltered. A chill sharper than that of the frosty air- a chill of
|
|
fear- smote him. He looked up; the stars were gone; the light was
|
|
dropping as from a window in the sky; as he looked, it became a
|
|
splendour; then, in terror he cried-
|
|
|
|
"Awake, awake!"
|
|
|
|
Up sprang the dogs, and, howling, ran away.
|
|
|
|
The herds rushed together bewildered.
|
|
|
|
The men clambered to their feet, weapons in hand.
|
|
|
|
"What is it?" they asked, in one voice.
|
|
|
|
"See!" cried the watchman, "the sky is on fire!"
|
|
|
|
Suddenly the light became intolerably bright, and they covered their
|
|
eyes, and dropped upon their knees; then, as their souls shrank with
|
|
fear, they fell upon their faces blind and fainting, and would have
|
|
died had not a voice said to them-
|
|
|
|
"Fear not!"
|
|
|
|
And they listened.
|
|
|
|
"Fear not: for behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy,
|
|
which shall be to all people."
|
|
|
|
The voice, in sweetness and soothing more than human, and low and
|
|
clear, penetrated all their being, and filled them with assurance.
|
|
They rose upon their knees, and, looking worshipfully, beheld in the
|
|
centre of a great glory the appearance of a man, clad in a robe
|
|
intensely white; above its shoulders towered the tops of wings shining
|
|
and folded; a star over its forehead glowed with steady lustre,
|
|
brilliant as Hesperus; its hands were stretched towards them in
|
|
blessing; its face was serene and divinely beautiful.
|
|
|
|
They had often heard, and in their simple way talked, of angels; and
|
|
they doubted not now, but said, in their hearts, The glory of God is
|
|
about us, and this is he who of old came to the prophet by the river
|
|
of Ulai.
|
|
|
|
Directly the angel continued-
|
|
|
|
"For unto you is born this day, in the city of David, a Saviour
|
|
which is Christ the Lord!"
|
|
|
|
Again there was a rest, while the words sank into their minds.
|
|
|
|
"And this shall be a sign unto you," the annunciator said next.
|
|
"Ye shall find the babe, wrapped in swaddling-clothes, lying in a
|
|
manger."
|
|
|
|
The herald spoke not again; his good tidings were told; yet he
|
|
stayed awhile. Suddenly the light, of which he seemed the centre,
|
|
turned roseate and began to tremble; then up, far as the men could
|
|
see, there was flashing of white wings, and coming and going of
|
|
radiant forms, and voices as of a multitude chanting in unison-
|
|
|
|
"Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good-will
|
|
towards men!"
|
|
|
|
Not once the praise, but many times.
|
|
|
|
Then the herald raised his eyes as seeking approval of one far
|
|
off; his wings stirred, and spread slowly and majestically, on their
|
|
upper side white as snow, in the shadow vari-tinted, like
|
|
mother-of-pearl; when they were expanded many cubits beyond his
|
|
stature, he rose lightly, and, without effort, floated out of view,
|
|
taking the light up with him. Long after he was gone, down from the
|
|
sky fell the refrain in measure mellowed by distance, "Glory to God in
|
|
the highest, and on earth peace, good-will towards men."
|
|
|
|
When the shepherds came fully to their senses, they stared at each
|
|
other stupidly, until one of them said, "It was Gabriel, the Lord's
|
|
messenger unto men."
|
|
|
|
None answered.
|
|
|
|
"Christ the Lord is born; said he not so?"
|
|
|
|
Then another recovered his voice, and replied, "That is what he
|
|
said."
|
|
|
|
"And did he not also say, in the city of David, which is our
|
|
Bethlehem yonder. And that we should find Him a babe in swaddling
|
|
clothes?"
|
|
|
|
"And lying in a manger."
|
|
|
|
The first speaker gazed into the fire thoughtfully, but at length
|
|
said, like one possessed of a sudden resolve, "There is but one
|
|
place in Bethlehem where there are mangers; but one, and that is in
|
|
the cave near the old khan. Brethren, let us go see this thing which
|
|
has come to pass. The priests and doctors have been a long time
|
|
looking for the Christ. Now He is born, and the Lord has given us a
|
|
sign by which to know Him. Let us go and worship Him."
|
|
|
|
"But the flocks!"
|
|
|
|
"The Lord will take care of them. Let us make haste."
|
|
|
|
Then they all arose and left the marah.
|
|
|
|
* * * * *
|
|
|
|
Around the mountain and through the town they passed, and came to
|
|
the gate of the khan, where there was a man on watch.
|
|
|
|
"What would you have?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"We have seen and heard great things to-night," they replied.
|
|
|
|
"Well, we, too, have seen great things, but heard nothing. What
|
|
did you hear?"
|
|
|
|
"Let us go down to the cave in the enclosure, that we may be sure;
|
|
then we will tell you all. Come with us, and see for yourself."
|
|
|
|
"It is a fool's errand."
|
|
|
|
"No, the Christ is born."
|
|
|
|
"The Christ! How do you know?"
|
|
|
|
"Let us go and see first."
|
|
|
|
The man laughed scornfully.
|
|
|
|
"The Christ indeed! How are you to know Him?"
|
|
|
|
"He was born this night, and is now lying in a manger, so we were
|
|
told; and there is but one place in Bethlehem with mangers."
|
|
|
|
"The cave?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Come with us."
|
|
|
|
They went through the court-yard without notice, although there were
|
|
some up even then talking about the wonderful light. The door of the
|
|
cavern was open. A lantern was burning within, and they entered
|
|
unceremoniously.
|
|
|
|
"I give you peace," the watchman said to Joseph and the
|
|
Beth-Dagonite. "Here are people looking for a child born this night,
|
|
whom they are to know by finding Him in swaddling-clothes and lying in
|
|
a manger."
|
|
|
|
For a moment the face of the stolid Nazarene was moved; turning
|
|
away, he said, "The child is here."
|
|
|
|
They were led to one of the mangers, and there the child was. The
|
|
lantern was brought, and the shepherds stood by mute. The little one
|
|
made no sign; it was as others just born.
|
|
|
|
"Where is the mother?" asked the watchman.
|
|
|
|
One of the women took the baby, and went to Mary, lying near, and
|
|
put it in her arms. Then the bystanders collected about the two.
|
|
|
|
"It is the Christ!" said a shepherd at last.
|
|
|
|
"The Christ!" they all repeated, falling upon their knees in
|
|
worship. One of them repeated several times over-
|
|
|
|
"It is the Lord, and His glory is above the earth and heaven."
|
|
|
|
And the simple men, never doubting, kissed the hem of the mother's
|
|
robe, and with joyful faces departed. In the khan, to all the people
|
|
aroused and pressing about them, they told their story; and through
|
|
the town, and all the way back to the marah, they chanted the
|
|
refrain of the angels, "Glory to God in the highest, and on earth
|
|
peace, good-will towards men!"
|
|
|
|
The story went abroad, confirmed by the light so generally seen; and
|
|
the next day, and for days thereafter, the cave was visited by curious
|
|
crowds, of whom some believed, though the greater part laughed and
|
|
mocked.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.
|
|
|
|
THE WISE MEN ARRIVE AT JERUSALEM.
|
|
|
|
THE eleventh day after the birth of the child in the cave, about
|
|
mid-afternoon, the three wise men approached Jerusalem by the road
|
|
from Shechem. After crossing Brook Cedron, they met many people, of
|
|
whom none failed to stop and look after them curiously.
|
|
|
|
Judea was of necessity an international thoroughfare; a narrow
|
|
ridge, raised, apparently, by the pressure of the desert on the
|
|
east, and the sea on the west, was all she could claim to be; over the
|
|
ridge, however, nature had stretched the line of trade between the
|
|
east and the south; and that was her wealth. In other words, the
|
|
riches of Jerusalem were the tolls she levied on passing commerce.
|
|
Nowhere else, consequently, unless in Rome, was there such constant
|
|
assemblage of so many people of so many different nations; in no other
|
|
city was a stranger less strange to the residents than within her
|
|
walls and purlieus. And yet these three men excited the wonder of
|
|
all whom they met on the way to the gates.
|
|
|
|
A child belonging to some women sitting by the roadside opposite the
|
|
Tombs of the Kings saw the party coming; immediately it clapped its
|
|
hands, and cried, "Look, look! What pretty bells! What big camels!"
|
|
|
|
The bells were silver; the camels, as we have seen, were of
|
|
unusual size and whiteness, and moved with singular stateliness; the
|
|
trappings told of the desert and of long journeys thereon, and also of
|
|
ample means in possession of the owners, who sat under the little
|
|
canopies exactly as they appeared at the rendezvous beyond the
|
|
Jebel. Yet it was not the bells or the camels, or their furniture,
|
|
or the demeanour of the riders, that were so wonderful; it was the
|
|
question put by the man who rode foremost of the three.
|
|
|
|
The approach to Jerusalem from the north is across a plain which
|
|
dips southward, leaving the Damascus Gate in a vale or hollow. The
|
|
road is narrow, but deeply cut by long use, and in places difficult on
|
|
account of the cobbles left loose and dry by the washing of the rains.
|
|
On either side, however, there stretched, in the old time, rich fields
|
|
and handsome olive-groves, which must, in luxurious growth, have
|
|
been beautiful, especially to travellers fresh from the wastes of
|
|
the desert. In this road the three stopped before the party in front
|
|
of the Tombs.
|
|
|
|
"Good people," said Balthasar, stroking his plaited beard and
|
|
bending from his cot, "is not Jerusalem close by?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," answered the woman into whose arms the child had shrunk.
|
|
"If the trees on yon swell were a little lower, you could see the
|
|
towers on the Market-place."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar gave the Greek and the Hindoo a look, then asked,
|
|
|
|
"Where is He that is born King of the Jews?"
|
|
|
|
The women gazed at each other without reply.
|
|
|
|
"You have not heard of Him?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Well tell everybody that we have seen His star in the east, and are
|
|
come to worship Him."
|
|
|
|
Thereupon the friends rode on. Of others they asked the same
|
|
question, with like result. A large company whom they met going to the
|
|
Grotto of Jeremiah were so astonished by the inquiry and the
|
|
appearance of the travellers that they turned about and followed
|
|
them into the city.
|
|
|
|
So much were the three occupied with the idea of their mission
|
|
that they did not care for the view which presently rose before them
|
|
in the utmost magnificence: for the village first to receive them on
|
|
Bezetha; for Mizpah and Olivet, over on their left; for the wall
|
|
behind the village, with its forty tall and solid towers, superadded
|
|
partly for strength, partly to gratify the critical taste of the
|
|
kingly builder; for the same towered wall bending off to the right,
|
|
with many an angle, and here and there an embattled gate, up to the
|
|
three great white piles, Phasaelus, Mariamne, and Hippicus; for
|
|
Zion, tallest of the hills, crowned with marble palaces, and never
|
|
so beautiful; for the glittering terraces of the temple on Moriah,
|
|
admittedly one of the wonders of the earth; for the regal mountains
|
|
rimming the sacred city round about until it seemed in the hollow of a
|
|
mighty bowl.
|
|
|
|
They came, at length, to a tower of great height and strength,
|
|
overlooking the gate which, at that time, answered to the present
|
|
Damascus Gate, and marked the meeting place of the three roads from
|
|
Shechem, Jericho, and Gibeon. A Roman guard kept the passage-way. By
|
|
this time the people following the camels formed a train sufficient to
|
|
draw the idlers hanging about the portal; so that when Balthasar
|
|
stopped to speak to the sentinel, the three became instantly the
|
|
centre of a close circle eager to hear all that passed.
|
|
|
|
"I give you peace," the Egyptian said, in a clear voice.
|
|
|
|
The sentinel made no reply.
|
|
|
|
"We have come great distances in search of one who is born King of
|
|
the Jews. Can you tell us where He is?"
|
|
|
|
The soldier raised the visor of his helmet, and called loudly.
|
|
From an apartment at the right of the passage an officer appeared.
|
|
|
|
"Give way," he cried, to the crowd which now pressed closer in;
|
|
and as they seemed slow to obey, he advanced, twirling his javelin
|
|
vigorously, now right, now left; and so he gained room.
|
|
|
|
"What would you?" he asked of Balthasar, speaking in the idiom of
|
|
the city.
|
|
|
|
And Balthasar answered in the same-
|
|
|
|
"Where is He that is born King of the Jews?"
|
|
|
|
"Herod?" asked the officer, confounded.
|
|
|
|
"Herod's kingship is from Caesar; not Herod."
|
|
|
|
"There is no other King of the Jews."
|
|
|
|
"But we have seen the star of Him we seek, and come to worship Him."
|
|
|
|
The Roman was perplexed.
|
|
|
|
"Go farther," he said, at last. "Go farther. I am not a Jew. Carry
|
|
the question to the doctors in the Temple, or to Hannas the priest,
|
|
or, better still, to Herod himself. If there be another King of the
|
|
Jews, he will find him."
|
|
|
|
Thereupon he made way for the strangers, and they passed the gate.
|
|
But, before entering the narrow street, Balthasar lingered to say to
|
|
His friends, "We are sufficiently proclaimed. By midnight the whole
|
|
city will have heard of us and of our mission, Let us to the khan
|
|
now."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.
|
|
|
|
THE WITNESSES BEFORE HEROD.
|
|
|
|
THAT evening, before sunset, some women were washing clothes on
|
|
the upper step of the flight that led down into the basin of the
|
|
Pool of Siloam. They knelt each before a broad bowl of earthenware.
|
|
A girl at the foot of the steps kept them supplied with water, and
|
|
sang while she filled the jar. The song was cheerful, and no doubt
|
|
lightened their labour. Occasionally they would sit upon their
|
|
heels, and look up the slope of Ophel, and round to the summit of what
|
|
is now the Mount of Offence, then faintly glorified by the dying sun.
|
|
|
|
While they plied their hands, rubbing and wringing the clothes in
|
|
the bowls, two other women came to them, each with an empty jar upon
|
|
her shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you," one of the new-comers said.
|
|
|
|
The labourers paused, sat up, wrung the water from their hands,
|
|
and returned the salutation.
|
|
|
|
"It is nearly night- time to quit."
|
|
|
|
"There is no end to work," was the reply.
|
|
|
|
"But there is a time to rest, and- "
|
|
|
|
"To hear what may be passing," interposed another.
|
|
|
|
"What news have you?"
|
|
|
|
"Then you have not heard?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"They say the Christ is born," said the newsmonger, plunging into
|
|
her story.
|
|
|
|
It was curious to see the faces of the labourers brighten with
|
|
interest; on the other side down came the jars, which, in a moment,
|
|
were turned into seats for their owners.
|
|
|
|
"The Christ!" the listeners cried.
|
|
|
|
"So they say."
|
|
|
|
"Who?"
|
|
|
|
"Everybody; it is common talk."
|
|
|
|
"Does anybody believe it?"
|
|
|
|
"This afternoon three men came across Brook Cedron on the road
|
|
from Shechem," the speaker replied, circumstantially, intending to
|
|
smother doubt. "Each one of them rode a camel spotless white, and
|
|
larger than any ever before seen in Jerusalem."
|
|
|
|
The eyes and mouths of the auditors opened wide.
|
|
|
|
"To prove how great and rich the men were," the narrator
|
|
continued, "they sat under awnings of silk; the buckles of their
|
|
saddles were of gold, as was the fringe of their bridles; the bells
|
|
were of silver, and made real music. Nobody knew them; they looked
|
|
as if they had come from the ends of the world. Only one of them
|
|
spoke, and of everybody on the road, even the women and children, he
|
|
asked this question- 'Where is He that is born King of the Jews?' No
|
|
one gave them answer- no one understood what they meant; so they
|
|
passed on, leaving behind them this saying: 'For we have seen His star
|
|
in the east, and are come to worship Him.' They put the question to
|
|
the Roman at the gate; and he, no wiser than the simple people on
|
|
the road, sent them up to Herod."
|
|
|
|
"Where are they now?"
|
|
|
|
"At the khan. Hundreds have been to look at them already, and
|
|
hundreds more are going."
|
|
|
|
"Who are they?"
|
|
|
|
"Nobody knows. They are said to be Persians- wise men who talk
|
|
with the stars- prophets, it may be, like Elijah and Jeremiah."
|
|
|
|
"What do they mean by King of the Jews?"
|
|
|
|
"The Christ, and that He is just born."
|
|
|
|
One of the women laughed, and resumed her work, saying, "Well,
|
|
when I see Him I will believe."
|
|
|
|
Another followed her example: "And I- well, when I see Him raise the
|
|
dead, I will believe."
|
|
|
|
A third said, quietly, "He has been a long time promised. It will be
|
|
enough for me to see Him heal one leper."
|
|
|
|
And the party sat talking until the night came, and, with the help
|
|
of the frosty air, drove them home.
|
|
|
|
* * * * *
|
|
|
|
Later in the evening, about the beginning of the first watch,
|
|
there was an assemblage in the palace on Mount Zion, of probably fifty
|
|
persons, who never came together except by order of Herod, and then
|
|
only when he had demanded to know some one or more of the deeper
|
|
mysteries of the Jewish law and history. It was, in short, a meeting
|
|
of the teachers of the colleges, of the chief priests, and of the
|
|
doctors most noted in the city for learning- the leaders of opinion,
|
|
expounders of the different creeds; princes of the Sadducees;
|
|
Pharisaic debaters; calm, soft-spoken, stoical philosophers of the
|
|
Essene socialists.
|
|
|
|
The chamber in which the session was held belonged to one of the
|
|
interior court-yards of the palace, and was quite large and
|
|
Romanesque. The floor was tesselated with marble blocks; the walls,
|
|
unbroken by a window, were frescoed in panels of saffron yellow; a
|
|
divan occupied the centre of the apartment, covered with cushions of
|
|
bright-yellow cloth, and fashioned in form of the letter U, the
|
|
opening towards the doorway; in the arch of the divan, or as it
|
|
were, in the bend of the letter, there was an immense bronze tripod,
|
|
curiously inlaid with gold and silver, over which a chandelier dropped
|
|
from the ceiling, having seven arms, each holding a lighted lamp.
|
|
The divan and the lamp were purely Jewish.
|
|
|
|
The company sat upon the divan after the style of Orientals, in
|
|
costume singularly uniform, except as to colour. They were mostly
|
|
men advanced in years; immense beards covered their faces; to their
|
|
large noses were added the effects of large black eyes deeply shaded
|
|
by bold brows; their demeanour was grave, dignified, even patriarchal.
|
|
In brief, their session was that of the Sanhedrim.
|
|
|
|
He who sat before the tripod, however, in the place which may be
|
|
called the head of the divan, having all the rest of his associates on
|
|
his right and left, and at the same time, before him, evidently
|
|
president of the meeting, would have instantly absorbed the
|
|
attention of a spectator. He had been cast in large mould, but was now
|
|
shrunken and stooped to ghastliness: his white robe dropped from his
|
|
shoulders in folds that gave no hint of muscle or anything but an
|
|
angular skeleton. His hands, half concealed by sleeves of silk,
|
|
white and crimson striped, were clasped upon his knees. When he spoke,
|
|
sometimes the first finger of the right hand extended tremulously;
|
|
he seemed incapable of other gesture. But his head was a splendid
|
|
dome. A few hairs whiter than fine-drawn silver, fringed the base;
|
|
over a broad, full-sphered skull the skin was drawn close, and shone
|
|
in the light with positive brilliance; the temples were deep
|
|
hollows, from which the forehead beetled like a wrinkled crag; the
|
|
eyes were wan and dim; the nose was pinched; and all the lower face
|
|
was muffled in a beard flowing and venerable as Aaron's. Such was
|
|
Hillel the Babylonian! The line of prophets, long extinct in Israel,
|
|
was now succeeded by a line of scholars, of whom he was first in
|
|
learning- a prophet in all but the divine inspiration! At the age of
|
|
one hundred and six he was still Rector of the Great College.
|
|
|
|
On the table before him lay outspread a roll or volume of
|
|
parchment inscribed with Hebrew characters; behind him, in waiting,
|
|
stood a page richly habited.
|
|
|
|
There had been discussion, but at this moment of introduction the
|
|
company had reached a conclusion; each one was in an attitude of rest,
|
|
and the venerable Hillel, without moving, called the page.
|
|
|
|
"Hist!"
|
|
|
|
The youth advanced respectfully.
|
|
|
|
"Go tell the king we are ready to give him answer."
|
|
|
|
The boy hurried away.
|
|
|
|
After a time two officers entered, and stopped one on each side
|
|
the door; after them slowly followed a most striking personage- an old
|
|
man clad in a purple robe bordered with scarlet, and girt to his waist
|
|
by a band of gold linked so fine that it was pliable as leather; the
|
|
latchets of his shoes sparkled with precious stones; a narrow crown
|
|
wrought in filigree shone outside a tarbooshe of softest crimson
|
|
plush, which, encasing his head, fell down the neck and shoulders,
|
|
leaving the throat and neck exposed. Instead of a seal, a dagger
|
|
dangled from his belt. He walked with a halting step, leaning
|
|
heavily upon a staff. Not until he reached the opening of the divan
|
|
did he pause or look up from the floor; then, as for the first time
|
|
conscious of the company, and roused by their presence, he raised
|
|
himself and looked haughtily round like one startled and searching for
|
|
an enemy- so dark, suspicious, and threatening was the glance. Such
|
|
was Herod the Great- a body broken by diseases, a conscience seared
|
|
with crimes, a mind magnificently capable, a soul fit for
|
|
brotherhood with the Caesars; now seven-and-sixty years old, but
|
|
guarding his throne with a jealousy never so vigilant, a power never
|
|
so despotic, and a cruelty never so inexorable.
|
|
|
|
There was a general movement on the part of the assemblage- a
|
|
bending-forward in salaam by the more aged, a rising-up by the more
|
|
courtly, followed by low genuflexions, hands upon the beard or breast.
|
|
|
|
His observations taken, Herod moved on until at the tripod
|
|
opposite the venerable Hillel, who met his cold glance with an
|
|
inclination of the head, and a slight lifting of the hands.
|
|
|
|
"The answer!" said the king, with imperious simplicity, addressing
|
|
Hillel, and planting his staff before him with both hands. "The
|
|
answer!"
|
|
|
|
The eyes of the patriarch glowed mildly, and, raising his head,
|
|
and looking the inquisitor full in the face, he answered, his
|
|
associates giving him closest attention-
|
|
|
|
"With thee, O king, be the peace of God, of Abraham, Isaac, and
|
|
Jacob!"
|
|
|
|
His manner was that of invocation; changing it, he resumed-
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast demanded of us where the Christ should be born."
|
|
|
|
The king bowed, though the evil eyes remained fixed upon the
|
|
sage's face.
|
|
|
|
"That is the question."
|
|
|
|
"Then, O king, speaking for myself, and all my brethren here, not
|
|
one dissenting, I say, in Bethlehem of Judea."
|
|
|
|
Hillel glanced at the parchment on the tripod; and pointing with his
|
|
tremulous finger, continued, "In Bethlehem of Judea, for thus it is
|
|
written by the prophet, 'And thou, Bethlehem, in the land of Judea,
|
|
art not the least among the princes of Judah; for out of thee shall
|
|
come a governor that shall rule my people Israel.'"
|
|
|
|
Herod's face was troubled, and his eyes fell upon the parchment
|
|
while he thought. Those beholding him scarcely breathed; they spoke
|
|
not, nor did he. At length he turned about and left the chamber.
|
|
|
|
"Brethren," said Hillel, "we are dismissed."
|
|
|
|
The company then arose, and in groups departed.
|
|
|
|
"Simeon," said Hillel again.
|
|
|
|
A man, quite fifty years old, but in the hearty prime of life,
|
|
answered and came to him.
|
|
|
|
"Take up the sacred parchment, my son; roll it tenderly."
|
|
|
|
The order was obeyed.
|
|
|
|
"Now lend me thy arm; I will to the litter."
|
|
|
|
The strong man stooped; with his withered hands, the old one took
|
|
the offered support, and, rising, moved feebly to the door.
|
|
|
|
So departed the famous Rector and Simeon, his son, who was to be his
|
|
successor in wisdom, learning, and office.
|
|
|
|
* * * * *
|
|
|
|
Yet later in the evening the wise men were lying in a lewen of the
|
|
khan awake. The stones which served them as pillows raised their heads
|
|
so they could look out of the open arch into the depths of the sky;
|
|
and as they watched the twinkling of the stars, they thought of the
|
|
next manifestation. How would it come? What would it be? They were
|
|
in Jerusalem at last; they had asked at the gate for Him they
|
|
sought; they had born witness of His birth; it remained only to find
|
|
Him; and as to that, they placed all trust in the Spirit. Men
|
|
listening for the voice of God, or waiting a sign from Heaven,
|
|
cannot sleep.
|
|
|
|
While they were in this condition, a man stepped in under the
|
|
arch, darkening the lewen.
|
|
|
|
"Awake!" he said to them; "I bring you a message which will not be
|
|
put off."
|
|
|
|
They all sat up.
|
|
|
|
"From whom?" asked the Egyptian.
|
|
|
|
"Herod the king."
|
|
|
|
Each one felt his spirit thrill.
|
|
|
|
"Are you not the steward of the khan?" Balthasar asked next.
|
|
|
|
"I am."
|
|
|
|
"What would the king with us?"
|
|
|
|
"His messenger is without; let him answer."
|
|
|
|
"Tell him, then, to abide our coming."
|
|
|
|
"You were right, O my brother!" said the Greek, when the steward was
|
|
gone. "The question put to the people on the road, and to the guard at
|
|
the gate, has given us quick notoriety. I am impatient; let us up
|
|
quickly."
|
|
|
|
They arose, put on their sandals, girt their mantles about them, and
|
|
went out.
|
|
|
|
"I salute you, and give you peace, and pray your pardon; but my
|
|
master, the king, has sent me to invite you to the palace, where he
|
|
would have speech with you privately."
|
|
|
|
Thus the messenger discharged his duty.
|
|
|
|
A lamp hung in the entrance, and by its light they looked at each
|
|
other, and knew the Spirit was upon them. Then the Egyptian stepped to
|
|
the steward, and said, so as not to be heard by the others, "You
|
|
know where our goods are stored in the court, and where our camels are
|
|
resting. While we are gone, make all things ready for our departure,
|
|
if it should be needful."
|
|
|
|
"Go your way assured; trust me," the steward replied.
|
|
|
|
"The king's will is our will," said Balthasar to the messenger.
|
|
"We will follow you."
|
|
|
|
The streets of the Holy City were narrow then as now, but not so
|
|
rough and foul; for the great builder, not content with beauty,
|
|
enforced cleanliness and convenience also. Following their guide,
|
|
the brethren proceeded without a word. Through the dim starlight, made
|
|
dimmer by the walls on both sides, sometimes almost lost under bridges
|
|
connecting the house-tops, out of a low ground they ascended a hill.
|
|
At last they came to a portal reared across the way. In the light of
|
|
fires blazing before it in two great braziers, they caught a glimpse
|
|
of the structure, and also of some guards leaning motionlessly upon
|
|
their arms. They passed into a building unchallenged. Then by passages
|
|
and arched halls; through courts, and under colonnades not always
|
|
lighted; up long flights of stairs, past innumerable cloisters and
|
|
chambers, they were conducted into a tower of great height. Suddenly
|
|
the guide halted, and, pointing through an open door, said to them-
|
|
|
|
"Enter. The king is there."
|
|
|
|
The air of the chamber was heavy with the perfume of sandalwood, and
|
|
all the appointments within were effeminately rich. Upon the floor,
|
|
covering the central space, a tufted rug was spread, and upon that a
|
|
throne was set. The visitors had but time, however, to catch a
|
|
confused idea of the place- of carved and gilt ottomans and couches;
|
|
of fans, and jars, and musical instruments; of golden candlesticks
|
|
glittering in their own lights; of walls painted in the style of the
|
|
voluptuous Grecian school, one look at which had made a Pharisee
|
|
hide his head with holy horror. Herod, sitting upon the throne to
|
|
receive them clad as when at the conference with the doctors and
|
|
lawyers, claimed all their minds.
|
|
|
|
At the edge of the rug, to which they advanced uninvited, they
|
|
prostrated themselves. The king touched a bell. An attendant came
|
|
in, and placed three stools before the throne.
|
|
|
|
"Seat yourselves," said the monarch, graciously.
|
|
|
|
"From the North Gate," he continued, when they were at rest, "I
|
|
had this afternoon report of the arrival of three strangers, curiously
|
|
mounted, and appearing as if from far countries. Are you the men?"
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian took the sign from the Greek and the Hindoo, and
|
|
answered, with the profoundest salaam, "Were we other than we are, the
|
|
mighty Herod, whose fame is as incense to the whole world, would not
|
|
have sent for us. We may not doubt that we are the strangers.
|
|
|
|
Herod acknowledged the speech with a wave of the hand.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you? Whence do you come?" he asked, adding,
|
|
significantly, "let each speak for himself."
|
|
|
|
In turn they gave him account, referring simply to the cities and
|
|
lands of their birth, and the routes by which they came to
|
|
Jerusalem. Somewhat disappointed, Herod plied them more directly.
|
|
|
|
"What was the question you put to the officer at the gate?"
|
|
|
|
"We asked him, Where is He that is born King of the Jews."
|
|
|
|
"I see now why the people were so curious. You excite me no less. Is
|
|
there another King of the Jews?"
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian did not blanch.
|
|
|
|
"There is one newly born."
|
|
|
|
An expression of pain knit the dark face of the monarch, as if his
|
|
mind were swept by a harrowing recollection.
|
|
|
|
"Not to me, not to me?" he exclaimed.
|
|
|
|
Possibly the accusing images of his murdered children flitted before
|
|
him: recovering from the emotion, whatever it was he asked,
|
|
steadily, "Where is the new King?"
|
|
|
|
"That, O king, is what we would ask."
|
|
|
|
"You bring me a wonder- a riddle surpassing any of Solomon's," the
|
|
inquisitor said next. "As you see, I am in the time of life when
|
|
curiosity is as ungovernable as it was in childhood, when to trifle
|
|
with it is cruelty. Tell me further, and I will honour you as kings
|
|
honour each other. Give me all you know about the newly born, and I
|
|
will join you in the search for Him; and when we have found Him, I
|
|
will do what you wish; I will bring Him to Jerusalem, and train Him in
|
|
kingcraft; I will use my grace with Caesar for His promotion and
|
|
glory. Jealousy shall not come between us, so I swear. But tell me
|
|
first how, so widely separated by seas and deserts, you all came to
|
|
hear of Him."
|
|
|
|
"I will tell you truly, O king."
|
|
|
|
"Speak on," said Herod.
|
|
|
|
Balthasar raised himself erect, and said, solemnly-
|
|
|
|
"There is an Almighty God."
|
|
|
|
Herod was visibly startled.
|
|
|
|
"He bade us come hither, promising that we should find the
|
|
Redeemer of the World; that we should see and worship Him, and bear
|
|
witness that He was come; and, as a sign, we were each given to see
|
|
a star. His Spirit stayed with us. O king, His Spirit is with us now!"
|
|
|
|
An overpowering feeling seized the three. The Greek with
|
|
difficulty restrained an outcry. Herod's gaze darted quickly from
|
|
one to the other; he was more suspicious and dissatisfied than before.
|
|
|
|
"You are mocking me," he said. "If not, tell me more. What is to
|
|
follow the coming of the new king?"
|
|
|
|
"The salvation of men."
|
|
|
|
"From what?"
|
|
|
|
"Their wickedness."
|
|
|
|
"How?"
|
|
|
|
"By the divine agencies- Faith, Love, and Good Works."
|
|
|
|
"Then"- Herod paused, and from his look no man could have said
|
|
with what feeling he continued- "you are the heralds of the Christ. Is
|
|
that all?"
|
|
|
|
Balthasar bowed low.
|
|
|
|
"We are your servants, O king."
|
|
|
|
The monarch touched a bell, and the attendant appeared.
|
|
|
|
"Bring the gifts," the master said.
|
|
|
|
The attendant went out, but in a little while returned, and,
|
|
kneeling before the guests, gave to each one an outer robe or mantle
|
|
of scarlet and blue, and a girdle of gold. They acknowledged the
|
|
honours with Eastern prostrations.
|
|
|
|
"A word further," said Herod, when the ceremony was ended. "To the
|
|
officer of the gate, and but now to me, you spoke of seeing a star
|
|
in the east."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said Balthasar, "His star, the star of the newly born."
|
|
|
|
"What time did it appear?"
|
|
|
|
"When we were bidden come hither."
|
|
|
|
Herod arose, signifying the audience was over. Stepping from the
|
|
throne towards them, he said, with all graciousness-
|
|
|
|
"If, as I believe, O illustrious men, you are indeed the heralds
|
|
of the Christ just born, know that I have this night consulted those
|
|
wisest in things Jewish, and they say with one voice He should be born
|
|
in Bethlehem of Judea. I say to you, go thither; go and search
|
|
diligently for the young child; and when you have found Him bring me
|
|
word again, that I may come and worship Him. To your going there shall
|
|
be no let or hindrance. Peace be with you!"
|
|
|
|
And folding his robe about him, he left the chamber.
|
|
|
|
Directly the guide came, and led them back to the street, and thence
|
|
to the khan, at the portal of which the Greek said, impulsively,
|
|
"Let us to Bethlehem, O brethren, as the king has advised."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," cried the Hindoo. "The Spirit burns within me."
|
|
|
|
"Be it so," said Balthasar, with equal warmth. "The camels are
|
|
ready."
|
|
|
|
They gave gifts to the steward, mounted into their saddles, received
|
|
directions to the Joppa Gate, and departed. At their approach the
|
|
great valves were unbarred, and they passed out into the open country,
|
|
taking the road so lately travelled by Joseph and Mary. As they came
|
|
up out of Hinnom, on the plain of Rephaim, a light appeared, at
|
|
first wide-spread and faint. Their pulses fluttered fast The light
|
|
intensified rapidly; they closed their eyes against its burning
|
|
brilliance: when they dared look again, lo! the star, perfect as any
|
|
in the heavens, but low down and moving slowly before them. And they
|
|
folded their hands, and shouted, and rejoiced with exceeding great
|
|
joy.
|
|
|
|
"God is with us! God is with us!" they repeated in frequent cheer,
|
|
all the way, until the star, rising out of the valley beyond Mar
|
|
Elias, stood still over a house on the slope of the hill near the
|
|
town.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.
|
|
|
|
THE WISE FIND THE CHILD.
|
|
|
|
IT was now the beginning of the third watch, and at Bethlehem the
|
|
morning was breaking over the mountains in the east, but so feebly
|
|
that it was yet night in the valley. The watchman on the roof of the
|
|
old khan, shivering in the chilly air, was listening for the first
|
|
distinguishable sounds with which life, awakening, greets the dawn,
|
|
when a light came moving up the hill towards the house. He thought
|
|
it a torch in some one's hand; next moment he thought it a meteor; the
|
|
brilliance grew, however, until it became a star. Sore afraid, he
|
|
cried out, and brought everybody within the walls to the roof. The
|
|
phenomenon, in eccentric motion, continued to approach; the rocks,
|
|
trees, and roadway under it shone as in a glare of lightning; directly
|
|
its brightness became blinding. The more timid of the beholders fell
|
|
upon their knees, and prayed, with their faces hidden; the boldest,
|
|
covering their eyes, crouched, and now and then snatched glances
|
|
fearfully. Afterwhile the khan and everything thereabout lay under the
|
|
intolerable radiance. Such as dared look beheld the star standing
|
|
still directly over the house in front of the cave where the Child had
|
|
been born.
|
|
|
|
In the height of this scene the wise men came up, and at the gate
|
|
dismounted from their camels, and shouted for admission. When the
|
|
steward so far mastered his terror as to give them heed, he drew the
|
|
bars and opened to them. The camels looked spectral in the unnatural
|
|
light, and, besides their outlandishness, there were in the faces
|
|
and manner of the three visitors an eagerness and exaltation which
|
|
still further excited the keeper's fears and fancy; he fell back,
|
|
and for a time could not answer the question they put to him.
|
|
|
|
"Is not this Bethlehem of Judea?"
|
|
|
|
But others came, and by their presence gave him assurance.
|
|
|
|
"No, this is but the khan; the town lies farther on."
|
|
|
|
"Is there not here a child newly born?"
|
|
|
|
The bystanders turned to each other marvelling, though some of
|
|
them answered, "Yes, yes."
|
|
|
|
"Show us to him!" said the Greek, impatiently.
|
|
|
|
"Show us to him!" cried Balthasar, breaking through his gravity;
|
|
"for we have seen his star, even that which ye behold over the
|
|
house, and are come to worship him."
|
|
|
|
The Hindoo clasped his hands, exclaiming, "God indeed lives! Make
|
|
haste, make haste! The Saviour is found. Blessed, blessed are we above
|
|
men!"
|
|
|
|
The people from the roof came down and followed the strangers as
|
|
they were taken through the court and out into the enclosure; at sight
|
|
of the star yet above the cave, though less candescent than before,
|
|
some turned back afraid; the greater part went on. As the strangers
|
|
neared the house, the orb arose; when they were at the door, it was
|
|
high up overhead vanishing; when they entered, it went out, lost to
|
|
sight. And to the witnesses of what then took place came a
|
|
conviction that there was a divine relation between the star and the
|
|
strangers, which extended also to at least some of the occupants of
|
|
the cave. When the door was opened, they crowded in.
|
|
|
|
The apartment was lighted by a lantern enough to enable the
|
|
strangers to find the mother, and the child awake in her lap.
|
|
|
|
"Is the child thine?" asked Balthasar of Mary.
|
|
|
|
And she, who had kept all the things in the least affecting the
|
|
little one, and pondered them in her heart, held it up in the light,
|
|
saying-
|
|
|
|
"He is my son!"
|
|
|
|
And they fell down and worshipped him.
|
|
|
|
They saw the child was as other children: about its head was neither
|
|
nimbus nor material crown; its lips opened not in speech; if it
|
|
heard their expressions of joy, their invocations, their prayers, it
|
|
made no sign whatever, but, baby-like, looked longer at the flame in
|
|
the lantern than at them.
|
|
|
|
In a little while they arose, and, returning to the camels,
|
|
brought gifts of gold, frankincense, and myrrh, and laid them before
|
|
the child, abating nothing of their worshipful speeches; of which no
|
|
part is given, for the thoughtful know that the pure worship of the
|
|
pure heart was then what it is now, and has always been, an inspired
|
|
song.
|
|
|
|
And this was the Saviour they had come so far to find!
|
|
|
|
Yet they worshipped without a doubt.
|
|
|
|
Why?
|
|
|
|
Their faith rested upon the signs sent them by him whom we have
|
|
since come to know as the Father: and they were of the kind to whom
|
|
his promises were so all-sufficient that they asked nothing about
|
|
his ways. Few there were who had seen the signs and heard the
|
|
promises- the Mother and Joseph, the shepherds, and the Three- yet
|
|
they all believed alike; that is to say, in this period of the plan of
|
|
salvation, God was all and the Child nothing. But look forward, O
|
|
reader! A time will come when the signs will all proceed from the Son.
|
|
Happy they who then believe in him!
|
|
|
|
Let us wait that period.
|
|
|
|
BOOK SECOND.
|
|
|
|
"There is a fire
|
|
|
|
And motion of the soul which will not dwell
|
|
|
|
In its own narrow being, but aspire
|
|
|
|
Beyond the fitting medium of desire;
|
|
|
|
And, but once kindled, quenchless evermore,
|
|
|
|
Preys upon high adventure, nor can tire
|
|
|
|
Of aught but rest."
|
|
|
|
-Childe Harold.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
JERUSALEM UNDER THE ROMANS.
|
|
|
|
IT is necessary now to carry the reader forward twenty-one years, to
|
|
the beginning of the administration of Valerius Gratus, the fourth
|
|
imperial governor of Judea- a period which will be remembered as
|
|
rent by political agitations in Jerusalem, if, indeed, it be not the
|
|
precise time of the opening of the final quarrel between the Jew and
|
|
the Roman.
|
|
|
|
In the interval Judea had been subjected to changes affecting her in
|
|
many ways, but in nothing so much as her political status. Herod the
|
|
Great died within one year after the birth of the Child- died so
|
|
miserably, that the Christian world had reason to believe him
|
|
overtaken by the Divine wrath. Like all great rulers who spend their
|
|
lives in perfecting the power they create, he dreamed of
|
|
transmitting his throne and crown- of being the founder of a
|
|
dynasty. With that intent, he left a will dividing his territories
|
|
between his three sons, Antipas, Philip, and Archelaus, of whom the
|
|
last was appointed to succeed to the title. The testament was
|
|
necessarily referred to Augustus, the emperor, who ratified all its
|
|
provisions with one exception: he withheld from Archelaus the title of
|
|
king until he proved his capacity and loyalty; in lieu thereof he
|
|
created him ethnarch, and as such permitted him to govern nine
|
|
years, when, for misconduct and inability to stay the turbulent
|
|
elements that grew and strengthened around him, he was sent into
|
|
Gaul as an exile.
|
|
|
|
Caesar was not content with deposing Archelaus; he struck the people
|
|
of Jerusalem in a manner that touched their pride, and keenly
|
|
wounded the sensibilities of the haughty habitues of the Temple. He
|
|
reduced Judea to a Roman province, and annexed it to the prefecture of
|
|
Syria. So, instead of a king ruling royally from the palace left by
|
|
Herod on Mount Zion, the city fell into the hands of an officer of the
|
|
second grade, an appointee called procurator, who communicated with
|
|
the court in Rome through the Legate of Syria, residing in Antioch. To
|
|
make the hurt more painful, the procurator was not permitted to
|
|
establish himself in Jerusalem; Caesarea was his seat of government.
|
|
Most humiliating, however, most exasperating, most studied, Samaria,
|
|
of all the world the most despised- Samaria was joined to Judea as a
|
|
part of the same province! What ineffable misery the bigoted
|
|
Separatists or Pharisees endured at finding themselves elbowed and
|
|
laughed at in the procurator's presence in Caesarea by the devotees of
|
|
Gerizim!
|
|
|
|
In this rain of sorrows one consolation, and one only, remained to
|
|
the fallen people; the high-priest occupied the Herodian palace in the
|
|
Market-place, and kept the semblance of a court there. What his
|
|
authority really was is a matter of easy estimate. Judgment of life
|
|
and death was retained by the procurator. Justice was administered
|
|
in the name and according to the decretals of Rome. Yet more
|
|
significant, the royal house was jointly occupied by the imperial
|
|
exciseman, and all his corps and assistants, registrars, collectors,
|
|
publicans, informers, and spies. Still, to the dreamers of liberty
|
|
to come, there was a certain satisfaction in the fact that the chief
|
|
ruler in the palace was a Jew. His mere presence there day after day
|
|
kept them reminded of the covenants and the promises of the
|
|
prophets, and the ages when Jehovah governed the tribes through the
|
|
sons of Aaron; it was to them a certain sign that he had not abandoned
|
|
them: so their hopes lived and served their patience, and helped
|
|
them wait grimly the son of Judah who was to rule Israel.
|
|
|
|
Judea had been a Roman province eighty years and more- ample time
|
|
for the Caesars to study the idiosyncrasies of the people- time
|
|
enough, at least, to learn that the Jew, with all his pride, could
|
|
be quietly governed if his religion were respected. Proceeding upon
|
|
that policy, the predecessors of Gratus had carefully abstained from
|
|
interfering with any of the sacred observances of their subjects.
|
|
But he chose a different course: almost his first official act was
|
|
to expel Hannas from the high-priesthood, and give the place to
|
|
Ishmael, son of Fabus.
|
|
|
|
Whether the act was directed by Augustus, or proceeded from Gratus
|
|
himself, its impolicy became speedily apparent. The reader shall be
|
|
spared a chapter on Jewish politics; a few words upon the subject,
|
|
however, are essential to such as may follow the succeeding
|
|
narration critically. At this time, leaving origin out of view,
|
|
there were in Judea the party of the nobles and the Separatist, or
|
|
popular party. Upon Herod's death the two united against Archelaus;
|
|
from temple to palace, from Jerusalem to Rome, they fought him;
|
|
sometimes with intrigue, sometimes with the actual weapons of war.
|
|
More than once the holy cloisters on Moriah resounded with the cries
|
|
of fighting-men. Finally, they drove him into exile. Meantime,
|
|
throughout this struggle the allies had their diverse objects in view.
|
|
The nobles hated Joazar, the high-priest; the Separatists, on the
|
|
other hand, were his zealous adherents. When Herod's settlement went
|
|
down with Archelaus, Joazar shared the fall. Hannas, the son of
|
|
Seth, was selected by the nobles to fill the great office; thereupon
|
|
the allies divided. The induction of the Sethian brought them face
|
|
to face in fierce hostility.
|
|
|
|
In the course of the struggle with the unfortunate ethnarch, the
|
|
nobles had found it expedient to attach themselves to Rome. Discerning
|
|
that when the existing settlement was broken up some form of
|
|
government must needs follow, they suggested the conversion of Judea
|
|
into a province. The fact furnished the Separatists an additional
|
|
cause for attack; and, when Samaria was made part of the province, the
|
|
nobles sank into a minority, with nothing to support them but the
|
|
imperial court and the prestige of their rank and wealth; yet for
|
|
fifteen years- down, indeed, to the coming of Valerius Gratus- they
|
|
managed to maintain themselves in both palace and Temple.
|
|
|
|
Hannas, the idol of his party, had used his power faithfully in
|
|
the interest of his imperial patron. A Roman garrison held the Tower
|
|
of Antonia; a Roman guard kept the gates of the palace; a Roman
|
|
judge dispensed justice, civil and criminal; a Roman system of
|
|
taxation, mercilessly executed, crushed both city and country;
|
|
daily, hourly, and in a thousand ways, the people were bruised, and
|
|
galled, and taught the difference between a life of independence and a
|
|
life of subjection; yet Hannas kept them in comparative quiet. Rome
|
|
had no truer friend; and he made his loss instantly felt. Delivering
|
|
his vestments to Ishmael, the new appointee, he walked from the courts
|
|
of the Temple into the councils of the Separatists, and became the
|
|
head of a new combination, Bethusian and Sethian.
|
|
|
|
Gratus, the procurator, left thus without a party, saw the fires
|
|
which, in the fifteen years, had sunk into sodden smoke, begin to glow
|
|
with returning life. A month after Ishmael took the office, the
|
|
Roman found it necessary to visit him in Jerusalem. When from the
|
|
walls, hooting and hissing him, the Jews beheld his guard enter the
|
|
north gate of the city and march to the Tower of Antonia, they
|
|
understood the real purpose of the visit- a full cohort of legionaries
|
|
was added to the former garrison, and the keys of their yoke could now
|
|
be tightened with impunity. If the procurator deemed it important to
|
|
make an example, alas for the first offender!
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR AND MESSALA.
|
|
|
|
WITH the foregoing explanation in mind, the reader is invited to
|
|
look into one of the gardens of the palace on Mount Zion. The time was
|
|
noonday in the middle of July, when the heat of summer was at its
|
|
highest.
|
|
|
|
The garden was bounded on every side by buildings, which in places
|
|
arose two stories, with verandahs shading the doors and windows of the
|
|
lower storey, while retreating galleries, guarded by strong
|
|
balustrades, adorned and protected the upper. Here and there,
|
|
moreover, the structures fell into what appeared low colonnades,
|
|
permitting the passage of such winds as chanced to blow, and
|
|
allowing other parts of the house to be seen, the better to realize
|
|
its magnitude and beauty. The arrangement of the ground was equally
|
|
pleasant to the eye. There were walks, and patches of grass and
|
|
shrubbery, and a few large trees, rare specimens of the palm,
|
|
grouped with the carob, apricot, and walnut. In all directions the
|
|
grade sloped gently from the centre, where there was a reservoir, or
|
|
deep marble basin, broken at intervals by little gates which, when
|
|
raised, emptied the water into sluices bordering the walks- a
|
|
cunning device for the rescue of the place from the aridity too
|
|
prevalent elsewhere in the region.
|
|
|
|
Not far from the fountain there was a small pool of clear water
|
|
nourishing a clump of cane and oleander, such as grow on the Jordan
|
|
and down by the Dead Sea. Between the clump and the pool, unmindful of
|
|
the sun shining full upon them in the breathless air, two boys, one
|
|
about nineteen, the other seventeen, sat engaged in earnest
|
|
conversation.
|
|
|
|
They were both handsome, and, at first glance, would have been
|
|
pronounced brothers. Both had hair and eyes black; their faces were
|
|
deeply browned; and, sitting, they seemed of a size proper for the
|
|
difference in their ages.
|
|
|
|
The elder was bareheaded. A loose tunic, dropping to the knees,
|
|
was his attire complete, except sandals and a light-blue mantle spread
|
|
under him on the seat. The costume left his arms and legs exposed, and
|
|
they were brown as the face; nevertheless, a certain grace of
|
|
manner, refinement of features, and culture of voice decided his rank.
|
|
The tunic, of softest woollen, grey-tinted, at the neck, sleeves,
|
|
and edge of the skirt bordered with red, and bound to the waist by a
|
|
tasselled silken cord, certified him the Roman he was. And if in
|
|
speech he now and then gazed haughtily at his companion and
|
|
addressed him as an inferior, he might almost be excused, for he was
|
|
of a family noble even in Rome- a circumstance which in that age
|
|
justified any assumption. In the terrible wars between the first
|
|
Caesar and his great enemies, a Messala had been the friend of Brutus.
|
|
After Philippi, without sacrifice of his honour, he and the
|
|
conqueror became reconciled. Yet later, when Octavius disputed for the
|
|
empire, Messala supported him. Octavius, as the Emperor Augustus,
|
|
remembered the service, and showered the family with honours. Among
|
|
other things, Judea being reduced to a province, he sent the son of
|
|
his old client or retainer to Jerusalem, charged with the receipt
|
|
and management of the taxes levied in that region; and in that service
|
|
the son had since remained, sharing the palace with the high-priest.
|
|
The youth just described was his son, whose habit was to carry about
|
|
with him all too faithfully a remembrance of the relation between
|
|
his grandfather and the great Romans of his day.
|
|
|
|
The associate of the Messala was slighter in form, and his
|
|
garments were of fine white linen and of the prevalent style in
|
|
Jerusalem; a cloth covered his head, held by a yellow cord, and
|
|
arranged so as to fall away from the forehead down low over the back
|
|
of the neck. An observer skilled in the distinctions of race, and
|
|
studying his features more than his costume, would have soon
|
|
discovered him to be of Jewish descent. The forehead of the Roman
|
|
was high and narrow, his nose sharp and aquiline, while his lips
|
|
were thin and straight, and his eyes cold and close under the brows.
|
|
The front of the Israelite, on the other hand, was low and broad;
|
|
his nose long, with expanded nostrils; his upper lip, slightly shading
|
|
the lower one, short and curving to the dimpled corners, like a
|
|
Cupid's bow; points which, in connection with the round chin, full
|
|
eyes, and oval cheeks reddened with a wine-like glow, gave his face
|
|
the softness, strength, and beauty peculiar to his race. The
|
|
comeliness of the Roman was severe and chaste, that of the Jew rich
|
|
and voluptuous.
|
|
|
|
"Did you not say the new procurator is to arrive to-morrow?"
|
|
|
|
The question proceeded from the younger of the friends, and was
|
|
couched in Greek, at the time, singularly enough, the language
|
|
everywhere prevalent in the politer circles of Judea; having passed
|
|
from the palace into the camp and college; thence, nobody knew exactly
|
|
when or how, into the Temple itself, and, for that matter, into
|
|
precincts of the Temple far beyond the gates and cloisters-
|
|
precincts of a sanctity intolerable for a Gentile.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, to-morrow," Messala answered.
|
|
|
|
"Who told you?"
|
|
|
|
"I heard Ishmael, the new governor in the palace- you call him
|
|
high-priest- tell my father so last night. The news had been more
|
|
credible, I grant you, coming from an Egyptian, who is of a race
|
|
that has forgotten what truth is, or even from an Idumaean, whose
|
|
people never knew what truth was; but, to make quite certain, I saw
|
|
a centurion from the Tower this morning, and he told me preparations
|
|
were going on for the reception; that the armourers were furbishing
|
|
the helmets and shields, and regilding the eagles and globes; and that
|
|
apartments long unused were being cleansed and aired as if for an
|
|
addition to the garrison- the body-guard, probably, of the great man."
|
|
|
|
A perfect idea of the manner in which the answer was given cannot be
|
|
conveyed, as its fine points continually escape the power behind the
|
|
pen. The reader's fancy must come to his aid; and for that he must
|
|
be reminded that reverence as a quality of the Roman mind was fast
|
|
breaking down, or, rather, it was becoming unfashionable. The old
|
|
religion had nearly ceased to be a faith; at most it was a mere
|
|
habit of thought and expression, cherished principally by the
|
|
priests who found service in the Temple profitable, and the poets who,
|
|
in the turn of their verses, could not dispense with the familiar
|
|
deities: there are singers of this age who are similarly given. As
|
|
philosophy was taking the place of religion, satire was fast
|
|
substituting reverence; insomuch that in Latin opinion it was to every
|
|
speech, even to the little diatribes of conversation, salt to
|
|
viands, and aroma to wine. The young Messala, educated in Rome, but
|
|
lately returned, had caught the habit and manner; the scarce
|
|
perceptible movement of the outer corner of the lower eyelid, the
|
|
decided curl of the corresponding nostril, and a languid utterance
|
|
affected as the best vehicle to convey the idea of general
|
|
indifference, but more particularly because of the opportunities it
|
|
afforded for certain rhetorical pauses thought to be of prime
|
|
importance to enable the listener to take the happy conceit or receive
|
|
the virus of the stinging epigram. Such a stop occurred in the
|
|
answer just given, at the end of the allusion to the Egyptian and
|
|
Idumaean. The colour in the Jewish lad's cheeks deepened, and he may
|
|
not have heard the rest of the speech, for he remained silent, looking
|
|
absently into the depths of the pool.
|
|
|
|
"Our farewell took place in this garden, 'The peace of the Lord go
|
|
with you!'- your last words. 'The gods keep you!' I said. Do you
|
|
remember? How many years have passed since then?"
|
|
|
|
"Five," answered the Jew, gazing into the water.
|
|
|
|
"Well, you have reason to be thankful to- whom shall I say? The
|
|
gods? No matter. You have grown handsome; the Greek would call you
|
|
beautiful- happy achievement of the years! If Jupiter would stay
|
|
content with one Ganymede, what a cup-bearer you would make for the
|
|
emperor! Tell me, my Judah, how the coming of the procurator is of
|
|
such interest to you."
|
|
|
|
Judah bent his large eyes upon the questioner; the gaze was grave
|
|
and thoughtful, and caught the Roman's, and held it while he
|
|
replied, "Yes, five years. I remember the parting; you went to Rome; I
|
|
saw you start, and cried, for I loved you. The years are gone, and you
|
|
have come back to me accomplished and princely- I do not jest; and
|
|
yet- yet- I wish you were the Messala you went away."
|
|
|
|
The fine nostril of the satirist stirred, and he put on a longer
|
|
drawl as he said, "No, no; not a Ganymede- an oracle, my Judah. A
|
|
few lessons from my teacher of rhetoric hard by the Forum- I will give
|
|
you a letter to him when you become wise enough to accept a suggestion
|
|
which I am reminded to make you- a little practice of the art of
|
|
mystery, and Delphi will receive you as Apollo himself. At sound of
|
|
your solemn voice, the Pythia will come down to you with her crown.
|
|
Seriously, O my friend, in what am I not the Messala I went away? I
|
|
once heard the greatest logician in the world. His subject was
|
|
Disputation. One saying I remember- 'Understand your antagonist before
|
|
you answer him.' Let me understand you."
|
|
|
|
The lad reddened under the cynical look to which he was subjected;
|
|
yet he replied, firmly, "You have availed yourself, I see, of your
|
|
opportunities; from your teachers you have brought away much knowledge
|
|
and many graces. You talk with the ease of a master; yet your speech
|
|
carries a sting. My Messala, when he went away, had no poison in his
|
|
nature; not for the world would he have hurt the feelings of a
|
|
friend."
|
|
|
|
The Roman smiled as if complimented, and raised his patrician head a
|
|
toss higher.
|
|
|
|
"O my solemn Judah, we are not at Dodona or Pytho. Drop the
|
|
oracular, and be plain. Wherein have I hurt you?"
|
|
|
|
The other drew a long breath, and said, pulling at the cord about
|
|
his waist, "In the five years, I, too, have learned somewhat. Hillel
|
|
may not be the equal of the logician you heard, and Simeon and Shammai
|
|
are, no doubt, inferior to your master hard by the Forum. Their
|
|
learning goes not out into forbidden paths; those who sit at their
|
|
feet arise enriched simply with knowledge of God, the law, and Israel;
|
|
and the effect is love and reverence for everything that pertains to
|
|
them. Attendance at the Great College, and study of what I heard
|
|
there, have taught me that Judea is not as she used to be. I know
|
|
the space that lies between an independent kingdom and the petty
|
|
province Judea is. I were meaner, viler than a Samaritan not to resent
|
|
the degradation of my country. Ishmael is not lawfully high-priest,
|
|
and he cannot be while the noble Hannas lives; yet he is a Levite; one
|
|
of the devoted who for thousands of years have acceptably served the
|
|
Lord God of our faith and worship. His- "
|
|
|
|
Messala broke in upon him with a biting laugh.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I understand you now. Ishmael, you say, is a usurper, yet to
|
|
believe an Idumaean sooner than Ishmael is to sting like an adder.
|
|
By the drunken son of Semele, what it is to be a Jew! All men and
|
|
things, even heaven and earth, change; but a Jew never. To him there
|
|
is no backward, no forward; he is what his ancestor was in the
|
|
beginning. In this sand I draw you a circle- there! Now tell me what
|
|
more a Jew's life is? Round and round, Abraham here, Isaac and Jacob
|
|
yonder, God in the middle. And the circle- by the master of all
|
|
thunders! the circle is too large. I draw it again-." He stopped,
|
|
put his thumb upon the ground, and swept the fingers about it. "See,
|
|
the thumb-spot is the Temple, the finger-lines Judea. Outside the
|
|
little space is there nothing of value? The arts! Herod was a builder;
|
|
therefore he is accursed. Painting, sculpture! to look upon them is
|
|
sin. Poetry you make fast to your altars. Except in the synagogue, who
|
|
of you attempts eloquence? In war all you conquer in the six days
|
|
you lose on the seventh. Such your life and limit; who shall say no if
|
|
I laugh at you? Satisfied with the worship of such a people, what is
|
|
your God to our Roman Jove, who lends us his eagles that we may
|
|
compass the universe with our arms? Hillel, Simeon, Shammai, Abtalion-
|
|
what are they to the masters who teach that everything is worth
|
|
knowing that can be known?"
|
|
|
|
The Jew arose, his face much flushed.
|
|
|
|
"No, no; keep your place, my Judah, keep your place," Messala cried,
|
|
extending his hand.
|
|
|
|
"You mock me."
|
|
|
|
"Listen a little further. Directly"- the Roman smiled derisively-
|
|
"directly Jupiter and his whole family, Greek and Latin, will come
|
|
to me, as is their habit, and make an end of serious speech. I am
|
|
mindful of your goodness in walking from the old house of your fathers
|
|
to welcome me back and renew the love of our childhood- if we can.
|
|
'Go,' said my teacher, in his last lecture- 'go, and, to make your
|
|
lives great, remember Mars reigns and Eros has found his eyes.' He
|
|
meant love is nothing, war everything. It is so in Rome. Marriage is
|
|
the first step to divorce. Virtue is a tradesman's jewel. Cleopatra,
|
|
dying, bequeathed her arts, and is avenged; she has a successor in
|
|
every Roman's house. The world is going the same way; so, as to our
|
|
future, down Eros, up Mars! I am to be a soldier; and you, O my Judah,
|
|
I pity you; what can you be?"
|
|
|
|
The Jew moved nearer the pool; Messala's drawl deepened.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I pity you, my fine Judah. From the college to the
|
|
synagogue; then to the Temple; then- oh, a crowning glory!- the seat
|
|
in the Sanhedrim. A life without opportunities; the gods help you. But
|
|
I- "
|
|
|
|
Judah looked at him in time to see the flush of pride that kindled
|
|
in his haughty face as he went on.
|
|
|
|
"But I- ah, the world is not all conquered. The sea has islands
|
|
unseen. In the north there are nations yet unvisited. The glory of
|
|
completing Alexander's march to the Far East remains to some one.
|
|
See what possibilities lie before a Roman."
|
|
|
|
Next instant he resumed his drawl.
|
|
|
|
"A campaign into Africa; another after the Scythian; then- a legion!
|
|
Most careers end there; but not mine. I- by Jupiter! what a
|
|
conception!- I will give up my legion for a prefecture. Think of
|
|
life in Rome with money- money, wine, women, games- poets at the
|
|
banquet, intrigues in the court, dice all the year round. Such a
|
|
rounding of life may be- a fat prefecture, and it is mine. O my Judah,
|
|
here is Syria! Judea is rich; Antioch a capital for the gods. I will
|
|
succeed Cyrenius, and you- shall share my fortune."
|
|
|
|
The sophists and rhetoricians who thronged the public resorts of
|
|
Rome, almost monopolizing the business of teaching her patrician
|
|
youth, might have approved these sayings of Messala, for they were all
|
|
in the popular vein; to the young Jew, however, they were new, and
|
|
unlike the solemn style of discourse and conversation to which he
|
|
was accustomed. He belonged, moreover, to a race whose laws, modes,
|
|
and habits of thought forbade satire and humour; very naturally,
|
|
therefore, he listened to his friend with varying feelings; one moment
|
|
indignant, then uncertain how to take him. The superior airs assumed
|
|
had been offensive to him in the beginning; soon they became
|
|
irritating, and at last an acute smart. Anger lies close by this point
|
|
in all of us; and that the satirist evoked in another way. To the
|
|
Jew of the Herodian period patriotism was a savage passion scarcely
|
|
hidden under his common humour, and so related to his history,
|
|
religion, and God, that it responded instantly to derision of them.
|
|
Wherefore it is not speaking too strongly to say that Messala's
|
|
progress down to the last pause was exquisite torture to his hearer;
|
|
at that point the latter said, with a forced smile-
|
|
|
|
"There are a few, I have heard, who can afford to make a jest of
|
|
their future; you convince me, O my Messala, that I am not one of
|
|
them."
|
|
|
|
The Roman studied him; then replied, "Why not the truth in a jest as
|
|
well as a parable? The great Fulvia went fishing the other day; she
|
|
caught more than all the company besides. They said it was because the
|
|
barb of her hook was covered with gold."
|
|
|
|
"Then you were not merely jesting?"
|
|
|
|
"My Judah, I see I did not offer you enough," the Roman answered,
|
|
quickly, his eyes sparkling. "When I am a prefect, with Judea to
|
|
enrich me, I- will make you high-priest."
|
|
|
|
The Jew turned off angrily.
|
|
|
|
"Do not leave me," said Messala.
|
|
|
|
The other stopped irresolute.
|
|
|
|
"Gods, Judah, how hot the sun shines!" cried the patrician,
|
|
observing his perplexity. "Let us seek a shade."
|
|
|
|
Judah answered, coldly-
|
|
|
|
"We had better part. I wish I had not come. I sought a friend and
|
|
find a- "
|
|
|
|
"Roman," said Messala, quickly.
|
|
|
|
The hands of the Jew clenched, but controlling himself again, he
|
|
started off. Messala arose, and, taking the mantle from the bench,
|
|
flung it over his shoulder, and followed after; when he gained his
|
|
side, he put his hand upon his shoulder and walked with him.
|
|
|
|
"This is the way- my hand thus- we used to walk when we were
|
|
children. Let us keep it as far as the gate."
|
|
|
|
Apparently Messala was trying to be serious and kind, though he
|
|
could not rid his countenance of the habitual satirical expression.
|
|
Judah permitted the familiarity.
|
|
|
|
"You are a boy; I am a man; let me talk like one."
|
|
|
|
The complacency of the Roman was superb. Mentor lecturing the
|
|
young Telemachus could not have been more at ease.
|
|
|
|
"Do you believe in the Parcae? Ah, I forgot, you are a Sadducee: the
|
|
Essenes are your sensible people; they believe in the sisters. So do
|
|
I. How everlastingly the three are in the way of our doing what we
|
|
please! I sit down scheming. I run paths here and there. Perpol!
|
|
Just when I am reaching to take the world in hand. I hear behind me
|
|
the grinding of scissors. I look, and there she is, the accursed
|
|
Atropos! But, my Judah, why did you get mad when I spoke of succeeding
|
|
old Cyrenius? You thought I meant to enrich myself plundering your
|
|
Judea. Suppose so; it is what some Roman will do. Why not I?"
|
|
|
|
Judah shortened his step.
|
|
|
|
"There have been strangers in mastery of Judea before the Roman," he
|
|
said, with lifted hand. "Where are they, Messala? She has outlived
|
|
them all. What has been will be again."
|
|
|
|
Messala put on his drawl.
|
|
|
|
"The Parcae have believers outside the Essenes. Welcome Judah,
|
|
welcome to the faith!"
|
|
|
|
"No, Messala, count me not with them. My faith rests on the rock
|
|
which was the foundation of the faith of my fathers back further
|
|
than Abraham; on the covenants of the Lord God of Israel."
|
|
|
|
"Too much passion, my Judah. How my master would have been shocked
|
|
had I been guilty of so much heat in his presence! There were other
|
|
things I had to tell you, but I fear to now."
|
|
|
|
When they had gone a few yards the Roman spoke again.
|
|
|
|
"I think you can hear me now, especially as what I have to say
|
|
concerns yourself. I would serve you, O handsome as Ganymede; I
|
|
would serve you with real good-will. I love you- all I can. I told you
|
|
I meant to be a soldier. Why not you also? Why not you step out of the
|
|
narrow circle which, as I have shown, is all of noble life your laws
|
|
and customs allow?"
|
|
|
|
Judah made no reply.
|
|
|
|
"Who are the wise men of our day?" Messala continued. "Not they
|
|
who exhaust their years quarrelling about dead things; about Baals,
|
|
Joves, and Jehovahs; about philosophies and religions. Give me one
|
|
great name, O Judah; I care not where you go to find it- to Rome,
|
|
Egypt, the East, or here in Jerusalem- Pluto take me if it belong
|
|
not to a man who wrought his fame out of the material furnished him by
|
|
the present; holding nothing sacred that did not contribute to the
|
|
end, scorning nothing that did! How was it with Herod? How with the
|
|
Maccabees? How with the first and second Caesars? Imitate them.
|
|
Begin now. At hand see- Rome, as ready to help you as she was the
|
|
Idumaean Antipater."
|
|
|
|
The Jewish lad trembled with rage; and, as the garden gate was
|
|
dose by, he quickened his steps, eager to escape.
|
|
|
|
"O Rome, Rome!" he muttered.
|
|
|
|
"Be wise," continued Messala. "Give up the follies of Moses and
|
|
the traditions; see the situation as it is. Dare look the Parcae in
|
|
the face, and they will tell you, Rome is the world. Ask them of
|
|
Judea, and they will answer, She is what Rome wills."
|
|
|
|
They were now at the gate. Judah stopped, and took the hand gently
|
|
from his shoulder, and confronted Messala, tears trembling in his
|
|
eyes.
|
|
|
|
"I understand you, because you are a Roman; you cannot understand
|
|
me- I am an Israelite. You have given me suffering to-day by
|
|
convincing me that we can never be the friends we have been- never!
|
|
Here we part. The peace of the God of my fathers abide with you!"
|
|
|
|
Messala offered him his hand; the Jew walked on through the gateway.
|
|
When he was gone, the Roman was silent awhile; then he, too, passed
|
|
through, saying to himself, with a toss of the head-
|
|
|
|
"Be it so. Eros is dead, Mars reigns!"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
A JUDEAN HOME.
|
|
|
|
FROM the entrance to the Holy City, equivalent to what is now called
|
|
St. Stephen's Gate, a street extended westwardly, on a line parallel
|
|
with the northern front of the Tower of Antonia, though a square
|
|
from that famous castle. Keeping the course as far as the Tyropoeon
|
|
Valley, which it followed a little way south, it turned and again
|
|
ran west until a short distance beyond what tradition tells us was the
|
|
Judgment Gate, from whence it broke abruptly south. The traveller or
|
|
the student familiar with the sacred locality will recognize the
|
|
thoroughfare described as part of the Via Dolorosa- with Christians of
|
|
more interest, though of a melancholy kind, than any street in the
|
|
world. As the purpose in view does not at present require dealing with
|
|
the whole street, it will be sufficient to point out a house
|
|
standing in the angle last mentioned as marking the change of
|
|
direction south, and which, as an important centre of interest,
|
|
needs somewhat particular description.
|
|
|
|
The building fronted north and west, probably four hundred feet each
|
|
way, and, like most pretentious Eastern structures, was two stories in
|
|
height, and perfectly quadrangular. The street on the west side was
|
|
about twelve feet wide, that on the north not more than ten; so that
|
|
one walking close to the walls and looking up at them, would have been
|
|
struck by the rude, unfinished, uninviting, but strong and imposing
|
|
appearance they presented; for they were of stone laid in large
|
|
blocks, undressed- on the outer side, in fact, just as they were taken
|
|
from the quarry. A critic of this age would have pronounced the
|
|
house fortelesque in style, except for the windows, with which it
|
|
was unusually garnished, and the ornate finish of the doorways or
|
|
gates. The western windows were four in number, the northern only two,
|
|
all set on the line of the second storey in such manner as to overhang
|
|
the thoroughfares below. The gates were the only breaks of wall
|
|
externally visible in the first storey; and, besides being so
|
|
thickly riven with iron bolts as to suggest resistance to
|
|
battering-rams, they were protected by cornices of marble,
|
|
handsomely executed, and of such bold projection as to assure visitors
|
|
well informed of the people that the rich man who resided there was
|
|
a Sadducee in politics and creed.
|
|
|
|
Not long after the young Jew parted from the Roman at the palace
|
|
up on the Market-place, he stopped before the western gate of the
|
|
house described, and knocked. The wicket (a door hung in one of the
|
|
valves of the gate) was opened to admit him. He stepped in hastily,
|
|
and failed to. acknowledge the low salaam of the porter.
|
|
|
|
To get an idea of the interior arrangement of the structure as
|
|
well as to see what more befell the youth, we will follow him.
|
|
|
|
The passage into which he was admitted appeared not unlike a
|
|
narrow tunnel with panelled walls and pitted ceiling. There were
|
|
benches of stone on both sides, stained and polished by long use.
|
|
Twelve or fifteen steps carried him into a court-yard, oblong north
|
|
and south, and in every quarter, except the east, bounded by what
|
|
seemed the fronts of two-storey houses; of which the lower floor was
|
|
divided into lewens, while the upper was terraced and defended by
|
|
strong balustrading. The servants coming and going along the terraces;
|
|
the noise of mill-stones grinding; the garments fluttering from
|
|
ropes stretched from point to point; the chickens and pigeons in
|
|
full enjoyment of the place; the goats, cows, donkeys, and horses
|
|
stabled in the lewens; a massive trough of water, apparently for the
|
|
common use, declared this court appurtenant to the domestic management
|
|
of the owner. Eastwardly there was a division wall broken by another
|
|
passage-way in all respects like the first one.
|
|
|
|
Clearing the second passage, the young man entered a second court,
|
|
spacious, square, and set with shrubbery and vines, kept fresh and
|
|
beautiful by water from a basin erected near a porch on the north
|
|
side. The lewens here were high, airy, and shaded by curtains
|
|
striped alternate white and red. The arches of the lewens rested on
|
|
clustered columns. A flight of steps on the south ascended to the
|
|
terraces of the upper storey, over which great awnings were
|
|
stretched as a defense against the sun. Another stairway reached
|
|
from the terraces to the roof, the edge of which, all around the
|
|
square, was defined by a sculptured cornice, and a parapet of
|
|
burned-clay tiling, sexangular and bright-red. In this quarter,
|
|
moreover, there was everywhere observable a scrupulous neatness,
|
|
which, allowing no dust in the angles, not even a yellow leaf upon a
|
|
shrub, contributed quite as much as anything else to the delightful
|
|
general effect; insomuch that a visitor, breathing the sweet air,
|
|
knew, in advance of introduction, the refinement of the family he
|
|
was about calling upon.
|
|
|
|
A few steps within the second court, the lad turned to the right,
|
|
and, choosing a walk through the shrubbery, part of which was in
|
|
flower, passed to the stairway, and ascended to the terrace- a broad
|
|
pavement of white and brown flags closely laid, and much worn.
|
|
Making way under the awning to a doorway on the north side, he entered
|
|
an apartment which the dropping of the screen behind him returned to
|
|
darkness. Nevertheless, he proceeded, moving over a tiled floor to a
|
|
divan, upon which he flung himself, face downwards, and lay at rest,
|
|
his forehead upon his crossed arms.
|
|
|
|
About nightfall a woman came to the door and called; he answered and
|
|
she went in.
|
|
|
|
"Supper is over, and it is night. Is not my son hungry?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"No," he replied.
|
|
|
|
"Are you sick?"
|
|
|
|
"I am sleepy."
|
|
|
|
"Your mother has asked for you."
|
|
|
|
"Where is she?"
|
|
|
|
"In the summer-house on the roof."
|
|
|
|
He stirred himself, and sat up.
|
|
|
|
"Very well. Bring me something to eat."
|
|
|
|
"What do you want?"
|
|
|
|
"What you please, Amrah. I am not sick, but indifferent. Life does
|
|
not seem as pleasant as it did this morning. A new ailment, O my
|
|
Amrah; and you who know me so well, who never failed me, may think
|
|
of the things now that answer for food and medicine. Bring me what you
|
|
choose."
|
|
|
|
Amrah's questions, and the voice in which she put them- low,
|
|
sympathetic, and solicitous- were significant of an endeared
|
|
relation between the two. She laid her hand upon his forehead; then,
|
|
as satisfied, went out, saying, "I will see."
|
|
|
|
After a while she returned, bearing on a wooden platter a bowl of
|
|
milk, some thin cakes of white bread broken, a delicate paste of
|
|
brayed wheat, a bird broiled, and honey and salt. On one end of the
|
|
platter there was a silver goblet full of wine, on the other a
|
|
brazen hand-lamp lighted.
|
|
|
|
The room was then revealed: its walls smoothly plastered; the
|
|
ceiling broken by great oaken rafters, brown with rain stains and
|
|
time; the floor of small diamond-shaped white and blue tiles, very
|
|
firm and enduring; a few stools with legs carved in imitation of the
|
|
legs of lions; a divan raised a little above the floor, trimmed with
|
|
blue cloth, and partially covered by an immense striped woollen
|
|
blanket or shawl- in brief, a Hebrew bed-room.
|
|
|
|
The same light also gave the woman to view. Drawing a stool to the
|
|
divan, she placed the platter upon it, then knelt close by, ready to
|
|
serve him. Her face was that of a woman of fifty, dark-skinned,
|
|
dark-eyed, and at the moment softened by a look of tenderness almost
|
|
maternal. A white turban covered her head, leaving the lobes of the
|
|
ear exposed, and in them the sign that settled her condition- an
|
|
orifice bored by a thick awl. She was a slave of Egyptian origin, to
|
|
whom not even the sacred fiftieth year could have brought freedom; nor
|
|
would she have accepted it, for the boy she was attending was her
|
|
life. She had nursed him through babyhood, tended him as a child,
|
|
and could not break the service. To her love he could never be a man.
|
|
|
|
He spoke but once during the meal.
|
|
|
|
"You remember, O my Amrah," he said, "the Messala who used to
|
|
visit me here days at a time."
|
|
|
|
"I remember him."
|
|
|
|
"He went to Rome some years ago, and is now back. I called upon
|
|
him to-day."
|
|
|
|
A shudder of disgust seized the lad.
|
|
|
|
"I knew something had happened," she said, deeply interested. "I
|
|
never liked the Messala. Tell me all."
|
|
|
|
But he fell into musing, and to her repeated inquiries only said,
|
|
"He is much changed, and I shall have nothing more to do with him."
|
|
|
|
When Amrah took the platter away he also went out, and up from the
|
|
terrace to the roof.
|
|
|
|
The reader is presumed to know somewhat of the uses of the house-top
|
|
in the East. In the matter of customs, climate is a law-giver
|
|
everywhere. The Syrian summer day drives the seeker of comfort into
|
|
the darkened lewen; night, however, calls him forth early, and the
|
|
shadows deepening over the mountain-sides seem veils dimly covering
|
|
Circean singers; but they are far off, while the roof is close by, and
|
|
raised above the level of the shimmering plain enough for the
|
|
visitation of cool airs, and sufficiently above the trees to allure
|
|
the stars down closer, down at least into brighter shining. So the
|
|
roof became a resort- became playground, sleeping-chamber, boudoir,
|
|
rendezvous for the family, place of music, dance, conversation,
|
|
reverie, and prayer.
|
|
|
|
The motive that prompts the decoration, at whatever cost, of
|
|
interiors in colder climes suggested to the Oriental the embellishment
|
|
of his house-top. The parapet ordered by Moses became a potter's
|
|
triumph; above that, later, arose towers plain and fantastic; still
|
|
later, kings and princes crowned their roofs with summer-houses of
|
|
marble and gold. When the Babylonian hung gardens in the air,
|
|
extravagance could push the idea no further.
|
|
|
|
The lad whom we are following walked slowly across the house-top
|
|
to a tower built over the north-west corner of the palace. Had he been
|
|
a stranger he might have bestowed a glance upon the structure as he
|
|
drew nigh it, and seen all the dimness permitted- a darkened mass,
|
|
low, latticed, pillared, and domed. He entered, passing under a
|
|
half-raised curtain. The interior was all darkness, except that on
|
|
four sides there were arched openings like doorways, through which the
|
|
sky, lighted with stars, was visible. In one of the openings,
|
|
reclining against a cushion from a divan, he saw the figure of a
|
|
woman, indistinct even in white floating drapery. At the sound of
|
|
his steps upon the floor, the fan in her hand stopped, glistening
|
|
where the starlight struck the jewels with which it was sprinkled, and
|
|
she sat up, and called his name.
|
|
|
|
"Judah, my son!"
|
|
|
|
"It is I, mother," he answered, quickening his approach.
|
|
|
|
Going to her, he knelt, and she put her arms around him, and with
|
|
kisses pressed him to her bosom.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
THE STRANGE THINGS BEN-HUR WANTS TO KNOW.
|
|
|
|
THE mother resumed her easy position against the cushion, while
|
|
the son took place on the divan, his head in her lap. Both of them,
|
|
looking out of the opening, could see a stretch of lower house-tops in
|
|
the vicinity, a bank of blue-blackness over in the west which they
|
|
knew to be mountains, and the sky, its shadowy depths brilliant with
|
|
stars. The city was still. Only the winds stirred.
|
|
|
|
"Amrah tells me something has happened to you," she said,
|
|
caressing his cheek. "When my Judah was a child, I allowed small
|
|
things to trouble him, but he is now a man. He must not forget"- her
|
|
voice became very soft- "that one day he is to be my hero."
|
|
|
|
She spoke in the language almost lost in the land, but which a
|
|
few- and they were always as rich in blood as in possessions-
|
|
cherished in its purity, that they might be more certainly
|
|
distinguished from Gentile peoples- the language in which the loved
|
|
Rebekah and Rachel sang to Benjamin.
|
|
|
|
The words appeared to set him thinking anew; after a while, however,
|
|
he caught the hand with which she fanned him, and said, "To-day, O
|
|
my mother, I have been made to think of many things that never had
|
|
place in my mind before. Tell me, first, what am I to be?"
|
|
|
|
"Have I not told you? You are to be my hero."
|
|
|
|
He could not see her face, yet he knew she was in play. He became
|
|
more serious.
|
|
|
|
"You are very good, very kind, O my mother. No one will ever love me
|
|
as you do."
|
|
|
|
He kissed the hand over and over again.
|
|
|
|
"I think I understand why you would have me put off the question,"
|
|
he continued. "Thus far my life has belonged to you. How gentle, how
|
|
sweet your control has been! I wish it could last forever. But that
|
|
may not be. It is the Lord's will that I shall one day become owner of
|
|
myself- a day of separation, and therefore a dreadful day to you.
|
|
Let us be brave and serious. I will be your hero, but you must put
|
|
me in the way. You know the law- every son of Israel must have some
|
|
occupation. I am not exempt, and ask now, shall I tend the herds? or
|
|
till the soil? or drive the saw? or be a clerk or lawyer? What shall I
|
|
be? Dear, good mother, help me to answer."
|
|
|
|
"Gamaliel has been lecturing to-day," she said, thoughtfully.
|
|
|
|
"If so, I did not hear him."
|
|
|
|
"Then you have been walking with Simeon, who, they tell me, inherits
|
|
the genius of his family."
|
|
|
|
"No, I have not seen him. I have been up on the Market-place, not to
|
|
the Temple. I visited the young Messala."
|
|
|
|
A certain change in his voice attracted the mother's attention. A
|
|
presentiment quickened the beating of her heart; the fan became
|
|
motionless again.
|
|
|
|
"The Messala!" she said. "What could he say to so trouble you?"
|
|
|
|
"He is very much changed."
|
|
|
|
"You mean he has come back a Roman."
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Roman!" she continued, half to herself. "To all the world the
|
|
word means master. How long has he been away?"
|
|
|
|
"Five years."
|
|
|
|
She raised her head, and looked off into the night.
|
|
|
|
"The airs of the Via Sacra are well enough in the streets of the
|
|
Egyptian and in Babylon; but in Jerusalem- our Jerusalem- the covenant
|
|
abides."
|
|
|
|
And, full of the thought, she settled back into her easy place. He
|
|
was first to speak.
|
|
|
|
"What Messala said, my mother, was sharp enough in itself but, taken
|
|
with the manner, some of the sayings were intolerable."
|
|
|
|
"I think I understand you. Rome, her poets, orators, senators,
|
|
courtiers, are mad with affectation of what they call satire."
|
|
|
|
"I suppose all great peoples are proud," he went on, scarcely
|
|
noticing the interruption; "but the pride of that people is unlike all
|
|
others; in these latter days it is so grown the gods barely escape
|
|
it."
|
|
|
|
"The gods escape!" said the mother, quickly. "More than one Roman
|
|
has accepted worship as his divine right."
|
|
|
|
"Well, Messala always had his share of the disagreeable quality.
|
|
When he was a child I have seen him mock strangers whom even Herod
|
|
condescended to receive with honours; yet he always spared Judea.
|
|
For the first time, in conversation with me to-day, he trifled with
|
|
our customs and God. As you would have had me to do, I parted with him
|
|
finally. And now, O my dear mother, I would know with more certainty
|
|
if there be just ground for the Roman's contempt. In what am I his
|
|
inferior? Is ours a lower order of people? Why should I, even in
|
|
Caesar's presence, feel the shrinking of a slave? Tell me especially
|
|
why, if I have the soul, and so choose, I may not hunt the honours
|
|
of the world in all its fields? Why may not I take sword and indulge
|
|
the passion of war! As a poet, why may not I sing of all themes? I can
|
|
be a worker in metals, a keeper of flocks, a merchant, why not an
|
|
artist like the Greek? Tell me, O my mother- and this is the sum of my
|
|
trouble- why may not a son of Israel do all a Roman may?"
|
|
|
|
The reader will refer these questions back to the conversation in
|
|
the Market-place; the mother, listening with all her faculties
|
|
awake, from something which would have been lost upon one less
|
|
interested in him- from the connections of the subject, the pointing
|
|
of the questions, possibly his accent and tone- was not less swift
|
|
in making the same reference. She sat up, and in a voice quick and
|
|
sharp as his own, replied, "I see, I see! From association Messala, in
|
|
boyhood, was almost a Jew; had he remained here he might have become a
|
|
proselyte, so much do we all borrow from the influences that ripen our
|
|
lives; but the years in Rome have been too much for him. I do not
|
|
wonder at the change; yet"- her voice fell- "he might have dealt
|
|
tenderly at least with you. It is a hard, cruel nature which in
|
|
youth can forget its first loves."
|
|
|
|
Her hand dropped lightly upon his forehead, and the fingers caught
|
|
in his hair and lingered there lovingly, while her eyes sought the
|
|
highest stars in view. Her pride responded to his, not merely in echo,
|
|
but in the unison of perfect sympathy. She would answer him; at the
|
|
same time, not for the world would she have had the answer
|
|
unsatisfactory; an admission of inferiority might weaken his spirit
|
|
for life. She faltered with misgivings of her own powers.
|
|
|
|
"What you propose, O my Judah, is not a subject for treatment by a
|
|
woman. Let me put its consideration off till to-morrow, and I will
|
|
have the wise Simeon- "
|
|
|
|
"Do not send me to the Rector," he said, abruptly.
|
|
|
|
"I will have him come to us."
|
|
|
|
"No, I seek more than information; while he might give me that
|
|
better than you, O my mother, you can do better by giving me what he
|
|
cannot- the resolution which is the soul of a man's soul."
|
|
|
|
She swept the heavens with a rapid glance, trying to compass all the
|
|
meaning of his questions.
|
|
|
|
"While craving justice for ourselves, it is never wise to be
|
|
unjust to others. To deny valour in the enemy we have conquered is
|
|
to underrate our victory; and if the enemy be strong enough to hold us
|
|
at bay, much more to conquer us"- she hesitated- "self-respect bids us
|
|
seek some other explanation of our misfortunes than accusing him of
|
|
qualities inferior to our own."
|
|
|
|
Thus speaking to herself rather than to him, she began-
|
|
|
|
"Take heart, O my son. The Messala is nobly descended; his family
|
|
has been illustrious through many generations. In the days of
|
|
Republican Rome- how far back I cannot tell- they were famous, some as
|
|
soldiers, some as civilians. I can recall but one consul of the
|
|
name; their rank was senatorial, and their patronage always sought
|
|
because they were always rich. Yet if to-day your friend boasted of
|
|
his ancestry, you might have shamed him by recounting yours. If he
|
|
referred to the ages through which the line is traceable, or to deeds,
|
|
rank, or wealth- such allusions, except when great occasion demands
|
|
them, are tokens of small minds- if he mentioned them in proof of
|
|
his superiority, then without dread, and standing on each
|
|
particular, you might have challenged him to a comparison of records."
|
|
|
|
Taking a moment's thought, the mother proceeded:
|
|
|
|
"One of the ideas of fast hold now is that time has much to do
|
|
with the nobility of races and families. A Roman boasting his
|
|
superiority on that account over a son of Israel will always fail when
|
|
put to the proof. The founding of Rome was his beginning; the very
|
|
best of them cannot trace their descent beyond that period: few of
|
|
them pretend to do so; and of such as do, I say not one could make
|
|
good his claim except by resort to tradition. Messala certainly
|
|
could not. Let us look now to ourselves. Could we better?"
|
|
|
|
A little more light would have enabled him to see the pride that
|
|
diffused itself over her face.
|
|
|
|
"Let us imagine the Roman putting us to the challenge. I would
|
|
answer him, neither doubting nor boastful."
|
|
|
|
Her voice faltered; a tender thought changed the form of the
|
|
argument.
|
|
|
|
"Your father, O, my Judah, is at rest with his fathers; yet I
|
|
remember, as though it were this evening, the day he and I, with
|
|
many rejoicing friends, went up into the Temple to present you to
|
|
the Lord. We sacrificed the doves, and to the priest I gave your name,
|
|
which he wrote in my presence- 'Judah, son of Ithamar, of the House of
|
|
Hur.' The name was then carried away and written in a book of the
|
|
division of records devoted to the saintly family.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot tell you when the custom of registration in this mode
|
|
began. We know it prevailed before the flight from Egypt. I have heard
|
|
Hillel say Abraham caused the record to be first opened with his own
|
|
name, and the names of his sons, moved by the promises of the Lord
|
|
which separated him and them from all other races, and made them the
|
|
highest and noblest, the very chosen of the earth. The covenant with
|
|
Jacob was of like effect. 'In thy seed shall all the nations of the
|
|
earth be blessed'- so said the angel to Abraham in the place of
|
|
Jehovah-jireh. 'And the land whereon thou liest, to thee will I give
|
|
it, and to thy seed'- so the Lord himself said to Jacob asleep at
|
|
Bethel on the way to Haran. Afterwards the wise men looked forward
|
|
to a just division of the land of promise; and, that it might be known
|
|
in the day of partition who were entitled to portions' the Book of
|
|
Generations was begun. But not for that alone. The promise of a
|
|
blessing to all the earth through the patriarch reached far into the
|
|
future. One name was mentioned in connection with the blessing- the
|
|
benefactor might be the humblest of the chosen family, for the Lord
|
|
our God knows no distinction of rank or riches. So, to make the
|
|
performance clear to men of the generation who were to witness it, and
|
|
that they might give the glory to whom it belonged, the record was
|
|
required to be kept with absolute certainty. Has it been so kept?"
|
|
|
|
The fan played to and fro, until, becoming impatient, he repeated
|
|
the question, "Is the record absolutely true?"
|
|
|
|
"Hillel said it was, and of all who have lived no one was so
|
|
well-informed upon the subject. Our people have at times been heedless
|
|
of some parts of the law, but never of this part. The good rector
|
|
himself has followed the Books of Generations through three periods-
|
|
from the promises to the opening of the Temple; thence to the
|
|
Captivity; thence, again, to the present. Once only were the records
|
|
disturbed, and that was at the end of the second period; but when
|
|
the nation returned from the long exile, as a first duty to God,
|
|
Zerubbabel restored the Books, enabling us once more to carry the
|
|
lines of Jewish descent back unbroken fully two thousand years. And
|
|
now- "
|
|
|
|
She paused as if to allow the hearer to measure the time
|
|
comprehended in the statement.
|
|
|
|
"And now," she continued, "what becomes of the Roman boast of
|
|
blood enriched by ages? By that test the sons of Israel watching the
|
|
herds on old Rephaim yonder are nobler than the noblest of the
|
|
Marcii."
|
|
|
|
"And I, mother- by the Books, who am I?"
|
|
|
|
"What I have said thus far, my son, had reference to your
|
|
question. I will answer you. If Messala were here he might say, as
|
|
others have said, that the exact trace of your lineage stopped when
|
|
the Assyrian took Jerusalem, and razed the Temple, with alt its
|
|
precious stores; but you might plead the pious action of Zerubbabel,
|
|
and retort that all verity in Roman genealogy ended when the
|
|
barbarians from the West took Rome, and camped six months upon her
|
|
desolated site. Did the government keep family histories? If so,
|
|
what became of them in those dreadful days? No, no; there is verity in
|
|
our Books of Generations; and following them back to the Captivity,
|
|
back to the foundation of the first Temple, back to the march from
|
|
Egypt, we have absolute assurance that you are lineally sprung from
|
|
Hur, the associate of Joshua. In the matter of descent sanctified by
|
|
time, is not the honour perfect? Do you care to pursue further? If so,
|
|
take the Torah, and search the Book of Numbers, and of the seventy-two
|
|
generations after Adam, you can find the very progenitor of your
|
|
house."
|
|
|
|
There was silence for a time in the chamber on the roof.
|
|
|
|
"I thank you, O my mother," Judah next said, clasping both her hands
|
|
in his; "I thank you with all my heart. I was right in not having
|
|
the good rector called in; he could not have satisfied me more than
|
|
you have. Yet to make a family truly noble, is time alone sufficient?"
|
|
|
|
"Ah, you forget, you forget; our claim rests not merely upon time;
|
|
the Lord's preference is our especial glory."
|
|
|
|
"You are speaking of the race, and I, mother, of the family- our
|
|
family. In the years since Father Abraham, what have they achieved?
|
|
What have they done? What great things to lift them above the level of
|
|
their fellows?"
|
|
|
|
She hesitated, thinking she might all this time have mistaken his
|
|
object. The information he sought might have been for more than
|
|
satisfaction of wounded vanity. Youth is but the painted shell
|
|
within which, continually growing, lives that wondrous thing, the
|
|
spirit of a man, biding its moment of apparition, earlier in some than
|
|
in others. She trembled under a perception that this might be the
|
|
supreme moment come to him; that as children at birth reach out
|
|
their untried hands grasping for shadows, and crying the while, so his
|
|
spirit might, in temporary blindness, be struggling to take hold of
|
|
its impalpable future. They to whom a boy comes asking, Who am I,
|
|
and what am I to be? have need of ever so much care. Each word in
|
|
answer may prove to the after-life what each finger-touch of the
|
|
artist is to the clay he is modelling.
|
|
|
|
"I have a feeling, O my Judah," she said, patting his cheek with the
|
|
hand he had been caressing- "I have the feeling that all I have said
|
|
has been in strife with an antagonist more real than imaginary. If
|
|
Messala is the enemy, do not leave me to fight him in the dark. Tell
|
|
me all he said."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
ROME AND ISRAEL- A COMPARISON.
|
|
|
|
THE young Israelite proceeded then, and rehearsed his conversation
|
|
with Messala, dwelling with particularity upon the latter's speeches
|
|
in contempt of the Jews, their customs, and much pent round of life.
|
|
|
|
Afraid to speak the while, the mother listened, discerning the
|
|
matter plainly. Judah had gone to the palace on the Market-place,
|
|
allured by love of a playmate whom he thought to find exactly as he
|
|
had been at the parting years before; a man met him, and, in place
|
|
of laughter and references to the sports of the past, the man had been
|
|
full of the future, and talked of glory to be won, and of riches and
|
|
power. Unconscious of the effect, the visitor had come away hurt in
|
|
pride, yet touched with a natural ambition: but she, the jealous
|
|
mother, saw it, and, not knowing the turn the aspiration might take,
|
|
became at once Jewish in her fear. What if it lured him away from
|
|
the patriarchal faith? In her view that consequence was more
|
|
dreadful than any or all others. She could discover but one way to
|
|
avert it, and she set about the task, her native power reinforced by
|
|
love to such degree that her speech took a masculine strength and at
|
|
times a poet's fervour.
|
|
|
|
"There never has been a people," she began, "who did not think
|
|
themselves at least equal to any other; never a great nation, my
|
|
son, that did not believe itself the very superior. When the Roman
|
|
looks down upon Israel and laughs, he merely repeats the folly of
|
|
the Egyptian, the Assyrian, and the Macedonian; and as the laugh is
|
|
against God, the result will be the same."
|
|
|
|
Her voice became firmer.
|
|
|
|
"There is no law by which to determine the superiority of nations;
|
|
hence the vanity of the claim and the idleness of disputes about it. A
|
|
people risen, run their race, and die either of themselves or at the
|
|
hands of another, who, succeeding to their power, take possession of
|
|
their place, and upon their monuments write new names; such is
|
|
history. If I were called upon to symbolize God and man in the
|
|
simplest form, I would draw a straight line and a circle; and of the
|
|
line I would say, 'This is God, for he alone moves forever
|
|
straightforward,' and of the circle, 'This is man- such is his
|
|
progress.' I do not mean that there is no difference between the
|
|
careers of nations; no two are alike. The difference, however, is not,
|
|
as some say, in the extent of the circle they describe or the space of
|
|
earth they cover, but in the sphere of their movement, the highest
|
|
being nearest God.
|
|
|
|
"To stop here, my son, would be to leave the subject where we began.
|
|
Let us go on. There are signs by which to measure the height of the
|
|
circle each nation runs while in its course. By them let us compare
|
|
the Hebrew and the Roman.
|
|
|
|
"The simplest of all the signs is the daily life of the people. Of
|
|
this I will only say, Israel has at times forgotten God, while the
|
|
Roman never knew him; consequently comparison is not possible.
|
|
|
|
"Your friend- or your former friend- charged, if I understood you
|
|
rightly, that we have had no poets, artists, or warriors; by which
|
|
he meant, I suppose, to deny that we have had great men, the next most
|
|
certain of the signs. A just consideration of this charge requires a
|
|
definition at the commencement. A great man, O my boy, is one whose
|
|
life proves him to have been recognized, if not called, by God. A
|
|
Persian was used to punish our recreant fathers, and he carried them
|
|
into captivity; another Persian was selected to restore their children
|
|
to the Holy Land; greater than either of them, however, was the
|
|
Macedonian through whom the desolation of Judea and the Temple was
|
|
avenged. The special distinction of the men was that they were
|
|
chosen by the Lord, each for a divine purpose; and that they were
|
|
Gentiles does not lessen their glory. Do not lost sight of this
|
|
definition while I proceed.
|
|
|
|
"There is an idea that war is the most noble occupation of men,
|
|
and that the most exalted greatness is the growth of battle-fields.
|
|
Because the world has adopted the idea, be not you deceived. That we
|
|
must worship something is a law which will continue as long as there
|
|
is anything we cannot understand. The prayer of the barbarian is a
|
|
wail of fear addressed to Strength, the only divine quality he can
|
|
clearly conceive; hence his faith in heroes. What is Jove but a
|
|
Roman hero? The Greeks have their great glory because they were the
|
|
first to set Mind above Strength. In Athens the orator and philosopher
|
|
were more revered than the warrior. The charioteer and the swiftest
|
|
runner are still idols of the arena; yet the immortelles are
|
|
reserved for the sweetest singer. The birthplace of one poet was
|
|
contested by seven cities. But was the Hellene the first to deny the
|
|
old barbaric faith? No. My son, that glory is ours; against
|
|
brutalism our fathers erected God; in our worship, the wail of fear
|
|
gave place to the Hosanna and the Psalm. So the Hebrew and the Greek
|
|
would have carried all humanity forward and upward. But, alas! the
|
|
government of the world presumes war as an eternal condition;
|
|
wherefore, over Mind and above God, the Roman has enthroned his
|
|
Caesar, the absorbent of all attainable power, the prohibition of
|
|
any other greatness.
|
|
|
|
"The sway of the Greek was a flowering time for genius. In return
|
|
for the liberty it then enjoyed, what a company of thinkers the Mind
|
|
led forth? There was a glory for every excellence, and a perfection so
|
|
absolute that in everything but war even the Roman has stooped to
|
|
imitation. A Greek is now the model of the orators in the Forum;
|
|
listen, and in every Roman song you will hear the rhythm of the Greek;
|
|
if a Roman opens his mouth speaking wisely of moralities, or
|
|
abstractions, or of the mysteries of nature, he is either a plagiarist
|
|
or the disciple of some school which had a Greek for its founder. In
|
|
nothing but war, I say again, has Rome a claim to originality. Her
|
|
games and spectacles are Greek inventions, dashed with blood to
|
|
gratify the ferocity of her rabble; her religion, if such it may be
|
|
called, is made up of contributions from the faiths of all other
|
|
peoples; her most venerated gods are from Olympus- even her Mars, and,
|
|
for that matter, the Jove she much magnifies. So it happens, O my son,
|
|
that of the whole world our Israel alone can dispute the superiority
|
|
of the Greek, and with him contest the palm of original genius.
|
|
|
|
"To the excellences of other peoples the egotism of a Roman is a
|
|
blindfold, impenetrable as his breastplate. Oh, the ruthless
|
|
robbers! Under their trampling the earth trembles like a floor
|
|
beaten with flails. Along with the rest we are fallen- alas, that I
|
|
should say it to you, my son! They have our highest places, and the
|
|
holiest, and the end no man can tell; but this I know- they may reduce
|
|
Judea as an almond broken with hammers, and devour Jerusalem, which is
|
|
the oil and sweetness thereof; yet the glory of the men of Israel will
|
|
remain a light in the heavens overhead out of reach: for their history
|
|
is the history of God, who wrote with their hands, spake with their
|
|
tongues, and was himself in all the good they did, even the least; who
|
|
dwelt with them, a Lawgiver on Sinai, a Guide in the wilderness, in
|
|
war a Captain, in government a King; who once and again pushed back
|
|
the curtains of the pavilion which is his resting-place, intolerably
|
|
bright, and, as a man speaking to men, showed them the right, and
|
|
the way to happiness, and how they should live, and made them promises
|
|
binding the strength of his Almightiness with covenants sworn to
|
|
everlastingly. O my son, could it be that they with whom Jehovah
|
|
thus dwelt, an awful familiar, derived nothing from him?- that in
|
|
their lives and deeds the common human qualities should not in some
|
|
degree have been mixed and coloured with the divine?- that their
|
|
genius should not have in it, even after the lapse of ages, some
|
|
little of heaven?"
|
|
|
|
For a time the rustling of the fan was all the sound heard in the
|
|
chamber.
|
|
|
|
"In the sense which limits art to sculpture and painting, it is
|
|
true," she next said, "Israel has had no artists."
|
|
|
|
The admission was made regretfully, for it must be remembered she
|
|
was a Sadducee, whose faith, unlike that of the Pharisees, permitted a
|
|
love of the beautiful in every form, and without reference to its
|
|
origin.
|
|
|
|
"Still, he who would do justice," she proceeded, "will not forget
|
|
that the cunning of our hands was bound by the prohibition, 'Thou
|
|
shalt not make unto thee any graven image, or any likeness of
|
|
anything;' which the Sopherim wickedly extended beyond its purpose and
|
|
time. Nor should it be forgotten that long before Daedalus appeared in
|
|
Attica, and with his wooden statues so transformed sculpture as to
|
|
make possible the schools of Corinth and AEgina, and their ultimate
|
|
triumphs, the Poecile and Capitolium- long before the age of Daedalus,
|
|
I say, two Israelites, Bezaleel and Aholiab, the master-builders of
|
|
the first tabernacle, said to have been skilled 'in all manner of
|
|
workmanship,' wrought the cherubim of the mercy-seat above the ark. Of
|
|
gold beaten, not chiselled, were they; and they were statues in form
|
|
both human and divine. 'And they shall stretch forth their wings on
|
|
high,.... and their faces shall look one to another.' Who will say
|
|
they were not beautiful? or that they were not the first statues?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I see now why the Greek outstripped us," said Judah,
|
|
intensely interested. "And the ark; accursed be the Babylonians who
|
|
destroyed it."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, Judah, be of faith. It was not destroyed, only lost, hidden
|
|
away too safely in some cavern of the mountains. One day- Hellel and
|
|
Shammai both say so- one day, in the Lord's good time, it will be
|
|
found and brought forth, and Israel dance before it, singing as of
|
|
old. And they who look upon the faces of the cherubim then, though
|
|
they have seen the face of the ivory Minerva, will be ready to kiss
|
|
the hand of the Jew from love of his genius, asleep through all the
|
|
thousands of years."
|
|
|
|
The mother, in her eagerness, had risen into something like the
|
|
rapidity and vehemence of a speech-maker; but now, to recover herself,
|
|
or to pluck up the thread of her thought, she rested awhile.
|
|
|
|
"You are so good, my mother," he said, in a grateful way. "And I
|
|
will never be done saying so. Shammai could not have talked better,
|
|
nor Hillel. I am a true son of Israel again."
|
|
|
|
"Flatterer!" she said. "You do not know that I am but repeating what
|
|
I heard Hillel say in an argument he had one day in my presence with a
|
|
sophist from Rome."
|
|
|
|
"Well, the hearty words are yours."
|
|
|
|
Directly all her earnestness returned.
|
|
|
|
"Where was I? Oh yes, I was claiming for our Hebrew fathers the
|
|
first statues. The trick of the sculptor, Judah, is not all there is
|
|
of art, any more than art is all there is of greatness. I always think
|
|
of great men marching down the centuries in groups and goodly
|
|
companies, separable according to nationalities; here the Indian,
|
|
there the Egyptian, yonder the Assyrian; above them the music of
|
|
trumpets and the beauty of banners; and on their right hand and
|
|
left, as reverent spectators, the generations from the beginning
|
|
numberless. As they go, I think of the Greek saying, 'Lo! the
|
|
Hellene leads the way.' Then the Roman replies, 'Silence! what was
|
|
your place is ours now; we have left you behind as dust trodden on.'
|
|
And all the time, from the far front back over the line of march, as
|
|
well as forward into the farthest future, streams a light of which the
|
|
wranglers know nothing, except that it is forever leading them on- the
|
|
Light of Revelation! Who are they that carry it? Ah, the old Judean
|
|
blood! How it leaps at the thought! By the light we know them.
|
|
Thrice blessed, O our fathers, servants of God, keepers of the
|
|
covenants! Ye are the leaders of men, the living and the dead. The
|
|
front is thine; and though every Roman were a Caesar, ye shall not
|
|
lose it!"
|
|
|
|
Judah was deeply stirred.
|
|
|
|
"Do not stop, I pray you," he cried. "You give me to hear the
|
|
sound of timbrels. I wait for Miriam and the women who went after
|
|
her dancing and singing."
|
|
|
|
She caught his feeling, and, with ready wit, wove it into her
|
|
speech.
|
|
|
|
"Very well, my son. If you can hear the timbrel of the prophetess,
|
|
you can do what I was about to ask you; you can use your fancy, and
|
|
stand with me, as if by the wayside, while the chosen of Israel pass
|
|
us at the head of the procession. Now they come- the patriarchs first;
|
|
next the fathers of the tribes. I almost hear the bells of their
|
|
camels and the lowing of their herds. Who is he that walks alone
|
|
between the companies? An old man, yet his eye is not dim, nor his
|
|
natural force abated. He knew the Lord face to face! Warrior, poet,
|
|
orator, lawgiver, prophet, his greatness is as the sun at morning, its
|
|
flood of splendour quenching all other lights, even that of the
|
|
first and noblest of the Caesars. After him the judges. And then the
|
|
kings- the son of Jesse, a hero in war, and a singer of songs
|
|
eternal as that of the sea; and his son, who, passing all other
|
|
kings in riches and wisdom, and while making the Desert habitable, and
|
|
in its waste places planting cities, forgot not Jerusalem which the
|
|
Lord had chosen for his seat on earth. Bend lower, my son! These
|
|
that come next are the first of their kind, and the last. Their
|
|
faces are raised, as if they heard a voice in the sky and were
|
|
listening. Their lives were full of sorrows. Their garments smell of
|
|
tombs and caverns. Hearken to a woman among them!- 'Sing ye to the
|
|
Lord, for he hath triumphed gloriously!' Nay, put your forehead in the
|
|
dust before them! They were tongues of God, his servants, who looked
|
|
through heaven, and, seeing all the future, wrote what they saw, and
|
|
left the writing to be proven by time. Kings turned pale as they
|
|
approached them and nations trembled at the sound of their voices. The
|
|
clements waited upon them. In their hands they carried every bounty
|
|
and every plague. See the Tishbite and his servant Elisha! See the sad
|
|
son of Hilkiah, and him, the seer of visions, by the river of
|
|
Chebar! And of the three children of Judah who refused the image of
|
|
the Babylonian, lo! that one who, in the feast to the thousand
|
|
lords, so confounded the astrologers. And yonder- O my son, kiss the
|
|
dust again!- yonder the gentle son of Amoz, from whom the world has
|
|
its promise of the Messiah to come!"
|
|
|
|
In this passage the fan had been kept in rapid play; it stopped now,
|
|
and her voice sank low.
|
|
|
|
"You are tired," she said.
|
|
|
|
"No," he replied, "I was listening to a new song of Israel."
|
|
|
|
The mother was still intent upon her purpose, and passed the
|
|
pleasant speech.
|
|
|
|
"In such light as I could, my Judah, I have set our great men before
|
|
you- patriarchs, legislators, warriors, singers, prophets. Turn we
|
|
to the best of Rome. Against Moses place Caesar, and Tarquin against
|
|
David; Sylla against either of the Maccabees; the best of the
|
|
consuls against the Judges; Augustus against Solomon, and you are
|
|
done: comparison ends there. But think then of the prophets-
|
|
greatest of the great."
|
|
|
|
She laughed scornfully.
|
|
|
|
"Pardon me. I was thinking of the soothsayer who warned Caius Julius
|
|
against the Ides of March, and fancied him looking for the omens of
|
|
evil which his master despised in the entrails of a chicken. From that
|
|
picture turn to Elijah sitting on the hill-top on the way to
|
|
Samaria, amid the smoking bodies of the captains and their fifties,
|
|
warning the son of Ahab of the wrath of our God. Finally, O my
|
|
Judah- if such speech be reverent- how shall we judge Jehovah and
|
|
Jupiter unless it be by what their servants have done in their
|
|
names? And as for what you shall do- "
|
|
|
|
She spoke the latter words slowly, and with a tremulous utterance.
|
|
|
|
"As for what you shall do, my boy- serve the Lord, the Lord God of
|
|
Israel, not Rome. For a child of Abraham there is no glory except in
|
|
the Lord's ways, and in them there is much glory."
|
|
|
|
"I may be a soldier then?" Judah asked.
|
|
|
|
"Why not? Did not Moses call God a man of war?"
|
|
|
|
There was then a long silence in the summer chamber.
|
|
|
|
"You have my permission," she said, finally; "if only you serve
|
|
the Lord instead of Caesar."
|
|
|
|
He was content with the condition, and by-and-by fell asleep. She
|
|
arose then, and put the cushion under his head, and, throwing a
|
|
shawl over him and kissing him tenderly, went away.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
THE ACCIDENT TO GRATUS.
|
|
|
|
THE good man, like the bad, must die; but, remembering the lesson of
|
|
our faith, we say of him and the event, "No matter, he will open his
|
|
eyes in heaven." Nearest this in life is the waking from healthful
|
|
sleep to a quick consciousness of happy sights and sounds.
|
|
|
|
When Judah awoke, the sun was up over the mountains; the pigeons
|
|
were abroad in flocks, filling the air with the gleams of their
|
|
white wings; and off south-east he beheld the Temple, an apparition of
|
|
gold in the blue of the sky. These, however, were familiar objects,
|
|
and they received but a glance; upon the edge of the divan, close by
|
|
him, a girl scarcely fifteen sat singing to the accompaniment of a
|
|
nebel, which she rested upon her knee, and touched gracefully. To
|
|
her he turned listening; and this was what she sang-
|
|
|
|
THE SONG
|
|
|
|
"Wake not, but hear me, love!
|
|
|
|
Adrift, adrift on slumber's sea,
|
|
|
|
Thy spirit call to list to me.
|
|
|
|
Wake not, but hear me, love!
|
|
|
|
A gift from Sleep, the restful king,
|
|
|
|
All happy, happy dreams I bring.
|
|
|
|
Wake not, but hear me, love!
|
|
|
|
Of all the world of dreams 'tis thine
|
|
|
|
This once to choose the most divine.
|
|
|
|
So choose, and sleep, my love!
|
|
|
|
But ne'er again in choice be free,
|
|
|
|
Unless, unless- you dream of me."
|
|
|
|
She put the instrument down, and, resting her hands in her lap,
|
|
waited for him to speak. And as it has become necessary to tell
|
|
somewhat of her, we will avail ourselves of the chance, and add such
|
|
particulars of the family into whose privacy we are brought as the
|
|
reader may wish to know.
|
|
|
|
The favours of Herod had left surviving him many persons of vast
|
|
estate. Where this fortune was joined to undoubted lineal descent from
|
|
some famous son of one of the tribes, especially Judah, the happy
|
|
individual was accounted a Prince of Jerusalem- a distinction which
|
|
sufficed to bring him the homage of his less favoured countrymen,
|
|
and the respect, if nothing more, of the Gentiles with whom business
|
|
and social circumstance brought him into dealing. Of this class none
|
|
had won in private or public life a higher regard than the father of
|
|
the lad whom we have been following. With a remembrance of his
|
|
nationality which never failed him, he had yet been true to the
|
|
king, and served him faithfully at home and abroad. Some offices had
|
|
taken him to Rome, where his conduct attracted the notice of Augustus,
|
|
who strove without reserve to engage his friendship. In his house,
|
|
accordingly, were many presents, such as had gratified the vanity of
|
|
kings- purple togas, ivory chairs, golden paterae- chiefly valuable on
|
|
account of the imperial hand which had honourably conferred them. Such
|
|
a man could not fail to be rich; yet his wealth was not altogether the
|
|
largess of royal patrons. He had welcomed the law that bound him to
|
|
some pursuit; and, instead of one, he entered into many. Of the
|
|
herdsmen watching flocks on the plains and hill-sides, far as old
|
|
Lebanon, numbers reported to him as their employer; in the cities by
|
|
the sea, and in those inland, he founded houses of traffic; his
|
|
ships brought him silver from Spain, whose mines were then the richest
|
|
known; while his caravans came twice a year from the East, laden
|
|
with silks and spices. In faith he was a Hebrew, observant of the
|
|
law and every essential rite; his place in the synagogue and Temple
|
|
knew him well; he was thoroughly learned in the Scriptures; he
|
|
delighted in the society of the college-masters, and carried his
|
|
reverence for Hillel almost to the point of worship. Yet he was in
|
|
no sense a Separatist; his hospitality took in strangers from every
|
|
land; the carping Pharisees even accused him of having more than
|
|
once entertained Samaritans at his table. Had he been a Gentile, and
|
|
lived, the world might have heard of him as the rival of Herodes
|
|
Atticus: as it was, he perished at sea some ten years before this
|
|
second period of our story, in the prime of life, and lamented
|
|
everywhere in Judea. We are already acquainted with two members of his
|
|
family- his widow and son; the only other was a daughter- she whom
|
|
we have seen singing to her brother.
|
|
|
|
Tirzah was her name, and as the two looked at each other, their
|
|
resemblance was plain. Her features had the regularity of his, and
|
|
were of the same Jewish type; they had also the charm of childish
|
|
innocency of expression. Home-life and its trustful love permitted the
|
|
negligent attire in which she appeared. A chemise buttoned upon the
|
|
right shoulder, and passing loosely over the breast and back and under
|
|
the left arm, but half concealed her person above the waist, while
|
|
it left the arms entirely nude. A girdle caught the folds of the
|
|
garment, marking the commencement of the skirt. The coiffure was
|
|
very simple and becoming- a silken cap, Tyrian-dyed; and over that a
|
|
striped scarf of the same material, beautifully embroidered, and wound
|
|
about in thin folds so as to show the shape of the head without
|
|
enlarging it; the whole finished by a tassel dropping from the crown
|
|
point of the cap. She had rings, ear and finger; anklets and
|
|
bracelets, all of gold; and around her neck there was a collar of
|
|
gold, curiously garnished with a network of delicate chains, to
|
|
which were pendants of pearl. The edges of her eyelids were painted,
|
|
and the tips of her fingers stained. Her hair fell in two long
|
|
plaits down her back. A curled lock rested upon each cheek in front of
|
|
the ear. Altogether it would have been impossible to deny her grace,
|
|
refinement, and beauty.
|
|
|
|
"Very pretty, my Tirzah, very pretty!" he said with animation.
|
|
|
|
"The song?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes- and the singer, too. It has the conceit of a Greek. Where
|
|
did you get it?"
|
|
|
|
"You remember the Greek who sang in the theatre last month? They
|
|
said he used to be a singer at the court for Herod and his sister
|
|
Salome. He came out just after an exhibition of wrestlers, when the
|
|
house was full of noise. At his first note everything became so
|
|
quiet that I heard every word. I got the song from him."
|
|
|
|
"But he sang in Greek."
|
|
|
|
"And I in Hebrew."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes. I am proud of my little sister. Have you another as good?"
|
|
|
|
"Very many. But let them go now. Amrah sent me to tell you she
|
|
will bring you your breakfast, and that you need not come down. She
|
|
should be here by this time. She thinks you sick- that a dreadful
|
|
accident happened you yesterday. What was it? Tell me, and I will help
|
|
Amrah doctor you. She knows the cures of the Egyptians, who were
|
|
always a stupid set; but I have a great many recipes of the Arabs who-
|
|
"
|
|
|
|
"Are even more stupid than the Egyptians," he said, shaking his
|
|
head.
|
|
|
|
"Do you think so? Very well, then," she replied, almost without
|
|
pause, and putting her hands to her left ear. "We will have nothing to
|
|
do with any of them. I have here what is much surer and better- the
|
|
amulet which was given to some of our people- I cannot tell when, it
|
|
was so far back- by a Persian magician. See, the inscription is almost
|
|
worn out."
|
|
|
|
She offered him the ear-ring, which he took, looked at, and handed
|
|
back, laughing.
|
|
|
|
"If I were dying, Tirzah, I could not use the charm. It is a relic
|
|
of idolatry, forbidden every believing son and daughter of Abraham.
|
|
Take it, but do not wear it any more."
|
|
|
|
"Forbidden! Not so," she said. "Our father's mother wore it I do not
|
|
know how many Sabbaths in her life. It has cured I do not know how
|
|
many people- more than three anyhow. It is, approved- look, here is
|
|
the mark of the rabbis."
|
|
|
|
"I have no faith in amulets."
|
|
|
|
She raised her eyes to his in astonishment.
|
|
|
|
"What would Amrah say?"
|
|
|
|
"Amrah's father and mother tended sakiyeh for a garden on the Nile."
|
|
|
|
"But Gamaliel!"
|
|
|
|
"He says they are godless inventions of unbelievers and
|
|
Shechemites."
|
|
|
|
Tirzah looked at the ring doubtfully.
|
|
|
|
"What shall I do with it?"
|
|
|
|
"Wear it, my little sister. It becomes you- it helps make you
|
|
beautiful, though I think you that without help."
|
|
|
|
Satisfied, she returned the amulet to her ear just as Amrah
|
|
entered the summer chamber, bearing a platter, with wash-bowl,
|
|
water, and napkins.
|
|
|
|
Not being a Pharisee, the ablution was short and simple with
|
|
Judah. The servant then went out, leaving Tirzah to dress his hair.
|
|
When a lock was disposed to her satisfaction, she would unloose the
|
|
small metallic mirror which, as was the fashion among her fair
|
|
country-women, she wore at her girdle, and gave it to him, that he
|
|
might see the triumph, and how handsome it made him. Meanwhile they
|
|
kept up their conversation.
|
|
|
|
"What do you think, Tirzah?- I am going away."
|
|
|
|
She dropped her hands with amazement.
|
|
|
|
"Going away! When? Where? For what?"
|
|
|
|
He laughed.
|
|
|
|
"Three questions, all in a breath! What a body you are!" Next
|
|
instant he became serious. "You know the law requires me to follow
|
|
some occupation. Our good father set me an example. Even you would
|
|
despise me if I spent in idleness the results of his industry and
|
|
knowledge. I am going to Rome."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I will go with you."
|
|
|
|
"You must stay with mother. If both of us leave her, she will die."
|
|
|
|
The brightness faded from her face.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes, yes! But- must you go? Here in Jerusalem you can learn all
|
|
that is needed to be a merchant- if that is what you are thinking of."
|
|
|
|
"But that is not what I am thinking of. The law does not require the
|
|
son to be what the father was."
|
|
|
|
"What else can you be?"
|
|
|
|
"A soldier," he replied, with a certain pride of voice.
|
|
|
|
Tears came into her eyes.
|
|
|
|
"You will be killed."
|
|
|
|
"If God's will, be it so. But, Tirzah, the soldiers are not all
|
|
killed."
|
|
|
|
She threw her arms around his neck as if to hold him back.
|
|
|
|
"We are so happy! Stay at home, my brother."
|
|
|
|
"Home cannot always be what it is. You yourself will be going away
|
|
before long."
|
|
|
|
"Never!"
|
|
|
|
He smiled at her earnestness.
|
|
|
|
"A prince of Judah, or some other one of the tribes, will come
|
|
soon and claim my Tirzah, and ride away with her, to be the light of
|
|
another house. What will then become of me?"
|
|
|
|
She answered with sobs.
|
|
|
|
"War is a trade," he continued, more soberly. "To learn it
|
|
thoroughly, one must go to school, and there is no school like a Roman
|
|
camp."
|
|
|
|
"You would not fight for Rome?" she asked, holding her breath.
|
|
|
|
"And you- even you hate her. The whole world hates her. In that, O
|
|
Tirzah, find the reason of the answer I give you- Yes, I will fight
|
|
for her, if, in return, she will teach me how one day to fight against
|
|
her."
|
|
|
|
"When will you go?"
|
|
|
|
Amrah's steps were then heard returning.
|
|
|
|
"Hist!" he said. "Do not let her know of what I am thinking."
|
|
|
|
The faithful slave came in with breakfast, and placed the waiter,
|
|
holding it upon a stool before them; then, with white napkins upon her
|
|
arm, she remained to serve them. They dipped their fingers in a bowl
|
|
of water, and were rinsing them, when a noise arrested their
|
|
attention. They listened, and distinguished martial music in the
|
|
street on the north side of the house.
|
|
|
|
"Soldiers from the Praetorium! I must see them," he cried, springing
|
|
from the divan, and running out.
|
|
|
|
In a moment more he was leaning over the parapet of tiles which
|
|
guarded the roof at the extreme north-east corner, so absorbed that he
|
|
did not notice Tirzah by his side, resting one hand upon his shoulder.
|
|
|
|
Their position- the roof being the highest one in the locality-
|
|
commanded the house-tops eastward as far as the huge irregular Tower
|
|
of Antonia, which has been already mentioned as a citadel for the
|
|
garrison and military head-quarters for the governor. The street,
|
|
not more than ten feet wide, was spanned here and there by bridges,
|
|
open and covered, which, like the roofs along the way, were
|
|
beginning to be occupied by men, women, and children, called out by
|
|
the music. The word is used, though it is hardly fitting; what the
|
|
people heard when they came forth was rather an uproar of trumpets and
|
|
the shriller litui so delightful to the soldiers.
|
|
|
|
The array after a while came into view of the two upon the house
|
|
of the Hurs. First, a vanguard of the light-armed- mostly slingers and
|
|
bowmen- marching with wide intervals between their ranks and files;
|
|
next a body of heavy-armed infantry, bearing large shields, and hastae
|
|
longae, or spears identical with those used in the duels between
|
|
Ilium; then the musicians; and then an officer riding alone, but
|
|
followed closely by a guard of cavalry; after them again, a column
|
|
of infantry also heavy-armed, which, moving in close order, crowded
|
|
the street from wall to wall, and appeared to be without end.
|
|
|
|
The brawny limbs of the men; the cadenced motion from right to
|
|
left of the shields; the sparkle of scales, buckles, and breast-plates
|
|
and helms, all perfectly burnished; the plumes nodding above the
|
|
tall crests; the sway of ensigns and iron-shod spears; the bold,
|
|
confident step, exactly timed and measured; the demeanour, so grave,
|
|
yet so watchful; the machine-like unity of the whole moving mass- made
|
|
an impression upon Judah, but as something felt rather than seen.
|
|
Two objects fixed his attention- the eagle of the legion first- a
|
|
gilded effigy perched on a tall shaft, with wings outspread until they
|
|
met above its head. He knew that, when brought from its chamber in the
|
|
Tower, it had been received with divine honours.
|
|
|
|
The officer riding alone in the midst of the column was the other
|
|
attraction. His head was bare; otherwise he was in full armour. At his
|
|
left hip he wore a short sword; in his hand, however, he carried a
|
|
truncheon, which looked like a roll of white paper. He sat upon a
|
|
purple cloth instead of a saddle, and that, and a bridle with a
|
|
forestall of gold and reins of yellow silk broadly fringed at the
|
|
lower edge, completed the housings of the horse.
|
|
|
|
While the man was yet in the distance, Judah observed that his
|
|
presence was sufficient to throw the people looking at him into
|
|
angry excitement. They would lean over the parapets or stand boldly
|
|
out, and shake their fists at him; they followed him with loud
|
|
cries, and spit at him as he passed under the bridges; the women
|
|
even flung their sandals, sometimes with such good effect as to hit
|
|
him. When he was nearer, the yells became distinguishable- "Robber,
|
|
tyrant, dog of a Roman! Away with Ishmael! Give us back our Hannas!"
|
|
|
|
When quite near, Judah could see that, as was but natural, the man
|
|
did not share the indifference so superbly shown by the soldiers;
|
|
his face was dark and sullen, and the glances he occasionally cast
|
|
at his persecutors were full of menace; the very timid shrank from
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
Now the lad had heard of the custom, borrowed from a habit of the
|
|
first Caesar, by which chief commanders, to indicate their rank,
|
|
appeared in public with only a laurel vine upon their heads. By that
|
|
sign he knew this officer- VALERIUS GRATUS, THE NEW PROCURATOR OF
|
|
JUDEA!
|
|
|
|
To say truth now, the Roman under the unprovoked storm had the young
|
|
Jew's sympathy; so that when he reached the corner of the house, the
|
|
latter leaned yet farther over the parapet to see him go by, and in
|
|
the act rested a hand upon a tile which had been a long time cracked
|
|
and allowed to go unnoticed. The pressure was strong enough to
|
|
displace the outer piece, which started to fall. A thrill of horror
|
|
shot through the youth. He reached out to catch the missile. In
|
|
appearance the motion was exactly that of one pitching something
|
|
from him. The effort failed- nay, it served to push the descending
|
|
fragment farther out over the wall. He shouted with all his might. The
|
|
soldiers of the guard looked up; so did the great man, and that moment
|
|
the missile struck him, and he fell from his seat as dead.
|
|
|
|
The cohort halted; the guards leaped from their horses, and hastened
|
|
to cover the chief with their shields. On the other hand, the people
|
|
who witnessed the affair, never doubting that the blow had been
|
|
purposely dealt, cheered the lad as he yet stooped in full view over
|
|
the parapet, transfixed by what he beheld, and by anticipation of
|
|
the consequences flashed all too plainly upon him.
|
|
|
|
A mischievous spirit flew with incredible speed from roof to roof
|
|
along the line of march, seizing the people, and urging them all
|
|
alike. They laid hands upon the parapets and tore up the tiling and
|
|
the sunburnt mud of which the house-tops were for the most part
|
|
made, and with blind fury began to fling them upon the legionaries
|
|
halted below. A battle then ensued. Discipline, of course,
|
|
prevailed. The struggle, the slaughter, the skill of one side, the
|
|
desperation of the other, are alike unnecessary to our story. Let us
|
|
look rather to the wretched author of it all.
|
|
|
|
He arose from the parapet, his face very pale.
|
|
|
|
"O Tirzah, Tirzah! What will become of us?"
|
|
|
|
She had not seen the occurrence below, but was listening to the
|
|
shouting and watching the mad activity of the people in view on the
|
|
houses. Something terrible was going on, she knew; but what it was, or
|
|
the cause, or that she or any of those dear to her were in danger, she
|
|
did not know.
|
|
|
|
"What has happened? What does it all mean?" she asked, in sudden
|
|
alarm.
|
|
|
|
"I have killed the Roman governor. The tile fell upon him."
|
|
|
|
An unseen hand appeared to sprinkle her face with the dust of ashes-
|
|
it grew white so instantly. She put her arm around him, and looked
|
|
wistfully, but without a word, into his eyes. His fears had passed
|
|
to her, and the sight of them gave him strength.
|
|
|
|
"I did not do it purposely, Tirzah- it was an accident," he said,
|
|
more calmly.
|
|
|
|
"What will they do?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
He looked off over the tumult momentarily deepening in the street
|
|
and on the roofs, and thought of the sullen countenance of Gratus.
|
|
If he were not dead, where would his vengeance stop? And if he were
|
|
dead, to what height of fury would not the violence of the people lash
|
|
the legionaries? To evade an answer, he peered over the parapet again,
|
|
just as the guard were assisting the Roman to remount his horse.
|
|
|
|
"He lives, he lives, Tirzah! Blessed be the Lord God of our
|
|
fathers!"
|
|
|
|
With that outcry, and a brightened countenance, he drew back and
|
|
replied to her question.
|
|
|
|
"Be not afraid, Tirzah. I will explain how it happened, and they
|
|
will remember our father and his services, and not hurt us."
|
|
|
|
He was leading her to the summer-house, when the roof jarred under
|
|
their feet, and a crash of strong timbers being burst away, followed
|
|
by a cry of surprise and agony, arose apparently from the court-yard
|
|
below. He stopped and listened. The cry was repeated; then came a rush
|
|
of many feet, and voices lifted in rage blent with voices in prayer;
|
|
and then the screams of women in mortal terror. The soldiers had
|
|
beaten in the north gate, and were in possession of the house. The
|
|
terrible sense of being hunted smote him. His first impulse was to
|
|
fly; but where? Nothing but wings would serve him. Tirzah, her eyes
|
|
wild with fear, caught his arm.
|
|
|
|
"O Judah, what does it mean?"
|
|
|
|
The servants were being butchered- and his mother! Was not one of
|
|
the voices he heard hers? With all the will left him, he said, "Stay
|
|
here, and wait for me, Tirzah. I will go down and see what is the
|
|
matter, and come back to you."
|
|
|
|
His voice was not steady as he wished. She clung closer to him.
|
|
|
|
Clearer, shriller, no longer a fancy, his mother's cry arose. He
|
|
hesitated no longer.
|
|
|
|
"Come, then, let us go."
|
|
|
|
The terrace or gallery at the foot of the steps was crowded with
|
|
soldiers. Other soldiers, with drawn swords, ran in and out of the
|
|
chambers. At one place a number of women on their knees clung to
|
|
each other or prayed for mercy. Apart from them, one with torn
|
|
garments, and long hair streaming over her face, struggled to tear
|
|
lose from a man all whose strength was tasked to keep his hold. Her
|
|
cries were shrillest of all; cutting through the clamour, they had
|
|
risen distinguishably to the roof. To her Judah sprang- his steps were
|
|
long and swift, almost a winged flight- "Mother, mother!" he
|
|
shouted. She stretched her hands towards him; but when almost touching
|
|
them he was seized and forced aside. Then he heard someone say,
|
|
speaking loudly,
|
|
|
|
"That is he!"
|
|
|
|
Judah looked, and saw- Messala.
|
|
|
|
"What, the assassin- that?" said a tall man, in legionary armour
|
|
of beautiful finish. "Why, he is but a boy."
|
|
|
|
"Gods!" replied Messala, not forgetting his drawl. "A new
|
|
philosophy! What would Seneca say to the proposition that a man must
|
|
be old before he can hate enough to kill? You have him; and that is
|
|
his mother; yonder his sister. You have the whole family."
|
|
|
|
For love of them, Judah forgot his quarrel.
|
|
|
|
"Help them, O my Messala! Remember our childhood, and help them.
|
|
I- Judah- pray you."
|
|
|
|
Messala affected not to hear.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot be of further use to you," he said to the officer.
|
|
"There is richer entertainment in the street. Down Eros, up Mars!"
|
|
|
|
With the last words he disappeared. Judah understood him, and, in
|
|
the bitterness of his soul, prayed to Heaven.
|
|
|
|
"In the hour of thy vengeance, O Lord," he said, "be mine the hand
|
|
to put it upon him!"
|
|
|
|
By great exertion he drew nearer the officer.
|
|
|
|
"O sir, the woman you hear is my mother. Spare her, spare my
|
|
sister yonder. God is just, he will give you mercy for mercy."
|
|
|
|
The man appeared to be moved.
|
|
|
|
"To the tower with the women!" he shouted, "but do them no harm. I
|
|
will demand them of you." Then to those holding Judah, he said, "Get
|
|
cords, and bind his hands, and take him to the street. His
|
|
punishment is reserved."
|
|
|
|
The mother was carried away. The little Tirzah, in her home
|
|
attire, stupefied with fear, went passively with her keepers. Judah
|
|
gave each of them a last look, and covered his face with his hands, as
|
|
if to possess himself of the scene fadelessly. He may have shed tears,
|
|
though no one saw them.
|
|
|
|
There took place in him then what may be justly called the wonder of
|
|
life. The thoughtful reader of these pages has ere this discerned
|
|
enough to know that the young Jew in disposition was gentle even to
|
|
womanliness- a result that seldom fails the habit of loving and
|
|
being loved. The circumstances through which he had come had made no
|
|
call upon the harsher elements of his nature, if such he had. At times
|
|
he had felt the stir and impulses of ambition, but they had been
|
|
like the formless dreams of a child walking by the sea and gazing at
|
|
the coming and going of stately ships. But now, if we can imagine an
|
|
idol, sensible of the worship it was accustomed to, dashed suddenly
|
|
from its altar, and lying amidst the wreck of its little world of
|
|
love, an idea may be had of what had befallen the young Ben-Hur, and
|
|
of its effect upon his being. Yet there was no sign, nothing to
|
|
indicate that he had undergone a change, except that when he raised
|
|
his head, and held his arms out to be bound, the bend of the
|
|
Cupid's, bow had vanished from his lips. In that instant he had put
|
|
off childhood and become a man.
|
|
|
|
A trumpet sounded in the court-yard. With the cessation of the call,
|
|
the gallery was cleared of the soldiery; many of whom, as they dared
|
|
not appear in the ranks with visible plunder in their hands, flung
|
|
what they had upon the floor, until it was strewn with articles of
|
|
richest virtu. When Judah descended, the formation was complete, and
|
|
the officer waiting to see his last order executed.
|
|
|
|
The mother, daughter, and entire household were led out of the north
|
|
gate, the ruins of which choked the passage-way. The cries of the
|
|
domestics, some of whom had been born in the house, were most
|
|
pitiable. When, finally, the horses, and all the dumb tenantry of
|
|
the place, were driven past him, Judah began to comprehend. the
|
|
scope of the procurator's vengeance. The very structure was devoted.
|
|
Far as the order was possible of execution, nothing living was to be
|
|
left within its walls. If in Judea there were others desperate
|
|
enough to think of assassinating a Roman governor, the story of what
|
|
befell the princely family of Hur would be a warning to them, while
|
|
the ruin of the habitation would keep the story alive.
|
|
|
|
The officer waited outside while a detail of men temporarily
|
|
restored the gate.
|
|
|
|
In the street the fighting had almost ceased. Upon the houses here
|
|
and there clouds of dust told where the struggle was yet prolonged.
|
|
The cohort was, for the most part, standing at rest, its splendour,
|
|
like its ranks, in nowise diminished. Borne past the point of care for
|
|
himself, Judah had heart for nothing in view but the prisoners,
|
|
among whom he looked in vain for his mother and Tirzah.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly, from the earth where she had been lying, a woman arose and
|
|
started swiftly back to the gate. Some of the guards reached out to
|
|
seize her, and a great shout followed their failure. She ran to Judah,
|
|
and, dropping down, clasped his knees, the coarse black hair
|
|
powdered with dust veiling her eyes.
|
|
|
|
"O Amrah, good Amrah," he said to her, "God help you; I cannot."
|
|
|
|
She could not speak.
|
|
|
|
He bent down, and whispered, "Live, Amrah, for Tirzah and my mother.
|
|
They will come back, and- "
|
|
|
|
A soldier drew her away; whereupon she sprang up and rushed
|
|
through the gateway and passage into the vacant court-yard.
|
|
|
|
"Let her go," the officer shouted. "We will seal the house, and
|
|
she will starve."
|
|
|
|
The men resumed their work, and when it was finished there, passed
|
|
round to the west side. That gate was also secured, after which the
|
|
palace of the Hurs was lost to use.
|
|
|
|
The cohort at length marched back to the Tower, where the procurator
|
|
stayed to recover from his hurts and dispose of his prisoners. On
|
|
the tenth day following he visited the Market-place.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
A GALLEY SLAVE.
|
|
|
|
NEXT day a detachment of legionaries went to the desolated palace,
|
|
and, closing the gates permanently, plastered the corners with wax,
|
|
and at the sides nailed a notice in Latin:
|
|
|
|
"THIS IS THE PROPERTY OF.
|
|
|
|
THE EMPEROR."
|
|
|
|
In the haughty Roman idea, the sententious announcement was
|
|
thought sufficient for the purpose- and it was.
|
|
|
|
The day after that again, about noon, a decurion with his command of
|
|
ten horsemen approached Nazareth from the south- that is, from the
|
|
direction of Jerusalem. The place was then a straggling village
|
|
perched on a hill-side, and so insignificant that its one street was
|
|
little more than a path well beaten by the coming and going of
|
|
flocks and herds. The great plain of Esdraelon crept close to it on
|
|
the south, and from the height on the west a view could be had of
|
|
the chores of the Mediterranean, the region beyond the Jordan, and
|
|
Hermon. The valley below, and the country on every side, were given to
|
|
gardens, vineyards, orchards, and pasturage. Groves of palm-trees
|
|
Orientalized the landscape. The houses, in irregular assemblage,
|
|
were of the humbler class- square, one-storey, flat-roofed, and
|
|
covered with bright-green vines. The drought that had burned the hills
|
|
of Judea to a crisp, brown and lifeless, stopped at the boundary
|
|
line of Galilee.
|
|
|
|
A trumpet, sounded when the cavalcade drew near the village, had a
|
|
magical effect upon the inhabitants. The gates and front doors cast
|
|
forth groups eager to be the first to catch the meaning of a
|
|
visitation so unusual.
|
|
|
|
Nazareth, it must be remembered, was not only aside from any great
|
|
highway, but within the sway of Judas of Gamala; wherefore it should
|
|
not be hard to imagine the feelings with which the legionaries were
|
|
received. But when they were up and traversing the street, the duty
|
|
that occupied them became apparent, and then fear and hatred were lost
|
|
in curiosity, under the impulse of which the people, knowing there
|
|
must be a halt at the well in the north-eastern part of the town, quit
|
|
their gates and doors, and closed in after the procession.
|
|
|
|
A prisoner whom the horsemen were guarding was the object of
|
|
curiosity. He was afoot, bareheaded, half-naked, his hands bound
|
|
behind him. A thong fixed to his wrists was looped over the neck of
|
|
a horse. The dust went with the party when in movement, wrapping him
|
|
in yellow fog, sometimes in a dense cloud. He drooped forward,
|
|
footsore and faint. The villagers could see he was young.
|
|
|
|
At the well the decurion halted, and, with most of the men,
|
|
dismounted. The prisoner sank down in the dust of the road, stupefied,
|
|
and asking nothing: apparently he was in the last stage of exhaustion.
|
|
Seeing, when they came near, that he was but a boy, the villagers
|
|
would have helped him had they dared.
|
|
|
|
In the midst of their perplexity, and while the pitchers were
|
|
passing among the soldiers, a man was descried coming down the road
|
|
from Sepphoris. At sight of him a woman cried out, "Look! Yonder comes
|
|
the carpenter. Now we will hear something."
|
|
|
|
The person spoken of was quite venerable in appearance. Thin white
|
|
locks fell below the edge of his full turban, and a mass of still
|
|
whiter beard flowed down the front of his coarse grey gown. He came
|
|
slowly, for, in addition to his age, he carried some tools- an axe,
|
|
a saw, and a drawing-knife, all very rude and heavy- and had evidently
|
|
travelled some distance without rest.
|
|
|
|
He stopped close by to survey the assemblage.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Rabbi, good Rabbi Joseph!" cried a woman, running to him. "Here
|
|
is a prisoner; come, ask the soldiers about him, that we may know
|
|
who he is, and what he has done, and what they are going to do with
|
|
him."
|
|
|
|
The rabbi's face remained stolid; he glanced at the prisoner,
|
|
however, and presently went to the officer.
|
|
|
|
"The peace of the Lord be with you!" he said, with unbending
|
|
gravity.
|
|
|
|
"And that of the gods with you," the decurion replied.
|
|
|
|
"Are you from Jerusalem?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Your prisoner is young."
|
|
|
|
"In years, yes."
|
|
|
|
"May I ask what he has done?"
|
|
|
|
"He is an assassin."
|
|
|
|
The people repeated the word in astonishment, but Rabbi Joseph
|
|
pursued his inquest.
|
|
|
|
"Is he a son of Israel?"
|
|
|
|
"He is a Jew," said the Roman, dryly.
|
|
|
|
The wavering pity of the bystanders came back.
|
|
|
|
"I know nothing of your tribes, but can speak of his family," the
|
|
speaker continued. "You may have heard of a prince of Jerusalem
|
|
named Hur- Ben-Hur, they call him. He lived in Herod's day."
|
|
|
|
"I have seen him," Joseph said.
|
|
|
|
"Well, this is his son."
|
|
|
|
Exclamations became general, and the decurion hastened to stop them.
|
|
|
|
"In the streets of Jerusalem, day before yesterday, he nearly killed
|
|
the noble Gratus by flinging a tile upon his head from the roof of a
|
|
palace- his father's, I believe."
|
|
|
|
There was a pause in the conversation, during which the Nazarenes
|
|
gazed at the young Ben-Hur as at a wild beast.
|
|
|
|
"Did he kill him?" asked the rabbi.
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"He is under sentence."
|
|
|
|
"Yes- the galleys for life."
|
|
|
|
"The Lord help him!" said Joseph, for once moved out of his
|
|
stolidity.
|
|
|
|
Thereupon a youth who came up with Joseph, but had stood behind
|
|
him unobserved, laid down an axe he had been carrying, and, going to
|
|
the great stone standing by the well, took from it a pitcher of water.
|
|
The action was so quiet that before the guard could interfere, had
|
|
they been disposed to do so, he was stooping over the prisoner and
|
|
offering him a drink.
|
|
|
|
The hand laid kindly upon his shoulder awoke the unfortunate
|
|
Judah, and, looking up, he saw a face he never forgot- the face of a
|
|
boy about his own age, shaded by locks of yellowish bright chestnut
|
|
hair; a face lighted by dark-blue eyes, at the time so soft, so
|
|
appealing, so full of love and holy purpose, that they had all the
|
|
power of command and will. The spirit of the Jew, hardened though it
|
|
was by days and nights of suffering, and so imbittered by wrong that
|
|
its dreams of revenge took in all the world, melted under the
|
|
stranger's look, and became as a child's. He put his lips to the
|
|
pitcher, and drank long and deep. Not a word was said to him, nor
|
|
did he say a word.
|
|
|
|
When the draught was finished, the hand that had been resting upon
|
|
the sufferer's shoulder was placed upon his head, and stayed there
|
|
in the dusty locks time enough to say a blessing; the stranger then
|
|
returned the pitcher to its place on the stone, and, taking his axe
|
|
again, went back to Rabbi Joseph. All eyes went with him, the
|
|
decurion's as well as those of the villagers.
|
|
|
|
This was the end of the scene at the well. When the men had drunk,
|
|
and the horses, the march was resumed. But the temper of the
|
|
decurion was not as it had been; he himself raised the prisoner from
|
|
the dust, and helped him on a horse behind a soldier. The Nazarenes
|
|
went to their houses- among them Rabbi Joseph and his apprentice.
|
|
|
|
And so, for the first time, Judah and the son of Mary met and
|
|
parted.
|
|
|
|
BOOK THIRD.
|
|
|
|
"Cleopatra.... Our size of sorrow,
|
|
|
|
Proportion'd to our cause, must be as great
|
|
|
|
As that which makes it.-
|
|
|
|
Enter, below, DIOMEDES.
|
|
|
|
How now? is he dead?
|
|
|
|
Diomedes. His death's upon him, but not dead."
|
|
|
|
Antony and Cleopatra (act iv. sc. xiii.).
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
QUINTIS ARRIUS GOES TO SEA.
|
|
|
|
THE city of Misenum gave name to the promontory which it crowned,
|
|
a few miles south-west of Naples. An account of ruins is all that
|
|
remains of it now; yet in the year of our Lord 24- to which it is
|
|
desirable to advance the reader- the place was one of the most
|
|
important on the western coast of Italy.*
|
|
|
|
* The Roman government, it will be remembered, had two harbours in
|
|
which great fleets were constantly kept- Ravenna and Misenum.
|
|
|
|
In the year mentioned, a traveller coming to the promontory to
|
|
regale himself with the view there offered, would have mounted a wall,
|
|
and, with the city at his back, looked over the bay of Neapolis, as
|
|
charming then as now; and then, as now, he would have seen the
|
|
matchless shore, the smoking cone, the sky and waves so softly, deeply
|
|
blue, Ischia here and Capri yonder; from one to the other and back
|
|
again, through the purpled air, his gaze would have sported; at
|
|
last- for the eyes do weary of the beautiful as the palate with
|
|
sweets- at last it would have dropped upon a spectacle which the
|
|
modern tourist cannot see- half the reserve navy of Rome astir or at
|
|
anchor below him. Thus regarded, Misenum was a very proper place for
|
|
three masters to meet, and at leisure parcel the world among them.
|
|
|
|
In the old time, moreover, there was a gateway in the wall at a
|
|
certain point fronting the sea- an empty gateway forming the outlet of
|
|
a street which, after the exit, stretched itself, in the form of a
|
|
broad mole, out many stadia into the waves.
|
|
|
|
The watchman on the wall above the gateway was disturbed, one cool
|
|
September morning, by a party coming down the street in noisy
|
|
conversation. He gave one look, then settled into his drowse again.
|
|
|
|
There were twenty or thirty persons in the party, of whom the
|
|
greater number were slaves with torches which flamed little and smoked
|
|
much, leaving on the air the perfume of the Indian nard. The masters
|
|
walked in advance arm-in-arm. One of them, apparently fifty years old,
|
|
slightly bald, and wearing over his scant locks a crown of laurel,
|
|
seemed, from the attentions paid him, the central object of some
|
|
affectionate ceremony. They all sported ample togas of white wool
|
|
broadly bordered with purple. A glance had sufficed the watchman. He
|
|
knew, without question, they were of high rank, and escorting a friend
|
|
to ship after a night of festivity. Further explanation will be
|
|
found in the conversation they carried on.
|
|
|
|
"No, my Quintus," said one, speaking to him with the crown, "it is
|
|
ill of Fortune to take thee from us so soon. Only yesterday thou didst
|
|
return from the seas beyond the Pillars. Why, thou hast not even got
|
|
back thy land legs."
|
|
|
|
"By Castor! if a man may swear a woman's oath," said another,
|
|
somewhat worse of wine, "let us not lament. Our Quintus is but going
|
|
to find what he lost last night. Dice on a rolling ship is not dice on
|
|
shore- eh, Quintus?"
|
|
|
|
"Abuse not Fortune!" exclaimed a third. "She is not blind or fickle.
|
|
At Antium, where our Arrius questions her, she answers him with
|
|
nods, and at sea she abides with him, holding the rudder. She takes
|
|
him from us, but does not always give him back with a new victory?"
|
|
|
|
"The Greeks are taking him away," another broke in. "Let us abuse
|
|
them, not the gods. In learning to trade, they forgot how to fight."
|
|
|
|
With these words, the party passed the gateway, and came upon the
|
|
mole, with the bay before them beautiful in the morning light. To
|
|
the veteran sailor the plash of the waves was like a greeting. He drew
|
|
a long breath, as if the perfume of the water were sweeter than that
|
|
of the nard, and held his hand aloft.
|
|
|
|
"My gifts were at Praeneste, not Antium- and see! Wind from the
|
|
west. Thanks, O Fortune, my mother!" he said, earnestly.
|
|
|
|
The friends all repeated the exclamation, and the slaves waved their
|
|
torches.
|
|
|
|
"She comes- yonder!" he continued, pointing to a galley outside
|
|
the mole. "What need has a sailor for other mistress? Is your
|
|
Lucrece more grateful, my Caius?"
|
|
|
|
He gazed at the coming ship, and justified his pride. A white sail
|
|
was bent to the low mast, and the oars dipped, arose, poised a moment,
|
|
then dipped again, with wing-like action, and in perfect time.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, spare the gods," he said, soberly, his eyes fixed upon the
|
|
vessel. "They send us opportunities. Ours the fault if we fail. And as
|
|
for the Greeks, you forget, O my Lentulus, the pirates I am going to
|
|
punish are Greeks. One victory over them is of more account than a
|
|
hundred over the Africans."
|
|
|
|
"Then thy way is to the AEgean?"
|
|
|
|
The sailor's eyes were full of his ship.
|
|
|
|
"What grace, what freedom! A bird hath not less care for the
|
|
fretting of the waves. See!" he said, but almost immediately added,
|
|
"thy pardon, my Lentulus. I am going to the AEgean; and as my
|
|
departure is so near, I will tell the occasion- only keep it under the
|
|
rose. I would not that you abuse the duumvir when next you meet him.
|
|
He is my friend. The trade between Greece and Alexandria, as ye may
|
|
have heard, is hardly inferior to that between Alexandria and Rome.
|
|
The people in that part of the world forgot to celebrate the Cerealia,
|
|
and Triptolemus paid them with a harvest not worth the gathering. At
|
|
all events, the trade is so grown that it will not brook
|
|
interruption a day. Ye may also have heard of the Chersonesan pirates,
|
|
nested up in the Euxine; none bolder, by the Bacchae! Yesterday word
|
|
came to Rome that, with a fleet, they had rowed down the Bosphorus,
|
|
sunk the galleys of Byzantium and Chalcedon, swept the Propontis, and,
|
|
still unsated, burst through into the AEgean. The corn-merchants who
|
|
have ships in the East Mediterranean are frightened. They had audience
|
|
with the Emperor himself, and from Ravenna there go to-day a hundred
|
|
galleys, and from Misenum"- he paused as if to pique the curiosity
|
|
of his friends, and ended with an emphatic- "one."
|
|
|
|
"Happy Quintus! We congratulate thee!"
|
|
|
|
"The preferment forerunneth promotion. We salute thee duumvir;
|
|
nothing less."
|
|
|
|
"Quintus Arrius, the duumvir, hath a better sound than Quintus
|
|
Arrius, the tribune."
|
|
|
|
In such manner they showered him with congratulations.
|
|
|
|
"I am glad with the rest," said the bibulous friend, "very glad; but
|
|
I must be practical, O my duumvir; and not until I know if promotion
|
|
will help thee to knowledge of the tesserae will I have an opinion
|
|
as to whether the gods mean thee ill or good in this- this business."
|
|
|
|
"Thanks, many thanks!" Arrius replied, speaking to them
|
|
collectively. "Had ye but lanterns, I would say ye were augurs.
|
|
Perpol! I will go further, and show what master diviners ye are!
|
|
See- and read."
|
|
|
|
From the folds of his toga he drew a roll of paper, and passed it to
|
|
them, saying, "Received while at table last night from- Sejanus."
|
|
|
|
The name was already a great one in the Roman world; great, and
|
|
not so infamous as it afterwards became.
|
|
|
|
"Sejanus!" they exclaimed, with one voice, closing in to read what
|
|
the minister had written.
|
|
|
|
"Sejanus to C. Caecilius Rufus, Duumvir.
|
|
|
|
"Rome, XIX. Kal. Sept.
|
|
|
|
"Caesar hath good report of Quintus Arrius, the tribune. In
|
|
particular he hath heard of his valour, manifested in the western
|
|
seas; insomuch that it is his will that the said Quintus be
|
|
transferred instantly to the East.
|
|
|
|
"It is our Caesar's will, further, that you cause a hundred
|
|
triremes, of the first class, and full appointment, to be despatched
|
|
without delay against the pirates who appeared in the AEgean, and that
|
|
Quintus be sent to command the fleet so despatched.
|
|
|
|
"Details are thine, my Caecilius.
|
|
|
|
"The necessity is urgent, as thou wilt be advised by the reports
|
|
enclosed for thy perusal and the information of the said Quintus.
|
|
|
|
"SEJANUS."
|
|
|
|
Arrius gave little heed to the reading. As the ship drew more
|
|
plainly out of the perspective, she became more and more an attraction
|
|
to him. The look with which he watched her was that of an
|
|
enthusiast. At length he tossed the loosened folds of his toga in
|
|
the air; in reply to the signal, over the aplustre, or fan-like
|
|
fixture at the stern of the vessel, a scarlet flag was displayed;
|
|
while several sailors appeared upon the bulwarks, and swung themselves
|
|
hand over hand up the ropes to the antenna, or yard, and furled the
|
|
sail. The bow was put round, and the time of the oars increased one
|
|
half; so that at racing speed she bore down directly towards him and
|
|
his friends. He observed the maneuvering with a perceptible
|
|
brightening of the eyes. Her instant answer to the rudder, and the
|
|
steadiness with which she kept her course, were especially
|
|
noticeable as virtues to be relied upon in action.
|
|
|
|
"By the Nymphae!" said one of the friends, giving back the roll, "we
|
|
may not longer say our friend will be great; he is already great.
|
|
Our love will now have famous things to feed upon. What more hast thou
|
|
for us?"
|
|
|
|
"Nothing more," Arrius replied. "What ye have of the affair is by
|
|
this time old news in Rome, especially between the palace and the
|
|
Forum. The duumvir is discreet; what I am to do, where go to find my
|
|
fleet, he will tell on the ship, where a sealed package is waiting me.
|
|
If, however, ye have offerings for any of the altars to-day, pray
|
|
the gods for a friend plying oar and sail somewhere in the direction
|
|
of Sicily. But she is here, and will come to," he said, reverting to
|
|
the vessel. "I have interest in her masters; they will sail and
|
|
fight with me. It is not an easy thing to lay ship side on a shore
|
|
like this; so let us judge their training and skill."
|
|
|
|
"What, is she new to thee?"
|
|
|
|
"I never saw her before; and, as yet, I know not if she will bring
|
|
me one acquaintance."
|
|
|
|
"Is that well?"
|
|
|
|
"It matters but little. We of the sea come to know each other
|
|
quickly; our loves, like our hates, are born of sudden dangers."
|
|
|
|
The vessel was of the class called naves liburnicae- long, narrow,
|
|
low in the water, and modelled for speed and quick manoeuvre. The
|
|
bow was beautiful. A jet of water spun from its foot as she came on,
|
|
sprinkling all the prow, which rose in graceful curvature twice a
|
|
man's stature above the plane of the deck. Upon the bending of the
|
|
sides were figures of Triton blowing shells. Below the bow, fixed to
|
|
the keel, and projecting forward under the water-line was the rostrum,
|
|
or beak, a device of solid wood, reinforced and armed with iron, in
|
|
action used as a ram. A stout moulding extended from the bow the
|
|
full length of the ship's sides, defining the bulwarks, which were
|
|
tastefully crenelated; below the moulding, in three rows, each covered
|
|
with a cap or shield of bull-hide, were the holes in which the oars
|
|
were worked- sixty on the right, sixty on the left. In further
|
|
ornamentation, caducei leaned against the lofty prow. Two immense
|
|
ropes passing across the bow marked the number of anchors stowed on
|
|
the foredeck.
|
|
|
|
The simplicity of the upper works declared the oars the chief
|
|
dependence of the crew. A mast, set a little forward of midship, was
|
|
held by fore and back stays and shrouds fixed to rings on the inner
|
|
side of the bulwarks. The tackle was that required for the
|
|
management of one great square sail and the yard to which it was hung.
|
|
Above the bulwark the deck was visible.
|
|
|
|
Save the sailors who had reefed the sail, and yet lingered on the
|
|
yard, but one man was to be seen by the party on the mole, and he
|
|
stood by the prow helmeted and with a shield.
|
|
|
|
The hundred and twenty oaken blades, kept white and shining by
|
|
pumice and the constant wash of the waves, rose and fell as if
|
|
operated by the same hand, and drove the galley forward with a speed
|
|
rivalling that of a modern steamer.
|
|
|
|
So rapidly, and apparently so rashly, did she come that the landsmen
|
|
of the tribune's party were alarmed. Suddenly the man by the prow
|
|
raised his hand with a peculiar gesture; whereupon all the oars flew
|
|
up, poised a moment in air, then fell straight down. The water
|
|
boiled and bubbled about them; the galley shook in every timber, and
|
|
stopped as if scared. Another gesture of the hand, and again the
|
|
oars arose, feathered, and fell; but this time those on the right,
|
|
dropped towards the stern, pushed forward; while those on the left,
|
|
dropping towards the bow, pulled backward. Three times the oars thus
|
|
pushed and pulled against each other. Round to the right the ship
|
|
swung as upon a pivot; then, caught by the wind, she settled gently
|
|
broadside to the mole.
|
|
|
|
The movement brought the stern to view, with all its garniture-
|
|
Tritons like those at the bow; name in large raised letters; the
|
|
rudder at the side; the elevated platform upon which the helmsman sat,
|
|
a stately figure in full armour, his hand upon the rudder-rope; and
|
|
the aplustre, high, gilt, carved, and bent over the helmsman like a
|
|
great runcinate leaf.
|
|
|
|
In the midst of the rounding-to, a trumpet was blown brief and
|
|
shrill, and from the hatchways out poured the marines, all in superb
|
|
equipment, brazen helms, burnished shields, and javelins. While the
|
|
fighting-men thus went to quarters as for action, the sailors proper
|
|
climbed the shrouds and perched themselves along the yard. The
|
|
officers and musicians took their posts. There was no shouting or
|
|
needless noise. When the oars touched the mole, a bridge was sent
|
|
out from the helmsman's deck. Then the tribune turned to his party and
|
|
said, with a gravity he had not before shown:
|
|
|
|
"Duty now, O my friends."
|
|
|
|
He took the chaplet from his head and gave it to the dice-player.
|
|
|
|
"Take thou the myrtle, O favourite of the tesserae!" he said. "If
|
|
I return, I will seek my sesterce again; if I am not victor, I will
|
|
not return. Hang the crown in thy atrium."
|
|
|
|
To the company he opened his arms, and they came one by one and
|
|
received his parting embrace.
|
|
|
|
"The gods go with thee, O Quintus!" they said.
|
|
|
|
"Farewell," he replied.
|
|
|
|
To the slaves waving their torches he waved his hand; then he turned
|
|
to the waiting ship, beautiful with ordered ranks and crested helms,
|
|
and shields and javelins. As he stepped upon the bridge the trumpets
|
|
sounded, and over the aplustre rose the vexillum purpureum, or pennant
|
|
of a commander of a fleet.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
AT THE OAR.
|
|
|
|
THE tribune, standing upon the helmsman's deck with the order of the
|
|
duumvir open in his hand, spoke to the chief of the rowers.*
|
|
|
|
* Called hortator.
|
|
|
|
"What force hast thou?"
|
|
|
|
"Of oarsmen, two hundred and fifty-two; ten supernumeraries."
|
|
|
|
"Making reliefs of- "
|
|
|
|
"Eighty-four."
|
|
|
|
"And thy habit?"
|
|
|
|
"It has been to take off and put on every two hours."
|
|
|
|
The tribune mused a moment.
|
|
|
|
"The division is hard, and I will reform it, but not now. The oars
|
|
may not rest day or night."
|
|
|
|
Then to the sailing-master he said,
|
|
|
|
"The wind is fair. Let the sail help the oars."
|
|
|
|
When the two thus addressed were gone, he turned to the chief
|
|
pilot.*
|
|
|
|
* Called rector.
|
|
|
|
"What service hast thou had?"
|
|
|
|
"Two-and-thirty years."
|
|
|
|
"In what seas chiefly?"
|
|
|
|
"Between our Rome and the East."
|
|
|
|
"Thou art the man I would have chosen."
|
|
|
|
The tribune looked at his orders again.
|
|
|
|
"Past the Camponellan cape, the course will be to Messina. Beyond
|
|
that, follow the bend of the Calabrian shore till Melito is on thy
|
|
left, then- Knowest thou the stars that govern in the Ionian Sea?"
|
|
|
|
"I know them well."
|
|
|
|
"Then from Melito course eastward for Cythera. The gods willing, I
|
|
will not anchor until in the Bay of Antemona. The duty is urgent. I
|
|
rely upon thee."
|
|
|
|
A prudent man was Arrius- prudent, and of the class which, while
|
|
enriching the altars at Praeneste and Antium, was of opinion,
|
|
nevertheless, that the favour of the blind goddess depended more
|
|
upon the votary's care and judgment than upon his gifts and vows.
|
|
All night as master of the feast he had sat at table drinking and
|
|
playing; yet the odour of the sea returned him to the mood of the
|
|
sailor, and he would not rest until he knew his ship. Knowledge leaves
|
|
no room for chances. Having begun with the chief of the rowers, the
|
|
sailing-master, and the pilot, in company with the other officers- the
|
|
commander of the marines, the keeper of the stores, the master of
|
|
the machines, the overseer of the kitchen or fires- he passed
|
|
through the several quarters. Nothing escaped his inspection. When
|
|
he was through, of the community crowded within the narrow walls he
|
|
alone knew perfectly all there was of material preparation for the
|
|
voyage and its possible incidents; and, finding the preparation
|
|
complete, there was left him but one thing further- thorough knowledge
|
|
of the personnel of his command. As this was the most delicate and
|
|
difficult part of his task, requiring much time, he set about it his
|
|
own way.
|
|
|
|
At noon that day the galley was skimming the sea off Paestum. The
|
|
wind was yet from the west, filling the sail to the master's
|
|
content. The watches had been established. On the foredeck the altar
|
|
had been set and sprinkled with salt and barley, and before it the
|
|
tribune had offered solemn prayers to Jove and to Neptune and all
|
|
the Oceanidae, and, with vows, poured the wine and burned the incense.
|
|
And now, the better to study his men, he was seated in the great
|
|
cabin, a very martial figure.
|
|
|
|
The cabin, it should be stated, was the central compartment of the
|
|
galley, in extent quite sixty-five by thirty feet, and lighted by
|
|
three broad hatchways. A row of stanchions ran from end to end,
|
|
supporting the roof, and near the centre the mast was visible, all
|
|
bristling with axes and spears and javelins. To each hatchway there
|
|
were double stairs descending right and left, with a pivotal
|
|
arrangement at the top to allow the lower ends to be hitched to the
|
|
ceiling; and, as these were now raised, the compartment had the
|
|
appearance of a sky-lighted hall.
|
|
|
|
The reader will understand readily that this was the heart of the
|
|
ship, the home of all aboard- eating-room, sleeping-chamber, field
|
|
of exercise, lounging-place off duty- uses made possible by the laws
|
|
which reduced life there to minute details and a routine relentless as
|
|
death.
|
|
|
|
At the after-end of the cabin there was a platform, reached by
|
|
several steps. Upon it the chief of the rowers sat; in front of him
|
|
a sounding-table, upon which, with a gavel, he beat time for the
|
|
oarsmen; at his right a clepsydra, or water-clock, to measure the
|
|
reliefs and watches. Above him, on a higher platform, well guarded
|
|
by gilded railing, the tribune had his quarters, overlooking
|
|
everything, and furnished with a couch, a table, and a cathedra, or
|
|
chair, cushioned, and with arms and high back- articles which the
|
|
imperial dispensation permitted of the utmost elegance.
|
|
|
|
Thus at ease, lounging in the great chair, swaying with the motion
|
|
of the vessel, the military cloak half draping his tunic, sword in
|
|
belt, Arrius kept watchful eye over his command, and was as closely
|
|
watched by them. He saw critically everything in view, but dwelt
|
|
longest upon the rowers. The reader would doubtless have done the
|
|
same; only he would have looked with much sympathy, while, as is the
|
|
habit with masters, the tribune's mind ran forward of what he saw,
|
|
inquiring for results.
|
|
|
|
The spectacle was simple enough of itself. Along the sides of the
|
|
cabin, fixed to the ship's timbers, were what at first appeared to
|
|
be three rows of benches; a closer view, however, showed them a
|
|
succession of rising banks, in each of which the second bench was
|
|
behind and above the first one, and the third above and behind the
|
|
second. To accommodate the sixty rowers on a side, the space devoted
|
|
to them permitted nineteen banks separated by intervals of one yard,
|
|
with a twentieth bank divided so that what would have been its upper
|
|
seat or bench was directly above the lower seat of the first bank. The
|
|
arrangement gave each rower when at work ample room, if he timed his
|
|
movements with those of his associates, the principle being that of
|
|
soldiers marching with cadenced step in close order. The arrangement
|
|
also allowed a multiplication of banks, limited only by the length
|
|
of the galley.
|
|
|
|
As to the rowers, those upon the first and second benches sat, while
|
|
those upon the third, having longer oars to work, were suffered to
|
|
stand. The oars were loaded with lead in the handles, and near the
|
|
point of balance hung to pliable thongs, making possible the
|
|
delicate touch called feathering, but, at the same time, increasing
|
|
the need of skill, since an eccentric wave might at any moment catch a
|
|
heedless fellow and hurl him from his seat. Each oar-hole was a vent
|
|
through which the labourer opposite it had his plenty of sweet air.
|
|
Light streamed down upon him from the grating which formed the floor
|
|
of the passage between the deck and the bulwark over his head. In some
|
|
respects, therefore, the condition of the men might have been much
|
|
worse. Still, it must not be imagined that there was any
|
|
pleasantness in their lives. Communication between them was not
|
|
allowed. Day after day they filled their places without speech; in
|
|
hours of labour they could not see each other's faces; their short
|
|
respites were given to sleep and the snatching of food. They never
|
|
laughed; no one ever heard one of them sing. What is the use of
|
|
tongues when a sigh or a groan will tell all men feel while, perforce,
|
|
they think in silence? Existence with the poor wretches was like a
|
|
stream under ground sweeping slowly, laboriously on to its outlet,
|
|
wherever that might chance to be.
|
|
|
|
O Son of Mary! The sword has now a heart- and thine the glory! So
|
|
now; but, in the days of which we are writing, for captivity there was
|
|
drudgery on walls, and in the streets and mines, and the galleys
|
|
both of war and commerce were insatiable. When Druilius won the
|
|
first sea-fight for his country, Romans plied the oars, and the
|
|
glory was to the rower not less than the marine. These benches which
|
|
now we are trying to see as they were testified to the change come
|
|
with conquest, and illustrated both the policy and the prowess of
|
|
Rome. Nearly all the nations had sons there, mostly prisoners of
|
|
war, chosen for their brawn and endurance. In one place a Briton;
|
|
before him a Libyan; behind him a Crimean. Elsewhere a Scythian, a
|
|
Gaul, and a Thebasite. Roman convicts cast down to consort with
|
|
Goths and Longobardi, Jews, Ethiopians, and barbarians from the shores
|
|
of Maeotis. Here an Athenian, there a red-haired savage from Hibernia,
|
|
yonder blue-eyed giants of the Cimbri.
|
|
|
|
In the labour of the rowers there was not enough art to give
|
|
occupation to their minds, rude and simple as they were. The reach
|
|
forward, the pull, the feathering, the blade, the dip, were all
|
|
there was of it; motions most perfect when most automatic. Even the
|
|
care forced upon them by the sea outside grew in time to be a thing
|
|
instinctive rather than of thought. So, as the result of long service,
|
|
the poor wretches became imbruted- patient, spiritless, obedient-
|
|
creatures of vast muscle and exhausted intellects, who lived upon
|
|
recollections generally few but dear, and at last lowered into the
|
|
semi-conscious alchemic state wherein misery turns to habit, and the
|
|
soul takes on incredible endurance.
|
|
|
|
From right to left, hour after hour, the tribune, swaying in his
|
|
easy-chair, turned with thought of everything rather than the
|
|
wretchedness of the slaves upon the benches. Their motions, precise,
|
|
and exactly the same on both sides of the vessel, after a while became
|
|
monotonous; and then he amused himself singling out individuals.
|
|
With his stylus he made note of objections, thinking, if all went
|
|
well, he would find among the pirates of whom he was in search
|
|
better men for the places.
|
|
|
|
There was no need of keeping the proper names of the slaves
|
|
brought to the galleys as to their graves; so, for convenience, they
|
|
were usually identified by the numerals painted upon the benches to
|
|
which they were assigned. As the sharp eyes of the great man moved
|
|
from seat to seat on either hand, they came at last to number sixty,
|
|
which, as has been said, belonged properly to the last bank on the
|
|
left-hand side, but, wanting room aft, had been fixed above the
|
|
first bench of the first bank. There they rested.
|
|
|
|
The bench of number sixty was slightly above the level of the
|
|
platform, and but a few feet away. The light glinting through the
|
|
grating over his head gave the rower fairly to the tribune's view-
|
|
erect, and, like all his fellows, naked, except a cincture about the
|
|
loins. There were, however, some points in his favour. He was very
|
|
young, not more than twenty. Furthermore, Arrius was not merely
|
|
given to dice; he was a connoisseur of men physically, and when ashore
|
|
indulged a habit of visiting the gymnasia to see and admire the most
|
|
famous athletae. From some professor, doubtless, he had caught the
|
|
idea that strength was as much of the quality as the quantity of the
|
|
muscle, while superiority in performance required a certain mind as
|
|
well as strength. Having adopted the doctrine, like most men with a
|
|
hobby, he was always looking for illustrations to support it.
|
|
|
|
The reader may well believe that while the tribune, in the search
|
|
for the perfect, was often called upon to stop and study, he was
|
|
seldom perfectly satisfied- in fact, very seldom held as long as on
|
|
this occasion.
|
|
|
|
In the beginning of each movement of the oar, the rower's body and
|
|
face were brought into profile view from the platform; the movement
|
|
ended with the body reversed, and in a pushing posture. The grace
|
|
and ease of the action at first suggested a doubt of the honesty of
|
|
the effort put forth; but it was speedily dismissed; the firmness with
|
|
which the oar was held while in the reach forward, its bending under
|
|
the push, were proofs of the force applied; not that only, they as
|
|
certainly proved the rower's art, and put the critic in the great
|
|
arm-chair in search of the combination of strength and cleverness
|
|
which was the central idea of his theory.
|
|
|
|
In course of the study, Arrius observed the subject's youth;
|
|
wholly unconscious of tenderness on that account, he also observed
|
|
that he seemed of good height, and that his limbs, upper and nether,
|
|
were singularly perfect. The arms, perhaps, were too long, but the
|
|
objection was well hidden under a mass of muscle which, in some
|
|
movements, swelled and knotted like kinking cords. Every rib in the
|
|
round body was discernible; yet the leanness was the healthful
|
|
reduction so strained after in the palaestrae. And altogether there
|
|
was in the rower's action a certain harmony which, besides
|
|
addressing itself to the tribune's theory, stimulated both his
|
|
curiosity and general interest.
|
|
|
|
Very soon he found himself waiting to catch a view of the man's face
|
|
in full. The head was shapely, and balanced upon a neck broad at the
|
|
base, but of exceeding pliancy and grace. The features in profile were
|
|
of Oriental outline, and of that delicacy of expression which has
|
|
always been thought a sign of blood and sensitive spirit. With these
|
|
observations, the tribune's interest in the subject deepened.
|
|
|
|
"By the gods," he said to himself, "the fellow impresses me! He
|
|
promises well. I will know more of him."
|
|
|
|
Directly the tribune caught the view he wished- the rower turned and
|
|
looked at him.
|
|
|
|
"A Jew! and a boy!"
|
|
|
|
Under the gaze then fixed steadily upon him, the large eyes of the
|
|
slave grew larger- the blood surged to his very brows- the blade
|
|
lingered in his hands. But instantly, with an angry crash, down fell
|
|
the gavel of the hortator. The rower started, withdrew his face from
|
|
the inquisitor, and, as if personally chidden, dropped the oar half
|
|
feathered. When he glanced again at the tribune, he was vastly more
|
|
astonished- he was met with a kindly smile.
|
|
|
|
Meantime the galley entered the Straits of Messina, and, skimming
|
|
past the city of that name, was after a while turned eastward, leaving
|
|
the cloud over AEtna in the sky astern.
|
|
|
|
Often as Arrius returned to his platform in the cabin he returned to
|
|
study the rower, and he kept saying to himself, "The fellow hath a
|
|
spirit. A Jew is not a barbarian. I will know more of him."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
ARRIUS AND BEN-HUR ON DECK.
|
|
|
|
THE fourth day out, and the Astraea- so the galley was named-
|
|
speeding through the Ionian Sea. The sky was clear, and the wind
|
|
blew as if bearing the good-will of all the gods.
|
|
|
|
As it was possible to overtake the fleet before reaching the bay
|
|
east of the island of Cythera, designated for assemblage, Arrius,
|
|
somewhat impatient, spent much time on deck. He took note diligently
|
|
of matters pertaining to his ship, and, as a rule, was well pleased.
|
|
In the cabin, swinging in the great chair, his thought continually
|
|
reverted to the rower on number sixty.
|
|
|
|
"Knowest thou the man just come from yon bench?" he at length
|
|
asked of the hortator.
|
|
|
|
A relief was going on at the moment.
|
|
|
|
"From number sixty?" returned the chief.
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
The chief looked sharply at the rower then going forward.
|
|
|
|
"As thou knowest," he replied, "the ship is but a month from the
|
|
maker's hand, and the men are as new to me as the ship."
|
|
|
|
"He is a Jew," Arrius remarked, thoughtfully.
|
|
|
|
"The noble Quintus is shrewd."
|
|
|
|
"He is very young," Arrius continued.
|
|
|
|
"But our best rower," said the other. "I have seen his oar bend
|
|
almost to breaking."
|
|
|
|
"Of what disposition is he?"
|
|
|
|
"He is obedient; further I know not. Once he made request of me."
|
|
|
|
"For what?"
|
|
|
|
"He wishes me to change him alternately from the right to the left."
|
|
|
|
"Did he give a reason?"
|
|
|
|
"He had observed that the men who are confined to one side become
|
|
misshapen. He also said that some day of storm or battle there might
|
|
be sudden need to change him, and he might then be unserviceable."
|
|
|
|
"Perpol! The idea is new. What else hast thou observed of him?"
|
|
|
|
"He is cleanly above his companions."
|
|
|
|
"In that he is Roman," said Arrius, approvingly. "Have you nothing
|
|
of his history?"
|
|
|
|
"Not a word."
|
|
|
|
The tribune reflected awhile, and turned to go to his own seat.
|
|
|
|
"If I should be on deck when his time is up," he paused to say,
|
|
"send him to me. Let him come alone."
|
|
|
|
About two hours later Arrius stood under the aplustre of the galley;
|
|
in the mood of one who, seeing himself carried swiftly towards an
|
|
event of mighty import, has nothing to do but wait- the mood in
|
|
which philosophy vests an even-minded man with the utmost calm, and is
|
|
ever so serviceable. The pilot sat with a hand upon the rope by
|
|
which the rudder paddles, one on each side of the vessel, were
|
|
managed. In the shade of the sail some sailors lay asleep, and up on
|
|
the yard there was a look-out. Lifting his eyes from the solarium
|
|
set under the aplustre for reference in keeping the course, Arrius
|
|
beheld the rower approaching.
|
|
|
|
"The chief called thee the noble Arrius, and said it was thy will
|
|
that I should seek thee here. I am come."
|
|
|
|
Arrius surveyed the figure, tall, sinewy, glistening in the sun, and
|
|
tinted by the rich red blood within- surveyed it admiringly, and
|
|
with a thought of the arena; yet the manner was not without effect
|
|
upon him: there was in the voice a suggestion of life at least
|
|
partly spent under refining influences; the eyes were clear and
|
|
open, and more curious than defiant. To the shrewd, demanding,
|
|
masterful glance bent upon it, the face gave back nothing to mar its
|
|
youthful comeliness- nothing of accusation or sullenness or menace,
|
|
only the signs which a great sorrow long borne imprints, as time
|
|
mellows the surface of pictures. In tacit acknowledgment of the
|
|
effect, the Roman spoke as an older man to a younger, not as a
|
|
master to a slave.
|
|
|
|
"The hortator tells me thou art his best rower."
|
|
|
|
"The hortator is very kind," the rower answered.
|
|
|
|
"Hast thou seen much service?"
|
|
|
|
"About three years."
|
|
|
|
"At the oars?"
|
|
|
|
"I cannot recall a day of rest from them."
|
|
|
|
"The labour is hard; few men bear it a year without breaking, and
|
|
thou- thou art but a boy."
|
|
|
|
"The noble Arrius forgets that the spirit hath much to do with
|
|
endurance. By its help the weak sometimes thrive, when the strong
|
|
perish."
|
|
|
|
"From thy speech, thou art a Jew."
|
|
|
|
"My ancestors further back than the first Roman were Hebrews."
|
|
|
|
"The stubborn pride of thy race is not lost in thee," said Arrius,
|
|
observing a flush upon the rower's face.
|
|
|
|
"Pride is never so loud as when in chains."
|
|
|
|
"What cause hast thou for pride?"
|
|
|
|
"That I am a Jew."
|
|
|
|
Arrius smiled.
|
|
|
|
"I have not been to Jerusalem," he said; "but I have heard of its
|
|
princes. I knew one of them. He was a merchant, and sailed the seas.
|
|
He was fit to have been a king. Of what degree art thou?"
|
|
|
|
"I must answer thee from the bench of a galley. I am of the degree
|
|
of slaves. My father was a prince of Jerusalem, and, as a merchant, he
|
|
sailed the seas. He was known and honoured in the guest-chamber of the
|
|
great Augustus."
|
|
|
|
"His name?"
|
|
|
|
"Ithanar, of the house of Hur."
|
|
|
|
The tribune raised his hand in astonishment.
|
|
|
|
"A son of Hur- thou?"
|
|
|
|
After a silence, he asked,
|
|
|
|
"What brought thee here?"
|
|
|
|
Judah lowered his head, and his breast laboured hard. When his
|
|
feelings were sufficiently mastered, he looked the tribune in the
|
|
face, and answered,
|
|
|
|
"I was accused of attempting to assassinate Valerius Gratus, the
|
|
procurator."
|
|
|
|
"Thou!" cried Arrius, yet more amazed, and retreating a step.
|
|
"Thou that assassin! All Rome rang with the story. It came to my
|
|
ship in the river by Lodinum."
|
|
|
|
The two regarded each other silently.
|
|
|
|
"I thought the family of Hur blotted from the earth," said Arrius,
|
|
speaking first,
|
|
|
|
A flood of tender recollections carried the young man's pride
|
|
away; tears shone upon his cheeks.
|
|
|
|
"Mother- mother! And my little Tirzah! Where are they? O tribune,
|
|
noble tribune, if thou knowest anything of them"- he clasped his hands
|
|
in appeal- "tell me all thou knowest. Tell me if they are living- if
|
|
living, where are they? and in what condition? Oh, I pray thee, tell
|
|
me!"
|
|
|
|
He drew nearer Arrius, so near that his hands touched the cloak
|
|
where it dropped from the latter's folded arms.
|
|
|
|
"The horrible day is three years gone," he continued- "three
|
|
years, O tribune, and every hour a whole lifetime of misery- a
|
|
lifetime in a bottomless pit with death, and no relief but in
|
|
labour- and in all that time not a word from anyone, not a whisper.
|
|
Oh, if, in being forgotten, we could only forget! If only I could hide
|
|
from that scene- my sister torn from me, my mother's last look! I have
|
|
felt the plague's breath, and the shock of ships in battle; I have
|
|
heard the tempest lashing the sea, and laughed, though others
|
|
prayed: death would have been a riddance. Bend the oar- yes, in the
|
|
strain of mighty effort trying to escape the haunting of what that day
|
|
occurred, Think what little will help me. Tell me they are dead, if no
|
|
more, for happy they cannot be while I am lost. I have heard them call
|
|
me in the night; I have seen them on the water walking. Oh, never
|
|
anything so true as my mother's love! And Tirzah- her breath was as
|
|
the breath of white lilies. She was the youngest branch of the palm-
|
|
so fresh, so tender, so graceful, so beautiful! She made my day all
|
|
morning. She came and went in music. And mine was the hand that laid
|
|
them low! I- "
|
|
|
|
"Dost thou admit thy guilt?" asked Arrius, sternly.
|
|
|
|
The change that came upon Ben-Hur was wonderful to see, it was so
|
|
instant and extreme. The voice sharpened; the hands arose
|
|
tight-clenched; every fibre thrilled; his eyes flamed.
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast heard of the God of my fathers," he said; "of the
|
|
infinite Jehovah. By his truth and almightiness, and by the love
|
|
with which he hath followed Israel from the beginning, I swear I am
|
|
innocent!"
|
|
|
|
The tribune was much moved.
|
|
|
|
"O noble Roman!" continued Ben-Hur, "give me a little faith, and,
|
|
into my darkness, deeper darkening every day, send a light!"
|
|
|
|
Arrius turned away, and walked the deck.
|
|
|
|
"Didst thou not have a trial?" he asked, stopping suddenly.
|
|
|
|
"No!"
|
|
|
|
The Roman raised his head, surprised.
|
|
|
|
"No trial- no witnesses! Who passed judgment upon thee?"
|
|
|
|
Romans, it should be remembered, were at no time such lovers of
|
|
the law and its forms as in the ages of their decay.
|
|
|
|
"They bound me with cords, and dragged me to a vault in the Tower. I
|
|
saw no one. No one spoke to me. Next day soldiers took me to the
|
|
seaside. I have been a galley-slave ever since."
|
|
|
|
"What couldst thou have proven?"
|
|
|
|
"I was a boy, too young to be a conspirator. Gratus was a stranger
|
|
to me. If I had meant to kill him, that was not the time or the place.
|
|
He was riding in the midst of a legion, and it was broad day. I
|
|
could not have escaped. I was of a class most friendly to Rome. My
|
|
father had been distinguished for his services to the emperor. We
|
|
had a great estate to lose. Ruin was certain to myself, my mother,
|
|
my sister. I had no cause for malice, while every consideration-
|
|
property, family, life, conscience, the Law- to a son of Israel as the
|
|
breath of his nostrils- would have stayed my hand, though the foul
|
|
intent had been ever so strong. I was not mad. Death was preferable to
|
|
shame; and, believe me, I pray it is so yet."
|
|
|
|
"Who was with thee when the blow was struck?"
|
|
|
|
"I was on the house-top- my father's house. Tirzah was with me at my
|
|
side- the soul of gentleness. Together we leaned over the parapet to
|
|
see the legion pass. A tile gave way under my hand, and fell upon
|
|
Gratus. I thought I had killed him. Ah, what horror I felt!"
|
|
|
|
"Where was thy mother?"
|
|
|
|
"In her chamber below."
|
|
|
|
"What became of her?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur clenched his hands, and drew a breath like a gasp.
|
|
|
|
"I do not know. I saw them drag her away- that's all I know. Out
|
|
of the house they drove every living thing, even the dumb cattle,
|
|
and they sealed the gates. The purpose was that she should not return.
|
|
I, too, ask for her. Oh for one word! She, at least, was innocent. I
|
|
can forgive- but I pray thy pardon, noble tribune! A slave like me
|
|
should not talk of forgiveness or of revenge. I am bound to an oar for
|
|
life."
|
|
|
|
Arrius listened intently. He brought all his experience with
|
|
slaves to his aid. If the feeling shown in this instance were assumed,
|
|
the acting was perfect; on the other hand, if it were real, the
|
|
Jew's innocence might not be doubted; and if he were innocent, with
|
|
what blind fury the power had been exercised! A whole family blotted
|
|
out to atone an accident! The thought shocked him.
|
|
|
|
There is no wiser providence than that our occupations, however rude
|
|
or bloody, cannot wear us out morally; that such qualities as
|
|
justice and mercy, if they really possess us, continue to live on
|
|
under them, like flowers under the snow. The tribune could be
|
|
inexorable, else he had not been fit for the usages of his calling; he
|
|
could also be just; and to excite his sense of wrong was to put him in
|
|
the way to right the wrong. The crews of the ships in which he
|
|
served came after a time to speak of him as the good tribune. Shrewd
|
|
readers will not want a better definition of his character.
|
|
|
|
In this instance there were many circumstances certainly in the
|
|
young man's favour, and some to be supposed. Possibly Arrius knew
|
|
Valerius Gratus without loving him. Possibly he had known the elder
|
|
Hur. In the course of his appeal Judah had asked him of that, and,
|
|
as will be noticed, he had made no reply.
|
|
|
|
For once the tribune was at loss, and hesitated. His power was
|
|
ample. He was monarch of the ship. His prepossessions all moved him to
|
|
mercy. His faith was won. Yet, he said to himself, there was no haste-
|
|
or, rather, there was haste to Cythera; the best rower could not
|
|
then be spared; he would wait; he would learn more; he would at
|
|
least be sure this was the prince Ben-Hur, and that he was of a
|
|
right disposition. Ordinarily slaves were liars.
|
|
|
|
"It is enough," he said aloud. "Go back to thy place."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur bowed, looked once more into the master's face, but saw
|
|
nothing for hope. He turned away slowly, looked back, and said-
|
|
|
|
"If thou dost think of me again, O tribune, let it not be lost in
|
|
thy mind that I prayed thee only for word of my people- mother,
|
|
sister."
|
|
|
|
He moved on.
|
|
|
|
Arrius followed him with admiring eyes.
|
|
|
|
"Perpol!" he thought. "With teaching, what a man for the arena! What
|
|
a runner! Ye gods! what an arm for the sword or the cestus!- Stay!" he
|
|
said aloud.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur stopped, and the tribune went to him.
|
|
|
|
"If thou wert free, what wouldst thou do?"
|
|
|
|
"The noble Arrius mocks me!" Judah said, with trembling lips.
|
|
|
|
"No; by the gods, no!"
|
|
|
|
"Then I will answer gladly. I would give myself to duty the first of
|
|
life. I would know no other. I would know no rest until my mother
|
|
and Tirzah were restored to home. I would give every day and hour to
|
|
their happiness. I would wait upon them; never a slave more
|
|
faithful. They have lost much, but, by the God of my fathers, I
|
|
would find them more!"
|
|
|
|
The answer was unexpected by the Roman. For a moment he lost his
|
|
purpose.
|
|
|
|
"I spoke to thy ambition," he said, recovering. "If thy mother and
|
|
sister were dead, or not to be found, what wouldst thou do?"
|
|
|
|
A distinct pallor overspread Ben-Hur's face, and he looked over
|
|
the sea. There was a struggle with some strong feeling; when it was
|
|
conquered, he turned to the tribune.
|
|
|
|
"What pursuit would I follow?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Tribune, I will tell thee truly. Only the night before the dreadful
|
|
day of which I have spoken, I obtained permission to be a soldier. I
|
|
am of the same mind yet; and, as in all the earth there is but one
|
|
school of war, thither I would go."
|
|
|
|
"The Palaestra!" exclaimed Arrius.
|
|
|
|
"No; a Roman camp."
|
|
|
|
"But thou must first acquaint thyself with the use of arms."
|
|
|
|
Now a master may never safely advise a slave. Arrius saw his
|
|
indiscretion, and, in a breath, chilled his voice and manner.
|
|
|
|
"Go now," he said, "and do not build upon what has passed between
|
|
us. Perhaps I do but play with thee. Or,"- he looked away musingly-
|
|
"or, if thou dost think of it with any hope, choose between the renown
|
|
of a gladiator and the service of a soldier. The former may come of
|
|
the favour of the emperor; there is no reward for thee in the
|
|
latter. Thou art not a Roman. Go!"
|
|
|
|
A short while after Ben-Hur was upon his bench again.
|
|
|
|
A man's task is always light if his heart is light. Handling the oar
|
|
did not seem so toilsome to Judah. A hope had come to him, like a
|
|
singing bird. He could hardly see the visitor or hear its song; that
|
|
it was there, though, he knew; his feelings told him so. The caution
|
|
of the tribune- "Perhaps I do but play with thee"- was dismissed often
|
|
as it recurred to his mind. That he had been called by the great man
|
|
and asked his story was the bread upon which he fed his hungry spirit.
|
|
Surely something good would come of it. The light about his bench
|
|
was clear and bright with promises, and he prayed-
|
|
|
|
"O God! I am a true son of the Israel thou hast so loved! Help me, I
|
|
pray thee!"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
"No. 60".
|
|
|
|
IN the Bay of Antemona, east of Cythera the island, the hundred
|
|
galleys assembled. There the tribune gave one day to inspection. He
|
|
sailed then to Naxos, the largest of the Cyclades, midway the coasts
|
|
of Greece and Asia, like a great stone planted in the centre of a
|
|
highway, from which he could challenge everything that passed; at
|
|
the same time he would be in position to go after the pirates
|
|
instantly, whether they were in the AEgean or out on the
|
|
Mediterranean.
|
|
|
|
As the fleet, in order, rowed in towards the mountain shores of
|
|
the island, a galley was descried coming from the north. Arrius went
|
|
to meet it. She proved to be a transport just from Byzantium, and from
|
|
her commander he learned the particulars of which he stood in most
|
|
need.
|
|
|
|
The pirates were from all the farther shores of the Euxine. Even
|
|
Tanais, at the mouth of the river which was supposed to feed Palus
|
|
Maeotis, was represented among them. Their preparations had been
|
|
with the greatest secrecy. The first known of them was their
|
|
appearance off the entrance to the Thracian Bosphorus, followed by the
|
|
destruction of the fleet in station there. Thence to the outlet of the
|
|
Hellespont everything afloat had fallen their prey. There were quite
|
|
sixty galleys in the squadron, all well manned and supplied. A few
|
|
were biremes, the rest stout triremes. A Greek was in command, and the
|
|
pilots, said to be familiar with all the Eastern seas, were Greek. The
|
|
plunder had been incalculable. The panic, consequently, was not on the
|
|
sea alone; cities, with closed gates, sent their people nightly to the
|
|
walls. Traffic had almost ceased.
|
|
|
|
Where were the pirates now?
|
|
|
|
To this question, of most interest to Arrius, he received answer.
|
|
|
|
After sacking Hephaestia, on the island of Lemnos, the enemy had
|
|
coursed across to the Thessalian group, and, by last account,
|
|
disappeared in the gulfs between Euboea and Hellas.
|
|
|
|
Such were the tidings.
|
|
|
|
Then the people of the island, drawn to the hill-tops by the rare
|
|
spectacle of a hundred ships careering in united squadron, beheld
|
|
the advance division suddenly turn to the north, and the others
|
|
follow, wheeling upon the same point like cavalry in a column. News of
|
|
the piratical descent had reached them, and now, watching the white
|
|
sails until they faded from sight up between Rhene and Syros, the
|
|
thoughtful among them took comfort, and were grateful. What Rome
|
|
seized with strong hand she always defended: in return for their
|
|
taxes, she gave them safety.
|
|
|
|
The tribune was more than pleased with the enemy's movements; he was
|
|
doubly thankful to Fortune. She had brought swift and sure
|
|
intelligence, and had lured his foes into the waters where, of all
|
|
others, destruction was most assured. He knew the havoc one galley
|
|
could play in a broad sea like the Mediterranean, and the difficulty
|
|
of finding and overhauling her; he knew, also, how those very
|
|
circumstances would enhance the service and glory if, at one blow,
|
|
he could put a finish to the whole piratical array.
|
|
|
|
If the reader will take a map of Greece and the AEgean, he will
|
|
notice the island of Euboea lying along the classic coast like a
|
|
rampart against Asia, leaving a channel between it and the continent
|
|
quite a hundred and twenty miles in length, and scarcely an average of
|
|
eight in width. The inlet on the north had admitted the fleet of
|
|
Xerxes, and now it received the bold raiders from the Euxine. The
|
|
towns along the Pelasgic and Meliac gulfs were rich and their
|
|
plunder seductive. All things considered, therefore, Arrius judged
|
|
that the robbers might be found somewhere below Thermopylae. Welcoming
|
|
the chance, he resolved to enclose them north and south, to do which
|
|
not an hour could be lost; even the fruits and wines and women of
|
|
Naxos must be left behind. So he sailed away without stop or tack
|
|
until, a little before nightfall, Mount Ocha was seen upreared against
|
|
the sky, and the pilot reported the Euboean coast.
|
|
|
|
At a signal the fleet rested upon its oars. When the movement was
|
|
resumed, Arrius led a division of fifty of the galleys, intending to
|
|
take them up the channel, while another division, equally strong,
|
|
turned their prows to the outer or seaward side of the island, with
|
|
orders to make all haste to the upper inlet, and descend sweeping
|
|
the waters.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, neither division was equal in number to the pirates; but
|
|
each had advantages in compensation, among them, by no means least,
|
|
a discipline impossible to a lawless horde, however brave. Besides, it
|
|
was a shrewd count on the tribune's side, if, peradventure, one should
|
|
be defeated, the other would find the enemy shattered by his
|
|
victory, and in condition to be easily overwhelmed.
|
|
|
|
Meanwhile Ben-Hur kept his bench, relieved every six hours. The rest
|
|
in the Bay of Antemona had freshened him, so that the oar was not
|
|
troublesome, and the chief on the platform found no fault.
|
|
|
|
People, generally, are not aware of the ease of mind there is in
|
|
knowing where they are, and where they are going. The sensation of
|
|
being lost is a keen distress; still worse is the feeling one has in
|
|
driving blindly into unknown places. Custom had dulled the feeling
|
|
with Ben-Hur, but only measurably. Pulling away hour after hour,
|
|
sometimes days and nights together, sensible all the time that the
|
|
galley was gliding swiftly along some of the many tracks of the
|
|
broad sea, the longing to know where he was, and whither going, was
|
|
always present with him; but now it seemed quickened by the hope which
|
|
had come to new life in his breast since the interview with the
|
|
tribune. The narrower the abiding-place happens to be, the more
|
|
intense is the longing; and so he found. He seemed to hear every sound
|
|
of the ship in labour, and listened to each one as if it were a
|
|
voice come to tell him something; he looked to the grating overhead,
|
|
and through it into the light of which so small a portion was his,
|
|
expecting, he knew not what; and many times he caught himself on the
|
|
point of yielding to the impulse to speak to the chief on the
|
|
platform, than which no circumstance of battle would have astonished
|
|
that dignitary more.
|
|
|
|
In his long service, by watching the shifting of the meagre sunbeams
|
|
upon the cabin floor when the ship was under way, he had come to know,
|
|
generally, the quarter into which she was sailing. This, of course,
|
|
was only of clear days like those good fortune was sending the
|
|
tribune. The experience had not failed him in the period succeeding
|
|
the departure from Cythera. Thinking they were tending towards the old
|
|
Judean country, he was sensitive to every variation from the course.
|
|
With a pang, he had observed the sudden change northward which, as has
|
|
been noticed, took place near Naxos: the cause, however, he could
|
|
not even conjecture; for it must be remembered that, in common with
|
|
his fellow-slaves, he knew nothing of the situation, and had no
|
|
interest in the voyage. His place was at the oar, and he was held
|
|
there inexorably, whether at anchor or under sail. Once only in
|
|
three years had he been permitted an outlook from the deck. The
|
|
occasion we have seen. He had no idea that, following the vessel he
|
|
was helping drive, there was a great squadron close at hand and in
|
|
beautiful order; no more did he know the object of which it was in
|
|
pursuit.
|
|
|
|
When the sun, going down, withdrew his last ray from the cabin,
|
|
the galley still held northward. Night fell, yet Ben-Hur could discern
|
|
no change. About that time the smell of incense floated down the
|
|
gangways from the deck.
|
|
|
|
"The tribune is at the altar," he thought. "Can it be we are going
|
|
into battle?"
|
|
|
|
He became observant.
|
|
|
|
Now he had been in many battles without having seen one. From his
|
|
bench he had heard them above and about him, until he was familiar
|
|
with all their notes, almost as a singer with a song. So, too, he
|
|
had become acquainted with many of the preliminaries of an engagement,
|
|
of which, with a Roman as well as a Greek, the most invariable was the
|
|
sacrifice to the gods. The rites were the same as those performed at
|
|
the beginning of a voyage, and to him, when noticed, they were
|
|
always an admonition.
|
|
|
|
A battle, it should be observed, possessed for him and his
|
|
fellow-slaves of the oar an interest unlike that of the sailor and
|
|
marine; it came, not of the danger encountered, but of the fact that
|
|
defeat, if survived, might bring an alteration of condition-
|
|
possibly freedom- at least a change of masters, which might be for the
|
|
better.
|
|
|
|
In good time the lanterns were lighted and hung by the stairs, and
|
|
the tribune came down from the deck. At his word the marines put on
|
|
their armour. At his word again, the machines were looked to, and
|
|
spears, javelins, and arrows, in great sheaves, brought and laid
|
|
upon the floor, together with jars of inflammable oil, and baskets
|
|
of cotton balls wound loose like the wicking of candles. And when,
|
|
finally, Ben-Hur saw the tribune mount his platform and don his
|
|
armour, and get his helmet and shield out, the meaning of the
|
|
preparations might not be any longer doubted, and he made ready for
|
|
the last ignominy of his service.
|
|
|
|
To every bench, as a fixture, there was a chain with heavy
|
|
anklets. These the hortator proceeded to lock upon the oarsmen,
|
|
going from number to number, leaving no choice but to obey, and, in
|
|
event of disaster, no possibility of escape.
|
|
|
|
In the cabin, then, a silence fell, broken, at first, only by the
|
|
sough of the oars turning in the leathern cases. Every man upon the
|
|
benches felt the shame, Ben-Hur more keenly than his companions. He
|
|
would have put it away at any price. Soon the clanking of the
|
|
fetters notified him of the progress the chief was making in his
|
|
round. He would come to him in turn; but would not the tribune
|
|
interpose for him?
|
|
|
|
The thought may be set down to vanity or selfishness, as the
|
|
reader pleases; it certainly, at that moment, took possession of
|
|
Ben-Hur. He believed the Roman would interpose; anyhow, the
|
|
circumstance would test the man's feelings. If, intent upon the
|
|
battle, he would but think of him, it would be proof of his opinion
|
|
formed- proof that he had been tacitly promoted above his associates
|
|
in misery- such proof as would justify hope.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur waited anxiously. The interval seemed like an age. At
|
|
every turn of the oar he looked towards the tribune, who, his simple
|
|
preparations made, lay down upon the couch and composed himself to
|
|
rest; whereupon number sixty chid himself, and laughed grimly, and
|
|
resolved not to look that way again.
|
|
|
|
The hortator approached. Now he was at number one- the rattle of the
|
|
iron links sounded horribly. At last number sixty! Calm from
|
|
despair, Ben-Hur held his oar at poise, and gave his foot to the
|
|
officer. Then the tribune stirred- sat up- beckoned to the chief.
|
|
|
|
A strong revulsion seized the Jew. From the hortator the great man
|
|
glanced at him; and when he dropped his oar all the section of the
|
|
ship on his side seemed aglow. He heard nothing of what was said;
|
|
enough that the chain hung idly from its staple in the bench, and that
|
|
the chief, going to his seat, began to beat the sounding-board. The
|
|
notes of the gavel were never so like music. With his breast against
|
|
the leaded handle, he pushed with all his might- pushed until the
|
|
shaft bent as if about to break.
|
|
|
|
The chief went to the tribune, and, smiling, pointed to number
|
|
sixty.
|
|
|
|
"What strength!" he said.
|
|
|
|
"And what spirit!" the tribune answered. "Perpol! He is better
|
|
without the irons. Put them on him no more."
|
|
|
|
So saying, he stretched himself upon the couch again.
|
|
|
|
The ship sailed on hour after hour under the oars in water
|
|
scarcely rippled by the wind. And the people not on duty slept, Arrius
|
|
in his place, the marines on the floor.
|
|
|
|
Once- twice- Ben-Hur was relieved; but he could not sleep. Three
|
|
years of night, and through the darkness a sunbeam at last! At sea
|
|
adrift and lost, and now land! Dead so long, and, lo! the thrill and
|
|
stir of resurrection. Sleep was not for such an hour. Hope deals
|
|
with the future; now and the past are but servants that wait on her
|
|
with impulse and suggestive circumstance. Starting from the favour
|
|
of the tribune, she carried him forward indefinitely. The wonder is,
|
|
not that things so purely imaginative as the results she points us
|
|
to can make us so happy, but that we can receive them as so real. They
|
|
must be as gorgeous poppies under the influence of which, under the
|
|
crimson and purple and gold, reason lies down the while, and is not.
|
|
Sorrows assuaged; home and the fortunes of his house restored;
|
|
mother and sister in his arms once more- such were the central ideas
|
|
which made him happier that moment than he had ever been. That he
|
|
was rushing, as on wings, into horrible battle had, for the time,
|
|
nothing to do with his thoughts. The things thus in hope were
|
|
unmixed with doubts- they were. Hence his joy so full, so perfect,
|
|
there was no room in his heart for revenge. Messala, Gratus, Rome, and
|
|
all the bitter, passionate memories connected with them, were as
|
|
dead plagues- miasms of the earth above which he floated. far and
|
|
safe, listening to singing stars.
|
|
|
|
The deeper darkness before the dawn was upon the waters, and all
|
|
things going well with the Astraea, when a man, descending from the
|
|
deck, walked swiftly to the platform where the tribune slept, and
|
|
awoke him. Arrius arose, put on his helmet, sword, and shield, and
|
|
went to the commander of the marines.
|
|
|
|
"The pirates are close by. Up and ready!" he said, and passed to the
|
|
stairs, calm, confident, insomuch that one might have thought,
|
|
"Happy fellow! Apicius has set a feast for him."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
THE SEA FIGHT.
|
|
|
|
EVERY soul aboard, even the ship, awoke. Officers went to their
|
|
quarters. The marines took arms, and were led out, looking in all
|
|
respects like legionaries. Sheaves of arrows and armfuls of javelins
|
|
were carried on deck. By the central stairs the oil-tanks and
|
|
fireballs were set ready for use. Additional lanterns were lighted.
|
|
Buckets were filled with water. The rowers in relief assembled under
|
|
guard in front of the chief. As Providence would have it, Ben-Hur
|
|
was one of the latter. Overhead he heard the muffled noises of the
|
|
final preparations- of the sailors furling sail, spreading the
|
|
nettings, unslinging the machines, and hanging the armour of bull-hide
|
|
over the sides. Presently quiet settled about the galley again;
|
|
quiet full of vague dread and expectation, which, interpreted, means
|
|
ready.
|
|
|
|
At a signal passed down from the deck, and communicated to the
|
|
hortator by a petty officer stationed on the stairs, all at once the
|
|
oars stopped.
|
|
|
|
What did it mean?
|
|
|
|
Of the hundred and twenty slaves chained to the benches, not one but
|
|
asked himself the question. They were without incentive. Patriotism,
|
|
love of honour, sense of duty, brought them no inspiration. They
|
|
felt the thrill common to men rushed helpless and blind into danger.
|
|
It may be supposed the dullest of them, poising his oar, thought of
|
|
all that might happen, yet could promise himself nothing; for
|
|
victory would but rivet his chains the firmer, while the chances of
|
|
the ship were his; sinking or on fire, he was doomed to her fate.
|
|
|
|
Of the situation without they might not ask, And who were the enemy?
|
|
And what if they were friends, brethren, countrymen? The reader,
|
|
carrying the suggestion forward, will see the necessity which governed
|
|
the Roman when, in such emergencies, he locked the hapless wretches to
|
|
their seats.
|
|
|
|
There was little time, however, for such thought with them. A
|
|
sound like the rowing of galleys astern attracted Ben-Hur, and the
|
|
Astraea rocked as if in the midst of countering waves. The idea of a
|
|
fleet at hand broke upon him- a fleet in manoeuvre- forming probably
|
|
for attack. His blood started with the fancy.
|
|
|
|
Another signal came down from the deck. The oars dipped, and the
|
|
galley started imperceptibly. No sound from without, none from within,
|
|
yet each man in the cabin instinctively poised himself for a shock;
|
|
the very ship seemed to catch the sense, and hold its breath, and go
|
|
crouched tiger-like.
|
|
|
|
In such a situation time is inappreciable; so that Ben-Hur could
|
|
form no judgment of distance gone. At last there was a sound of
|
|
trumpets on deck, full, clear, long blown. The chief beat the
|
|
sounding-board until it rang; the rowers reached forward full
|
|
length, and, deepening the dip of their oars, pulled suddenly with all
|
|
their united force. The galley, quivering in every timber, answered
|
|
with a leap. Other trumpets joined in the clamour- all from the
|
|
rear, none forward- from the latter quarter only a rising sound of
|
|
voices in tumult heard briefly. There was a mighty blow; the rowers in
|
|
front of the chief's platform reeled, some of them fell; the ship
|
|
bounded back, recovered, and rushed on more irresistibly than
|
|
before. Shrill and high arose the shrieks of men in terror; over the
|
|
blare of trumpets, and the grind and crash of the collision, they
|
|
arose; then under his feet, under the keel, pounding, rumbling,
|
|
breaking to pieces, drowning, Ben-Hur felt something overridden. The
|
|
men about him looked at each other afraid. A shout of triumph from the
|
|
deck- the beak of the Roman had won! But who were they whom the sea
|
|
had drunk? Of what tongue, from what land were they?
|
|
|
|
No pause, no stay! Forward rushed the Astraea; and, as it went, some
|
|
sailors ran down, and plunging the cotton balls into the oil-tanks,
|
|
tossed them dripping to comrades at the head of the stairs: fire was
|
|
to be added to other horrors of the combat.
|
|
|
|
Directly the galley heeled over so far that the oarsmen on the
|
|
uppermost side with difficulty kept their benches. Again the hearty
|
|
Roman cheer, and with it, despairing shrieks. An opposing vessel,
|
|
caught by the grappling-hooks of the great crane swinging from the
|
|
prow, was being lifted into the air that it might be dropped and sunk.
|
|
|
|
The shouting increased on the right hand and on the left; before,
|
|
behind, swelled an indescribable clamour. Occasionally there was a
|
|
crash, followed by sudden peals of fright, telling of other ships
|
|
ridden down, and their crews drowned in the vortexes.
|
|
|
|
Nor was the fight all on one side. Now and then a Roman in armour
|
|
was borne down the hatchway, and laid bleeding, sometimes dying, on
|
|
the floor.
|
|
|
|
Sometimes, also, puffs of smoke, blended with steam, and foul with
|
|
the scent of roasting human flesh, poured into the cabin, turning
|
|
the dimming light into yellow murk. Gasping for breath the while,
|
|
Ben-Hur knew they were passing through the cloud of a ship on fire,
|
|
and burning up with the rowers chained to the benches.
|
|
|
|
The Astraea all this time was in motion. Suddenly she stopped. The
|
|
oars forward were dashed from the hands of the rowers, and the
|
|
rowers from their benches. On deck, then, a furious trampling, and
|
|
on the sides a grinding of ships afoul of each other. For the first
|
|
time the beating of the gavel was lost in the uproar. Men sank on
|
|
the floor in fear or looked about seeking a hiding-place. In the midst
|
|
of the panic a body plunged or was pitched headlong down the hatchway,
|
|
falling near Ben-Hur. He beheld the half-naked carcass, a mass of hair
|
|
blackening the face, and under it a shield of bull-hide and
|
|
wicker-work- a barbarian from the white-skinned nations of the North
|
|
whom death had robbed of plunder and revenge. How came he there? An
|
|
iron hand had snatched him from the opposing deck- no, the Astraea had
|
|
been boarded! The Romans were fighting on their own deck? A chill
|
|
smote the young Jew: Arrius was hard pressed- he might be defending
|
|
his own life. If he should be slain! God of Abraham forefend! The
|
|
hopes and dreams so lately come, were they only hopes and dreams?
|
|
Mother and sister- house- home- Holy Land- was he not to see them,
|
|
after all? The tumult thundered above him; he looked around; in the
|
|
cabin all was confusion- the rowers on the benches paralyzed; men
|
|
running blindly hither and thither; only the chief on his seat
|
|
imperturbable, vainly beating the sounding-board, and waiting the
|
|
orders of the tribune- in the red murk illustrating the matchless
|
|
discipline which had won the world.
|
|
|
|
The example had a good effect upon Ben-Hur. He controlled himself
|
|
enough to think. Honour and duty bound the Roman to the platform;
|
|
but what had he to do with such motives then? The bench was a thing to
|
|
run from; while, if he were to die a slave, who would be the better of
|
|
the sacrifice? With him living was duty, if not honour. His life
|
|
belonged to his people. They arose before him never more real: he
|
|
saw them, their arms outstretched; he heard them imploring him. And he
|
|
would go to them. He started- stopped. Alas! a Roman judgment held him
|
|
in doom. While it endured, escape would be profitless. In the wide,
|
|
wide earth there was no place in which he would be safe from the
|
|
imperial demand; upon the land none, nor upon the sea. Whereas he
|
|
required freedom according to the forms of law, so only could he abide
|
|
in Judea and execute the filial purpose to which he would devote
|
|
himself: in other land he would not live. Dear God! How he had
|
|
waited and watched and prayed for such a release! And how it had
|
|
been delayed! But at last he had seen it in the promise of the
|
|
tribune. What else the great man's meaning? And if the benefactor so
|
|
belated should now be slain! The dead come not back to redeem the
|
|
pledges of the living. It should not be- Arrius should not die. At
|
|
least, better perish with him than survive a galley-slave.
|
|
|
|
Once more Ben-Hur looked around. Upon the roof of the cabin the
|
|
battle yet beat; against the sides the hostile vessels yet crushed and
|
|
grided. On the benches the slaves struggled to tear loose from their
|
|
chains, and, finding their efforts vain, howled like madmen; the
|
|
guards had gone upstairs; discipline was out, panic in. No, the
|
|
chief kept his chair, unchanged, calm as ever- except the gavel,
|
|
weaponless. Vainly with his clangour he filled the lulls in the din.
|
|
Ben-Hur gave him a last look, then broke away- not in flight, but to
|
|
seek the tribune.
|
|
|
|
A very short space lay between him and the stairs of the hatchway
|
|
aft. He took it with a leap, and was half-way up the steps- up far
|
|
enough to catch a glimpse of the sky blood-red with fire, of the ships
|
|
alongside, of the sea covered with ships and wrecks, of the fight
|
|
closed in about the pilot's quarter, the assailants many, the
|
|
defenders few- when suddenly his foothold was knocked away, and he
|
|
pitched backward. The floor, when he reached it, seemed to be
|
|
lifting itself and breaking to pieces; then, in a twinkling, the whole
|
|
after-part of the hull broke asunder, and, as if it had all the time
|
|
been lying in wait, the sea, hissing and foaming, leaped in, and all
|
|
became darkness and surging water to Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
It cannot be said that the young Jew helped himself in this
|
|
stress. Besides his usual strength, he had the indefinite extra
|
|
force which nature keeps in reserve for just such perils to life;
|
|
yet the darkness, and the whirl and roar of water, stupefied him. Even
|
|
the holding of his breath was involuntary.
|
|
|
|
The influx of the flood tossed him like a log forward into the
|
|
cabin, where he would have drowned but for the refluence of the
|
|
sinking motion. As it was, fathoms under the surface the hollow mass
|
|
vomited him forth, and he arose along with the loosed debris. In the
|
|
act of rising he clutched something, and held to it. The time he was
|
|
under seemed an age longer than it really was; at last he gained the
|
|
top; with a great gasp he filled his lungs afresh, and, tossing the
|
|
water from his hair and eyes, climbed higher upon the plank he held,
|
|
and looked about him.
|
|
|
|
Death had pursued him closely under the waves; he found it waiting
|
|
for him when he was risen- waiting multiform.
|
|
|
|
Smoke lay upon the sea like a semi-transparent fog, through which
|
|
here and there shone cores of intense brilliance. A quick intelligence
|
|
told him that they were ships on fire. The battle was yet on; nor
|
|
could he say who was victor. Within the radius of his vision now and
|
|
then ships passed, shooting shadows athwart lights. Out of the dun
|
|
clouds farther on he caught the crash of other ships colliding. The
|
|
danger, however, was closer at hand. When the Astraea went down, her
|
|
deck, it will be recollected, held her own crew, and the crews of
|
|
the two galleys which had attacked her at the same time, all of whom
|
|
were ingulfed. Many of them came to the surface together, and on the
|
|
same plank or support of whatever kind continued the combat, begun
|
|
possibly in the vortex fathoms down. Writhing and twisting in deadly
|
|
embrace, sometimes striking with sword or javelin, they kept the sea
|
|
around them in agitation, at one place inky-black, at another aflame
|
|
with fiery reflections. With their struggles he had nothing to do;
|
|
they were all his enemies: not one of them but would kill him for
|
|
the plank upon which he floated. He made haste to get away.
|
|
|
|
About that time he heard oars in quickest movement, and beheld a
|
|
galley coming down upon him. The tall prow seemed doubly tall, and the
|
|
red light playing upon its gilt and carving gave it an appearance of
|
|
snaky life. Under its foot the water churned to flying foam.
|
|
|
|
He struck out, pushing the plank, which was very broad and
|
|
unmanageable. Seconds were precious- half a second might save or
|
|
lose him. In the crisis of the effort, up from the sea, within arm's
|
|
reach, a helmet shot like a gleam of gold. Next came two hands with
|
|
fingers extended- large hands were they, and strong- their hold once
|
|
fixed, might not be loosed. Ben-Hur swerved from them appalled. Up
|
|
rose the helmet and the head it encased- then two arms, which began to
|
|
beat the water wildly- the head turned back, and gave the face to
|
|
the light. The mouth gaping wide; the eyes open, but sightless, and
|
|
the bloodless pallor of a drowning man- never anything more ghastly!
|
|
Yet he gave a cry of joy at the sight, and as the face was going under
|
|
again, he caught the sufferer by the chain which passed from the
|
|
helmet beneath the chin, and drew him to the plank.
|
|
|
|
The man was Arrius, the tribune.
|
|
|
|
For a while the water foamed and eddied violently about Ben-Hur,
|
|
taxing all his strength to hold to the support and at the same time
|
|
keep the Roman's head above the surface. The galley had passed,
|
|
leaving the two barely outside the stroke of its oars. Right through
|
|
the floating men, over heads helmeted as well as heads bare, she
|
|
drove, in her wake nothing but the sea sparkling with fire. A
|
|
muffled crash, succeeded by a great outcry, made the rescuer look
|
|
again from his charge. A certain savage pleasure touched his heart-
|
|
the Astraea was avenged.
|
|
|
|
After that the battle moved on. Resistance turned to flight. But who
|
|
were the victors? Ben-Hur was sensible how much his freedom and the
|
|
life of the tribune depended upon that event. He pushed the plank
|
|
under the latter until it floated him, after which all his care was to
|
|
keep him there. The dawn came slowly. He watched its growing
|
|
hopefully, yet sometimes afraid. Would it bring the Romans or the
|
|
pirates? If the pirates, his charge was lost.
|
|
|
|
At last morning broke in full, the air without a breath. Off to
|
|
the left he saw the land, too far to think of attempting to make it.
|
|
Here and there men were adrift like himself. In spots the sea was
|
|
blackened by charred and sometimes smoking fragments. A galley up a
|
|
long way was lying to with a torn sail hanging from the tilted yard,
|
|
and the oars all idle. Still farther away he could discern moving
|
|
specks, which he thought might be ships in flight or pursuit, or
|
|
they might be white birds awing.
|
|
|
|
An hour passed thus. His anxiety increased. If relief came not
|
|
speedily, Arrius would die. Sometimes he seemed already dead, he lay
|
|
so still. He took the helmet off, and then, with greater difficulty,
|
|
the cuirass; the heart he found fluttering. He took hope at the
|
|
sign, and held on. There was nothing to do but wait, and, after the
|
|
manner of his people, pray.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
ARRIUS ADOPTS BEN-HUR.
|
|
|
|
THE throes of recovery from drowning are more painful than the
|
|
drowning. These Arrius passed through, and, at length, to Ben-Hur's
|
|
delight, reached the point of speech.
|
|
|
|
Gradually, from incoherent questions as to where he was, and by whom
|
|
and how he had been saved, he reverted to the battle. The doubt of the
|
|
victory stimulated his faculties to full return, a result aided not
|
|
a little by a long rest- such as could be had on their frail
|
|
support. After a while he became talkative.
|
|
|
|
"Our rescue, I see, depends upon the result of the fight. I see also
|
|
what thou hast done for me. To speak fairly, thou hast saved my life
|
|
at the risk of thy own. I make the acknowledgment broadly; and,
|
|
whatever cometh, thou hast my thanks. More than that, if fortune
|
|
doth but serve me kindly, and we get well out of this peril, I will do
|
|
thee such favour as becometh a Roman who hath power and opportunity to
|
|
prove his gratitude. Yet, yet it is to be seen if, with thy good
|
|
intent, thou hast really done me a kindness; or, rather, speaking to
|
|
thy good-will"- he hesitated- "I would exact of thee a promise to do
|
|
me, in a certain event, the greatest favour one man can do another-
|
|
and of that let me have thy pledge now."
|
|
|
|
"If the thing be not forbidden, I will do it," Ben-Hur replied.
|
|
|
|
Arrius rested again.
|
|
|
|
"Art thou, indeed, a son of Hur, the Jew?" he next asked.
|
|
|
|
"It is as I have said."
|
|
|
|
"I knew thy father- "
|
|
|
|
Judah drew himself nearer, for the tribune's voice was weak- he drew
|
|
nearer, and listened eagerly- at last he thought to hear of home.
|
|
|
|
"I knew him, and loved him," Arrius continued.
|
|
|
|
There was another pause, during which something diverted the
|
|
speaker's thought.
|
|
|
|
"It cannot be," he proceeded, "that thou, a son of his, hast not
|
|
heard of Cato and Brutus. They were very great men, and never as great
|
|
as in death. In their dying, they left this law- A Roman may not
|
|
survive his good fortune. Art thou listening?"
|
|
|
|
"I hear."
|
|
|
|
"It is a custom of gentlemen in Rome to wear a ring. There is one on
|
|
my hand. Take it now."
|
|
|
|
He held the hand to Judah, who did as he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Now put it on thine own hand."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur did so.
|
|
|
|
"The trinket hath its uses," said Arrius next. "I have property
|
|
and money. I am accounted rich even in Rome. I have no family. Show
|
|
the ring to my freedman who hath control in my absence; you will
|
|
find him in a villa near Misenum. Tell him how it came to thee, and
|
|
ask anything, or all he may have; he will not refuse the demand. If
|
|
I live, I will do better by thee. I will make thee free, and restore
|
|
thee to thy home and people; or thou mayst give thyself to the pursuit
|
|
that pleaseth thee most. Dost thou hear?"
|
|
|
|
"I could not choose but hear."
|
|
|
|
"Then pledge me. By the gods- "
|
|
|
|
"Nay, good tribune, I am a Jew."
|
|
|
|
"By thy God, then, or in the form most sacred to those of thy faith-
|
|
pledge me to do what I tell thee now, and as I tell thee; I am
|
|
waiting, let me have thy promise."
|
|
|
|
"Noble Arrius, I am warned by thy manner to expect something of
|
|
gravest concern. Tell me thy wish first."
|
|
|
|
"Wilt thou promise, then?"
|
|
|
|
"That were to give the pledge, and- Blessed be the God of my
|
|
fathers! yonder cometh a ship!"
|
|
|
|
"In what direction?"- "From the north."- "Canst thou tell her
|
|
nationality by outward signs?"- "No. My service hath been at the
|
|
oars."- "Hath she a flag?"- "I cannot see one."
|
|
|
|
Arrius remained quiet some time, apparently in deep reflection.
|
|
|
|
"Does the ship hold this way yet?" he at length asked.- "Still
|
|
this way."- "Look for the flag now."- "She hath none."- "Nor any other
|
|
sign?"
|
|
|
|
"She hath a sail set, and is of three banks, and cometh swiftly-
|
|
that is all I can say of her."
|
|
|
|
"A Roman in triumph would have out many flags. She must be an enemy.
|
|
Hear, now," said Arrius, becoming grave again, "hear, while yet I
|
|
may speak. If the galley be a pirate, thy life is safe; they may not
|
|
give thee freedom; they may put thee to the oar again; but they will
|
|
not kill thee. On the other hand, I- "
|
|
|
|
The tribune faltered.
|
|
|
|
"Perpol!" he continued, resolutely. "I am too old to submit to
|
|
dishonour. In Rome let them tell how Quintus Arrius, as became a Roman
|
|
tribune, went down with his ship in the midst of the foe. This is what
|
|
I would have thee do. If the galley prove a pirate, push me from the
|
|
plank and drown me. Dost thou hear? Swear thou wilt do it."
|
|
|
|
"I will not swear," said Ben-Hur, firmly; "neither will I do the
|
|
deed. The Law, which is to me most binding, O tribune, would make me
|
|
answerable for thy life. Take back the ring"- he took the seal from
|
|
his finger- "take it back, and all thy promises of favour in the event
|
|
of delivery from this peril. The judgment which sent me to the oar for
|
|
life made me a slave, yet I am not a slave; no more am I thy freedman.
|
|
I am a son of Israel, and this moment, at least, my own master. Take
|
|
back the ring."
|
|
|
|
Arrius remained passive.
|
|
|
|
"Thou wilt not?" Judah continued. "Not in anger, then, nor in any
|
|
despite, but to free myself from a hateful obligation, I will give thy
|
|
gift to the sea. See, O tribune!"
|
|
|
|
He tossed the ring away. Arrius heard the splash where it struck and
|
|
sank, though he did not look.
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast done a foolish thing," he said- "foolish for one placed
|
|
as thou art. I am not dependent upon thee for death. Life is a
|
|
thread I can break without thy help; and, if I do, what will become of
|
|
thee? Men determined on death prefer it at the hands of others, for
|
|
the reason that the soul which Plato giveth us is rebellious at the
|
|
thought of self-destruction; that is all. If the ship be a pirate, I
|
|
will escape from the world. My mind is fixed. I am a Roman. Success
|
|
and honour are all in all. Yet I would have served thee; thou
|
|
wouldst not. The ring was the only witness of my will available in
|
|
this situation. We are both lost. I will die regretting the victory
|
|
and glory wrested from me; thou wilt live to die a little later,
|
|
mourning the pious duties undone because of this folly. I pity thee."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur saw the consequences of his act more distinctly than before,
|
|
yet he did not falter.
|
|
|
|
"In the three years of my servitude, O tribune, thou wert the
|
|
first to look upon me kindly. No, no! There was another." The voice
|
|
dropped, the eyes became humid, and he saw plainly, as if it were then
|
|
before him, the face of the boy who helped him to a drink by the old
|
|
well at Nazareth. "At least," he proceeded, "thou wert the first to
|
|
ask me who I was; and if, when I reached out and caught thee, blind
|
|
and sinking the last time, I, too, had thought of the many ways in
|
|
which thou couldst be useful to me in my wretchedness, still the act
|
|
was not all selfish; this I pray you to believe. Moreover, seeing as
|
|
God giveth me to now, the ends I dream of are to be wrought by fair
|
|
means alone. As a thing of conscience I would rather die with thee
|
|
than be thy slayer. My mind is firmly set as thine; though thou wert
|
|
to offer me all Rome, O tribune, and it belonged to thee to make the
|
|
gift good, I would not kill thee. Thy Cato and Brutus were as little
|
|
children compared to the Hebrew whose law a Jew must obey."
|
|
|
|
"But my request. Hast- "
|
|
|
|
"Thy command would be of more weight, and that would not move me.
|
|
I have said."
|
|
|
|
Both became silent, waiting.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked often at the coming ship. Arrius rested with closed
|
|
eyes, indifferent.
|
|
|
|
"Art thou sure she is an enemy?" Ben-Hur asked.- "I think so," was
|
|
the reply.- "She stops, and puts a boat over the side."- "Dost thou
|
|
see her flag?" "Is there no other sign by which she may be known if
|
|
Roman?"- "If Roman, she hath a helmet over the mast's top."- "Then
|
|
be of cheer. I see the helmet."
|
|
|
|
Still Arrius was not assured.
|
|
|
|
"The men in the small boat are taking in the people afloat.
|
|
Pirates are not humane."
|
|
|
|
"They may need rowers," Arrius replied, recurring, possibly, to
|
|
times when he had made rescues for the purpose.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur was very watchful of the actions of the strangers.
|
|
|
|
"The ship moves off," he said.
|
|
|
|
"Whither?"
|
|
|
|
"Over on our right there is a galley which I take to be deserted.
|
|
The new-comer heads towards it. Now she is alongside. Now she is
|
|
sending men aboard."
|
|
|
|
Then Arrius opened his eyes and threw off his calm.
|
|
|
|
"Thank thou thy God," he said to Ben-Hur, after a look at the
|
|
galleys, "thank thou thy God, as I do my many gods. A pirate would
|
|
sink, not save, yon ship. By the act and the helmet on the mast I know
|
|
a Roman. The victory is mine. Fortune hath not deserted me. We are
|
|
saved. Wave thy hand- call to them- bring them quickly. I shall be
|
|
duumvir, and thou! I knew thy father, and loved him. He was a prince
|
|
indeed. He taught me a Jew was not a barbarian. I will take thee
|
|
with me. I will make thee my son. Give thy God thanks, and call the
|
|
sailors. Haste! The pursuit must be kept. Not a robber shall escape.
|
|
Hasten them!"
|
|
|
|
Judah raised himself upon the plank, and waved his hand, and
|
|
called with all his might; at last he drew the attention of the
|
|
sailors in the small boat, and they were speedily taken up.
|
|
|
|
Arrius was received on the galley with all the honours due a hero so
|
|
the favourite of Fortune. Upon a couch on the deck he heard the
|
|
particulars of the conclusion of the fight. When the survivors
|
|
afloat upon the water were all saved and the prize secured, he
|
|
spread his flag of commandant anew, and hurried northward to rejoin
|
|
the fleet and perfect the victory. In due time the fifty vessels
|
|
coming down the channel closed in upon the fugitive pirates, and
|
|
crushed them utterly; not one escaped. To swell the tribune's glory,
|
|
twenty galleys of the enemy were captured.
|
|
|
|
Upon his return from the cruise, Arrius had warm welcome on the mole
|
|
at Misenum. The young man attending him very early attracted the
|
|
attention of his friends there; and to their questions as to who he
|
|
was the tribune proceeded in the most affectionate manner to tell
|
|
the story of his rescue and introduce the stranger, omitting carefully
|
|
all that pertained to the latter's previous history. At the end of the
|
|
narrative, he called Ben-Hur to him, and said, with a hand resting
|
|
affectionately upon his shoulder-
|
|
|
|
"Good friends, this is my son and heir, who, as he is to take my
|
|
property- if it be the will of the gods that I leave any- shall be
|
|
known to you by my name. I pray you all to love him as you love me."
|
|
|
|
Speedily as opportunity permitted, the adoption was formally
|
|
perfected. And in such manner the brave Roman kept his faith with
|
|
Ben-Hur, giving him happy introduction into the imperial world. The
|
|
month succeeding Arrius's return the armilustrium was celebrated
|
|
with the utmost magnificence in the theatre at Scaurus. One side of
|
|
the structure was taken up with military trophies; among which by
|
|
far the most conspicuous and most admired were twenty prows,
|
|
complemented by their corresponding aplustra, cut bodily from as
|
|
many galleys; and over them, so as to be legible to the eighty
|
|
thousand spectators in the seats, was this inscription:-
|
|
|
|
TAKEN FROM THE PIRATES IN THE GULF OF EURIPUS,
|
|
|
|
BY
|
|
|
|
QUINTUS ARRIUS,
|
|
|
|
DUUMVIR.
|
|
|
|
BOOK FOURTH.
|
|
|
|
"Alva. Should the monarch prove unjust-
|
|
|
|
And, at this time-
|
|
|
|
"Queen. Then I must wait for justice
|
|
|
|
Until it come; and they are happiest far
|
|
|
|
Whose consciences may calmly wait their right."
|
|
|
|
-SCHILLER, Don Carlos (act iv. sc. 15).
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR RETURNS EAST.
|
|
|
|
THE month to which we now come is July, the year that of our Lord
|
|
23, and the place Antioch, then Queen of the East, and next to Rome
|
|
the strongest, if not the most populous, city in the world.
|
|
|
|
There is an opinion that the extravagance and dissoluteness of the
|
|
age had their origin in Rome, and spread thence throughout the empire;
|
|
that the great cities but reflected the manners of their mistress on
|
|
the Tiber. This may be doubted. The reaction of the conquest would
|
|
seem to have been upon the morals of the conqueror. In Greece she
|
|
found a spring of corruption; so also in Egypt; and the student,
|
|
having exhausted the subject, will close the books assured that the
|
|
flow of the demoralizing river was from the East westwardly, and
|
|
that this very city of Antioch, one of the oldest seats of Assyrian
|
|
power and splendour, was a principal source of the deadly stream.
|
|
|
|
A transport galley entered the mouth of the river Orontes from the
|
|
blue waters of the sea. It was in the forenoon. The heat was great,
|
|
yet all on board who could avail themselves of the privilege were on
|
|
deck- Ben-Hur among others.
|
|
|
|
The five years had brought the young Jew to perfect manhood.
|
|
Though the robe of white linen in which he was attired somewhat masked
|
|
his form, his appearance was unusually attractive. For an hour and
|
|
more he had occupied a seat in the shade of the sail, and in that time
|
|
several fellow-passengers of his own nationality had tried to engage
|
|
him in conversation, but without avail. His replies to their questions
|
|
had been brief, though gravely courteous, and in the Latin tongue. The
|
|
purity of his speech, his cultivated manners, his reticence, served to
|
|
stimulate their curiosity the more. Such as observed him closely
|
|
were struck by an incongruity between his demeanour, which had the
|
|
ease and grace of a patrician, and certain points of his person. Thus,
|
|
his arms were disproportionately long; and when, to steady himself
|
|
against the motion of the vessel, he took hold of anything near by,
|
|
the size of his hands and their evident power compelled remark; so the
|
|
wonder who and what he was mixed continually with a wish to know the
|
|
particulars of his life. In other words, his air cannot be better
|
|
described than as a notice- This man has a story to tell.
|
|
|
|
The galley, in coming, had stopped at one of the ports of Cyprus,
|
|
and picked up a Hebrew of most respectable appearance, quiet,
|
|
reserved, paternal. Ben-Hur ventured to ask him some questions; the
|
|
replies won his confidence, and resulted finally in an extended
|
|
conversation.
|
|
|
|
It chanced also that as the galley from Cyprus entered the receiving
|
|
bay of the Orontes, two other vessels which had been sighted out in
|
|
the sea met it and passed into the river at the same time; and as they
|
|
did so both the strangers threw out small flags of brightest yellow.
|
|
There was much conjecture as to the meaning of the signals. At
|
|
length a passenger addressed himself to the respectable Hebrew for
|
|
information upon the subject.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I know the meaning of the flags," he replied; "they do not
|
|
signify nationality- they are merely marks of ownership."
|
|
|
|
"Has the owner many ships?"
|
|
|
|
"He has."
|
|
|
|
"You know him?"
|
|
|
|
"I have dealt with him."
|
|
|
|
The passengers looked at the speaker as if requesting him to go
|
|
on. Ben-Hur listened with interest.
|
|
|
|
"He lives in Antioch," the Hebrew continued, in his quiet way. "That
|
|
he is vastly rich has brought him into notice, and the talk about
|
|
him is not always kind. There used to be in Jerusalem a prince of a
|
|
very ancient family named Hur."
|
|
|
|
Judah strove to be composed, yet his heart beat quicker.
|
|
|
|
"The prince was a merchant with a genius for business. He set on
|
|
foot many enterprises, some reaching far East, others West. In the
|
|
great cities he had branch houses. The one in Antioch was in charge of
|
|
a man said by some to have been a family servant called Simonides,
|
|
Greek in name, yet an Israelite. The master was drowned at sea. His
|
|
business, however, went on, and was scarcely less prosperous. After
|
|
a while misfortune overtook the family. The prince's only son,
|
|
nearly grown, tried to kill the procurator Gratus in one of the
|
|
streets of Jerusalem. He failed by a narrow chance, and has not
|
|
since been heard of. In fact, the Roman's rage took in the whole
|
|
house- not one of the name was left alive. Their palace was sealed up,
|
|
and is now a rookery for pigeons; the estate was confiscated;
|
|
everything that could be traced to the ownership of the Hurs was
|
|
confiscated. The procurator cured his hurt with a golden salve."
|
|
|
|
The passengers laughed.
|
|
|
|
"You mean he kept the property," said one of them.
|
|
|
|
"They say so," the Hebrew replied; "I am only telling a story as I
|
|
received it. And, to go on, Simonides, who had been the prince's agent
|
|
here in Antioch, opened trade in a short time on his own account,
|
|
and in a space incredibly brief became the master merchant of the
|
|
city. In imitation of his master, he sent caravans to India; and on
|
|
the sea at present he has galleys enough to make a royal fleet. They
|
|
say nothing goes amiss with him. His camels do not die, except of
|
|
old age; his ships never founder; if he throw a chip into the river,
|
|
it will come back to him gold."
|
|
|
|
"How long has he been going on thus?"
|
|
|
|
"Not ten years."
|
|
|
|
"He must have had a good start."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, they say the procurator took only the prince's property
|
|
ready at hand- his horses, cattle, houses, land, vessels, goods. The
|
|
money could not be found, though there must have been vast sums of it.
|
|
What became of it has been an unsolved mystery."
|
|
|
|
"Not to me," said a passenger, with a sneer.
|
|
|
|
"I understand you," the Hebrew answered. "Others have had your idea.
|
|
That it furnished old Simonides his start is a common belief. The
|
|
procurator is of that opinion- or he has been- for twice in five years
|
|
he has caught the merchant, and put him to torture."
|
|
|
|
Judah griped the rope he was holding with crushing force.
|
|
|
|
"It is said," the narrator continued, "that there is not a sound
|
|
bone in the man's body. The last time I saw him he sat in a chair, a
|
|
shapeless cripple, propped against cushions."
|
|
|
|
"So tortured!" exclaimed several listeners in a breath.
|
|
|
|
"Disease could not have produced such a deformity. Still the
|
|
suffering made no impression upon him. All he had was his lawfully,
|
|
and he was making lawful use of it- that was the most they wrung
|
|
from him. Now, however, he is past persecution. He has a license to
|
|
trade signed by Tiberius himself."
|
|
|
|
"He paid roundly for it, I warrant."
|
|
|
|
"These ships are his," the Hebrew continued, passing the remark. "It
|
|
is a custom among his sailors to salute each other upon meeting by
|
|
throwing out yellow flags, sight of which is as much as to say, 'We
|
|
have had a fortunate voyage.'"
|
|
|
|
The story ended there.
|
|
|
|
When the transport was fairly in the channel of the river, Judah
|
|
spoke to the Hebrew.
|
|
|
|
"What was the name of the merchant's master?"
|
|
|
|
"Ben-Hur, Prince of Jerusalem."
|
|
|
|
"What became of the prince's family?"
|
|
|
|
"The boy was sent to the galleys. I may say he is dead. One year
|
|
is the ordinary limit of life under that sentence. The widow and
|
|
daughter have not been heard of; those who know what became of them
|
|
will not speak. They died, doubtless, in the cells of one of the
|
|
castles which spot the waysides of Judea."
|
|
|
|
Judah walked to the pilot's quarter. So absorbed was he in thought
|
|
that he scarcely noticed the shores of the river, which from sea to
|
|
city were surpassingly beautiful with orchards of all the Syrian
|
|
fruits and vines, clustered about villas rich as those of Neapolis. No
|
|
more did he observe the vessels passing in an endless fleet, nor
|
|
hear the singing and shouting of the sailors, some in labour, some
|
|
in merriment. The sky was full of sunlight, lying in hazy warmth
|
|
upon the land and the water; nowhere except over his life was there
|
|
a shadow.
|
|
|
|
Once only he awoke to a momentary interest, and that was when some
|
|
one pointed out the Grove of Daphne, discernible from a bend in the
|
|
river.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
ON THE ORONTES.
|
|
|
|
WHEN the city came into view, the passengers were on deck, eager
|
|
that nothing of the scene might escape them. The respectable Jew
|
|
already introduced to the reader was the principal spokesman.
|
|
|
|
"The river here runs to the west," he said, in the way of general
|
|
answer. "I remember when it washed the base of the walls; but as Roman
|
|
subjects we have lived in peace, and, as always happens in such times,
|
|
trade has had its will; now the whole river front is taken up with
|
|
wharves and docks. Yonder"- the speaker pointed southward- "is Mount
|
|
Casius, or, as these people love to call it, the Mountains of Orontes,
|
|
looking across to its brother Amnus in the north; and between them
|
|
lies the Plain of Antioch. Farther on are the Black Mountains,
|
|
whence the Ducts of the Kings bring the purest water to wash the
|
|
thirsty streets and people; yet they are forests in wilderness
|
|
state, dense, and full of birds and beasts."
|
|
|
|
"Where is the lake?" one asked.
|
|
|
|
"Over north there. You can take horse, if you wish to see it- or,
|
|
better, a boat, for a tributary connects it with the river."
|
|
|
|
"The Grove of Daphne!" he said, to a third inquirer. "Nobody can
|
|
describe it; only beware! It was begun by Apollo, and completed by
|
|
him. He prefers it to Olympus. People go there for one look- just one-
|
|
and never come away. They have a saying which tells it all- 'Better be
|
|
a worm and feed on the mulberries of Daphne than a king's guest.'"
|
|
|
|
"Then you advise me to stay away from it?"
|
|
|
|
"Not I! Go you will. Everybody goes, cynic philosopher, virile
|
|
boy, women, and priests- all go. So sure am I of what you will do that
|
|
I assume to advise you. Do not take quarters in the city- that will be
|
|
loss of time; but go at once to the village in the edge of the
|
|
grove. The way is through a garden, under the spray of fountains.
|
|
The lovers of the god and his Penaean maid built the town; and in
|
|
its porticos and paths and thousand retreats you will find
|
|
characters and habits and sweets and kinds elsewhere impossible. But
|
|
the wall of the city! there it is, the masterpiece of Xeraeus, the
|
|
master of mural architecture."
|
|
|
|
All eyes followed his pointing finger.
|
|
|
|
"This part was raised by order of the first of the Seleucidae. Three
|
|
hundred years have made it part of the rock it rests upon."
|
|
|
|
The defence justified the encomium. High, solid, and with many
|
|
bold angles, it curved southwardly out of view.
|
|
|
|
"On the top there are four hundred towers, each a reservoir of
|
|
water," the Hebrew continued. "Look now! Over the wall, tall as it is,
|
|
see in the distance two hills, which you may know as the rival
|
|
crests of Sulpius. The structure on the farthest one is the citadel,
|
|
garrisoned all the year round by a Roman legion. Opposite it this
|
|
way rises the Temple of Jupiter, and under that the front of the
|
|
legate's residence- a palace full of offices, and yet a fortress
|
|
against which a mob would dash harmlessly as a south wind."
|
|
|
|
At this point the sailors began taking in sail, whereupon the Hebrew
|
|
exclaimed, heartily, "See! you who hate the sea, and you who have
|
|
vows, get ready your curses and your prayers. The bridge yonder,
|
|
over which the road to Seleucia is carried, marks the limit of
|
|
navigation. What the ship unloads for further transit, the camel takes
|
|
up there. Above the bridge begins the island upon which Calinicus
|
|
built his new city, connecting it with five great viaducts so solid
|
|
time has made no impression upon them, nor floods nor earthquakes.
|
|
Of the main town, my friends, I have only to say you will be happier
|
|
all your lives for having seen it."
|
|
|
|
As he concluded, the ship turned and made slowly for her wharf under
|
|
the wall, bringing even more fairly to view the life with which the
|
|
river at that point was possessed. Finally, the lines were thrown, the
|
|
oars shipped, and the voyage was done. Then Ben-Hur sought the
|
|
respectable Hebrew.
|
|
|
|
"Let me trouble you a moment before saying farewell."
|
|
|
|
The man bowed assent.
|
|
|
|
"Your story of the merchant has made me curious to see him. You
|
|
called him Simonides?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. He is a Jew with a Greek name."
|
|
|
|
"Where is he to be found?"
|
|
|
|
The acquaintance gave a sharp look before he answered-
|
|
|
|
"I may save you mortification. He is not a money-lender."
|
|
|
|
"Nor am I a money-borrower," said Ben-Hur, smiling at the other's
|
|
shrewdness.
|
|
|
|
The man raised his head and considered an instant.
|
|
|
|
"One would think," he then replied, "that the richest merchant in
|
|
Antioch would have a house for business corresponding to his wealth;
|
|
but if you would find him in the day, follow the river to yon
|
|
bridge, under which he quarters in a building that looks like a
|
|
buttress of the wall. Before the door there is an immense landing,
|
|
always covered with cargoes come and to go. The fleet that lies moored
|
|
there is his. You cannot fail to find him."
|
|
|
|
"I give you thanks."
|
|
|
|
"The peace of our fathers go with you."
|
|
|
|
"And with you."
|
|
|
|
With that they separated.
|
|
|
|
Two street-porters, loaded with his baggage, received Ben-Hur's
|
|
orders upon the wharf.
|
|
|
|
"To the citadel," he said; a direction which implied an official
|
|
military connection.
|
|
|
|
Two great streets, cutting each other at right angles, divided the
|
|
city into quarters. A curious and immense structure, called the
|
|
Nymphaeum, arose at the foot of the one running north and south.
|
|
When the porters turned south there, the new-comer, though fresh
|
|
from Rome, was amazed at the magnificence of the avenue. On the
|
|
right and left there were palaces, and between them extended
|
|
indefinitely double colonnades of marble, leaving separate ways for
|
|
footmen, beasts, and chariots; the whole under shade, and cooled by
|
|
fountains of incessant flow.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur was not in mood to enjoy the spectacle. The story of
|
|
Simonides haunted him. Arrived at the Omphalus- a monument of four
|
|
arches wide as the streets, superbly illustrated, and erected to
|
|
himself by Epiphanes, the eighth of the Seleucidae- he suddenly
|
|
changed his mind.
|
|
|
|
"I will not go to the citadel to-night," he said to the porters.
|
|
"Take me to the khan nearest the bridge on the road to Seleucia."
|
|
|
|
The party faced about, and in good time he was deposited in a public
|
|
house of primitive but ample construction, within stone's-throw of the
|
|
bridge under which old Simonides had his quarters. He lay upon the
|
|
house-top through the night. In his inner mind lived the thought,
|
|
"Now- now I will hear of home- and mother- and the dear little Tirzah.
|
|
If they are on earth, I will find them."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
THE DEMAND ON SIMONIDES.
|
|
|
|
NEXT day early, to the neglect of the city, Ben-Hur sought the house
|
|
of Simonides. Through an embattled gateway he passed to a continuity
|
|
of wharves; thence up the river midst a busy press, to the Seleucian
|
|
Bridge, under which he paused to take in the scene.
|
|
|
|
There, directly under the bridge, was the merchant's house, a mass
|
|
of grey stone, unhewn, referrible to no style, looking, as the voyager
|
|
had described it, like a buttress of the wall against which it leaned.
|
|
Two immense doors in front communicated with the wharf. Some holes
|
|
near the top, heavily barred, served as windows. Weeds waved from
|
|
the crevices, and in places black moss splotched the otherwise bald
|
|
stones.
|
|
|
|
The doors were open. Through one of them business went in; through
|
|
the other it came out; and there was hurry, hurry in all its
|
|
movements.
|
|
|
|
On the wharf there were piles of goods in every kind of package, and
|
|
groups of slaves, stripped to the waist, going about in the abandon of
|
|
labour.
|
|
|
|
Below the bridge lay a fleet of galleys, some loading, others
|
|
unloading. A yellow flag blew out from each mast-head. From fleet
|
|
and wharf, and from ship to ship, the bondmen of traffic passed in
|
|
clamorous counter-currents.
|
|
|
|
Above the bridge, across the river, a wall rose from the water's
|
|
edge, over which towered the fanciful cornices and turrets of an
|
|
imperial palace, covering every foot of the island spoken of in the
|
|
Hebrew's description. But, with all its suggestions, Ben-Hur
|
|
scarcely noticed it. Now, at last, he thought to hear of his people-
|
|
this certainly, if Simonides had indeed been his father's slave. But
|
|
would the man acknowledge the relation? That would be to give up his
|
|
riches and the sovereignty of trade so royally witnessed on the
|
|
wharf and river. And what was of still greater consequence to the
|
|
merchant, it would be to forego his career in the midst of amazing
|
|
success, and yield himself voluntarily once more a slave. Simple
|
|
thought of the demand seemed a monstrous audacity. Stripped of
|
|
diplomatic address, it was to say, You are my slave; give me all you
|
|
have, and- yourself.
|
|
|
|
Yet Ben-Hur derived strength for the interview from faith in his
|
|
rights and the hope uppermost in his heart. If the story to which he
|
|
was yielding were true, Simonides belonged to him, with all he had.
|
|
For the wealth, be it said in justice, he cared nothing. When he
|
|
started to the door determined in mind, it was with a promise to
|
|
himself- "Let him tell me of mother and Tirzah, and I will give him
|
|
his freedom without account."
|
|
|
|
He passed boldly into the house.
|
|
|
|
The interior was that of a vast depot where, in ordered spaces,
|
|
and under careful arrangement, goods of every kind were heaped and
|
|
pent. Though the light was murky and the air stifling, men moved about
|
|
briskly; and in places he saw workmen with saws and hammers making
|
|
packages for shipments. Down a path between the piles he walked
|
|
slowly, wondering if the man of whose genius there were here such
|
|
abounding proofs could have been his father's slave? If so, to what
|
|
class had he belonged? If a Jew, was he the son of a servant? Or was
|
|
he a debtor or a debtor's son? Or had he been sentenced and sold for
|
|
theft? These thoughts, as they passed, in nowise disturbed the growing
|
|
respect for the merchant of which he was each instant more and more
|
|
conscious. A peculiarity of our admiration for another is that it is
|
|
always looking for circumstances to justify itself.
|
|
|
|
At length a man approached and spoke to him.
|
|
|
|
"What would you have?"
|
|
|
|
"I would see Simonides, the merchant."
|
|
|
|
"Will you come this way?"
|
|
|
|
By a number of paths left in the stowage, they finally came to a
|
|
flight of steps; ascending which, he found himself on the roof of
|
|
the depot, and in front of a structure which cannot be better
|
|
described than as a lesser stone house built upon another, invisible
|
|
from the landing below, and out west of the bridge under the open sky.
|
|
The roof, hemmed in by a low wall, seemed like a terrace, which, to
|
|
his astonishment, was brilliant with flowers; in the rich surrounding,
|
|
the house sat squat- a plain square block, unbroken except by a
|
|
doorway in front. A dustless path led to the door, through a bordering
|
|
of shrubs of Persian rose in perfect bloom. Breathing a sweet
|
|
attar-perfume, he followed the guide.
|
|
|
|
At the end of a darkened passage within, they stopped before a
|
|
curtain half parted. The man called out,
|
|
|
|
"A stranger to see the master."
|
|
|
|
A clear voice replied, "In God's name, let him enter."
|
|
|
|
A Roman might have called the apartment into which the visitor was
|
|
ushered his atrium. The walls were panelled; each panel was
|
|
comparted like a modern office-desk, and each compartment crowded with
|
|
labelled folios all filemot with age and use. Between the panels,
|
|
and above and below them, were borders of wood once white, now
|
|
tinted like cream, and carved with marvellous intricacy of design.
|
|
Above a cornice of gilded balls, the ceiling rose in pavilion style
|
|
until it broke into a shallow dome set with hundreds of panes of
|
|
violet mica, permitting a flood of light deliciously reposeful. The
|
|
floor was carpeted with grey rugs so thick that an invading foot
|
|
fell half buried and soundless.
|
|
|
|
In the midlight of the room were two persons- a man resting in a
|
|
chair high-backed, broad-armed, and lined with pliant cushions; and at
|
|
his left, leaning against the back of the chair, a girl well forward
|
|
into womanhood. At sight of them Ben-Hur felt the blood redden his
|
|
forehead; bowing, as much to recover himself as in respect, he lost
|
|
the lifting of the hands, and the shiver and shrink with which the
|
|
sitter caught sight of him- an emotion as swift to go as it had been
|
|
to come. When he raised his eyes the two were in the same position,
|
|
except the girl's hand had fallen and was resting lightly upon the
|
|
elder's shoulder; both of them were regarding him fixedly.
|
|
|
|
"If you are Simonides, the merchant, and a Jew"- Ben-Hur stopped
|
|
an instant- "then the peace of the God of our father Abraham upon
|
|
you and- yours."
|
|
|
|
The last word was addressed to the girl.
|
|
|
|
"I am the Simonides of whom you speak, by birthright a Jew," the man
|
|
made answer, in a voice singularly clear. "I am Simonides, and a
|
|
Jew; and I return you your salutation, with prayer to know who calls
|
|
upon me."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked as he listened, and where the figure of the man
|
|
should have been in healthful roundness, there was only a formless
|
|
heap sunk in the depths of the cushions, and covered by a quilted robe
|
|
of sombre silk. Over the heap shone a head royally proportioned- the
|
|
ideal head of a statesman and conqueror- a head broad of base and
|
|
dome-like in front, such as Angelo would have modelled for Caesar.
|
|
White hair dropped in thin locks over the white brows, deepening the
|
|
blackness of the eyes shining through them like sullen lights. The
|
|
face was bloodless, and much puffed with folds, especially under the
|
|
chin. In other words, the head and face were those of a man who
|
|
might move the world more readily than the world could move him- a man
|
|
to be twice twelve times tortured into the shapeless cripple he was,
|
|
without a groan, much less a confession; a man to yield his life,
|
|
but never a purpose or a point; a man born in armour, and assailable
|
|
only through his loves. To him Ben-Hur stretched his hands, open and
|
|
palm up, as he would offer peace at the same time he asked it.
|
|
|
|
"I am Judah, son of Ithamar, late head of the House of Hur, and a
|
|
prince of Jerusalem."
|
|
|
|
The merchant's right hand lay outside the robe- a long, thin hand,
|
|
articulate to deformity with suffering. It closed tightly; otherwise
|
|
there was not the slightest expression of feeling of any kind on his
|
|
part; nothing to warrant an inference of surprise or interest; nothing
|
|
but this calm answer-
|
|
|
|
"The princes of Jerusalem, of the pure blood, are always welcome
|
|
in my house; you are welcome. Give the young man a seat, Esther."
|
|
|
|
The girl took an ottoman near by, and carried it to Ben-Hur. As
|
|
she arose from placing the seat, their eyes met.
|
|
|
|
"The peace of our Lord with you," she said, modestly. "Be seated and
|
|
at rest."
|
|
|
|
When she resumed her place by the chair, she had not divined his
|
|
purpose. The powers of woman go not so far: if the matter is of
|
|
finer feeling, such as pity, mercy, sympathy, that she detects; and
|
|
therein is a difference between her and man which will endure as
|
|
long as she remains, by nature, alive to such feelings. She was simply
|
|
sure he brought some wound of life for healing.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur did not take the offered seat, but said, deferentially, "I
|
|
pray the good master Simonides that he will not hold me an intruder.
|
|
Coming up the river yesterday, I heard he knew my father."
|
|
|
|
"I knew the Prince Hur. We were associated in some enterprises
|
|
lawful to merchants who find profit in lands beyond the sea and the
|
|
desert. But sit, I pray you- and, Esther, some wine for the young man.
|
|
Nehemiah speaks of a son of Hur who once ruled the half part of
|
|
Jerusalem; an old house; very old, by the faith! In the days of
|
|
Moses and Joshua even some of them found favour in the sight of the
|
|
Lord, and divided honours with those princes among men. It can
|
|
hardly be that their descendant, lineally come to us, will refuse a
|
|
cup of wine-fat of the genuine vine of Sorek, grown on the south
|
|
hillsides of Hebron."
|
|
|
|
By the time of the conclusion of this speech, Esther was before
|
|
Ben-Hur with a silver cup filled from a vase upon a table a little
|
|
removed from the chair. She offered the drink with downcast face. He
|
|
touched her hand gently to put it away. Again their eyes met;
|
|
whereat he noticed that she was small, not nearly to his shoulder in
|
|
height; but very graceful, and fair and sweet of face, with eyes black
|
|
and inexpressibly soft. She is kind and pretty, he thought, and
|
|
looks as Tirzah would were she living. Poor Tirzah! Then he said
|
|
aloud,
|
|
|
|
"No, thy father- if he is thy father?" he paused.
|
|
|
|
"I am Esther, the daughter of Simonides," she said, with dignity.
|
|
|
|
"Then, fair Esther, thy father, when he has heard my further speech,
|
|
will not think worse of me if yet I am slow to take his wine of famous
|
|
extract; nor less I hope not to lose grace in thy sight. Stand thou
|
|
here with me a moment!"
|
|
|
|
Both of them, as in common cause, turned to the merchant.
|
|
"Simonides!" he said, firmly, "my father, at his death, had a
|
|
trusted servant of thy name, and it has been told me that thou art the
|
|
man!"
|
|
|
|
There was a sudden start of the wrenched limbs under the robe, and
|
|
the thin hand clenched.
|
|
|
|
"Esther, Esther!" the man called, sternly; "here, not there, as thou
|
|
art thy mother's child and mine- here, not there, I say!"
|
|
|
|
The girl looked once from father to visitor; then she replaced the
|
|
cup upon the table, and went dutifully to the chair. Her countenance
|
|
sufficiently expressed her wonder and alarm.
|
|
|
|
Simonides lifted his left hand, and gave it into hers, lying
|
|
lovingly upon his shoulder, and said, dispassionately, "I have grown
|
|
old in dealing with men- old before my time. If he who told thee
|
|
that whereof thou speakest was a friend acquainted with my history,
|
|
and spoke of it not harshly, he must have persuaded thee that I
|
|
could not be else than a man distrustful of my kind. The God of Israel
|
|
help him who, at the end of life, is constrained to acknowledge so
|
|
much! My loves are few, but they are. One of them is a soul which"- he
|
|
carried the hand holding his to his lips, in manner unmistakable- "a
|
|
soul which to this time has been unselfishly mine, and such sweet
|
|
comfort that, were it taken from me, I would die."
|
|
|
|
Esther's head drooped until her cheek touched his.
|
|
|
|
"The other love is but a memory; of which I will say further that,
|
|
like a benison of the Lord, it hath a compass to contain a whole
|
|
family, if only"- his voice lowered and trembled- "if only I knew
|
|
where they were."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur's face suffused, and, advancing a step, he cried,
|
|
impulsively, "My mother and sister! Oh, it is of them you speak!"
|
|
|
|
Esther, as if spoken to, raised her head; but Simonides returned
|
|
to his calm, and answered, coldly, "Hear me to the end. Because I am
|
|
that I am, and because of the loves of which I have spoken, before I
|
|
make return to thy demand touching my relations to the Prince Hur, and
|
|
as something which of right should come first, do thou show me
|
|
proofs of who thou art. Is thy witness in writing? Or cometh it in
|
|
person?"
|
|
|
|
The demand was plain, and the right of it indisputable. Ben-Hur
|
|
blushed, clasped his hands, stammered, and turned away at loss.
|
|
Simonides pressed him.
|
|
|
|
"The proofs, the proofs, I say! Set them before me- lay them in my
|
|
hands!"
|
|
|
|
Yet Ben-Hur had no answer. He had not anticipated the requirement;
|
|
and, now that it was made, to him as never before came the awful
|
|
fact that the three years in the galley had carried away all the
|
|
proofs of his identity; mother and sister gone, he did not live in the
|
|
knowledge of any human being. Many there were acquainted with him, but
|
|
that was all. Had Quintus Arrius been present, what could he have said
|
|
more than where he found him, and that he believed the pretender to be
|
|
the son of Hur? But, as will presently appear in full, the brave Roman
|
|
sailor was dead. Judah had felt the loneliness before; to the core
|
|
of life the sense struck him now. He stood, hands clasped, face
|
|
averted, in stupefaction. Simonides respected his suffering, and
|
|
waited in silence.
|
|
|
|
"Master Simonides," he said, at length, "I can only tell my story;
|
|
and I will not that unless you stay judgment so long, and with
|
|
good-will deign to hear me."
|
|
|
|
"Speak," said Simonides, now, indeed, master of the situation-
|
|
"speak, and I will listen the more willingly that I have not denied
|
|
you to be the very person you claim yourself."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur proceeded then, and told his life hurriedly, yet with the
|
|
feeling which is the source of all eloquence; but as we are familiar
|
|
with it down to his landing at Misenum, in company with Arrius,
|
|
returned victorious from the AEgean, at that point we will take up the
|
|
words.
|
|
|
|
"My benefactor was loved and trusted by the emperor, who heaped
|
|
him with honourable rewards. The merchants of the East contributed
|
|
magnificent presents, and he became doubly rich among the rich of
|
|
Rome. May a Jew forget his religion? or his birthplace, if it were the
|
|
Holy Land of our fathers? The good man adopted me his son by formal
|
|
rites of law; and I strove to make him just return: no child was
|
|
ever more dutiful to father than I to him. He would have had me a
|
|
scholar; in art, philosophy, rhetoric, oratory, he would have
|
|
furnished me the most famous teacher, I declined his insistence,
|
|
because I was a Jew, and could not forget the Lord God, or the glory
|
|
of the prophets, or the city set on the hills by David and Solomon.
|
|
Oh, ask you why I accepted any of the benefactions of the Roman? I
|
|
loved him; next place, I thought I could, with his help, array
|
|
influences which would enable me one day to unseal the mystery
|
|
close-locking the fate of my mother and sister; and to these there was
|
|
yet another motive of which I shall not speak except to say it
|
|
controlled me so far that I devoted myself to arms, and the
|
|
acquisition of everything deemed essential to thorough knowledge of
|
|
the art of war. In the palaestrae and circuses of the city I toiled,
|
|
and in the camps no less; and in all of them I have a name, but not
|
|
that of my fathers. The crowns I won- and on the walls of the villa by
|
|
Misenum there are many of them- all came to me as the son of Arrius,
|
|
the duumvir. In that relation only am I known among Romans.... In
|
|
steadfast pursuit of my secret aim, I left Rome for Antioch, intending
|
|
to accompany the Consul Maxentius in the campaign he is organizing
|
|
against the Parthians. Master of personal skill in all arms, I seek
|
|
now the higher knowledge pertaining to the conduct of bodies of men in
|
|
the field. The consul has admitted me one of his military family.
|
|
But yesterday, as our ship entered the Orontes, two other ships sailed
|
|
in with us flying yellow flags. A fellow-passenger and countryman from
|
|
Cyprus explained that the vessels belonged to Simonides, the
|
|
master-merchant of Antioch; he told us, also, who the merchant was;
|
|
his marvellous success in commerce; of his fleets and caravans, and
|
|
their coming and going; and, not knowing I had interest in the theme
|
|
beyond my associate listeners, he said Simonides was a Jew, once the
|
|
servant of the Prince Hur; nor did he conceal the cruelties of Gratus,
|
|
or the purpose of their infliction."
|
|
|
|
At this allusion Simonides bowed his head, and, as if to help him
|
|
conceal his feelings and her own deep sympathy, the daughter hid her
|
|
face on his neck. Directly he raised his eyes, and said, in a clear
|
|
voice, "I am listening."
|
|
|
|
"O good Simonides!" Ben-Hur then said, advancing a step, his whole
|
|
soul seeking expression, "I see thou art not convinced, and that yet I
|
|
stand in the shadow of thy distrust."
|
|
|
|
The merchant held his features fixed as marble, and his tongue as
|
|
still.
|
|
|
|
"And not less clearly I see the difficulties of my position,"
|
|
Ben-Hur continued. "All my Roman connection I can prove; I have only
|
|
to call upon the consul, now the guest of the governor of the city;
|
|
but I cannot prove the particulars of thy demand upon me. I cannot
|
|
prove I am my father's son. They who could serve me in that- alas!
|
|
they are dead or lost."
|
|
|
|
He covered his face with his hands; whereupon Esther arose, and,
|
|
taking the rejected cup to him, said, "The wine is of the country we
|
|
all so love. Drink, I pray thee!"
|
|
|
|
The voice was sweet as that of Rebekah offering drink at the well
|
|
near Nahor the city; he saw there were tears in her eyes, and he
|
|
drank, saying, "Daughter of Simonides, thy heart is full of
|
|
goodness; and merciful art thou to let the stranger share it with
|
|
thy father. Be thou blessed of our God! I thank thee."
|
|
|
|
Then he addressed himself to the merchant again:
|
|
|
|
"As I have no proof that I am my father's son, I will withdraw
|
|
that I demanded of thee, O Simonides, and go hence to trouble you no
|
|
more; only let me say I did not seek thy return to servitude nor
|
|
account of thy fortune; in any event, I would have said, as now I say,
|
|
that all which is product of thy labour and genius is thine; keep it
|
|
in welcome. I have no need of any part thereof. When the good Quintus,
|
|
my second father, sailed on the voyage which was his last, he left
|
|
me his heir, princely rich. If, therefore, thou dost think of me
|
|
again, be it with remembrance of this question, which, as I do swear
|
|
by the prophets and Jehovah, thy God and mine, was the chief purpose
|
|
of my coming here: What dost thou know- what canst thou tell me- of my
|
|
mother and Tirzah, my sister- she who should be in beauty and grace
|
|
even as this one, thy sweetness of life, if not thy very life? Oh!
|
|
what canst thou tell me of them?"
|
|
|
|
The tears ran down Esther's cheeks; but the man was willful: in a
|
|
clear voice, he replied,
|
|
|
|
"I have said I knew the Prince Ben-Hur. I remember hearing of the
|
|
misfortune which overtook his family. I remember the bitterness with
|
|
which I heard it. He who wrought such misery to the widow of my friend
|
|
is the same who, in the same spirit, hath since wrought upon me. I
|
|
will go further, and say to you, I have made diligent quest concerning
|
|
the family, but- I have nothing to tell you of them. They are lost."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur uttered a great groan.
|
|
|
|
"Then- then it is another hope broken!" he said, struggling with his
|
|
feelings. "I am used to disappointments. I pray you pardon my
|
|
intrusion; and if I have occasioned you annoyance, forgive it
|
|
because of my sorrow. I have nothing now to live for but vengeance.
|
|
Farewell."
|
|
|
|
At the curtain he turned, and said, simply, "I thank you both."
|
|
|
|
"Peace go with you," the merchant said.
|
|
|
|
Esther could not speak for sobbing.
|
|
|
|
And so he departed.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
SIMONIDES AND ESTHER.
|
|
|
|
SCARCELY was Ben-Hur gone, when Simonides seemed to wake as from
|
|
sleep: his countenance flushed; the sullen light of his eyes changed
|
|
to brightness; and he said, cheerily-
|
|
|
|
"Esther, ring- quick!"
|
|
|
|
She went to the table, and rang a service-bell.
|
|
|
|
One of the panels in the wall swung back, exposing a doorway which
|
|
gave admittance to a man who passed round to the merchant's front, and
|
|
saluted him with a half-sa-laam.
|
|
|
|
"Malluch, here- nearer- to the chair," the master said, imperiously.
|
|
"I have a mission which shall not fail though the sun should. Hearken!
|
|
A young man is now descending to the storeroom tall, comely, and in
|
|
the garb of Israel; follow him, his shadow not more faithful; and
|
|
every night send me report of where he is, what he does, and the
|
|
company he keeps; and if, without discovery, you overhear his
|
|
conversations, report them word for word, together with whatever
|
|
will serve to expose him, his habits, motives, life. Understand you?
|
|
Go quickly! Stay, Malluch: if he leave the city, go after him- and,
|
|
mark you, Malluch, be as a friend. If he bespeak you, tell him what
|
|
you will to the occasion most suited, except that you are in my
|
|
service; of that, not a word. Haste- make haste!"
|
|
|
|
The man saluted as before, and was gone.
|
|
|
|
Then Simonides rubbed his wan hands together and laughed.
|
|
|
|
"What is the day, daughter?" he said, in the midst of the mood.
|
|
"What is the day? I wish to remember it for happiness come. See, and
|
|
look for it laughing, and laughing tell me, Esther."
|
|
|
|
The merriment seemed unnatural to her; and, as if to entreat him
|
|
from it, she answered, sorrowfully, "Woe's me, father, that I should
|
|
ever forget this day!"
|
|
|
|
His hands fell down the instant, and his chin, dropping upon his
|
|
breast, lost itself in the muffling folds of flesh composing his lower
|
|
face.
|
|
|
|
"True, most true, my daughter!" he said, without looking up. "This
|
|
is the twentieth day of the fourth month. To-day five years ago, my
|
|
Rachel, thy mother, fell down and died. They brought me home broken as
|
|
thou seest me, and we found her dead of grief. Oh, to me she was a
|
|
cluster of camphire in the vineyards of Engedi! I have gathered my
|
|
myrrh with my spice. I have eaten my honeycomb with my honey. We
|
|
laid her away in a lonely place- in a tomb cut in the mountain; no one
|
|
near her. Yet in the darkness she left me a little light, which the
|
|
years have increased to a brightness of morning." He raised his hand
|
|
and rested it upon his daughter's head. "Dear Lord, I thank thee
|
|
that now in my Esther my lost Rachel liveth again!"
|
|
|
|
Directly he lifted his head, and said, as with a sudden thought, "Is
|
|
it not clear day outside?"
|
|
|
|
"It was, when the young man came in."
|
|
|
|
"Then let Abimelech come and take me to the garden, where I can
|
|
see the river and the ships, and I will tell thee, dear Esther, why
|
|
but now my mouth filled with laughter, and my tongue with singing, and
|
|
my spirit was like to a roe or to a young hart upon the mountains of
|
|
spices."
|
|
|
|
In answer to the bell a servant came, and at her bidding pushed
|
|
the chair, set on little wheels for the purpose, out of the room to
|
|
the roof of the lower house, called by him his garden. Out through the
|
|
roses, and by beds of lesser flowers, all triumphs of careful
|
|
attendance, but now unnoticed, he was rolled to a position from
|
|
which he could view the palace-tops over against him on the island,
|
|
the bridge in lessening perspective to the farther shore, and the
|
|
river below the bridge crowded with vessels, all swimming amidst the
|
|
dancing splendours of the early sun upon the rippling water. There the
|
|
servant left him with Esther.
|
|
|
|
The much shouting of labourers, and their beating and pounding,
|
|
did not disturb him any more than the trampling of people on the
|
|
bridge-floor almost overhead, being as familiar to his ear as the view
|
|
before him to his eye, and therefore unnoticeable, except as
|
|
suggestions of profits in promise.
|
|
|
|
Esther sat on the arm of the chair nursing his hand, and waiting his
|
|
speech, which came at length in a calm way, the mighty will having
|
|
carried him back to himself.
|
|
|
|
"When the young man was speaking, Esther, I observed thee, and
|
|
thought thou wert won by him."
|
|
|
|
Her eyes fell as she replied.
|
|
|
|
"Speak you of faith, father? I believed him."
|
|
|
|
"In thy eyes, then, he is the lost son of the Prince Hur?"
|
|
|
|
"If he is not- " She hesitated.
|
|
|
|
"And if he is not, Esther?"
|
|
|
|
"I have been thy handmaiden, father, since my mother answered the
|
|
call of the Lord God; by thy side I have heard and seen thee deal in
|
|
wise ways with all manner of men seeking profit, holy and unholy;
|
|
and now I say, if indeed the young man be not the prince he claims
|
|
to be, then before me falsehood never played so well the part of
|
|
righteous truth."
|
|
|
|
"By the glory of Solomon, daughter, thou speakest earnestly. Dost
|
|
thou believe thy father his father's servant?"
|
|
|
|
"I understood him to ask of that as something he had but heard."
|
|
|
|
For a time Simonides' gaze swam among his swimming ships, though
|
|
they had no place in his mind.
|
|
|
|
"Well, thou art a good child, Esther, of genuine Jewish
|
|
shrewdness, and of years and strength to hear a sorrowful tale.
|
|
Wherefore give me heed, and I will tell you of myself, and of thy
|
|
mother, and of many things pertaining to the past not in thy knowledge
|
|
or thy dreams- things withheld from the persecuting Roman for a hope's
|
|
sake, and from thee that thy nature should grow towards the Lord
|
|
straight as the reed to the sun.... I was born in a tomb in the valley
|
|
of Hinnom, on the south side of Zion. My father and mother were Hebrew
|
|
bond-servants, tenders of the fig and olive trees growing, with many
|
|
vines, in the King's Garden hard by Siloam; and in my boyhood I helped
|
|
them. They were of the class bound to serve forever. They sold me to
|
|
the Prince Hur, then, next to Herod the King, the richest man in
|
|
Jerusalem. From the garden he transferred me to his storehouse in
|
|
Alexandria of Egypt, where I came of age. I served him six years,
|
|
and in the seventh, by the law of Moses, I went free."
|
|
|
|
Esther clapped her hands lightly.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, then, thou art not his father's servant?"
|
|
|
|
"Nay, daughter, hear. Now, in those days there were lawyers in the
|
|
cloisters of the Temple who disputed vehemently, saying the children
|
|
of servants bound forever took the condition of their parents; but the
|
|
Prince Hur was a man righteous in all things, and an interpreter of
|
|
the law after the straitest sect, though not of them. He said I was
|
|
a Hebrew servant bought, in the true meaning of the great lawgiver,
|
|
and, by sealed writings, which I yet have, he set me free."
|
|
|
|
"And my mother?" Esther asked.
|
|
|
|
"Thou shalt hear all, Esther; be patient. Before I am through thou
|
|
shalt see it were easier for me to forget myself than thy mother....
|
|
At the end of my service I came up to Jerusalem to the Passover. My
|
|
master entertained me. I was in love with him already, and I prayed to
|
|
be continued in his service. He consented, and I served him yet
|
|
another seven years, but as a hired son of Israel. In his behalf I had
|
|
charge of ventures on the sea by ships, and of ventures on land by
|
|
caravans eastward to Susa and Persepolis, and the lands of silk beyond
|
|
them. Perilous passages were they, my daughter; but the Lord blessed
|
|
all I undertook. I brought home vast gains for the prince, and
|
|
richer knowledge for myself, without which I could not have mastered
|
|
the charges since fallen to me.... One day I was a guest in his
|
|
house at Jerusalem. A servant entered with some sliced bread on a
|
|
platter. She came to me first. It was then I saw thy mother, and loved
|
|
her, and took her away in my secret heart. After a while a time came
|
|
when I sought the prince to make her my wife. He told me she was
|
|
bond-servant forever; but if she wished, he would set her free that
|
|
I might be gratified. She gave me love for love, but was happy where
|
|
she was, and refused her freedom. I prayed and besought, going again
|
|
and again after long intervals. She would be my wife, she all the time
|
|
said, if I would become her fellow in servitude. Our father Jacob
|
|
served yet other seven years for his Rachel. Could I not as much for
|
|
mine? But thy mother said I must become as she, to serve forever. I
|
|
came away, but went back. Look, Esther, look here."
|
|
|
|
He pulled out the lobe of his left ear.
|
|
|
|
"See you not the scar of the awl?"
|
|
|
|
"I see it," she said; "and, oh, I see how thou didst love my
|
|
mother!"
|
|
|
|
"Love her, Esther! She was to me more than the Shulamite to the
|
|
singing king, fairer, more spotless; a fountain of gardens, a well
|
|
of living waters, and streams from Lebanon. The master, even as I
|
|
required him, took me to the judges, and back to his door, and
|
|
thrust the awl through my ear into the door, and I was his servant for
|
|
ever. So I won my Rachel. And was ever love like mine?"
|
|
|
|
Esther stooped and kissed him, and they were silent, thinking of the
|
|
dead.
|
|
|
|
"My master was drowned at sea, the first sorrow that ever fell
|
|
upon me," the merchant continued. "There was mourning in his house,
|
|
and in mine here in Antioch, my abiding-place at the time. Now,
|
|
Esther, mark you! When the good prince was lost, I had risen to be his
|
|
chief steward, with everything of property belonging to him in my
|
|
management and control. Judge you how much he loved and trusted me!
|
|
I hastened to Jerusalem to render account to the widow. She
|
|
continued me in the stewardship. I applied myself with greater
|
|
diligence. The business prospered, and grew year by year. Ten years
|
|
passed; then came the blow which you heard the young man tell about-
|
|
the accident, as he called it, to the Procurator Gratus. The Roman
|
|
gave it out an attempt to assassinate him. Under that pretext, by
|
|
leave from Rome, he confiscated to his own use the immense fortune
|
|
of the widow and children. Nor stopped he there. That there might be
|
|
no reversal of the judgment, he removed all the parties interested.
|
|
From that dreadful day to this the family of Hur have been lost. The
|
|
son, whom I had seen as a child, was sentenced to the galleys. The
|
|
widow and daughter are supposed to have been buried in some of the
|
|
many dungeons of Judea, which, once closed upon the doomed, are like
|
|
sepulchres sealed and locked. They passed from the knowledge of men as
|
|
utterly as if the sea had swallowed them unseen. We could not hear how
|
|
they died- nay, not even that they were dead."
|
|
|
|
Esther's eyes were dewy with tears.
|
|
|
|
"Thy heart is good, Esther, good as thy mother's was; and I pray
|
|
it have not the fate of most good hearts- to be trampled upon by the
|
|
unmerciful and blind. But hearken further. I went up to Jerusalem to
|
|
give help to my benefactress, and was seized at the gate of the city
|
|
and carried to the sunken cells of the Tower of Antonia; why, I knew
|
|
not, until Gratus himself came and demanded of me the moneys of the
|
|
House of Hur, which he knew, after our Jewish custom of exchange, were
|
|
subject to my draft in the different marts of the world. He required
|
|
me to sign to his order. I refused. He had the houses, lands, goods,
|
|
ships, and movable property of those I served; he had not their
|
|
moneys. I saw, if I kept favour in the sight of the Lord, I could
|
|
rebuild their broken fortunes. I refused the tyrant's demands. He
|
|
put me to torture; my will held good, and he set me free, nothing
|
|
gained. I came home and began again, in the name of Simonides of
|
|
Antioch, instead of the Prince Hur of Jerusalem. Thou knowest, Esther,
|
|
how I have prospered; that the increase of the millions of the
|
|
prince in my hands was miraculous; thou knowest how, at the end of
|
|
three years, while going up to Caesarea, I was taken and a second time
|
|
tortured by Gratus to compel a confession that my goods and moneys
|
|
were subject to his order of confiscation; thou knowest he failed as
|
|
before. Broken in body, I came home and found my Rachel dead of fear
|
|
and grief for me. The Lord our God reigned, and I lived. From the
|
|
emperor himself I bought immunity and license to trade throughout
|
|
the world. To-day- praised be He who maketh the clouds his chariot and
|
|
walketh upon the winds!- to-day, Esther, that which was in my hands
|
|
for stewardship is multiplied into talents sufficient to enrich a
|
|
Caesar."
|
|
|
|
He lifted his head proudly; their eyes met; each read the other's
|
|
thought. "What shall I with the treasure, Esther?" he asked, without
|
|
lowering his gaze.
|
|
|
|
"My father," she answered, in a low voice, "did not the rightful
|
|
owner call for it but now?"
|
|
|
|
Still his look did not fail.
|
|
|
|
"And thou, my child; shall I leave thee a beggar?"
|
|
|
|
"Nay, father, am not I, because I am thy child, his bond-servant?
|
|
And of whom was it written, 'Strength and honour are her clothing, and
|
|
she shall rejoice in time to come?'"
|
|
|
|
A gleam of ineffable love lighted his face as he said, "The Lord
|
|
hath been good to me in many ways; but thou, Esther, art the sovereign
|
|
excellence of his favour."
|
|
|
|
He drew her to his breast and kissed her many times.
|
|
|
|
"Hear now," he said, with clearer voice- "hear now why I laughed
|
|
this morning. The young man faced me the apparition of his father in
|
|
comely youth. My spirit arose to salute him. I felt my trial-days were
|
|
over and my labours ended. Hardly could I keep from crying out. I
|
|
longed to take him by the hand and show the balance I had earned,
|
|
and say, 'Lo, 'tis all thine! and I am thy servant, ready now to be
|
|
called away.' And so I would have done, Esther, so I would have
|
|
done, but that moment three thoughts rushed to restrain me. I will
|
|
be sure he is my master's son- such was the first thought; if he is my
|
|
master's son, I will learn somewhat of his nature. Of those born to
|
|
riches, bethink you, Esther, how many there are in whose hands
|
|
riches are but breeding curses"- he paused, while his hands
|
|
clutched, and his voice shrilled with passion- "Esther, consider the
|
|
pains I endured at the Roman's hands; nay, not Gratus's alone: the
|
|
merciless wretches who did his bidding the first time and the last
|
|
were Romans, and they all alike laughed to hear me scream. Consider my
|
|
broken body, and the years I have gone shorn of my stature; consider
|
|
thy mother yonder in her lonely tomb, crushed of soul as I of body;
|
|
consider the sorrows of my master's family if they are living, and the
|
|
cruelty of their taking-off if they are dead; consider all, and,
|
|
with heaven's love about thee, tell me, daughter, shall not a hair
|
|
fall or a red drop run in expiation? Tell me not, as the preachers
|
|
sometimes do- tell me not that vengeance is the Lord's. Does he not
|
|
work his will harmfully as well as in love by agencies? Has he not his
|
|
men of war more numerous than his prophets? Is not his the law, Eye
|
|
for eye, hand for hand, foot for foot? Oh, in all these years I have
|
|
dreamed of vengeance, and prayed and provided for it, and gathered
|
|
patience from the growing of my store, thinking and promising, as
|
|
the Lord liveth, it will one day buy me punishment of the
|
|
wrongdoers? And when, speaking of his practice with arms, the young
|
|
man said it was for a nameless purpose, I named the purpose even as he
|
|
spoke- vengeance! and that, Esther, that it was- the third thought
|
|
which held me still and hard while his pleading lasted, and made me
|
|
laugh when he was gone."
|
|
|
|
Esther caressed the faded hands, and said, as if her spirit with his
|
|
were running forward to results, "He is gone. Will he come again?"
|
|
|
|
"Ay, Malluch, the faithful goes with him, and will bring him back
|
|
when I am ready."
|
|
|
|
"And when will that be, father?"
|
|
|
|
"Not long, not long. He thinks all his witnesses dead. There is
|
|
one living who will not fail to know him, if he be indeed my
|
|
master's son.
|
|
|
|
"His mother?"
|
|
|
|
"Nay, daughter, I will set the witness before him; till then let
|
|
us rest the business with the Lord. I am tired. Call Abimelech."
|
|
|
|
Esther called the servant, and they returned into the house.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
THE GROVE OF DAPHNE.
|
|
|
|
WHEN Ben-Hur sallied from the great warehouse, it was with the
|
|
thought that another failure was to be added to the many he had
|
|
already met in the quest for his people; and the idea was depressing
|
|
exactly in proportion as the objects of his quest were dear to him; it
|
|
curtained him round about with a sense of utter loneliness on earth,
|
|
which, more than anything else, serves to eke from a soul cast down
|
|
its remaining interest in life.
|
|
|
|
Through the people, and the piles of goods, he made way to the
|
|
edge of the landing, and was tempted by the cool shadows darkening the
|
|
river's depth. The lazy current seemed to stop and wait for him. In
|
|
counteraction of the spell, the saying of the voyager flashed into
|
|
memory- "Better be a worm, and feed upon the mulberries of Daphne,
|
|
than a king's guest." He turned, and walked rapidly down the landing
|
|
and back to the khan.
|
|
|
|
"The road to Daphne!" the steward said, surprised at the question
|
|
Ben-Hur put to him. "You have not been here before? Well, count this
|
|
the happiest day of your life. You cannot mistake the road. The next
|
|
street to the left, going south, leads straight to Mount Sulpius,
|
|
crowned by the altar of Jupiter and the Amphitheatre; keep it to the
|
|
third cross street, known as Herod's Colonnade; turn to your right
|
|
there, and hold the way through the old city of Seleucus to the bronze
|
|
gates of Epiphanes. There the road to Daphne begins- and may the
|
|
gods keep you!"
|
|
|
|
A few directions respecting his baggage, and Ben-Hur set out.
|
|
|
|
The Colonnade of Herod was easily found; thence to the brazen gates,
|
|
under a continuous marble portico, he passed with a multitude mixed of
|
|
people from all the trading nations of the earth.
|
|
|
|
It was about the fourth hour of the day when he passed out the gate,
|
|
and found himself one of a procession apparently interminable,
|
|
moving to the famous Grove. The road was divided into separate ways
|
|
for footmen, for men on horses, and men in chariots; and those again
|
|
into separate ways for outgoers and incomers. The lines of division
|
|
were guarded by low balustrading, broken by massive pedestals, many of
|
|
which were surmounted with statuary. Right and left of the road
|
|
extended margins of sward perfectly kept, relieved at intervals by
|
|
groups of oak and sycamore trees, and vine-clad summer-houses for
|
|
the accommodation of the weary, of whom, on the return side, there
|
|
were always multitudes. The ways of the footmen were paved with red
|
|
stone, and those of the riders strewn with white sand compactly
|
|
rolled, but not so solid as to give back an echo to hoof or wheel. The
|
|
number and variety of fountains at play were amazing, all gifts of
|
|
visiting kings, and called after them. Out southwest to the gates of
|
|
the Grove, the magnificent thoroughfare stretched a little over four
|
|
miles from the city.
|
|
|
|
In his wretchedness of feeling, Ben-Hur barely observed the royal
|
|
liberality which marked the construction of the road. Nor more did
|
|
he at first notice the crowd going with him. He treated the
|
|
processional displays with like indifference. To say the truth,
|
|
besides his self-absorption, he had not a little of the complacency of
|
|
a Roman visiting the provinces fresh from the ceremonies which daily
|
|
eddied round and round the golden pillar set up by Augustus as the
|
|
centre of the world. It was not possible for the provinces to offer
|
|
anything new or superior. He rather availed himself of every
|
|
opportunity to push forward through the companies in the way, and
|
|
too slow-going for his impatience. By the time he reached Heracleia, a
|
|
suburban village intermediate the city and the Grove, he was
|
|
somewhat spent with exercise, and began to be susceptible of
|
|
entertainment. Once a pair of goats led by a beautiful woman, woman
|
|
and goats alike brilliant with ribbons and flowers, attracted his
|
|
attention. Then he stopped to look at a bull of mighty girth, and
|
|
snowy-white, covered with vines freshly cut, and bearing on its
|
|
broad back a naked child in a basket, the image of a young Bacchus,
|
|
squeezing the juice of ripened berries into a goblet, and drinking
|
|
with libational formulas. As he resumed his walk, he wondered whose
|
|
altars would be enriched by the offerings. A horse went by with
|
|
clipped mane, after the fashion of the time, his rider superbly
|
|
dressed. He smiled to observe the harmony of pride between the man and
|
|
the brute. Often after that he turned his head at hearing the rumble
|
|
of wheels and the dull thud of hoofs; unconsciously he was becoming
|
|
interested in the styles of chariots and charioteers, as they
|
|
rustled past him going and coming. Nor was it long until he began to
|
|
make notes of the people around him. He saw they were of all ages,
|
|
sexes, and conditions, and all in holiday attire. One company was
|
|
uniformed in white, another in black; some bore flags, some smoking
|
|
censers; some went slowly, singing hymns; others stopped to the
|
|
music of flutes and tabrets. If such were the going to Daphne every
|
|
day in the year, what a wondrous sight Daphne must be! At last there
|
|
was a clapping of hands, and a burst of joyous cries; following the
|
|
pointing of many fingers, he looked and saw upon the brow of a hill
|
|
the templed gate of the consecrated Grove. The hymns swelled to louder
|
|
strains; the music quickened time; and, borne along by the impulsive
|
|
current, and sharing the common eagerness, he passed in, and,
|
|
Romanized in taste as he was, fell to worshipping the place.
|
|
|
|
Rearward of the structure which graced the entrance-way- a purely
|
|
Grecian pile- he stood upon a broad esplanade paved with polished
|
|
stone; around him a restless exclamatory multitude, in gayest colours,
|
|
relieved against the iridescent spray flying crystal-white from
|
|
fountains; before him, off to the south-west, dustless paths
|
|
radiated out into a garden, and beyond that into a forest, over
|
|
which rested a veil of pale blue vapour. Ben-Hur gazed wistfully,
|
|
uncertain where to go. A woman that moment exclaimed,
|
|
|
|
"Beautiful! But where to now?"
|
|
|
|
Her companion, wearing a chaplet of bays, laughed and answered,
|
|
"Go to, thou pretty barbarian! The question implies an earthly fear;
|
|
and did we not agree to leave all such behind in Antioch with the
|
|
rusty earth? The winds which blow here are respirations of the gods.
|
|
Let us give ourselves to waftage of the winds."
|
|
|
|
"But if we should get lost?"
|
|
|
|
"O thou timid! No one was ever lost in Daphne, except those on
|
|
whom her gates close forever."
|
|
|
|
"And who are they?" she asked, still fearful.
|
|
|
|
"Such as have yielded to the charms of the place and chosen it for
|
|
life and death. Hark! Stand we here, and I will show you of whom I
|
|
speak."
|
|
|
|
Upon the marble pavement there was a scurry of sandalled feet; the
|
|
crowd opened, and a party of girls rushed about the speaker and his
|
|
fair friend, and began singing and dancing to the tabrets they
|
|
themselves touched. The woman, scared, clung to the man, who put an
|
|
arm about her, and, with kindled face, kept time to the music with the
|
|
other hand overhead. The hair of the dancers floated free, and their
|
|
limbs blushed through the robes of gauze which scarcely draped them.
|
|
Words may not be used to tell of the voluptuousness of the dance.
|
|
One brief round, and they darted off through the yielding crowd
|
|
lightly as they had come.
|
|
|
|
"Now, what think you?" cried the man to the woman.
|
|
|
|
"Who are they?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"Devadasi- priestesses devoted to the Temple of Apollo. There is
|
|
an army of them. They make the chorus in celebrations. This is their
|
|
home. Sometimes they wander off to other cities, but all they make
|
|
is brought here to enrich the house of the divine musician. Shall we
|
|
go now?"
|
|
|
|
Next minute the two were gone.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur took comfort in the assurance that no one was ever lost in
|
|
Daphne, and he, too, set out- where, he knew not.
|
|
|
|
A sculpture reared upon a beautiful pedestal in the garden attracted
|
|
him first. It proved to be the statue of a centaur. An inscription
|
|
informed the unlearned visitor that it exactly represented Chiron, the
|
|
beloved of Apollo and Diana, instructed by them in the mysteries of
|
|
hunting, medicine, music, and prophecy. The inscription also bade
|
|
the stranger look out at a certain part of the heavens, at a certain
|
|
hour of the clear night, and he would behold the dead alive among
|
|
the stars, whither Jupiter had transferred the good genius.
|
|
|
|
The wisest of the centaurs continued, nevertheless, in the service
|
|
of mankind. In his hand he held a scroll, on which, graven in Greek,
|
|
were paragraphs of a notice:-
|
|
|
|
"O Traveller!
|
|
|
|
"Art thou a stranger?
|
|
|
|
"I. Hearken to the singing of the brooks, and fear not the rain of
|
|
the fountains; so will the Naiades learn to love thee.
|
|
|
|
"II. The invited breezes of Daphne are Zephyrus and Auster: gentle
|
|
ministers of life, they will gather sweets for thee; when Eurus blows,
|
|
Diana is elsewhere hunting; when Boreas blusters, go hide, for
|
|
Apollo is angry.
|
|
|
|
"III. The shades of the Grove are thine in the day; at night they
|
|
belong to Pan and his Dryades. Disturb them not.
|
|
|
|
"IV. Eat of the Lotus by the brooksides sparingly, unless thou
|
|
wouldst have surcease of memory, which is to become a child of Daphne.
|
|
|
|
"V. Walk thou round the weaving spider- 'tis Arachne at work for
|
|
Minerva.
|
|
|
|
"VI. Wouldst thou behold the tears of Daphne, break but a bud from a
|
|
laurel bough- and die.
|
|
|
|
"Heed thou!
|
|
|
|
"And stay and be happy."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur left the interpretation of the mystic notice to others
|
|
fast enclosing him, and turned away as the white bull was led by.
|
|
The boy sat in the basket, followed by a procession; after them again,
|
|
the woman with the goats; and behind her, the flute and tabret
|
|
players, and another procession of gift-bringers.
|
|
|
|
"Whither go they?" asked a bystander.
|
|
|
|
Another made answer, "The bull to Father Jove; the goat- "
|
|
|
|
"Did not Apollo once keep the flocks of Admetus?"
|
|
|
|
"Ay, the goat to Apollo!"
|
|
|
|
The goodness of the reader is again besought in favour of an
|
|
explanation. A certain facility of accommodation in the matter of
|
|
religion comes to us after much intercourse with people of a different
|
|
faith; gradually we attain the truth that every creed is illustrated
|
|
by good men who are entitled to our respect, but whom we cannot
|
|
respect without courtesy to their creed. To this point Ben-Hur had
|
|
arrived. Neither the years in Rome nor those in the galley had made an
|
|
impression upon his religious faith: he was yet a Jew. In his view,
|
|
nevertheless, it was not an impiety to look for the beautiful in the
|
|
Grove of Daphne.
|
|
|
|
The remark does not interdict the further saying, if his scruples
|
|
had been ever so extreme, not improbably he would at this time have
|
|
smothered them. He was angry; not as the irritable, from chafing of
|
|
a trifle; nor was his anger like the fool's, pumped from the wells
|
|
of nothing, to be dissipated by a reproach or a curse; it was the
|
|
wrath peculiar to ardent natures rudely awakened by the sudden
|
|
annihilation of a hope- dream, if you will- in which the choicest
|
|
happinesses were thought to be certainly in reach. In such case
|
|
nothing intermediate will carry off the passion- the quarrel is with
|
|
Fate.
|
|
|
|
Let us follow the philosophy a little further, and say to ourselves,
|
|
it were well in such quarrels if Fate were something tangible, to be
|
|
despatched with a look or a blow, or a speaking personage with whom
|
|
high words were possible; then the unhappy mortal would not always end
|
|
the affair by punishing himself.
|
|
|
|
In ordinary mood, Ben-Hur would not have come to the Grove alone,
|
|
or, coming alone, he would have availed himself of his position in the
|
|
consul's family, and made provision against wandering idly about,
|
|
unknowing and unknown; he would have had all the points of interest in
|
|
mind, and gone to them under guidance, as in the despatch of business;
|
|
or, wishing to squander days of leisure in the beautiful place, he
|
|
would have had in hand a letter to the master of it all, whoever he
|
|
might be. This would have made him a sight-seer, like the shouting
|
|
herd he was accompanying; whereas he had no reverence for the
|
|
deities of the Grove, nor curiosity; a man in the blindness of
|
|
bitter disappointment, he was adrift, not waiting for Fate, but
|
|
seeking it as a desperate challenger.
|
|
|
|
Every one has known this condition of mind, though perhaps not all
|
|
in the same degree; every one will recognize it as the condition in
|
|
which he has done brave things with apparent serenity; and every one
|
|
reading will say, Fortunate for Ben-Hur if the folly which now catches
|
|
him is but a friendly harlequin with whistle and painted cap, and
|
|
not some Violence with a pointed sword pitiless.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
THE MULBERRIES OF DAPHNE.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR entered the woods with the processions. He had not
|
|
interest enough at first to ask where they were going; yet, to relieve
|
|
him from absolute indifference, he had a vague impression that they
|
|
were in movement to the temples, which were the central objects of the
|
|
Grove, supreme in attractions.
|
|
|
|
Presently, as singers dreamfully play with a flitting chorus, he
|
|
began repeating to himself, "Better be a worm, and feed on the
|
|
mulberries of Daphne, than a king's guest." Then of the much
|
|
repetition arose questions importunate of answer. Was life in the
|
|
Grove so very sweet? Wherein was the charm? Did it lie in some tangled
|
|
depth of philosophy? Or was it something in fact, something on the
|
|
surface, discernible to every-day wakeful senses! Every year
|
|
thousands, forswearing the world, gave themselves to service here. Did
|
|
they find the charm? And was it sufficient, when found, to induce
|
|
forgetfulness profound enough to shut out of mind the infinitely
|
|
diverse things of life? those that sweeten and those that imbitter?
|
|
hopes hovering in the near future as well as sorrows born of the past?
|
|
If the Grove were so good for them, why should it not be good for him?
|
|
He was a Jew; could it be that the excellences were for all the
|
|
world but children of Abraham? Forthwith he bent all his faculties
|
|
to the task of discovery, unmindful of the singing of the
|
|
gift-bringers and the quips of his associates.
|
|
|
|
In the quest, the sky yielded him nothing; it was blue, very blue,
|
|
and full of twittering swallows- so was the sky over the city.
|
|
|
|
Further on, out of the woods at his right hand, a breeze poured
|
|
across the road, splashing him with a wave of sweet smells, blent of
|
|
roses and consuming spices. He stopped, as did others, looking the way
|
|
the breeze came.
|
|
|
|
"A garden over there," he said, to a man at his elbow.
|
|
|
|
"Rather some priestly ceremony in performance- something to Diana,
|
|
or Pan, or a deity of the woods."
|
|
|
|
The answer was in his mother tongue. Ben-Hur gave the speaker a
|
|
surprised look.
|
|
|
|
"A Hebrew?" he asked him.
|
|
|
|
The man replied with a deferential smile,
|
|
|
|
"I was born within a stone's-throw of the Market-place in
|
|
Jerusalem."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur was proceeding to further speech, when the crowd surged
|
|
forward, thrusting him out on the side of the walk next the woods, and
|
|
carrying the stranger away. The customary gown and staff, a brown
|
|
cloth on the head tied by a yellow rope, and a strong Judean face to
|
|
avouch the garments of honest right, remained in the young man's mind,
|
|
a kind of summary of the man.
|
|
|
|
This took place at a point where a path into the woods began,
|
|
offering a happy escape from the noisy processions. Ben-Hur availed
|
|
himself of the offer.
|
|
|
|
He walked first into a thicket which, from the road, appeared in a
|
|
state of nature, close, impenetrable, a nesting-place for wild
|
|
birds. A few steps, however, gave him to see the master's hand even
|
|
there. The shrubs were flowering or fruit-bearing; under the bending
|
|
branches the ground was pranked with brightest blooms; over them the
|
|
jasmine stretched its delicate bonds. From lilac and rose, and lily
|
|
and tulip, from oleander and strawberry-tree, all old friends in the
|
|
gardens of the valleys about the city of David, the air, lingering
|
|
or in haste, loaded itself with exhalations day and night; and that
|
|
nothing might be wanting to the happiness of the nymphs and naiads,
|
|
down through the flower-lighted shadows of the mass a brook went its
|
|
course gently, and by many winding ways.
|
|
|
|
Out of the thicket, as he proceeded, on his right and left, issued
|
|
the cry of the pigeon and the cooing of turtle-doves; blackbirds
|
|
waited for him, and bided his coming close; a nightingale kept its
|
|
place fearless, though he passed in arm's-length; a quail ran before
|
|
him at his feet, whistling to the brood she was leading, and as he
|
|
paused for them to get out of his way, a figure crawled from a bed
|
|
of honeyed musk brilliant with balls of golden blossoms. Ben-Hur was
|
|
startled. Had he, indeed, been permitted to see a satyr at home? The
|
|
creature looked up at him, and showed in its teeth a hooked
|
|
pruning-knife; he smiled at his own scare, and, lo! the charm was
|
|
evolved! Peace without fear- peace a universal condition- that it was!
|
|
|
|
He sat upon the ground beneath a citron-tree, which spread its
|
|
grey roots sprawling to receive a branch of the brook. The nest of a
|
|
titmouse hung close to the bubbling water, and the tiny creature
|
|
looked out of the door of the nest into his eyes. "Verily, the bird is
|
|
interpreting to me," he thought. "It says, 'I am not afraid of you,
|
|
for the law of this happy place is Love.'"
|
|
|
|
The charm of the Grove seemed plain to him; he was glad, and
|
|
determined to render himself one of the lost in Daphne. In charge of
|
|
the flowers and shrubs, and watching the growth of all the dumb
|
|
excellences everywhere to be seen, could not he, like the man with the
|
|
pruning-knife in his mouth, forego the days of his troubled life-
|
|
forego them forgetting and forgotten?
|
|
|
|
But by-and-by his Jewish nature began to stir within him.
|
|
|
|
The charm might be sufficient for some people. Of what kind were
|
|
they?
|
|
|
|
Love is delightful- ah! how pleasant as a successor to
|
|
wretchedness like his. But was it all there was of life? All?
|
|
|
|
There was an unlikeness between him and those who buried
|
|
themselves contentedly here. They had no duties- they could not have
|
|
had; but he-
|
|
|
|
"God of Israel!" he cried aloud, springing to his feet, with burning
|
|
cheeks- "Mother! Tirzah! Cursed be the moment, cursed the place, in
|
|
which I yield myself happy in your loss!"
|
|
|
|
He hurried away through the thicket, and came to a stream flowing
|
|
with the volume of a river between banks of masonry, broken at
|
|
intervals by gated sluiceways. A bridge carried the path he was
|
|
traversing across the stream; and, standing upon it, he saw other
|
|
bridges, no two of them alike. Under him the water was lying in a deep
|
|
pool, clear as a shadow; down a little way it tumbled with a roar over
|
|
rocks; then there was another pool, and another cascade; and so on,
|
|
out of view; and bridges and pools and resounding cascades said,
|
|
plainly as inarticulate things can tell a story, the river was running
|
|
by permission of a master, exactly as the master would have it,
|
|
tractable as became a servant of the gods.
|
|
|
|
Forward from the bridge he beheld a landscape of wide valleys and
|
|
irregular heights, with groves and lakes and fanciful houses linked
|
|
together by white paths and shining streams. The valleys were spread
|
|
below, that the river might be poured upon them for refreshment in
|
|
days of drought, and they were as green carpets figured with beds
|
|
and fields of flowers, and flecked with flocks of sheep white as balls
|
|
of snow; and the voices of shepherds following the flocks were heard
|
|
afar. As if to tell him of the pious inscription of all he beheld, the
|
|
altars out under the open sky seemed countless, each with a
|
|
white-gowned figure attending it, while processions in white went
|
|
slowly hither and thither between them; and the smoke of the altars
|
|
half-risen hung collected in pale clouds over the devoted places.
|
|
|
|
Here, there, happy in flight, intoxicated in pause, from object to
|
|
object, point to point, now in the meadow, now on the heights, now
|
|
lingering to penetrate the groves and observe the processions, then
|
|
lost in efforts to pursue the paths and streams which trended mazily
|
|
into dim perspectives to end finally in- Ah, what might be a fitting
|
|
end to scene so beautiful! What adequate mysteries were hidden
|
|
behind an introduction so marvellous! Here and there, the speech was
|
|
beginning, his gaze wandered, so he could not help the conviction,
|
|
forced by the view, and as the sum of it all, that there was peace
|
|
in the air and on the earth, and invitation everywhere to come and lie
|
|
down here and be at rest.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly a revelation dawned upon him- the Grove was, in fact, a
|
|
temple- one far-reaching, wall-less temple!
|
|
|
|
Never anything like it!
|
|
|
|
The architect had not stopped to pother about columns and
|
|
porticos, proportions or interiors, or any limitation upon the epic he
|
|
sought to materialize; he had simply made a servant of Nature- art can
|
|
go no further. So the cunning son of Jupiter and Callisto built the
|
|
old Arcadia; and in this, as in that, the genius was Greek.
|
|
|
|
From the bridge Ben-Hur went forward into the nearest valley.
|
|
|
|
He came to a flock of sheep. The shepherd was a girl, and she
|
|
beckoned him, "Come!"
|
|
|
|
Farther on, the path was divided by an altar- a pedestal of black
|
|
gneiss, capped with a slab of white marble deftly foliated, and on
|
|
that a brazier of bronze holding a fire. Close by it, a woman,
|
|
seeing him, waved a wand of willow, and as he passed called him,
|
|
"Stay!" And the temptation in her smile was that of passionate youth.
|
|
|
|
On yet further, he met one of the processions; at its head a troop
|
|
of little girls, nude except as they were covered with garlands, piped
|
|
their shrill voices into a song; then a troop of boys, also nude,
|
|
their bodies deeply sunbrowned, came dancing to the song of the girls;
|
|
behind them the procession, all women, bearing baskets of spices and
|
|
sweets to the altars- women clad in simple robes, careless of
|
|
exposure. As he went by they held their hands to him, and said, "Stay,
|
|
and go with us." One, a Greek, sang a verse from Anacreon:
|
|
|
|
"For to-day I take or give;
|
|
|
|
For to-day I drink and live;
|
|
|
|
For to-day I beg or borrow;
|
|
|
|
Who knows about the silent morrow?"
|
|
|
|
But he pursued his way indifferent, and came next to a grove
|
|
luxuriant, in the heart of the vale at the point where it would be
|
|
most attractive to the observing eye. As it came close to the path
|
|
he was travelling, there was a seduction in its shade, and through the
|
|
foliage he caught the shining of what appeared a pretentious statue;
|
|
so he turned aside, and entered the cool retreat.
|
|
|
|
The grass was fresh and clean. The trees did not crowd each other;
|
|
and they were of every kind native to the East, blended well with
|
|
strangers adopted from far quarters; here grouped in exclusive
|
|
companionship palm-trees plumed like queens; there sycamores,
|
|
overtopping laurels of darker foliage; and evergreen oaks rising
|
|
verdantly, with cedars vast enough to be kings on Lebanon; and
|
|
mulberries; and terebinths so beautiful it is not hyperbole to speak
|
|
of them as blown from the orchards of Paradise.
|
|
|
|
The statue proved to be a Daphne of wondrous beauty. Hardly,
|
|
however, had he time to more than glance at her face: at the base of
|
|
the pedestal a girl and a youth were lying upon a tiger's skin
|
|
asleep in each other's arms; close by them the implements of their
|
|
service- his axe and sickle, her basket- flung carelessly upon a
|
|
heap of faded roses.
|
|
|
|
The exposure startled him. Back in the hush of the perfumed
|
|
thicket he discovered, as he thought, that the charm of the great
|
|
Grove was peace without fear, and almost yielded to it; now, in this
|
|
sleep in the day's broad glare- this sleep at the foot of Daphne- he
|
|
read a further chapter to which only the vaguest allusion is
|
|
sufferable. The law of the place was Love, but Love without Law.
|
|
|
|
And this was the sweet peace of Daphne!
|
|
|
|
This the life's end of her ministers!
|
|
|
|
For this kings and princes gave of their revenues!
|
|
|
|
For this a crafty priesthood subordinated nature- her birds and
|
|
brooks and lilies, the river, the labour of many hands, the sanctity
|
|
of altars, the fertile power of the sun!
|
|
|
|
It would be pleasant now to record that as Ben-Hur pursued his
|
|
walk assailed by such reflections, he yielded somewhat to sorrow for
|
|
the votaries of the great out-door temple; especially for those who,
|
|
by personal service, kept it in a state so surpassingly lovely. How
|
|
they came to the condition was not any longer a mystery; the motive,
|
|
the influence, the inducement, was before him. Some there were, no
|
|
doubt, caught by the promise held out to their troubled spirits of
|
|
endless peace in a consecrated abode, to the beauty of which, if
|
|
they had not money, they could contribute their labour; this class
|
|
implied intellect peculiarly subject to hope and fear; but the great
|
|
body of the faithful could not be classed with such. Apollo's nets
|
|
were wide, and their meshes small; and hardly may one tell what all
|
|
his fishermen landed: this less for that they cannot be described than
|
|
because they ought not to be. Enough that the mass were of the
|
|
sybarities of the world, and of the herds in number vaster and in
|
|
degree lower- devotees of the unmixed sensualism to which the East was
|
|
almost wholly given. Not to any of the exaltations- not to the
|
|
singing-god, or his unhappy mistress; not to any philosophy
|
|
requiring for its enjoyment the calm of retirement, nor to any service
|
|
for the comfort there is in religion, nor to love in its holier sense-
|
|
were they abiding their vows. Good reader, why shall not the truth
|
|
be told here? Why not learn that, at this age, there were in all earth
|
|
but two peoples capable of exaltations of the kind referred to-
|
|
those who lived by the law of Moses, and those who lived by the law of
|
|
Brahma. They alone could have cried you, Better a law without love
|
|
than a love without law.
|
|
|
|
Besides that, sympathy is in great degree a result of the mood we
|
|
are in at the moment: anger forbids the emotion. On the other hand, it
|
|
is easiest taken on when we are in a state of most absolute
|
|
self-satisfaction. Ben-Hur walked with a quicker step, holding his
|
|
head higher; and, while not less sensitive to the delightfulness of
|
|
all about him, he made his survey with calmer spirit, though sometimes
|
|
with curling lip; that is to say, he could not so soon forget how
|
|
nearly he himself had been imposed upon.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
THE STADIUM IN THE GROVE.
|
|
|
|
IN front of Ben-Hur there was a forest of cypress-trees, each a
|
|
column tall and straight as a mast. Venturing into the shady precinct,
|
|
he heard a trumpet gaily blown, and an instant after saw lying upon
|
|
the grass close by the countryman whom he had run upon in the road
|
|
going to the temples. The man arose, and came to him.
|
|
|
|
"I give you peace again," he said, pleasantly.
|
|
|
|
"Thank you," Ben-Hur replied, then asked, "go you my way?"
|
|
|
|
"I am for the stadium, if that is your way."
|
|
|
|
"The Stadium!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. The trumpet you heard but now was a call for the competitors."
|
|
|
|
"Good friend," said Ben-Hur, frankly, "I admit my ignorance of the
|
|
Grove; and if you will let me be your follower, I will be glad."
|
|
|
|
"That will delight me. Hark! I hear the wheels of the chariots. They
|
|
are taking the track."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur listened a moment, then completed the introduction by laying
|
|
his hand upon the man's arm, and saying, "I am the son of Arrius,
|
|
the duumvir, and thou?"
|
|
|
|
"I am Malluch, a merchant of Antioch."
|
|
|
|
"Well, good Malluch, the trumpet, and the gride of wheels, and the
|
|
prospect of diversion excite me. I have some skill in the exercises.
|
|
In the palaestrae of Rome I am not unknown. Let us to the course."
|
|
|
|
Malluch lingered to say, quickly, "The duumvir was a Roman, yet I
|
|
see his son in the garments of a Jew."
|
|
|
|
"The noble Arrius was my father by adoption," Ben-Hur answered.
|
|
|
|
"Ah! I see, and beg pardon."
|
|
|
|
Passing through the belt of forest, they came to a field with a
|
|
track laid out upon it, in shape and extent exactly like those of
|
|
the stadia. The course, or track proper, was of soft earth, rolled and
|
|
sprinkled, and on both sides defined by ropes, stretched loosely
|
|
upon upright javelins. For the accommodation of spectators, and such
|
|
as had interests reaching forward of the mere practice, there were
|
|
several stands shaded by substantial awnings, and provided with
|
|
seats in rising rows. In one of the stands the two new-comers found
|
|
places.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur counted the chariots as they went by- nine in all.
|
|
|
|
"I commend the fellows," he said, with good-will. "Here in the
|
|
East I thought they aspired to nothing better than the two; but they
|
|
are ambitious, and play with royal fours. Let us study their
|
|
performance."
|
|
|
|
Eight of the fours passed the stand, some walking, others on the
|
|
trot, and all unexceptionally handled; then the ninth one came on
|
|
the gallop. Ben-Hur burst into exclamation.
|
|
|
|
"I have been in the stables of the emperor, Malluch, but, by our
|
|
father Abraham of blessed memory! I never saw the like of these."
|
|
|
|
The last four was then sweeping past. All at once they fell into
|
|
confusion. Someone on the stand uttered a sharp cry. Ben-Hur turned,
|
|
and saw an old man half-risen from an upper seat, his hands clenched
|
|
and raised, his eyes fiercely bright, his long white beard fairly
|
|
quivering. Some of the spectators nearest him began to laugh.
|
|
|
|
"They should respect his beard at least. Who is he?" asked Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"A mighty man from the desert, somewhere beyond Moab, and owner of
|
|
camels in herds, and horses descended, they say, from the racers of
|
|
the first Pharaoh- Sheik Ilderim by name and title."
|
|
|
|
Thus Malluch replied.
|
|
|
|
The driver meanwhile exerted himself to quiet the four, but
|
|
without avail. Each ineffectual effort excited the sheik the more.
|
|
|
|
"Abaddon seize him!" yelled the patriarch, shrilly. "Run! fly! do
|
|
you hear, my children?" The question was to his attendants, apparently
|
|
of the tribe. "Do you hear? They are desert-born, like yourselves.
|
|
Catch them- quick!"
|
|
|
|
The plunging of the animals increased.
|
|
|
|
"Accursed Roman!" and the sheik shook his fist at the driver. "Did
|
|
he not swear he could drive them- swear it by all his brood of bastard
|
|
Latin gods? Nay, hands off me- off, I say! They should run swift as
|
|
eagles, and with the temper of hand-bred lambs, he swore. Cursed be
|
|
he- cursed the mother of liars who calls him son! See them, the
|
|
priceless! Let him touch one of them with a lash, and"- the rest of
|
|
the sentence was lost in a furious grinding of his teeth. "To their
|
|
heads, some of you, and speak them- a word, one is enough, from the
|
|
tent-song your mothers sang you. Oh, fool, fool that I was to put
|
|
trust in a Roman!"
|
|
|
|
Some of the shrewder of the old man's friends planted themselves
|
|
between him and the horses. An opportune failure of breath on his part
|
|
helped the stratagem.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur, thinking he comprehended the sheik, sympathized with him.
|
|
Far more than mere pride of property- more than anxiety for the result
|
|
of the race- in his view it was within the possible for the patriarch,
|
|
according to his habits of thought and his ideas of the inestimable,
|
|
to love such animals with a tenderness akin to the most sensitive
|
|
passion.
|
|
|
|
They were all bright bays, unspotted, perfectly matched, and so
|
|
proportioned as to seem less than they really were. Delicate ears
|
|
pointed small heads; the faces were broad and full between the eyes;
|
|
the nostrils in expansion disclosed membrane so deeply red as to
|
|
suggest the flashing of flame; the necks were arches, overlaid with
|
|
fine mane so abundant as to drape the shoulders and breast, while in
|
|
happy consonance the forelocks were like ravellings of silken veils;
|
|
between the knees and the fetlocks the legs were flat as an open hand,
|
|
but above the knees they were rounded with mighty muscles, needful
|
|
to upbear the shapely close-knit bodies; the hoofs were like cups of
|
|
polished agate; and in rearing and plunging they whipped the air,
|
|
and sometimes the earth, with tails glossy-black and thick and long.
|
|
The sheik spoke of them as the priceless, and it was a good saying.
|
|
|
|
In this second and closer look at the horses, Ben-Hur read the story
|
|
of their relation to their master. They had grown up under his eyes,
|
|
objects of his special care in the day, his visions of pride in the
|
|
night, with his family at home in the black tent out on the
|
|
shadeless bosom of the desert, as his children beloved. That they
|
|
might win him a triumph over the haughty and hated Roman, the old
|
|
man had brought his loves to the city, never doubting they would
|
|
win, if only he could find a trusty expert to take them in hand; not
|
|
merely one with skill, but of a spirit which their spirits would
|
|
acknowledge. Unlike the colder people of the West, he could not
|
|
protest the driver's inability, and dismiss him civilly; an Arab and a
|
|
sheik, he had to explode, and rive the air about him with clamour.
|
|
|
|
Before the patriarch was done with his expletives, a dozen hands
|
|
were at the bits of the horses, and their quiet assured. About that
|
|
time, another chariot appeared upon the track; and, unlike the others,
|
|
driver, vehicle, and racers were precisely as they would be
|
|
presented in the Circus the day of final trial. For a reason which
|
|
will presently be more apparent, it is desirable now to give this
|
|
turnout plainly to the reader.
|
|
|
|
There should be no difficulty in understanding the carriage known to
|
|
us all as the chariot of classical renown. One has but to picture to
|
|
himself a dray with low wheels and broad axle, surmounted by a box
|
|
open at the tail-end. Such was the primitive pattern. Artistic
|
|
genius came along in time, and, touching the rude machine, raised it
|
|
into a thing of beauty- that, for instance, in which Aurora, riding in
|
|
advance of the dawn, is given to our fancy.
|
|
|
|
The jockeys of the ancients, quite as shrewd and ambitious as
|
|
their successors of the present, called their humblest turnout a
|
|
two, and their best in grade a four; in the latter, the contested
|
|
the Olympics and the other festal shows founded in imitation of them.
|
|
|
|
The same sharp gamesters preferred to put their horses to the
|
|
chariot all abreast; and for distinction they termed the two next
|
|
the pole yoke-steeds, and those on the right and left outside
|
|
trace-mates. It was their judgment, also, that, by allowing the
|
|
fullest freedom of action, the greatest speed was attainable;
|
|
accordingly, the harness resorted to was peculiarly simple; in fact,
|
|
there was nothing of it save a collar round the animal's neck, and a
|
|
trace fixed to the collar, unless the lines and a halter fall within
|
|
the term. Wanting to hitch up, the masters pinned a narrow wooden
|
|
yoke, or cross-tree, near the end of the pole, and, by straps passed
|
|
through rings at the end of the yoke, buckled the latter to the
|
|
collar. The traces of the yoke-steeds they hitched to the axle;
|
|
those of the trace-mates to the top rim of the chariot-bed. There
|
|
remained then but the adjustment of the lines, which, judged by the
|
|
modern devices, was not the least curious part of the method. For this
|
|
there was a large ring at the forward extremity of the pole;
|
|
securing the ends to that ring first they parted the lines so as to
|
|
give one to each horse and proceeded to pass them to the driver,
|
|
slipping them separately through rings on the inner side of the
|
|
halters at the mouth.
|
|
|
|
With this plain generalization in mind, all further desirable
|
|
knowledge upon the subject can be had by following the incidents of
|
|
the scene occurring.
|
|
|
|
The other contestants had been received in silence; the last comer
|
|
was more fortunate. While moving towards the stand from which we are
|
|
viewing the scene, his progress was signalized by loud demonstrations,
|
|
by clapping of hands and cheers, the effect of which was to centre
|
|
attention upon him exclusively. His yoke-steeds, it was observed, were
|
|
black, while the trace-mates were snow-white. In conformity to the
|
|
exacting canons of Roman taste, they had all four been mutilated; that
|
|
is to say, their tails had been clipped, and, to complete the
|
|
barbarity, their shorn manes were divided into knots tied with flaring
|
|
red and yellow ribbons.
|
|
|
|
In advancing, the stranger at length reached a point where the
|
|
chariot came into view from the stand, and its appearance would of
|
|
itself have justified the shouting. The wheels were very marvels of
|
|
construction. Stout bands of burnished bronze reinforced the hubs,
|
|
otherwise very light; the spokes were sections of ivory tusks, set
|
|
in with the natural curve outward to perfect the dishing, considered
|
|
important then as now; bronze tires held the fellies, which were of
|
|
shining ebony. The axle, in keeping with the wheels, was tipped with
|
|
heads of snarling tigers done in brass, and the bed was woven of
|
|
willow wands gilded with gold.
|
|
|
|
The coming of the beautiful horses and resplendent chariot drew
|
|
Ben-Hur to look at the driver with increased interest.
|
|
|
|
Who is he?
|
|
|
|
When Ben-Hur asked himself the question first, he could not see
|
|
the man's face or even his full figure; yet the air and manner were
|
|
familiar and pricked him keenly with a reminder of a period long gone.
|
|
|
|
Who could it be?
|
|
|
|
Nearer now, and the horses approaching at a trot. From the
|
|
shouting and the gorgeousness of the turnout, it was thought he
|
|
might be some official favourite or famous prince. Such an
|
|
appearance was not inconsistent with exalted rank. Kings often
|
|
struggled for the crown of leaves which was the prize of victory. Nero
|
|
and Commodus, it will be remembered, devoted themselves to the
|
|
chariot. Ben-Hur arose and forced a passage down nearly to the railing
|
|
in front of the lower seat of the stand. His face was earnest, his
|
|
manner eager.
|
|
|
|
And directly the whole person of the driver was in view. A companion
|
|
rode with him, in classic description a Myrtilus, permitted men of
|
|
high estate indulging their passion for the race-course. Ben-Hur could
|
|
see only the driver, standing erect in the chariot, with the reins
|
|
passed several times round his body- a handsome figure, scantily
|
|
covered by a tunic of light-red doth, in the right hand a whip; in the
|
|
other, the arm raised and lightly extended, the four lines. The pose
|
|
was exceedingly graceful and animated. The cheers and clapping of
|
|
hands were received with statuesque indifference. Ben-Hur stood
|
|
transfixed- his instinct and memory had served him faithfully- the
|
|
driver was Messala!
|
|
|
|
By the selection of horses, the magnificence of the chariot, the
|
|
attitude, and display of person- above all, by the expression of the
|
|
cold, sharp, eagle features, imperialized in his countrymen by sway of
|
|
the world through so many generations, Ben-Hur knew Messala unchanged,
|
|
as haughty, confident, and audacious as ever, the same in ambition,
|
|
cynicism, and mocking insouciance.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.
|
|
|
|
THE FOUNTAIN OF CASTALIA.
|
|
|
|
As Ben-Hur descended the steps of the stand, an Arab arose upon
|
|
the last one at the foot, and cried out,
|
|
|
|
"Men of the East and West- hearken! The good Sheik Ilderim giveth
|
|
greeting. With four horses, sons of the favourites of Solomon the
|
|
Wise, he hath come up against the best. Needs he most a mighty man
|
|
to drive them. Whoso will take them to his satisfaction, to him he
|
|
promiseth enrichment forever. Here- there- in the city and in the
|
|
Circuses, and wherever the strong most do congregate, tell ye this his
|
|
offer. So saith my master, Sheik Ilderim the Generous."
|
|
|
|
The proclamation awakened a great buzz among the people under the
|
|
awning. By night it would be repeated and discussed in all the
|
|
sporting circles of Antioch. Ben-Hur, hearing it, stopped and looked
|
|
hesitatingly from the herald to the sheik. Malluch thought he was
|
|
about to accept the offer, but was relieved when he presently turned
|
|
to him, and asked, "Good Malluch, where to now?"
|
|
|
|
The worthy replied, with a laugh, "Would you liken yourself to
|
|
others visiting the Grove for the first time, you will straightway
|
|
to hear your fortune told."
|
|
|
|
"My fortune, said you? Though the suggestion has in it a flavour
|
|
of unbelief, let us to the goddess at once."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, son of Arrius, these Apollonians have a better trick than
|
|
that. Instead of speech with a Pythia or a Sibyl, they will sell you a
|
|
plain papyrus leaf, hardly dry from the stalk, and bid you dip it in
|
|
the water of a certain fountain, when it will show you a verse in
|
|
which you may hear of your future."
|
|
|
|
The glow of interest departed from Ben-Hur's face.
|
|
|
|
"There are people who have no need to vex themselves about their
|
|
future," he said, gloomily.
|
|
|
|
"Then you prefer to go to the temples?"
|
|
|
|
"The temples are Greek, are they not?"
|
|
|
|
"They call them Greek."
|
|
|
|
"The Hellenes were masters of the beautiful in art; but in
|
|
architecture they sacrificed variety to unbending beauty. Their
|
|
temples are all alike. How call you the fountain?"
|
|
|
|
"Castalia."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! it has repute throughout the world. Let us thither."
|
|
|
|
Malluch kept watch on his companion as they went, and saw that for
|
|
the moment at least his good spirits were out. To the people passing
|
|
he gave no attention; over the wonders they came upon there were no
|
|
exclamations; silently, even sullenly, he kept a slow pace.
|
|
|
|
The truth was, the sight of Messala had set Ben-Hur to thinking.
|
|
It seemed scarce an hour ago that the strong hands had torn him from
|
|
his mother, scarce an hour ago that the Roman had put seal upon the
|
|
gates of his father's house. He recounted how, in the hopeless
|
|
misery of the life- if such it might be called- in the galleys, he had
|
|
had little else to do, aside from labour, than dream dreams of
|
|
vengeance, in all of which Messala was the principal. There might
|
|
be, he used to say to himself, escape for Gratus, but for Messala-
|
|
never! And to strengthen and harden his resolution, he was
|
|
accustomed to repeat over and over, Who pointed us out to the
|
|
persecutors? And when I begged him for help- not for myself- who
|
|
mocked me, and went away laughing? And always the dream had the same
|
|
ending. The day I meet him, help me, thou good God of my people!- help
|
|
me to some fitting special vengeance!
|
|
|
|
And now the meeting was at hand.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps, if he had found Messala poor and suffering, Ben-Hur's
|
|
feeling had been different; but it was not so. He found him more
|
|
than prosperous; in the prosperity there was a dash and glitter- gleam
|
|
of sun on gilt of gold.
|
|
|
|
So it happened that what Malluch accounted a passing loss of
|
|
spirit was pondering when the meeting should be, and in what manner he
|
|
could make it most memorable.
|
|
|
|
They turned after a while into an avenue of oaks, where the people
|
|
were going and coming in groups; footmen here, and horsemen; there
|
|
women in litters borne by slaves; and now and then chariots rolled
|
|
by thunderously.
|
|
|
|
At the end of the avenue the road, by an easy grade, descended
|
|
into a lowland, where, on the right hand, there was a precipitous
|
|
facing of grey rock, and on the left an open meadow of vernal
|
|
freshness. Then they came in view of the famous Fountain of Castalia.
|
|
|
|
Edging through a company assembled at the point, Ben-Hur beheld a
|
|
jet of sweet water pouring from the crest of a stone into a basin of
|
|
black marble, where, after much boiling and foaming, it disappeared as
|
|
through a funnel.
|
|
|
|
By the basin, under a small portico cut in the solid wall, sat a
|
|
priest, old, bearded, wrinkled, cowled- never being more perfectly
|
|
eremitish. From the manner of the people present, hardly might one say
|
|
which was the attraction, the fountain, forever sparkling, or the
|
|
priest, forever there. He heard, saw, was seen, but never spoke.
|
|
Occasionally a visitor extended a hand to him with a coin in it.
|
|
With a cunning twinkle of the eyes, he took the money, and gave the
|
|
party in exchange a leaf of papyrus.
|
|
|
|
The receiver made haste to plunge the papyrus into the basin;
|
|
then, holding the dripping leaf in the sunlight, he would be
|
|
rewarded with a versified inscription upon its face; and the fame of
|
|
the fountain seldom suffered loss by poverty of merit in the poetry.
|
|
Before Ben-Hur could test the oracle, some other visitors were seen
|
|
approaching across the meadow, and their appearance piqued the
|
|
curiosity of the company, his not less than theirs.
|
|
|
|
He saw first a camel, very tall and very white, in leading of a
|
|
driver on horseback. A houdah on the animal, besides being unusually
|
|
large, was of crimson and gold. Two other horsemen followed the
|
|
camel with tall spears in hand.
|
|
|
|
"What a wonderful camel!" said one of the company.
|
|
|
|
"A prince from afar," another one suggested.
|
|
|
|
"More likely a king."
|
|
|
|
"If he were on an elephant I would say he was a king."
|
|
|
|
A third man had a very different opinion.
|
|
|
|
"A camel- and a white camel!" he said, authoritatively. "By
|
|
Apollo, friends, they who come yonder- you can see there are two of
|
|
them- are neither kings nor princes; they are women!"
|
|
|
|
In the midst of the dispute the strangers arrived.
|
|
|
|
The camel seen at hand did not belie his appearance afar. A
|
|
taller, statelier brute of his kind no traveller at the fountain,
|
|
though from the remotest parts, had ever beheld. Such great black
|
|
eyes! such exceedingly fine white hair! feet so contractile when
|
|
raised, so soundless in planting, so broad when set!- nobody had
|
|
ever seen the peer of this camel. And how well he became his housing
|
|
of silk, and all its frippery of gold in fringe and gold in tassel!
|
|
The tinkling of silver bells went before him, and he moved lightly, as
|
|
if unknowing of his burden.
|
|
|
|
But who were the man and woman under the houdah?
|
|
|
|
Every eye saluted them with the inquiry.
|
|
|
|
If the former were a prince or a king, the philosophers of the crowd
|
|
might not deny the impartiality of Time. When they saw the thin
|
|
shrunken face buried under an immense turban, the skin of the hue of a
|
|
mummy, making it impossible to form an idea of his nationality, they
|
|
were pleased to think the limit of life was for the great as well as
|
|
the small. They saw about his person nothing so enviable as the
|
|
shawl which draped him.
|
|
|
|
The woman was seated in the manner of the East, amidst veils and
|
|
laces of surpassing fineness. Above her elbows she wore armlets
|
|
fashioned like coiled asps, and linked to bracelets at the wrists by
|
|
strands of gold; otherwise the arms were bare and of singular
|
|
natural grace, complemented with hands modelled daintily as a child's.
|
|
One of the hands rested upon the side of the carriage, showing tapered
|
|
fingers glittering with rings, and stained at the tips till they
|
|
blushed like the pink of mother-of-pearl. She wore an open caul upon
|
|
her head, sprinkled with beads of coral, and strung with coin-pieces
|
|
called sunlets, some of which were carried across her forehead,
|
|
while others fell down her back, half-smothered in the mass of her
|
|
straight blue-black hair, of itself an incomparable ornament, not
|
|
needing the veil which covered it, except as a protection against
|
|
sun and dust. From her elevated seat she looked upon the people
|
|
calmly, pleasantly, and apparently so intent upon studying them as
|
|
to be unconscious of the interest she herself was exciting; and,
|
|
what was unusual- nay, in violent contravention of the custom among
|
|
women of rank in public- she looked at them with an open face.
|
|
|
|
It was a fair face to see; quite youthful; in form, oval: complexion
|
|
not white, like the Greek; nor brunet, like the Roman; nor blond, like
|
|
the Gaul; but rather the tinting of the sun of the Upper Nile upon a
|
|
skin of such transparency that the blood shone through it on cheek and
|
|
brow with nigh the ruddiness of lamplight. The eyes, naturally
|
|
large, were touched along the lids with the black paint immemorial
|
|
throughout the East. The lips were slightly parted, disclosing,
|
|
through their scarlet lake, teeth of glistening whiteness. To all
|
|
these excellences of countenance the reader is finally besought to
|
|
superadd the air derived from the pose of a small head, classic in
|
|
shape, set upon a neck long, drooping, and graceful- the air, we may
|
|
fancy, happily described by the word queenly.
|
|
|
|
As if satisfied with the survey of people and locality, the fair
|
|
creature spoke to the driver- an Ethiopian of vast brawn, naked to the
|
|
waist- who led the camel nearer the fountain, and caused it to
|
|
kneel; after which he received from her hand a cup, and proceeded to
|
|
fill it at the basin. That instant the sound of wheels and the
|
|
trampling of horses in rapid motion broke the silence her beauty had
|
|
imposed, and, with a great outcry, the bystanders parted in every
|
|
direction, hurrying to get away.
|
|
|
|
"The Roman has a mind to ride us down. Look out!" Malluch shouted to
|
|
Ben-Hur, setting him at the same time an example of hasty flight.
|
|
|
|
The latter faced to the direction the sounds came from, and beheld
|
|
Messala in his chariot pushing the four straight at the crowd. This
|
|
time the view was near and distinct.
|
|
|
|
The parting of the company uncovered the camel, which might have
|
|
been more agile than his kind generally; yet the hoofs were almost
|
|
upon him, and he resting with closed eyes, chewing the endless cud
|
|
with such sense of security as long favouritism may be supposed to
|
|
have bred in him. The Ethiopian wrung his hands afraid. In the houdah,
|
|
the old man moved to escape; but he was hampered with age, and could
|
|
not, even in the face of danger, forget the dignity which was
|
|
plainly his habit. It was too late for the woman to save herself.
|
|
Ben-Hur stood nearest them, and he called to Messala-
|
|
|
|
"Hold! Look where thou goest! Back, back!"
|
|
|
|
The patrician was laughing in hearty good-humour; and, seeing
|
|
there was but one chance of rescue, Ben-Hur stepped in, and caught the
|
|
bits of the left yoke-steed and his mate. "Dog of a Roman! Carest thou
|
|
so little for life?" he cried, putting forth all his strength. The two
|
|
horses reared, and drew the others round; the tilting of the pole
|
|
tilted the chariot; Messala barely escaped a fall, while his
|
|
complacent Myrtilus rolled back like a clod to the ground. Seeing
|
|
the peril past, all the bystanders burst into derisive laughter.
|
|
|
|
The matchless audacity of the Roman then manifested itself.
|
|
Loosing the lines from his body, he tossed them to one side,
|
|
dismounted, walked round the camel, looked at Ben-Hur, and spoke
|
|
partly to the old man and partly to the woman.
|
|
|
|
"Pardon, I pray you- I pray you both. I am Messala," he said;
|
|
"and, by the old Mother of the earth, I swear I did not see you or
|
|
your camel! As to these good people- perhaps I trusted too much to
|
|
my skill. I sought a laugh at them- the laugh is theirs. Good may it
|
|
do them!"
|
|
|
|
The good-natured, careless look and gesture he threw the
|
|
bystanders accorded well with the speech. To hear what more he had
|
|
to say, they became quiet. Assured of victory over the body of the
|
|
offended, he signed his companion to take the chariot to a safer
|
|
distance, and addressed himself boldly to the woman.
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast interest in the good man here, whose pardon, if not
|
|
granted now, I shall seek with the greater diligence hereafter; his
|
|
daughter, I should say."
|
|
|
|
She made him no reply.
|
|
|
|
"By Pallas, thou art beautiful! Beware Apollo mistake thee not for
|
|
his lost love. I wonder what land can boast herself thy mother. Turn
|
|
not away. A truce! a truce! There is the sun of India in thine eyes;
|
|
in the corners of thy mouth, Egypt hath set her love-signs. Perpol!
|
|
Turn not to that slave, fair mistress, before proving merciful to this
|
|
one. Tell me at least that I am pardoned."
|
|
|
|
At this point she broke in upon him.
|
|
|
|
"Wilt thou come here?" she asked, smiling, and with gracious bend of
|
|
the head to Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"Take the cup and fill it, I pray thee," she said to the latter. "My
|
|
father is thirsty."
|
|
|
|
"I am thy most willing servant!"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur turned about to do the favour, and was face to face with
|
|
Messala. Their glances met; the Jew's defiant; the Roman's sparkling
|
|
with humour.
|
|
|
|
"O stranger, beautiful as cruel!" Messala said, waving his hand to
|
|
her. "If Apollo get thee not, thou shalt see me again. Not knowing thy
|
|
country, I cannot name a god to commend thee to; so, by all the
|
|
gods, I will commend thee to- myself!"
|
|
|
|
Seeing the Myrtilus had the four composed and ready, he returned
|
|
to the chariot. The woman looked after him as he moved away, and
|
|
whatever else there was in her look, there was no displeasure.
|
|
Presently she received the water; her father drank; then she raised
|
|
the cup to her lips, and, leaning down, gave it to Ben-Hur; never
|
|
action more graceful and gracious.
|
|
|
|
"Keep it, we pray of thee! It is full of blessings- all thine!"
|
|
|
|
Immediately the camel was aroused, and on his feet, and about to go,
|
|
when the old man called-
|
|
|
|
"Stand thou here."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur went to him respectfully.
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast served the stranger well to-day. There is but one God. In
|
|
his holy name I thank thee. I am Balthasar, the Egyptian. In the Great
|
|
Orchard of Palms, beyond the village of Daphne, in the shade of the
|
|
palms, Sheik Ilderim the Generous abideth in his tents, and we are his
|
|
guests. Seek us there. Thou shalt have welcome sweet with the savour
|
|
of the grateful."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur was left in wonder at the old man's clear voice and reverend
|
|
manner. As he gazed after the two departing, he caught sight of
|
|
Messala going as he had come, joyous, indifferent, and with a
|
|
mocking laugh.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.
|
|
|
|
THE CHARIOT RACE DISCUSSED.
|
|
|
|
As a rule, there is no surer way to the dislike of men than to
|
|
behave well where they have behaved badly. In this instance,
|
|
happily, Malluch was an exception to the rule. The affair he had
|
|
just witnessed raised Ben-Hur in his estimation, since he could not
|
|
deny him courage and address; could he now get some insight into the
|
|
young man's history, the results of the day would not be all
|
|
unprofitable to good master Simonides.
|
|
|
|
On the latter point, referring to what he had as yet learned, two
|
|
facts comprehended it all- the subject of his investigation was a Jew,
|
|
and the adopted son of a famous Roman. Another conclusion which
|
|
might be of importance was beginning to formulate itself in the shrewd
|
|
mind of the emissary; between Messala and the son of the duumvir there
|
|
was a connection of some kind. But what was it?- and how could it be
|
|
reduced to assurance? With all his sounding, the ways and means of
|
|
solution were not at call. In the heat of the perplexity, Ben-Hur
|
|
himself came to his help. He laid his hand on Malluch's arm and drew
|
|
him out of the crowd, which was already going back to its interest
|
|
in the grey old priest and the mystic fountain.
|
|
|
|
"Good Malluch," he said, stopping, "may a man forget his mother?"
|
|
|
|
The question was abrupt and without direction, and therefore of
|
|
the kind which leaves the person addressed in a state of confusion.
|
|
Malluch looked into Ben-Hur's face for a hint of meaning, but saw,
|
|
instead, two bright-red spots, one on each cheek, and in his eyes
|
|
traces of what might have been repressed tears; then he answered,
|
|
mechanically, "No!" adding, with fervour, "never;" and a moment after,
|
|
when he began to recover himself, "If he is an Israelite, never!"
|
|
And when at length he was completely recovered- "My first lesson in
|
|
the synagogue was the Shema; my next was the saying of the son of
|
|
Sirach, 'Honour thy father with thy whole soul, and forget not the
|
|
sorrows of thy mother.'"
|
|
|
|
The red spots on Ben-Hur's face deepened.
|
|
|
|
"The words bring my childhood back again; and, Malluch, they prove
|
|
you a genuine Jew. I believe I can trust you."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur let go the arm he was holding, and caught the folds of the
|
|
gown covering his own breast, and pressed them close, as if to smother
|
|
a pain, or a feeling there as sharp as a pain.
|
|
|
|
"My father," he said, "bore a good name, and was not without
|
|
honour in Jerusalem, where he dwelt. My mother, at his death, was in
|
|
the prime of womanhood; and it is not enough to say of her she was
|
|
good and beautiful: in her tongue was the law of kindness, and her
|
|
works were the praise of all in the gates, and she smiled at days to
|
|
come. I had a little sister, and she and I were the family, and we
|
|
were so happy that I, at least, have never seen harm in the saying
|
|
of the old rabbi, 'God could not be everywhere, and, therefore, he
|
|
made mothers.' One day an accident happened to a Roman in authority as
|
|
he was riding past our house at the head of a cohort; the
|
|
legionaries burst the gate and rushed in and seized us. I have not
|
|
seen my mother or sister since. I cannot say they are dead or
|
|
living. I do not know what became of them. But, Malluch, the man in
|
|
the chariot yonder was present at the separation; he gave us over to
|
|
the captors; he heard my mother's prayer for her children, and he
|
|
laughed when they dragged her away. Hardly may one say which graves
|
|
deepest in memory, love or hate. To-day I knew him afar- and, Malluch-
|
|
"
|
|
|
|
He caught the listener's arm again.
|
|
|
|
"And, Malluch, he knows and takes with him now the secret I would
|
|
give my life for: he could tell if she lives, and where she is, and
|
|
her condition; if she- no, they- much sorrow has made the two as
|
|
one- if they are dead, he could tell where they died, and of what, and
|
|
where their bones await my finding."
|
|
|
|
"And will he not?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Why?"
|
|
|
|
"I am a Jew, and he is a Roman."
|
|
|
|
"But Romans have tongues, and Jews, though ever so despised, have
|
|
methods to beguile them."
|
|
|
|
"For such as he? No; and, besides, the secret is one of state. All
|
|
my father's property was confiscated and divided."
|
|
|
|
Malluch nodded his head slowly, much as to admit the argument;
|
|
then he asked anew, "Did he not recognize you?"
|
|
|
|
"He could not. I was sent to death in life, and have been long since
|
|
accounted of the dead."
|
|
|
|
"I wonder you did not strike him," said Malluch, yielding to a touch
|
|
of passion.
|
|
|
|
"That would have been to put him past serving me forever. I would
|
|
have had to kill him, and Death, you know, keeps secrets better even
|
|
than a guilty Roman."
|
|
|
|
The man who, with so much to avenge, could so calmly put such an
|
|
opportunity aside must be confident of his future or have ready some
|
|
better design, and Malluch's interest changed with the thought; it
|
|
ceased to be that of an emissary in duty bound to another. Ben-Hur was
|
|
actually asserting a claim upon him for his own sake. In other
|
|
words, Malluch was preparing to serve him with good heart and from
|
|
downright admiration.
|
|
|
|
After brief pause, Ben-Hur resumed speaking.
|
|
|
|
"I would not take his life, good Malluch; against that extreme the
|
|
possession of the secret is for the present, at least, his
|
|
safeguard; yet I may punish him, and so you give me help, I will try."
|
|
|
|
"He is a Roman," said Malluch, without hesitation; "and I am of
|
|
the tribe of Judah. I will help you. If you choose, put me under oath-
|
|
under the most solemn oath."
|
|
|
|
"Give me your hand, that will suffice."
|
|
|
|
As their hands fell apart, Ben-Hur said, with lightened feeling,
|
|
"That I would charge you with is not difficult, good friend; neither
|
|
is it dreadful to conscience. Let us move on."
|
|
|
|
They took the road which led to the right across the meadow spoken
|
|
of in the description of the coming to the fountain. Ben-Hur was first
|
|
to break the silence.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know Sheik Ilderim the Generous?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Where is his Orchard of Palms? or, rather, Malluch, how far is it
|
|
beyond the village of Daphne?"
|
|
|
|
Malluch was touched by a doubt; he recalled the prettiness of the
|
|
favour shown him by the woman at the fountain, and wondered if he
|
|
who had the sorrows of a mother in mind was about to forget them for a
|
|
lure of love; yet he replied, "The Orchard of Palms lies beyond the
|
|
village two hours by horse, and one by a swift camel."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you; and to your knowledge once more. Have the games of which
|
|
you told me been widely published? and when will they take place?"
|
|
|
|
The questions were suggestive; and if they did not restore Malluch
|
|
his confidence, they at least stimulated his curiosity.
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes, they will be of ample splendour. The prefect is rich, and
|
|
could afford to lose his place; yet, as is the way with successful
|
|
men, his love of riches is nowise diminished; and to gain a friend
|
|
at court, if nothing more, he must make ado for the Consul
|
|
Maxentius, who is coming hither to make final preparations for a
|
|
campaign against the Parthians. The money there is in the preparations
|
|
the citizens of Antioch know from experience; so they have had
|
|
permission to join the prefect in the honours intended for the great
|
|
man. A month ago heralds went to the four quarters to proclaim the
|
|
opening of the Circus for the celebration. The name of the prefect
|
|
would be of itself good guarantee of variety and magnificence,
|
|
particularly throughout the East; but when to his promises Antioch
|
|
joins hers, all the islands and the cities by the sea stand assured of
|
|
the extraordinary, and will be here in person or by their most
|
|
famous professionals. The fees offered are royal."
|
|
|
|
"And the Circus- I have heard it is second only to the Maximus."
|
|
|
|
"At Rome, you mean. Well, ours seats two hundred thousand people,
|
|
yours seats seventy-five thousand more; yours is of marble, so is
|
|
ours; in arrangement they are exactly the same."
|
|
|
|
"Are the rules the same?"
|
|
|
|
Malluch smiled.
|
|
|
|
"If Antioch dared be original, son of Arrius, Rome would not be
|
|
the mistress she is. The laws of the Circus Maximus govern except in
|
|
one particular: there but four chariots may start at once, here all
|
|
start without reference to number."
|
|
|
|
"That is the practice of the Greeks," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Antioch is more Greek than Roman."
|
|
|
|
"So then, Malluch, I may choose my own chariot?"
|
|
|
|
"Your own chariot and horses. There is no restriction upon either."
|
|
|
|
While replying, Malluch observed the thoughtful look on Ben-Hur's
|
|
face give place to one of satisfaction.
|
|
|
|
"One thing more now, O Malluch. When will the celebration be?"
|
|
|
|
"Ah! your pardon," the other answered. "To-morrow- and the next
|
|
day," he said, counting aloud, "then, to speak in the Roman style,
|
|
if the sea-gods be propitious, the consul arrives. Yes, the sixth
|
|
day from this we have the games."
|
|
|
|
"The time is short, Malluch, but it is enough." The last words
|
|
were spoken decisively. "By the prophets of our old Israel! I will
|
|
take to the reins again. Stay! a condition; is there assurance that
|
|
Messala will be a competitor?"
|
|
|
|
Malluch saw now the plan, and all its opportunities for the
|
|
humiliation of the Roman; and he had not been true descendant of Jacob
|
|
if, with all his interest wakened, he had not rushed to a
|
|
consideration of the chances. His voice actually trembled as he
|
|
said, "Have you the practice?"
|
|
|
|
"Fear not, my friend. The winners in the Circus Maximus have held
|
|
their crowns these three years at my will. Ask them- ask the best of
|
|
them, and they will tell you so. In the last great games the emperor
|
|
himself offered me his patronage if I would take his horses in hand
|
|
and run them against the entries of the world."
|
|
|
|
"But you did not?"
|
|
|
|
Malluch spoke eagerly.
|
|
|
|
"I- I am a Jew"- Ben-Hur seemed shrinking within himself as he
|
|
spoke- "and, though I wear a Roman name, I dared not do professionally
|
|
a thing to sully my father's name in the cloisters and courts of the
|
|
Temple. In the palaestrae I could indulge practice which, if
|
|
followed into the circus, would become an abomination; and if I take
|
|
to the course here, Malluch, I swear it will not be for the prize or
|
|
the winner's fee."
|
|
|
|
"Hold- swear not so!" cried Malluch. "The fee is ten thousand
|
|
sestertii- a fortune for life!"
|
|
|
|
"Not for me, though the prefect trebled it fifty times. Better
|
|
than that, better than all the imperial revenues from the first year
|
|
of the first Caesar- I will make this race to humble my enemy.
|
|
Vengeance is permitted by the law."
|
|
|
|
Malluch smiled and nodded as if saying, "Right, right- trust me a
|
|
Jew to understand a Jew."
|
|
|
|
"The Messala will drive," he said, directly. "He is committed to the
|
|
race in many ways- by publication in the streets, and in the baths and
|
|
theatres, the palace and barracks; and, to fix him past retreat, his
|
|
name is on the tablets of every young spendthrift in Antioch."
|
|
|
|
"In wager, Malluch?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, in wager; and every day he comes ostentatiously to practise,
|
|
as you saw him."
|
|
|
|
"Ah! and that is the chariot, and those the horses, with which he
|
|
will make the race? Thank you, thank you, Malluch! You have served
|
|
me well already. I am satisfied. Now be my guide to the Orchard of
|
|
Palms, and give me introduction to Sheik Ilderim the Generous."
|
|
|
|
"When?"
|
|
|
|
"To-day. His horses may be engaged to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"You like them, then?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur answered with animation-
|
|
|
|
"I saw them from the stand an instant only, for Messala then drove
|
|
up, and I might not look at anything else; yet I recognized them as of
|
|
the blood which is the wonder as well as the glory of the deserts. I
|
|
never saw the kind before, except in the stables of Caesar; but once
|
|
seen they are always to be known. To-morrow, upon meeting, I will know
|
|
you, Malluch, though you do not so much as salute me; I will know
|
|
you by your face, by your form, by your manner; and by the same
|
|
signs I will know them, and with the same certainty. If all that is
|
|
said of them be true, and I can bring their spirit under control of
|
|
mine, I can- "
|
|
|
|
"Win the sestertii!" said Malluch, laughing.
|
|
|
|
"No," answered Ben-Hur, as quickly. "I will do what better becomes a
|
|
man born to the heritage of Jacob- I will humble mine enemy in a
|
|
most public place. But," he added, impatiently, "we are losing time.
|
|
How can we most quickly reach the tents of the sheik?"
|
|
|
|
Malluch took a moment for reflection.
|
|
|
|
"It is best we go straight to the village, which is fortunately near
|
|
by; if two swift camels are to be had for hire there, we will be on
|
|
the road but an hour."
|
|
|
|
"Let us about it, then."
|
|
|
|
The village was an assemblage of palaces in beautiful gardens,
|
|
interspersed with khans of princely sort. Dromedaries were happily
|
|
secured, and upon them the journey to the famous Orchard of Palms
|
|
was begun.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR HEARS OF CHRIST.
|
|
|
|
BEYOND the village the country was undulating and cultivated; in
|
|
fact, it was the garden-land of Antioch, with not a foot lost to
|
|
labour. The steep faces of the hills were terraced; even the hedges
|
|
were brighter of the trailing vines which, besides the lure of
|
|
shade, offered passers-by sweet promises of wine to come, and grapes
|
|
in clustered purple ripeness. Over melon-patches, and through
|
|
apricot and fig-tree groves, and groves of oranges and limes, the
|
|
white-washed houses of the farmers were seen; and everywhere Plenty,
|
|
the smiling daughter of Peace, gave notice by her thousand signs
|
|
that she was at home, making the generous traveller merry at heart,
|
|
until he was even disposed to give Rome her dues. Occasionally,
|
|
also, views were had of Taurus and Lebanon, between which, a
|
|
separating line of silver, the Orontes placidly pursued its way.
|
|
|
|
In course of their journey the friends came to the river, which they
|
|
followed with the windings of the road, now over bold bluffs, and then
|
|
into vales, all alike allotted for country-seats; and if the land
|
|
was in full foliage of oak and sycamore and myrtle, and bay and
|
|
arbutus, and perfuming jasmine, the river was bright with slanted
|
|
sunlight, which would have slept where it fell but for ships in
|
|
endless procession, gliding with the current, tacking for the wind, or
|
|
bounding under the impulse of oars- some coming, some going, and all
|
|
suggestive of the sea, and distant peoples, and famous places, and
|
|
things coveted on account of their rarity. To the fancy there is
|
|
nothing so winsome as a white sail seaward blown, unless it be a white
|
|
sail homeward bound, its voyage happily done. And down the shore the
|
|
friends went continuously till they came to a lake fed by
|
|
black-water from the river, clear, deep, and without current. An old
|
|
palm-tree dominated the angle of the inlet; turning to the left at the
|
|
foot of the tree, Malluch clapped his hands and shouted-
|
|
|
|
"Look, look! The Orchard of Palms!"
|
|
|
|
The scene was nowhere else to be found unless in the favoured
|
|
oases of Arabia or the Ptolemaean farms along the Nile; and to sustain
|
|
a sensation new as it was delightful, Ben-Hur was admitted into a
|
|
tract of land apparently without limit and level as a floor. All under
|
|
foot was fresh grass, in Syria the rarest and most beautiful
|
|
production of the soil; if he looked up, it was to see the sky
|
|
palely blue through the groinery of countless date-bearers, very
|
|
patriarchs of their kind, so numerous and old, and of such mighty
|
|
girth, so tall, so serried, so wide of branch, each branch so
|
|
perfect with fronds, plumy and wax-like and brilliant, they seemed
|
|
enchanters enchanted. Here was the grass colouring the very
|
|
atmosphere; there the lake, cool and clear, rippling but a few feet
|
|
under the surface, and helping the trees to their long life in old
|
|
age. Did the Grove of Daphne excel this one? And the palms, as if they
|
|
knew Ben-Hur's thought, and would win him after a way of their own,
|
|
seemed, as he passed under their arches, to stir and sprinkle him with
|
|
dewy coolness.
|
|
|
|
The road wound in close parallelism with the shore of the lake;
|
|
and when it carried the travellers down to the water's edge, there was
|
|
always on that side a shining expanse limited not far off by the
|
|
opposite shore, on which, as on this one, no tree but the palm was
|
|
permitted.
|
|
|
|
"See that," said Malluch, pointing to a giant of the place. "Each
|
|
ring upon its trunk marks a year of its life. Count them from root
|
|
to branch, and if the sheik tells you the grove was planted before the
|
|
Seleucidae were heard of in Antioch, do not doubt him."
|
|
|
|
One may not look at a perfect palm-tree but that, with a subtlety
|
|
all its own, it assumes a presence for itself, and makes a poet of the
|
|
beholder. This is the explanation of the honours it has received,
|
|
beginning with the artists of the first kings, who could find no
|
|
form in all the earth to serve them so well as a model for the pillars
|
|
of their palaces and temples; and for the same reason Ben-Hur was
|
|
moved to say-
|
|
|
|
"As I saw him at the stand to-day, good Malluch, Sheik Ilderim
|
|
appeared to be a very common man. The rabbis in Jerusalem would look
|
|
down upon him, I fear, as a son of a dog of Edom. How came he in
|
|
possession of the Orchard? And how has he been able to hold it against
|
|
the greed of Roman governors?"
|
|
|
|
"If blood derives excellence from time, son of Arrius, then is old
|
|
Ilderim a man, though he be an uncircumcised Edomite."
|
|
|
|
Mulluch spoke warmly.
|
|
|
|
"All his fathers before him were sheiks. One of them- I shall not
|
|
say when he lived or did the good deed- once helped a king who was
|
|
being hunted with swords. The story says he loaned him a thousand
|
|
horsemen, who knew the paths of the wilderness and its hiding-places
|
|
as shepherds know the scant hills they inhabit with their flocks;
|
|
and they carried him here and there until the opportunity came, and
|
|
then with their spears they slew the enemy, and set him upon his
|
|
throne again. And the king, it is said, remembered the service, and
|
|
brought the son of the desert to this place, and bade him set up his
|
|
tent and bring his family and his herds, for the lake and trees, and
|
|
all the land from the river to the nearest mountains, were his and his
|
|
children's forever. And they have never been disturbed in the
|
|
possession. The rulers succeeding have found it policy to keep good
|
|
terms with the tribe, to whom the Lord has given increase of men and
|
|
horses, and camels and riches, making them masters of many highways
|
|
between cities; so that it is with them any time they please to say to
|
|
commerce, 'Go in peace,' or 'Stop,' and what they say shall be done.
|
|
Even the prefect in the citadel overlooking Antioch thinks it happy
|
|
day with him when Ilderim, surnamed the Generous on account of good
|
|
deeds done unto all manner of men, with his wives and children, and
|
|
his trains of camels and horses, and his belongings of sheik, moving
|
|
as our fathers Abraham and Jacob moved, comes up to exchange briefly
|
|
his bitter wells for the pleasantness you see about us."
|
|
|
|
"How is it, then?" said Ben-Hur, who had been listening unmindful of
|
|
the slow gait of the dromedaries. "I saw the sheik tear his beard
|
|
while he cursed himself that he had put trust in a Roman. Caesar,
|
|
had he heard him, might have said, 'I like not such a friend as
|
|
this; put him away.'"
|
|
|
|
"It would be but shrewd judgment," Malluch replied, smiling.
|
|
"Ilderim is not a lover of Rome; he has a grievance. Three years ago
|
|
the Parthians rode across the road from Bozra to Damascus, and fell
|
|
upon a caravan laden, among other things, with the incoming
|
|
tax-returns of a district over that way. They slew every creature
|
|
taken, which the censors in Rome could have forgiven if the imperial
|
|
treasure had been spared and forwarded. The farmers of the taxes,
|
|
being chargeable with the loss, complained to Caesar, and Caesar
|
|
held Herod to payment, and Herod, on his part, seized property of
|
|
Ilderim, whom he charged with treasonable neglect of duty. The sheik
|
|
appealed to Caesar, and Caesar has made him such answer as might be
|
|
looked for from the unwinking sphinx. The old man's heart has been
|
|
aching sore ever since, and he nurses his wrath, and takes pleasure in
|
|
its daily growth."
|
|
|
|
"He can do nothing, Malluch."
|
|
|
|
"Well," said Malluch, "that involves another explanation, which I
|
|
will give you, if we can draw nearer. But see!- the hospitality of the
|
|
sheik begins early- the children are speaking to you."
|
|
|
|
The dromedaries stopped, and Ben-Hur looked down upon some little
|
|
girls of the Syrian peasant class, who were offering him their baskets
|
|
filled with dates. The fruit was freshly gathered, and not to be
|
|
refused; he stooped and took it, and as he did so a man in the tree by
|
|
which they were halted cried, "Peace to you, and welcome!"
|
|
|
|
Their thanks said to the children, the friends moved on at such gait
|
|
as the animals chose.
|
|
|
|
"You must know," Malluch continued, pausing now and then to
|
|
dispose of a date, "that the merchant Simonides gives me his
|
|
confidence, and sometimes flatters me by taking me into council; and
|
|
as I attend him at his house, I have made acquaintance with many of
|
|
his friends, who, knowing my footing with the host, talk to him freely
|
|
in my presence. In that way I became somewhat intimate with Sheik
|
|
Ilderim."
|
|
|
|
For a moment Ben-Hur's attention wandered. Before his mind's eye
|
|
there arose the image, pure, gentle, and appealing, of Esther, the
|
|
merchant's daughter. Her dark eyes bright with the peculiar Jewish
|
|
lustre met his in modest gaze; he heard her step as when she
|
|
approached him with the wine, and her voice as she tendered him the
|
|
cup; and he acknowledged to himself again all the sympathy she
|
|
manifested for him, and manifested so plainly that words were
|
|
unnecessary, and so sweetly that words would have been but a
|
|
detraction. The vision was exceeding pleasant, but upon his turning to
|
|
Malluch, it flew away.
|
|
|
|
"A few weeks ago," said Malluch, continuing, "the old Arab called on
|
|
Simonides, and found me present. I observed he seemed much moved about
|
|
something, and, in deference, offered to withdraw, but he himself
|
|
forbade me. 'As you are an Israelite,' he said, 'stay, for I have a
|
|
strange story to tell.' The emphasis on the word Israelite excited
|
|
my curiosity. I remained, and this is in substance his story- I cut it
|
|
short because we are drawing nigh the tent, and I leave the details to
|
|
the good man himself. A good many years ago, three men called at
|
|
Ilderim's tent out in the wilderness. They were all foreigners, a
|
|
Hindoo, a Greek, and an Egyptian; and they had come on camels, the
|
|
largest he had ever seen, and all white. He welcomed them, and gave
|
|
them rest. Next morning they arose and prayed a prayer new to the
|
|
sheik- a prayer addressed to God and his son- this with much mystery
|
|
besides. After breaking fast with him, the Egyptian told who they
|
|
were, and whence they had come. Each had seen a star, out of which a
|
|
voice had bidden them go to Jerusalem and ask, 'Where is he that is
|
|
born King of the Jews?' They obeyed. From Jerusalem they were led by a
|
|
star to Bethlehem, where, in a cave, they found a child newly born,
|
|
which they fell down and worshipped; and after worshipping it, and
|
|
giving it costly presents, and bearing witness of what it was, they
|
|
took to their camels, and fled without pause to the sheik, because
|
|
if Herod- meaning him surnamed the Great- could lay hands upon them,
|
|
he would certainly kill them. And, faithful to his habit, the sheik
|
|
took care of them, and kept them concealed for a year, when they
|
|
departed, leaving with him gifts of great value, and each going a
|
|
separate way."
|
|
|
|
"It is, indeed, a most wonderful story," Ben-Hur exclaimed at its
|
|
conclusion. "What did you say they were to ask at Jerusalem?"
|
|
|
|
"They were to ask, 'Where is he that is born King of the Jews?'"
|
|
|
|
"Was that all?"
|
|
|
|
"There was more to the question, but I cannot recall it."
|
|
|
|
"And they found the child?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, and worshipped him."
|
|
|
|
"It is a miracle, Malluch."
|
|
|
|
"Ilderim is a grave man, though excitable as all Arabs are. A lie on
|
|
his tongue is impossible."
|
|
|
|
Malluch spoke positively. Thereupon the dromedaries were
|
|
forgotten, and, quite as unmindful of their riders, they turned off
|
|
the road to the growing grass.
|
|
|
|
"Has Ilderim heard nothing more of the three men?" asked Ben-Hur.
|
|
"What became of them?"
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes, that was the cause of his coming to Simonides the day of
|
|
which I was speaking. Only the night before that day the Egyptian
|
|
reappeared to him."
|
|
|
|
"Where?"
|
|
|
|
"Here at the door of the tent to which we are coming."
|
|
|
|
"How knew he the man?"
|
|
|
|
"As you knew the horses to-day- by face and manner."
|
|
|
|
"By nothing else?"
|
|
|
|
"He rode the same great white camel, and gave him the same name-
|
|
Balthasar, the Egyptian."
|
|
|
|
"It is a wonder of the Lord's!"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur spoke with excitement.
|
|
|
|
And Malluch, wondering, asked, "Why so?"
|
|
|
|
"Balthasar, you said?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Balthasar, the Egyptian."
|
|
|
|
"That was the name the old man gave us at the fountain to-day."
|
|
|
|
Then, at the reminder, Malluch became excited.
|
|
|
|
"It is true," he said; "and the camel was the same- and you saved
|
|
the man's life."
|
|
|
|
"And the woman," said Ben-Hur, like one speaking to himself- "the
|
|
woman was his daughter."
|
|
|
|
He fell to thinking; and even the reader will say he was having a
|
|
vision of the woman, and that it was more welcome than that of Esther,
|
|
if only because it stayed longer with him; but no-
|
|
|
|
"Tell me again," he said, presently. "Were the three to ask,
|
|
'Where is he that is to be King of the Jews?'"
|
|
|
|
"Not exactly. The words were born to be King of the Jews. Those were
|
|
the words as the old sheik caught them first in the desert, and he has
|
|
ever since been waiting the coming of the king; nor can any one
|
|
shake his faith that he will come."
|
|
|
|
"How- as king?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, and bringing the doom of Rome- so says the sheik."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur kept silent awhile, thinking and trying to control his
|
|
feelings.
|
|
|
|
"The old man is one of many millions," he said, slowly- "one of many
|
|
millions each with a wrong to avenge; and this strange faith, Malluch,
|
|
is bread and wine to his hope; for who but a Herod may be King of
|
|
the Jews while Rome endures? But, following the story, did you hear
|
|
what Simonides said to him?"
|
|
|
|
"If Ilderim is a grave man, Simonides is a wise one," Malluch
|
|
Replied. "I listened, and he said- But hark! Some one comes overtaking
|
|
us."
|
|
|
|
The noise grew louder, until presently they heard the rumble of
|
|
wheels mixed with the beating of horse-hoofs- a moment later Sheik
|
|
Ilderim himself appeared on horseback, followed by a train, among
|
|
which were the four wine-red Arabs drawing the chariot. The sheik's
|
|
chin, in its muffling of long white beard, was drooped upon his
|
|
breast. Our friends had out-travelled him; but at sight of them, he
|
|
raised his head, and spoke kindly.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you!- Ah, my friend Malluch! Welcome! And tell me you
|
|
are not going, but just come; that you have something for me from
|
|
the good Simonides- may the Lord of his fathers keep him in life for
|
|
many years to come! Aye, take up the straps, both of you, and follow
|
|
me. I have bread and leben, or, if you prefer it, arrack and the flesh
|
|
of young kid. Come!"
|
|
|
|
They followed after him to the door of the tent, in which, when they
|
|
were dismounted, he stood to receive them, holding a platter with
|
|
three cups filled with creamy liquor just drawn from a great
|
|
smoke-stained skin bottle, pendent from the central post.
|
|
|
|
"Drink," he said, heartily, "drink, for this is the fear-naught of
|
|
the tentmen."
|
|
|
|
They each took a cup, and drank till but the foam remained.
|
|
|
|
"Enter now, in God's name."
|
|
|
|
And when they were gone in, Malluch took the sheik aside, and
|
|
spoke to him privately; after which he went to Ben-Hur and excused
|
|
himself.
|
|
|
|
"I have told the sheik about you, and he will give you the trial
|
|
of his horses in the morning. He is your friend. Having done for you
|
|
all I can, you must do the rest, and let me return to Antioch. There
|
|
is one there who has my promise to meet him to-night. I have no choice
|
|
but to go. I will come back to-morrow; prepared, if all goes well in
|
|
the meantime, to stay with you until the games are over."
|
|
|
|
With blessings given and received, Malluch set out in return.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI.
|
|
|
|
THE WISE SERVANT AND HIS DAUGHTER.
|
|
|
|
WHAT time the lower horn of a new moon touched the castellated piles
|
|
on Mount Sulpius, and two-thirds of the people of Antioch were out
|
|
on their house-tops comforting themselves with the night breeze when
|
|
it blew, and with fans when it failed, Simonides sat in the chair
|
|
which had come to be a part of him, and from the terrace looked down
|
|
over the river, and his ships a-swing at their moorings. The wall at
|
|
his back cast its shadow broadly over the water to the opposite shore.
|
|
Above him the endless tramp upon the bridge went on. Esther was
|
|
holding a plate for him containing his frugal supper- some wheaten
|
|
cakes light as wafers, some honey, and a bowl of milk, into which he
|
|
now and then dipped the wafers after dipping them into the honey.
|
|
|
|
"Malluch is a laggard to-night," he said, showing where his thoughts
|
|
were.
|
|
|
|
"Do you believe he will come?" Esther asked.
|
|
|
|
"Unless he has taken to the sea or the desert, and is yet
|
|
following on, he will come."
|
|
|
|
Simonides spoke with quiet confidence.
|
|
|
|
"He may write," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Not so, Esther. He would have despatched a letter when he found
|
|
he could not return, and told me so; because I have not received
|
|
such a letter, I know he can come, and will."
|
|
|
|
"I hope so," she said, very softly.
|
|
|
|
Something in the utterance attracted his attention; it might have
|
|
been the tone, it might have been the wish. The smallest bird cannot
|
|
light upon the greatest tree without sending a shock to its most
|
|
distant fibre; every mind is at times no less sensitive to the most
|
|
trifling words.
|
|
|
|
"You wish him to come, Esther?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," she said, lifting her eyes to his.
|
|
|
|
"Why? Can you tell me?" he persisted.
|
|
|
|
"Because"- she hesitated, then began again- "because the young man
|
|
is- " The stop was full.
|
|
|
|
"Our master. Is that the word?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"And you still think I should not suffer him to go away without
|
|
telling him to come, if he chooses, and take us- and all we have- all,
|
|
Esther- the goods, the shekels, the ships, the slaves, and the
|
|
mighty credit, which is a mantle of cloth of gold and finest silver
|
|
spun for me by the greatest of the angels of men- Success."
|
|
|
|
She made no answer.
|
|
|
|
"Does that move you nothing? No?" he said, with the slightest
|
|
taint of bitterness. "Well, well, I have found, Esther, the worst
|
|
reality is never unendurable when it comes out from behind the
|
|
clouds through which we at first see it darkly- never- not even the
|
|
rack. I suppose it will be so with death. And by that philosophy the
|
|
slavery to which we are going must afterwhile become sweet. It pleases
|
|
me even now to think what a favoured man our master is. The fortune
|
|
cost him nothing- not an anxiety, not a drop of sweat not so much as a
|
|
thought; it attaches to him undreamed of, and in his youth. And,
|
|
Esther, let me waste a little vanity with the reflection; he gets what
|
|
he could not go into the market and buy with all the pelf in a sum-
|
|
thee, my child, my darling; thou blossom from the tomb of my lost
|
|
Rachel!"
|
|
|
|
He drew her to him, and kissed her twice- once for herself, once for
|
|
her mother.
|
|
|
|
"Say not so," she said, when his hand fell from her neck. "Let us
|
|
think better of him; he knows what sorrow is, and will set us free."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, thy instincts are fine, Esther; and thou knowest I lean upon
|
|
them in doubtful cases where good or bad is to be pronounced of a
|
|
person standing before thee as he stood this morning. But- but"- his
|
|
voice rose and hardened- "these limbs upon which I cannot stand-
|
|
this body drawn and beaten out of human shape- they are not all I
|
|
bring him of myself. Oh no, no! I bring him a soul which has triumphed
|
|
over torture and Roman malice keener than any torture- I bring him a
|
|
mind which has eyes to see gold at a distance farther than the ships
|
|
of Solomon sailed, and power to bring it to hand- aye, Esther, into my
|
|
palm here for the fingers to grip and keep lest it take wings at
|
|
some other's word- a mind skilled at scheming"- he stopped and
|
|
laughed.- "Why, Esther, before the new moon, which in the courts of
|
|
the Temple on the Holy Hill they are this moment celebrating, passes
|
|
into its next quartering I could ring the world so as to startle
|
|
even Caesar; for know you, child, I have that faculty which is
|
|
better than any one sense, better than a perfect body, better than
|
|
courage and will, better than experience, ordinarily the best
|
|
product of the longest lives- the faculty divinest of men, but which"-
|
|
he stopped, and laughed again, not bitterly, but with real zest-
|
|
"but which even the great do not sufficiently account, while with
|
|
the herd it is a non-existent- the faculty of drawing men to my
|
|
purpose and holding them faithfully to its achievement, by which, as
|
|
against things to be done, I multiply myself into hundreds and
|
|
thousands. So the captains of my ships plough the seas, and bring me
|
|
honest returns; so Malluch follows the youth, our master, and will"-
|
|
just then a footstep was heard upon the terrace- "Ha, Esther! said I
|
|
not so?- He is here- and we will have tidings. For my sake, sweet
|
|
child- my lily just budded- I pray the Lord God, who has not forgotten
|
|
his wandering sheep of Israel, that they be good and comforting. Now
|
|
we will know if he will let thee go with all thy beauty, and me with
|
|
all my faculties."
|
|
|
|
Malluch came to the chair.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you, good master," he said, with a low obeisance- "and
|
|
to you, Esther, most excellent of daughters."
|
|
|
|
He stood before them deferentially, and the attitude and the address
|
|
left it difficult to define his relation to them; the one was that
|
|
of a servant, the other indicated the familiar and friend. On the
|
|
other side, Simonides, as was his habit in business, after answering
|
|
the salutation, went straight to the subject.
|
|
|
|
"What of the young man, Malluch?"
|
|
|
|
The events of the day were told quietly and in the simplest words,
|
|
and until he was through there was no interruption; nor did the
|
|
listener in the chair so much as move a hand during the narration; but
|
|
for his eyes, wide open and bright, and an occasional long-drawn
|
|
breath, he might have been accounted an effigy.
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, thank you, Malluch," he said, heartily, at the
|
|
conclusion; "you have done well- no one could have done better. Now
|
|
what say you of the young man's nationality?"
|
|
|
|
"He is an Israelite, good master, and of the tribe of Judah."
|
|
|
|
"You are positive?"
|
|
|
|
"Very positive."
|
|
|
|
"He appears to have told you but little of his life."
|
|
|
|
"He has somewhere learned to be prudent. I might call him
|
|
distrustful. He baffled all my attempts upon his confidence until we
|
|
started from the Castalian fount going to the village of Daphne."
|
|
|
|
"A place of abomination! Why went he there?"
|
|
|
|
"I would say from curiosity, the first motive of the many who go;
|
|
but, very strangely, he took no interest in the things he saw. Of
|
|
the Temple, he merely asked if it were Grecian. Good master, the young
|
|
man has a trouble of mind from which he would hide, and he went to the
|
|
Grove, I think, as we go to sepulchres with our dead- he went to
|
|
bury it."
|
|
|
|
"That were well, if so," Simonides said, in a low voice; then
|
|
louder, "Malluch, the curse of the time is prodigality. The poor
|
|
make themselves poorer as apes of the rich, and the merely rich
|
|
carry themselves like princes. Saw you signs of the weakness in the
|
|
youth? Did he display moneys- coin of Rome or Israel?"
|
|
|
|
"None, none, good master."
|
|
|
|
"Surely, Malluch, where there are so many inducements to folly- so
|
|
much, I mean, to eat and drink- surely he made you generous offer of
|
|
some sort. His age, if nothing more, would warrant that much."
|
|
|
|
"He neither ate nor drank in my company."
|
|
|
|
"In what he said or did, Malluch, could you in anywise detect his
|
|
master-idea? You know they peep through cracks close enough to stop
|
|
the wind."
|
|
|
|
"Give me to understand you," said Malluch, in doubt.
|
|
|
|
"Well, you know we nor speak nor act, much less decide grave
|
|
questions concerning ourselves, except we be driven by a motive. In
|
|
that respect, what make you of him?"
|
|
|
|
"As to that, Master Simonides, I can answer with much assurance.
|
|
He is devoted to finding his mother and sister- that first. Then he
|
|
has a grievance against Rome; and as the Messala of whom I told you
|
|
had something to do with the wrong, the great present object is to
|
|
humiliate him. The meeting at the fountain furnished an opportunity,
|
|
but it was put aside as not sufficiently public."
|
|
|
|
"The Messala is influential," said Simonides, thoughtfully.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; but the next meeting will be in the Circus."
|
|
|
|
"Well- and then?"
|
|
|
|
"The son of Arrius will win."
|
|
|
|
"How know you?"
|
|
|
|
Malluch smiled.
|
|
|
|
"I am judging by what he says."
|
|
|
|
"Is that all?"
|
|
|
|
"No; there is a much better sign- his spirit."
|
|
|
|
"Aye; but, Malluch, his idea of vengeance- what is its scope? Does
|
|
he limit it to the few who did him the wrong, or does he take in the
|
|
many? And more- is his feeling but the vagary of a sensitive boy, or
|
|
has it the seasoning of suffering manhood to give it endurance? You
|
|
know, Malluch, the vengeful thought that has root merely in the mind
|
|
is but a dream of idlest sort which one clear day will dissipate;
|
|
while revenge the passion is a disease of the heart which climbs up,
|
|
up to the brain, and feeds itself on both alike."
|
|
|
|
In this question, Simonides for the first time showed signs of
|
|
feeling; he spoke with rapid utterance, and with clenched hands and
|
|
the eagerness of a man illustrating the disease he described.
|
|
|
|
"Good, my master," Malluch replied, "one of my reasons for believing
|
|
the young man a Jew is the intensity of his hate. It was plain to me
|
|
that he had himself under watch, as was natural, seeing how long he
|
|
has lived in an atmosphere of Roman jealousy; yet I saw it blaze- once
|
|
when he wanted to know Ilderim's feeling towards Rome, and again
|
|
when I told him the story of the sheik and the wise man, and spoke
|
|
of the question, 'Where is he that is born King of the Jews?'"
|
|
|
|
Simonides leaned forward quickly.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, Malluch, his words- give me his words; let me judge the
|
|
impression the mystery made upon him."
|
|
|
|
"He wanted to know the exact words. Were they to be or born to be?
|
|
It appeared he was struck by a seeming difference in the effect of the
|
|
two phrases."
|
|
|
|
Simonides settled back into his pose of listening judge.
|
|
|
|
"Then," said Malluch, "I told him Ilderim's view of the mystery-
|
|
that the king would come with the doom of Rome. The young man's
|
|
blood rose over his cheeks and forehead, and he said earnestly, 'Who
|
|
but a Herod can be king while Rome endures?'"
|
|
|
|
"Meaning what?"
|
|
|
|
"That the empire must be destroyed before there could be another
|
|
rule."
|
|
|
|
Simonides gazed for a time at the ships and their shadows slowly
|
|
swinging together in the river; when he looked up, it was to end the
|
|
interview.
|
|
|
|
"Enough, Malluch," he said. "Get you to eat, and make ready to
|
|
return to the Orchard of Palms; you must help the young man in his
|
|
coming trial. Come to me in the morning. I will send a letter to
|
|
Ilderim." Then in an undertone, as if to himself, he added, "I may
|
|
attend the Circus myself."
|
|
|
|
When Malluch, after the customary benediction given and received,
|
|
was gone, Simonides took a deep draught of milk, and seemed
|
|
refreshed and easy of mind.
|
|
|
|
"Put the meal down, Esther," he said; "it is over."
|
|
|
|
She obeyed.
|
|
|
|
"Here now."
|
|
|
|
She resumed her place upon the arm of the chair close to him.
|
|
|
|
"God is good to me, very good," he said, fervently. "His habit is to
|
|
move in mystery, yet sometimes he permits us to think we see and
|
|
understand him. I am old, dear, and must go; but now, in this eleventh
|
|
hour, when my hope was beginning to die, he sends me this one with a
|
|
promise, and I am lifted up. I see the way to a great part in a
|
|
circumstance itself so great that it shall be as a new birth to the
|
|
whole world. And I see a reason for the gift of my great riches, and
|
|
the end for which they were designed. Verily, my child, I take hold on
|
|
life anew."
|
|
|
|
Esther nestled closer to him, as if to bring his thoughts from their
|
|
far-flying.
|
|
|
|
"The king has been born," he continued, imagining he was still
|
|
speaking to her, "and he must be near the half of common life.
|
|
Balthasar says he was a child on his mother's lap when he saw him, and
|
|
gave him presents and worship; and Ilderim holds it was twenty-seven
|
|
years ago last December when Balthasar and his companions came to
|
|
his tent asking a hiding-place from Herod. Wherefore the coming cannot
|
|
now be long delayed. To-night- to-morrow it may be. Holy fathers of
|
|
Israel, what happiness in the thought! I seem to hear the crash of the
|
|
falling of old walls and the clamour of a universal change- aye, and
|
|
for the uttermost joy of men, the earth opens to take Rome in, and
|
|
they look up and laugh and sing that she is not, while we are;" then
|
|
he laughed at himself. "Why, Esther, heard you ever the like?
|
|
Surely, I have on me the passion of a singer, the heat of blood and
|
|
the thrill of Miriam and David. In my thoughts, which should be
|
|
those of a plain worker in figures and facts, there is a confusion
|
|
of cymbals clashing and harp-strings loud beaten, and the voices of
|
|
a multitude standing around a new-risen throne. I will put the
|
|
thinking by for the present; only, dear, when the king comes he will
|
|
need money and men, for as he was a child born of woman he will be but
|
|
a man after all, bound to human ways as you and I are. And for the
|
|
money he will have need of getters and keepers, and for the men
|
|
leaders. There, there! See you not a broad road for my walking, and
|
|
the running of the youth, our master?- and at the end of it glory
|
|
and revenge for us both?- and- and"- he paused, struck with the
|
|
selfishness of a scheme in which she had no part or good result;
|
|
then added, kissing her, "And happiness for thy mother's child."
|
|
|
|
She sat still, saying nothing. Then he remembered the difference
|
|
in natures, and the law by which we are not permitted always to take
|
|
delight in the same cause or be equally afraid of the same thing. He
|
|
remembered she was but a girl.
|
|
|
|
"Of what are you thinking, Esther?" he said, in his common,
|
|
home-like way. "If the thought have the form of a wish, give it me,
|
|
little one, while the power remains mine. For power, you know, is a
|
|
fretful thing, and hath its wings always spread for flight."
|
|
|
|
She answered with a simplicity almost childish-
|
|
|
|
"Send for him, father. Send for him to-night, and do not let him
|
|
go into the Circus."
|
|
|
|
"Ah!" he said, prolonging the exclamation; and again his eyes fell
|
|
upon the river, where the shadows were more shadowy than ever, since
|
|
the moon had sunk far down behind Sulpius, leaving the city to the
|
|
ineffectual stars. Shall we say it, reader? He was touched by a twinge
|
|
of jealousy. If she should really love the young master! Oh no! That
|
|
could not be; she was too young. But the idea had fast grip, and
|
|
directly held him still and cold. She was sixteen. He knew it well. On
|
|
the last natal day he had gone with her to the shipyard where there
|
|
was a launch, and the yellow flag which the galley bore to its
|
|
bridal with the waves had on it "Esther;" so they celebrated the day
|
|
together. Yet the fact struck him now with the force of a surprise.
|
|
There are realizations which come to us all painfully; mostly,
|
|
however, such as pertain to ourselves; that we are growing old, for
|
|
instance, and, more terrible, that we must die. Such a one crept
|
|
into his heart, shadowy as the shadows, yet substantial enough to
|
|
wring from him a sigh which was almost a groan. It was not
|
|
sufficient that she should enter upon her young womanhood a servant,
|
|
but she must carry to her master her affections, the truth and
|
|
tenderness and delicacy of which he the father so well knew, because
|
|
to this time they had all been his own undividedly. The fiend whose
|
|
task it is to torture us with fears and bitter thoughts seldom does
|
|
his work by halves. In the pang of the moment, the brave old man
|
|
lost sight of his new scheme, and of the miraculous king its
|
|
subject. By a mighty effort, however, he controlled himself, and
|
|
asked, calmly, "Not go into the Circus, Esther? Why, child?"
|
|
|
|
"It is not a place for a son of Israel, father."
|
|
|
|
"Rabbinical, rabbinical, Esther! Is that all?"
|
|
|
|
The tone of the inquiry was searching, and went to her heart,
|
|
which began to beat loudly- so loudly she could not answer. A
|
|
confusion new and strangely pleasant fell upon her.
|
|
|
|
"The young man is to have the fortune," he said, taking her hand,
|
|
and speaking more tenderly; "he is to have the ships and the
|
|
shekels- all, Esther, all. Yet I did not feel poor, for thou wert left
|
|
me, and thy love so like the dead Rachel's. Tell me, is he to have
|
|
that too?"
|
|
|
|
She bent over him, and laid her cheek against his head.
|
|
|
|
"Speak, Esther. I will be the stronger of the knowledge. In
|
|
warning there is strength."
|
|
|
|
She sat up then, and spoke as if she were Truth's holy self.
|
|
|
|
"Comfort thee, father. I will never leave thee; though he take my
|
|
love, I will be thy handmaid ever as now."
|
|
|
|
And, stooping, she kissed him.
|
|
|
|
"And more," she said, continuing; "he is comely in my sight, and the
|
|
pleading of his voice drew me to him, and I shudder to think of him in
|
|
danger. Yes, father, I would be more than glad to see him again.
|
|
Still, the love that is unrequited cannot be perfect love, wherefore I
|
|
will wait a time, remembering I am thy daughter and my mother's."
|
|
|
|
"A very blessing of the Lord art thou, Esther! A blessing to keep me
|
|
rich, though all else be lost. And by his holy name and everlasting
|
|
life, I swear thou shalt not suffer."
|
|
|
|
At his request, a little later, the servant came and rolled the
|
|
chair into the room, where he sat for a time thinking of the coming of
|
|
the king, while she went off and slept the sleep of the innocent.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.
|
|
|
|
A ROMAN ORGIE.
|
|
|
|
THE palace across the river nearly opposite Simonides' place is said
|
|
to have been completed by the famous Epiphanes, and was all such a
|
|
habitation can be imagined; though he was a builder whose taste ran to
|
|
the immense rather than the classical, now so called- an architectural
|
|
imitator, in other words, of the Persians instead of the Greeks.
|
|
|
|
The wall enclosing the whole island to the water's edge, and built
|
|
for the double purpose of bulwark against the river and defence
|
|
against the mob, was said to have rendered the palace unfit for
|
|
constant occupancy, insomuch that the legates abandoned it and moved
|
|
to another residence erected for them on the western ridge of Mount
|
|
Sulpius, under the Temple of Jupiter. Persons were not wanting,
|
|
however, who flatly denied the bill against the ancient abode. They
|
|
said, with shrewdness at least, that the real object of the removal of
|
|
the legates was not a more healthful locality, but the assurance
|
|
afforded them by the huge barracks, named, according to the
|
|
prevalent style, citadel, situated just over the way on the eastern
|
|
ridge of the mount. And the opinion had plausible showing. Among other
|
|
pertinent things, it was remarked that the palace was kept in
|
|
perpetual readiness for use; and when a consul, general of the army,
|
|
king, or visiting potentate of any kind arrived at Antioch, quarters
|
|
were at once assigned him on the island.
|
|
|
|
As we have to do with but one apartment in the old pile, the residue
|
|
of it is left to the reader's fancy; and as pleases him, he may go
|
|
through its gardens, baths, halls, and labyrinth of rooms to the
|
|
pavilions on the roof, all furnished as became a house of fame in a
|
|
city which was more nearly Milton's "gorgeous East" than any other
|
|
in the world.
|
|
|
|
At this age the apartment alluded to would be termed a saloon. It
|
|
was quite spacious, floored with polished marble slabs, and lighted in
|
|
the day by skylights in which coloured mica served as glass. The walls
|
|
were broken by Atlantes, no two of which were alike, but all
|
|
supporting a cornice wrought with arabesques exceedingly intricate
|
|
in form, and more elegant on account of superadditions of colour-
|
|
blue, green, Tyrian purple, and gold. Around the room ran a continuous
|
|
divan of Indian silks and wool of Cashmere. The furniture consisted of
|
|
tables and stools of Egyptian patterns grotesquely carved. We have
|
|
left Simonides in his chair perfecting his scheme in aid of the
|
|
miraculous king, whose coming he has decided is so close at hand.
|
|
Esther is asleep; and now, having crossed the river by the bridge, and
|
|
made way through the lion-guarded gate and a number of Babylonian
|
|
halls and courts, let us enter the gilded saloon.
|
|
|
|
There are five chandeliers hanging by sliding bronze chains from the
|
|
ceiling- one in each corner, and in the centre one- enormous
|
|
pyramids of lighted lamps, illuminating even the demoniac faces of the
|
|
Atlantes and the complex tracery of the cornice. About the tables,
|
|
seated or standing, or moving restlessly from one to another, there
|
|
are probably a hundred persons, whom we must study at least for a
|
|
moment.
|
|
|
|
They are all young, some of them little more than boys. That they
|
|
are Italians and mostly Romans is past doubt. They all speak Latin
|
|
in purity, while each one appears in the indoor dress of the great
|
|
capital on the Tiber; that is, in tunics short of sleeve and skirt,
|
|
a style of vesture well adapted to the climate of Antioch, and
|
|
especially comfortable in the too close atmosphere of the saloon. On
|
|
the divan here and there togas and lacernae lie where they have been
|
|
carelessly tossed, some of them significantly bordered with purple. On
|
|
the divan also lie sleepers stretched at ease; whether they were
|
|
overcome by the heat and fatigue of the sultry day or by Bacchus we
|
|
will not pause to inquire.
|
|
|
|
The hum of voices is loud and incessant. Sometimes there is an
|
|
explosion of laughter, sometimes a burst of rage or exultation; but
|
|
over all prevails a sharp prolonged rattle, at first somewhat
|
|
confusing to the non-familiar. If we approach the tables, however, the
|
|
mystery solves itself. The company is at the favourite games, draughts
|
|
and dice, singly or together, and the rattle is merely of the
|
|
tesserae, or ivory cubes, loudly shaken, and the moving of the
|
|
hostes on the checkered boards.
|
|
|
|
Who are the company?
|
|
|
|
"Good Flavius," said a player, holding his piece in suspended
|
|
movement, "thou seest yon lacerna; that one in front of us on the
|
|
divan. It is fresh from the shop, and hath a shoulder-buckle of gold
|
|
broad as a palm."
|
|
|
|
"Well," said Flavius, intent upon his game, "I have seen such
|
|
before; wherefore thine may not be old, yet, by the girdle of Venus,
|
|
it is not new! What of it?"
|
|
|
|
"Nothing. only I would give it to find a man who knows everything."
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha! For something cheaper, I will find thee here several with
|
|
purple who will take thy offer. But play."
|
|
|
|
"There- check!"
|
|
|
|
"So, by all the Jupiters! Now, what sayest thou? Again?"
|
|
|
|
"Be it so."
|
|
|
|
"And the wager?"
|
|
|
|
"A sestertium."
|
|
|
|
Then each drew his tablets and stilus and made a memorandum; and,
|
|
while they were resetting the pieces, Flavius returned to his friend's
|
|
remark.
|
|
|
|
"A man who knows everything! Hercle! the oracles would die. What
|
|
would thou with such a monster?"
|
|
|
|
"Answer to one question, my Flavius; then perpol! I would cut his
|
|
throat."
|
|
|
|
"And the question?"
|
|
|
|
"I would have him tell me the hour- Hour, said I?- nay, the
|
|
minute- Maxentius will arrive to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"Good play, good play! I have you! And why the minute?"
|
|
|
|
"Hast thou ever stood uncovered in the Syrian sun on the quay at
|
|
which he will land? The fires of the Vesta are not so hot; and, by the
|
|
Stator of our father Romulus, I would die, if die I must, in Rome.
|
|
Avernus is here; there, in the square before the Forum, I could stand,
|
|
and, with my hand raised thus, touch the floor of the gods. Ha, by
|
|
Venus, my Flavius, thou didst beguile me! I have lost. O Fortune!"
|
|
|
|
"Again?"
|
|
|
|
"I must have back my sestertium."
|
|
|
|
"Be it so."
|
|
|
|
And they played again and again; and when day, stealing through
|
|
the skylights, began to dim the lamps, it found the two in the same
|
|
places at the same table, still at the game. Like most of the company,
|
|
they were military attaches of the consul, awaiting his arrival and
|
|
amusing themselves meantime.
|
|
|
|
During this conversation a party entered the room, and, unnoticed at
|
|
first, proceeded to the central table. The signs were that they had
|
|
come from a revel just dismissed. Some of them kept their feet with
|
|
difficulty. Around the leader's brow was a chaplet which marked him
|
|
master of the feast, if not the giver. The wine had made no impression
|
|
upon him unless to heighten his beauty, which was of the most manly
|
|
Roman style; he carried his head high raised; the blood flushed his
|
|
lips and cheeks brightly; his eyes glittered; though the manner in
|
|
which, shrouded in a toga spotless white and of ample folds, he walked
|
|
was too nearly imperial for one sober and not a Caesar. In going to
|
|
the table, he made room for himself and his followers with little
|
|
ceremony and no apologies; and when at length he stopped, and looked
|
|
over it and at the players, they all turned to him, with a shout
|
|
like a cheer.
|
|
|
|
"Messala! Messala!" they cried.
|
|
|
|
Those in distant quarters hearing the cry, re-echoed it where they
|
|
were. Instantly there were dissolution of groups, and breaking-up of
|
|
games, and a general rush towards the centre.
|
|
|
|
Messala took the demonstration indifferently, and proceeded
|
|
presently to show the ground of his popularity.
|
|
|
|
"A health to thee, Drusus, my friend," he said to the player next at
|
|
his right; "a health- and thy tablets a moment."
|
|
|
|
He raised the waxen boards, glanced at the memoranda of wagers,
|
|
and tossed them down.
|
|
|
|
"Denarii, only denarii- coin of cartmen and butchers!" he said, with
|
|
a scornful laugh. "By the drunken Semele, to what is Rome coming, when
|
|
a Caesar sits o' nights waiting a turn of fortune to bring him but a
|
|
beggarly denarius!"
|
|
|
|
The scion of the Drusi reddened to his brows, but the bystanders
|
|
broke in upon his reply by surging closer around the table, and
|
|
shouting, "The Messala! the Messala!"
|
|
|
|
"Men of the Tiber," Messala continued, wresting a box with the
|
|
dice in it from a hand near by, "who is he most favoured of the
|
|
gods? A Roman. Who is he lawgiver of the nations? A Roman. Who is
|
|
he, by sword right, the universal master?"
|
|
|
|
The company were of the easily inspired, and the thought was one
|
|
to which they were born; in a twinkling they snatched the answer
|
|
from him.
|
|
|
|
"A Roman, a Roman!" they shouted.
|
|
|
|
"Yet- yet"- he lingered to catch their ears- "yet there is a
|
|
better than the best of Rome."
|
|
|
|
He tossed his patrician head and paused, as if to sting them with
|
|
his sneer.
|
|
|
|
"Hear ye?" he asked. "There is a better than the best of Rome."
|
|
|
|
"Ay- Hercules!" cried one.
|
|
|
|
"Bacchus!" yelled a satirist.
|
|
|
|
"Jove- Jove!" thundered the crowd.
|
|
|
|
"No," Messala answered, "among men."
|
|
|
|
"Name him, name him!" they demanded.
|
|
|
|
"I will," he said, the next lull. "He who to the perfection of
|
|
Rome hath added the perfection of the East; who to the arm of
|
|
conquest, which is Western, hath also the art needful to the enjoyment
|
|
of dominion, which is Eastern."
|
|
|
|
"Perpol! His best is a Roman, after all," some one shouted; and
|
|
there was a great laugh, and long clapping of hands- an admission that
|
|
Messala had the advantage.
|
|
|
|
"In the East," he continued, "we have no gods, only Wine, Women, and
|
|
Fortune, and the greatest of them is Fortune; wherefore our motto,
|
|
'Who dareth what I dare?'- fit for the senate, fit for battle, fittest
|
|
for him who, seeking the best, challenges the worst."
|
|
|
|
His voice dropped into an easy, familiar tone, but without
|
|
relaxing the ascendency he had gained.
|
|
|
|
"In the great chest up in the citadel I have five talents coin
|
|
current in the markets, and here are the receipts for them."
|
|
|
|
From his tunic he drew a roll of paper, and flinging it on the
|
|
table, continued, amidst breathless silence, every eye having him in
|
|
view fixed on his, every ear listening-
|
|
|
|
"The sum lies there the measure of what I dare. Who of you dares
|
|
so much? You are silent. Is it too great? I will strike off one
|
|
talent. What! still silent? Come, then, throw me once for these
|
|
three talents- only three; for two; for one- one at least- one for the
|
|
honour of the river by which you were born- Rome East against Rome
|
|
West!- Orontes the barbarous against Tiber the sacred!"
|
|
|
|
He rattled the dice overhead while waiting.
|
|
|
|
"The Orontes against the Tiber!" he repeated, with an increase of
|
|
scornful emphasis.
|
|
|
|
Not a man moved; then he flung the box upon the table, and,
|
|
laughing, took up the receipts.
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha, ha! By the Olympian Jove, I know now we have fortunes to
|
|
make or to mend; therefore are ye come to Antioch. Ho, Cecilius!"
|
|
|
|
"Here, Messala!" cried a man behind him; "here am I, perishing in
|
|
the mob, and begging a drachma to settle with the ragged ferryman.
|
|
But, Pluto take me! these new ones have not so much as an obolus among
|
|
them."
|
|
|
|
The sally provoked a burst of laughter, under which the saloon
|
|
rang and rang again, Messala alone kept his gravity.
|
|
|
|
"Go, thou," he said to, Cecilius, "to the chamber whence we came,
|
|
and bid the servants bring the amphorae here, and the cups and
|
|
goblets. If these our countrymen, looking for fortune, have not
|
|
purses, by the Syrian Bacchus, I will see if they are not better
|
|
blessed with stomachs! Haste thee!"
|
|
|
|
Then he turned to Drusus, with a laugh heard throughout the
|
|
apartment.
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha, my friend! Be thou not offended because I levelled the
|
|
Caesar in thee down to the denarii. Thou seest I did but use the
|
|
name to try these fine fledglings of our old Rome. Come, my Drusus,
|
|
come!" He took up the box again and rattled the dice merrily. "Here,
|
|
for what sum thou wilt, let us measure fortunes."
|
|
|
|
The manner was frank, cordial, winsome. Drusus melted in a moment.
|
|
|
|
"By the Nymphae, yes!" he said laughing. "I will throw with thee,
|
|
Messala- for a denarius."
|
|
|
|
A very boyish person was looking over the table, watching the scene.
|
|
Suddenly Messala turned to him.
|
|
|
|
"Who art thou?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
The lad drew back.
|
|
|
|
"Nay, by Castor I and his brother too! I mean not offence. It is a
|
|
rule among men, in matters other than dice, to keep the record closest
|
|
when the deal is least. I have need of a clerk. Wilt thou serve me?"
|
|
|
|
The young fellow drew his tablets ready to keep the score; the
|
|
manner was irresistible.
|
|
|
|
"Hold, Messala, hold!" cried Drusus. "I know not if it be ominous to
|
|
stay the poised dice with a question; but one occurs to me, and I must
|
|
ask it though Venus slap me with her girdle."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, my Drusus, Venus with her girdle off is Venus in love. To
|
|
thy question- I will make the throw and hold it against mischance.
|
|
Thus- "
|
|
|
|
He turned the box upon the table, and held it firmly over the dice.
|
|
|
|
And Drusus asked. "Did you ever see one Quintus Arrius?"
|
|
|
|
"The duumvir?"
|
|
|
|
"No- his son?"
|
|
|
|
"I knew not he had a son."
|
|
|
|
"Well, it is nothing," Drusus added, indifferently; "only, my
|
|
Messala, Pollux was not more like Castor than Arrius is like thee."
|
|
|
|
The remark had the effect of a signal: twenty voices took it up.
|
|
|
|
"True, true! His eyes- his face," they cried.
|
|
|
|
"What!" answered one, disgusted. "Messala is a Roman; Arrius is a
|
|
Jew."
|
|
|
|
"Thou sayest right," a third exclaimed. "He is a Jew, or Momus
|
|
lent his mother the wrong mask."
|
|
|
|
There was a promise of a dispute; seeing which, Messala
|
|
interposed. "The wine is not come, my Drusus; and, as thou seest, I
|
|
have the freckled Pythias as they were dogs in leash. As to Arrius,
|
|
I will accept thy opinion of him, so thou tell me more about him."
|
|
|
|
"Well, be he Jew or Roman- and, by the great god Pan, I say it not
|
|
in disrespect of thy feelings, my Messala!- this Arrius is handsome,
|
|
and brave, and shrewd. The emperor offered him favour and patronage,
|
|
which he refused. He came up through mystery, and keepeth distance
|
|
as if he felt himself better or knew himself worse than the rest of
|
|
us. In the palaestrae he was unmatched; he played with the blue-eyed
|
|
giants from the Rhine and the hornless bulls of Sarmatia as they
|
|
were willow wisps. The duumvir left him vastly rich. He has a
|
|
passion for arms, and thinks of nothing but war. Maxentius admitted
|
|
him into his family, and he was to have taken ship with us, but we
|
|
lost him at Ravenna. Nevertheless he arrived safely. We heard of him
|
|
this morning. Perpol! Instead of coming to the palace or going to
|
|
the citadel, he dropped his baggage at the khan, and hath
|
|
disappeared again."
|
|
|
|
At the beginning of the speech Messala listened with polite
|
|
indifference; as it proceeded he became more attentive; at the
|
|
conclusion he took his hand from the dice-box, and called out, "Ho, my
|
|
Caius! Dost thou hear?"
|
|
|
|
A youth at his elbow- his Myrtilus, or comrade, in the day's chariot
|
|
practice- answered, much pleased with the attention, "Did I not, my
|
|
Messala, I were not thy friend."
|
|
|
|
"Dost thou remember the man who gave thee the fall to-day?"
|
|
|
|
"By the love-locks of Bacchus, have I not a bruised shoulder to help
|
|
me keep it in mind?" and he seconded the words with a shrug that
|
|
submerged his ears.
|
|
|
|
"Well, be thou grateful to the Fates- I have found thy enemy.
|
|
Listen."
|
|
|
|
Thereupon Messala turned to Drusus.
|
|
|
|
"Tell us more of him- perpol!- of him who is both Jew and Roman-
|
|
by Phoebus, a combination to make a Centaur lovely! What garments doth
|
|
he affect, my Drusus?"
|
|
|
|
"Those of the Jews."
|
|
|
|
"Hearest thou, Caius?" said Messala. "The fellow is young- one; he
|
|
hath the visage of a Roman- two; he loveth best the garb of a Jew-
|
|
three; and in the palaestrae fame and fortune come of arms to throw
|
|
a horse or tilt a chariot, as the necessity may order- four. And,
|
|
Drusus, help thou my friend again. Doubtless this Arrius hath tricks
|
|
of language, otherwise he could not so confound himself- to-day a Jew,
|
|
to-morrow a Roman; but of the rich tongue of Athene- discourseth he in
|
|
that as well?"
|
|
|
|
"With such purity, Messala, he might have been a contestant in the
|
|
Isthmia."
|
|
|
|
"Art thou listening, Caius?" said Messala. "The fellow is
|
|
qualified to salute a woman- for that matter, Aristomache herself-
|
|
in the Greek; and as I keep the count, that is five. What sayest
|
|
thou?"
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast found him, my Messala," Caius answered; "or I am not
|
|
myself."
|
|
|
|
"Thy pardon, Drusus- and pardon of all- for speaking in riddles
|
|
thus," Messala said, in his winsome way. "By all the decent gods, I
|
|
would not strain thy courtesy to the point of breaking, but now help
|
|
thou me. See!"- he put his hand on the dice-box again, laughing-
|
|
"see how close I hold the Pythias and their secret! Thou didst
|
|
speak, I think, of mystery in connection with the coming of the son of
|
|
Arrius. Tell me of that."
|
|
|
|
"'Tis nothing, Messala, nothing," Drusus replied, "a child's
|
|
story. When Arrius, the father, sailed in pursuit of the pirates, he
|
|
was without wife or family; he returned with a boy- him of whom we
|
|
speak- and next day adopted him."
|
|
|
|
"Adopted him?" Messala repeated. "By the gods, Drusus, thou dost,
|
|
indeed, interest me! Where did the duumvir find the boy? And who was
|
|
he?"
|
|
|
|
"Who shall answer thee that, Messala? who but the young Arrius
|
|
himself? Perpol! in the fight the duumvir- then but a tribune- lost
|
|
his galley. A returning vessel found him and one other- all of the
|
|
crew who survived- afloat upon the same plank. I give you now the
|
|
story of the rescuers, which hath this excellence at least- it hath
|
|
never been contradicted. They say, the duumvir's companion on the
|
|
plank was a Jew- "
|
|
|
|
"A Jew!" echoed Messala.
|
|
|
|
"And a slave."
|
|
|
|
"How, Drusus? A slave?"
|
|
|
|
"When the two were lifted to the deck, the duumvir was in his
|
|
tribune's armour, and the other in the vesture of a rower."
|
|
|
|
Messala arose from leaning against the table.
|
|
|
|
"A galley"- he checked the debasing word, and looked around, for
|
|
once in his life at loss. Just then a procession of slaves filed
|
|
into the room, some with great jars of wine, others with baskets of
|
|
fruit and confections, others again with cups and flagons, mostly
|
|
silver. There was inspiration in the sight. Instantly Messala
|
|
climbed upon a stool.
|
|
|
|
"Men of the Tiber," he said, in a clear voice, "Let us turn this
|
|
waiting for our chief into a feast of Bacchus. Whom choose ye for
|
|
master?"
|
|
|
|
Drusus arose.
|
|
|
|
"Who shall be master but the giver of the feast?" he said.
|
|
"Answer, Romans."
|
|
|
|
They gave their reply in a shout.
|
|
|
|
Messala took the chaplet from his head, gave it to Drusus, who
|
|
climbed upon the table, and, in the view of all, solemnly replaced it,
|
|
making Messala master of the night.
|
|
|
|
"There came with me into the room," he said, "some friends just
|
|
risen from table. That our feast may have the approval of sacred
|
|
custom, bring hither that one of them most overcome by wine."
|
|
|
|
A din of voices answered, "Here he is, here he is!"
|
|
|
|
And from the floor where he had fallen a youth was brought
|
|
forward, so effeminately beautiful he might have passed for the
|
|
drinking-god himself- only the crown would have dropped from his head,
|
|
and the thyrsus from his hand.
|
|
|
|
"Lift him upon the table," the master said.
|
|
|
|
It was found he could not sit.
|
|
|
|
"Help him, Drusus, as the fair Nyone may yet help thee."
|
|
|
|
Drusus took the inebriate in his arms.
|
|
|
|
Then addressing the limp figure, Messala said, amidst profound
|
|
silence, "O Bacchus I greatest of the gods, be thou propitious
|
|
to-night. And for myself, and these thy votaries, I vow this chaplet"-
|
|
and from his head he raised it reverently- "I vow this chaplet to
|
|
thy altar in the Grove of Daphne."
|
|
|
|
He bowed, replaced the crown upon his locks, then stooped and
|
|
uncovered the dice, saying, with a laugh, "See, my Drusus, by the
|
|
ass of Silenus, the denarius is mine!"
|
|
|
|
There was a shout that set the floor to quaking, and the grim
|
|
Atlantes to dancing, and the orgies began.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.
|
|
|
|
A DRIVER FOR ILDERIM'S ARABS.
|
|
|
|
SHEIK ILDERIM was a man of too much importance to go about with a
|
|
small establishment. He had a reputation to keep with his tribe,
|
|
such as became a prince and patriarch of the greatest following in all
|
|
the desert east of Syria; with the people of the cities he had another
|
|
reputation, which was that of one of the richest personages not a king
|
|
in all the East; and, being rich in fact- in money as well as in
|
|
servants, camels, horses, and flocks of all kinds- he took pleasure in
|
|
a certain state, which, besides magnifying his dignity with strangers,
|
|
contributed to his personal pride and comfort. Wherefore the reader
|
|
must not be misled by the frequent reference to his tent in the
|
|
Orchard of Palms. He had there really a respectable dowar; that is
|
|
to say, he had there three large tents- one for himself, one for
|
|
visitors, one for his favourite wife and her women; and six or eight
|
|
lesser ones, occupied by his servants and such tribal retainers as
|
|
he had chosen to bring with him as a body-guard- strong men of
|
|
approved courage, and skilful with bow, spear, and horses.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, his property of whatever kind was in no danger at the
|
|
Orchard; yet as the habits of a man go with him to town not less
|
|
than the country, and as it is never wise to slip the bands of
|
|
discipline, the interior of the dowar was devoted to his cows, camels,
|
|
goats, and such property in general as might tempt a lion or a thief.
|
|
|
|
To do him full justice, Ilderim kept well all the customs of his
|
|
people, abating none, not even the smallest; in consequence his life
|
|
at the Orchard was a continuation of his life in the desert; nor
|
|
that alone, it was a fair reproduction of the old patriarchal modes-
|
|
the genuine pastoral life of primitive Israel.
|
|
|
|
Recurring to the morning the caravan arrived at the Orchard-
|
|
"Here, plant it here," he said, stopping his horse, and thrusting a
|
|
spear into the ground. "Door to the south; the lake before it thus;
|
|
and these, the children of the desert, to sit under at the
|
|
going-down of the sun."
|
|
|
|
At the last words he went to a group of three great palm-trees,
|
|
and patted one of them as he would have patted his horse's neck, or
|
|
the cheek of the child of his love.
|
|
|
|
Who but the sheik could of right say to the caravan, Halt! or of the
|
|
tent, Here be it pitched? The spear was wrested from the ground, and
|
|
over the wound it had riven in the sod the base of the first pillar of
|
|
the' tent was planted, marking the centre of the front door. Then
|
|
eight others were planted- in all, three rows of pillars, three in a
|
|
row. Then, at call, the women and children came, and unfolded the
|
|
canvas from its packing on the camels. Who might do this but the
|
|
women? Had they not sheared the hair from the brown goats of the
|
|
flock? and twisted it into thread? and woven the thread into cloth?
|
|
and stitched the cloth together, making the perfect roof, dark-brown
|
|
in fact, though in the distance black as the tents of Kedar? And,
|
|
finally, with what jests and laughter, and pulls altogether, the
|
|
united following of the sheik stretched the canvas from pillar to
|
|
pillar, driving the stakes and fastening the cords as they went? And
|
|
when the walls of open reed matting were put in place- the
|
|
finishing-touch to the building after the style of the desert- with
|
|
what hush of anxiety they waited the good man's judgment? When he
|
|
walked in and out, looking at the house in connection with the sun,
|
|
the trees, and the lake, and said, rubbing his hands with might of
|
|
heartiness, "Well done! Make the dowar now as ye well know, and
|
|
to-night we will sweeten the bread with arrack, and the milk with
|
|
honey, and at every fire there shall be a kid. God with ye! Want of
|
|
sweet water there shall not be, for the take is our well; neither
|
|
shall the bearers of burden hunger, or the least of the flock, for
|
|
here is green pasture also. God with you all, my children! Go."
|
|
|
|
And, shouting, the many happy went their ways then to pitch their
|
|
own habitations. A few remained to arrange the interior for the sheik;
|
|
and of these the men-servants hung a curtain to the central row of
|
|
pillars, making two apartments; the one on the right sacred to Ilderim
|
|
himself, the other sacred to his horses- his jewels of Solomon-
|
|
which they led in, and with kisses and love-taps set at liberty.
|
|
Against the middle pillar they then erected the arms-rack, and
|
|
filled it with javelins and spears, and bows, arrows, and shields;
|
|
outside of them hanging the master's sword, modelled after the new
|
|
moon; and the glitter of its blade rivalled the glitter of the
|
|
jewels bedded in its grip. Upon one end of the rack they hung the
|
|
housings of the horses, gay some of them as the livery of a king's
|
|
servant, while on the other end they displayed the great man's
|
|
wearing-apparel- his robes woollen and robes linen, his tunics and
|
|
trousers, and many coloured kerchiefs for the head. Nor did they
|
|
give over the work until he pronounced it well.
|
|
|
|
Meantime the women drew out and set up the divan, more indispensable
|
|
to him than the beard down-flowing over his breast, white as
|
|
Aaron's. They put a frame together in shape of three sides of a
|
|
square, the opening to the door, and covered it with cushions and base
|
|
curtains, and the cushions with a changeable spread striped brown
|
|
and yellow; at the corners they placed pillows and bolsters sacked
|
|
in cloth blue and crimson; then around the divan they laid a margin of
|
|
carpet, and the inner space they carpeted as well; and when the carpet
|
|
was carried from the opening of the divan to the door of the tent,
|
|
their work was done; whereupon they again waited until the master said
|
|
it was good. Nothing remained then but to bring and fill the jars with
|
|
water, and hang the skin bottles of arrack ready for the hand-
|
|
to-morrow the leben. Nor might an Arab see why Ilderim should not be
|
|
both happy and generous- in his tent by the lake of sweet waters,
|
|
under the palms of the Orchard of Palms.
|
|
|
|
Such was the tent at the door of which we left Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
Servants were already waiting the master's direction. One of them
|
|
took off his sandals; another unlatched Ben-Hur's Roman shoes; then
|
|
the two exchanged their dusty outer garments for fresh ones of white
|
|
linen.
|
|
|
|
"Enter- in God's name, enter, and take thy rest," said the host,
|
|
heartily, in the dialect of the Market-place of Jerusalem; forthwith
|
|
he led the way to the divan.
|
|
|
|
"I will sit here," he said next, pointing; "and there the stranger."
|
|
|
|
A woman- in the old time she would have been called a handmaid-
|
|
answered, and dexterously piled the pillows and bolsters as rests
|
|
for the back; after which they sat upon the side of the divan, while
|
|
water was brought fresh from the lake, and their feet bathed and dried
|
|
with napkins.
|
|
|
|
"We have a saying in the desert," Ilderim began, gathering his
|
|
beard, and combing it with his slender fingers, "that a good
|
|
appetite is the promise of a long life. Hast thou such?"
|
|
|
|
"By that rule, good sheik, I will live a hundred years. I am a
|
|
hungry wolf at thy door," Ben-Hur replied.
|
|
|
|
"Well, thou shalt not be sent away like a wolf. I will give thee the
|
|
best of the flocks."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim clapped his hands.
|
|
|
|
"Seek the stranger in the guest-tent, and say I, Ilderim, send him a
|
|
prayer that his peace may be as incessant as the flowing of waters."
|
|
|
|
The man in waiting bowed.
|
|
|
|
"Say, also," Ilderim continued, "that I have returned with another
|
|
for breaking of bread; and, if Balthasar the wise careth to share
|
|
the loaf, three may partake of it, and the portion of the birds be
|
|
none the less."
|
|
|
|
The second servant went away.
|
|
|
|
"Let us take our rest now."
|
|
|
|
Thereupon Ilderim settled himself upon the divan, as at this day
|
|
merchants sit on their rugs in the bazaars of Damascus; and when
|
|
fairly at rest, he stopped combing his beard, and said, gravely, "That
|
|
thou art my guest, and hast drunk my leben, and art about to taste
|
|
my salt, ought not to forbid a question: Who art thou?"
|
|
|
|
"Sheik Ilderim," said Ben-Hur, calmly enduring his gaze, "I pray
|
|
thee not to think me trifling with thy just demand; but was there
|
|
never a time in thy life when to answer such a question would have
|
|
been a crime to thyself?"
|
|
|
|
"By the splendour of Solomon, yes!" Ilderim answered. "Betrayal of
|
|
self is at times as base as the betrayal of a tribe."
|
|
|
|
"Thanks, thanks, good sheik!" Ben-Hur exclaimed. "Never answer
|
|
became thee better. Now I know thou dost but seek assurance to justify
|
|
the trust I have come to ask, and that such assurance is of more
|
|
interest to thee than the affairs of my poor life."
|
|
|
|
The sheik in his turn bowed, and Ben-Hur hastened to pursue his
|
|
advantage.
|
|
|
|
"So it please thee then," he said, "first, I am not a Roman, as
|
|
the name given thee as mine implieth."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim clasped the beard overflowing his breast, and gazed at the
|
|
speaker with eyes faintly twinkling through the shade of the heavy
|
|
close-drawn brows.
|
|
|
|
"In the next place," Ben-Hur continued, "I am an Israelite of the
|
|
tribe of Judah."
|
|
|
|
The sheik raised his brows a little.
|
|
|
|
"Nor that merely. Sheik, I am a Jew with a grievance against Rome
|
|
compared with which thine is not more than a child's trouble."
|
|
|
|
The old man combed his beard with nervous haste, and let fall his
|
|
brows until even the twinkle of the eyes went out.
|
|
|
|
"Still further: I swear to thee, Sheik Ilderim- I swear by the
|
|
covenant the Lord made with my fathers- so thou but give me the
|
|
revenge I seek, the money and the glory of the race shall be thine."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim's brows relaxed; his head arose; his face began to beam; and
|
|
it was almost possible to see the satisfaction taking possession of
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
"Enough!" he said. "If at the roots of thy tongue there is a lie
|
|
in coil, Solomon himself had not been safe against thee. That thou art
|
|
not a Roman- that as a Jew thou hast a grievance against Rome, and
|
|
revenge to compass, I believe; and on that score enough. But as to thy
|
|
skill. What experience hast thou in racing with chariots? And the
|
|
horses- canst thou make them creatures of thy will?- to know thee?
|
|
to come at call? to go, if thou sayest it, to the last extreme of
|
|
breath and strength? and then, in the perishing moment, out of the
|
|
depths of thy life thrill them to one exertion the mightiest of all?
|
|
The gift, my son, is not to every one. Ah, by the splendour of God!
|
|
I knew a king who governed millions of men, their perfect master,
|
|
but could not win the respect of a horse. Mark! I speak not of the
|
|
dull brutes whose round it is to slave for slaves- the debased in
|
|
blood and image- the dead in spirit; but of such as mine here- the
|
|
kings of their kind; of a lineage reaching back to the broods of the
|
|
first Pharaoh; my comrades and friends, dwellers in tents, whom long
|
|
association with me has brought up to my plane; who to their instincts
|
|
have added our wits, and. to their senses joined our souls, until they
|
|
feel all we know of ambition, love, hate, and contempt; in war,
|
|
heroes; in trust, faithful as women. Ho, there!"
|
|
|
|
A servant came forward.
|
|
|
|
"Let my Arabs come!"
|
|
|
|
The man drew aside part of the division curtain of the tent,
|
|
exposing to view a group of horses, who lingered a moment where they
|
|
were as if to make certain of the invitation.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" Ilderim said to them. "Why stand ye there? What have I
|
|
that is not yours? Come, I say!"
|
|
|
|
They stalked slowly in.
|
|
|
|
"Son of Israel," the master said, "thy Moses was a mighty man,
|
|
but- ha, ha, ha!- I must laugh when I think of his allowing thy
|
|
fathers the plodding ox and the dull, slow-natured ass, and forbidding
|
|
them property in horses. Ha, ha, ha! Thinkest thou he would have
|
|
done so had he seen that one- and that- and this?" At the word he laid
|
|
his hand upon the face of the first to reach him, and patted it with
|
|
infinite pride and tenderness.
|
|
|
|
"It is a misjudgment, sheik, a misjudgment," Ben-Hur said, warmly.
|
|
"Moses was a warrior as well as a lawgiver beloved by God; and to
|
|
follow war- ah, what is it but to love all its creatures- these
|
|
among the rest?"
|
|
|
|
A head of exquisite turn- with large eyes, soft as a deer's, and
|
|
half hidden by the dense forelock, and small ears, sharp-pointed and
|
|
sloped well forward- approached then quite to his breast, the nostrils
|
|
open, and the upper lip in motion. "Who are you?" it asked, plainly as
|
|
ever man spoke. Ben-Hur recognized one of the four racers he had
|
|
seen on the course, and gave his open hand to the beautiful brute.
|
|
|
|
"They will tell you, the blasphemers!- may their days shorten as
|
|
they grow fewer!"- the sheik spoke with the feeling of a man repelling
|
|
a personal defamation- "they will tell you, I say, that our horses
|
|
of the best blood are derived from the Nesaean pastures of Persia. God
|
|
gave the first Arab a measureless waste of sand, with some treeless
|
|
mountains, and here and there a well of bitter waters; and said to
|
|
him, 'Behold thy country!' And when the poor man complained, the
|
|
Mighty One pitied him, and said again, 'Be of cheer for I will twice
|
|
bless thee above other men.' The Arab heard, and gave thanks, and with
|
|
faith set out to find the blessings. He travelled all the boundaries
|
|
first, and failed; then he made a path into the desert, and went on
|
|
and on- and in the heart of the waste there was an island of green
|
|
very beautiful to see; and in the heart of the island, lo! a herd of
|
|
camels, and another of horses! He took them joyfully and kept them
|
|
with care for what they were- best gifts of God. And from that green
|
|
isle went forth all the horses of the earth; even to the pastures of
|
|
Nesaea they went; and northward to the dreadful vales perpetually
|
|
threshed by blasts from the Sea of Chill Winds. Doubt not the story;
|
|
or if thou dost, may never amulet have charm for an Arab again. Nay, I
|
|
will give thee proof."
|
|
|
|
He clapped his hands.
|
|
|
|
"Bring me the records of the tribe," he said to the servant who
|
|
responded.
|
|
|
|
While waiting, the sheik played with the horses, patting their
|
|
cheeks, combing their forelocks with his fingers, giving each one a
|
|
token of remembrance. Presently six men appeared with chests of
|
|
cedar reinforced by bands of brass, and hinged and bolted with brass.
|
|
|
|
"Nay," said Ilderim, when they were all set down by the divan, "I
|
|
meant not all of them; only the records of the horses- that one.
|
|
Open it and take back the others."
|
|
|
|
The chest was opened, disclosing a mass of ivory tablets strung on
|
|
rings of silver wire; and as the tablets were scarcely thicker than
|
|
wafers, each ring held several hundreds of them.
|
|
|
|
"I know," said Ilderim, taking some of the rings in his hand- "I
|
|
know with what care and zeal, my son, the scribes of the Temple in the
|
|
Holy City keep the names of the newly born, that every son of Israel
|
|
may trace his line of ancestry to its beginning, though it antedate
|
|
the patriarchs. My fathers- may the recollection of them be green
|
|
forever!- did not think it sinful to borrow the idea, and apply it
|
|
to their dumb servants. See these tablets!"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur took the rings, and separating the tablets saw they bore
|
|
rude hieroglyphs in Arabic, burned on the smooth surface by a sharp
|
|
point of heated metal.
|
|
|
|
"Canst thou read them, O son of Israel?"
|
|
|
|
"No. Thou must tell me their meaning."
|
|
|
|
"Know thou, then, each tablet records the name of a foal of the pure
|
|
blood born to my fathers through the hundreds of years passed; and
|
|
also the names of sire and dam. Take them, and note their age, that
|
|
thou mayst the more readily believe."
|
|
|
|
Some of the tablets were nearly worn away. All were yellow with age.
|
|
|
|
"In the chest there, I can tell thee now, I have the perfect
|
|
history; perfect because certified as history seldom is- showing of
|
|
what stock all these are sprung- this one, and that now supplicating
|
|
thy notice and caress; and as they come to us here, their sires,
|
|
even the furthest removed in time, came to my sires, under a tent-roof
|
|
like this of mine, to eat their measure of barley from the open
|
|
hand, and be talked to as children; and as children kiss the thanks
|
|
they have not speech to express. And now, O son of Israel, thou
|
|
mayst believe my declaration- if I am a lord of the desert, behold
|
|
my ministers! Take them from me, and I become as a sick man left by
|
|
the caravan to die. Thanks to them, age hath not diminished the terror
|
|
of me on the highways between cities; and it will not while I have
|
|
strength to go with them. Ha, ha, ha! I could tell thee marvels done
|
|
by their ancestors. In a favouring time I may do so; for the
|
|
present, enough that they were never overtaken in retreat; nor, by the
|
|
sword of Solomon, did they ever fail in pursuit! That, mark you, on
|
|
the sands and under saddle; but now- I do not know- I am afraid, for
|
|
they are under yoke the first time, and the conditions of success
|
|
are so many. They have the pride and the speed and the endurance. If I
|
|
find them a master, they will win. Son of Israel! so thou art the man,
|
|
I swear it shall be a happy day that brought thee hither. Of thyself
|
|
now speak."
|
|
|
|
"I know now," said Ben-Hur, "why it is that in the love of an Arab
|
|
his horse is next to his children; and I know, also, why the Arab
|
|
horses are the best in the world; but, good sheik, I would not have
|
|
you judge me by words alone; for, as you know, all promises of men
|
|
sometimes fail. Give me the trial first on some plain hereabout, and
|
|
put the four into my hand to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim's face beamed again, and he would have spoken.
|
|
|
|
"A moment, good sheik, a moment!" said Ben-Hur. "Let me say further.
|
|
From the masters in Rome I learned many lessons, little thinking
|
|
they would serve me in a time like this. I tell thee these thy sons of
|
|
the desert, though they have separately the speed of eagles and the
|
|
endurance of lions, will fail if they are not trained to run
|
|
together under the yoke. For bethink thee, sheik, in every four
|
|
there is one the slowest and one the swiftest; and while the race is
|
|
always to the slowest, the trouble is always with the swiftest. It was
|
|
so to-day; the driver could not reduce the best to harmonious action
|
|
with the poorest. My trial may have no better result; but if so, I
|
|
will tell thee of it: that I swear. Wherefore, in the same spirit I
|
|
say, can I get them to run together, moved by my will, the four as
|
|
one, thou shalt have the sistertii and the crown, and I my revenge.
|
|
What sayest thou?"
|
|
|
|
Ilderim listened, combing his beard the while. At the end he said,
|
|
with a laugh, "I think better of thee, son of Israel. We have a saying
|
|
in the desert, 'If you will cook the meal with words, I will promise
|
|
an ocean of butter.' Thou shalt have the horses in the morning."
|
|
|
|
At that moment there was a stir at the rear entrance to the tent.
|
|
|
|
"The supper- it is here! and yonder my friend Balthasar, whom thou
|
|
shalt know. He hath a story to tell which an Israelite should never
|
|
tire of hearing."
|
|
|
|
And to the servants he added,
|
|
|
|
"Take the records away, and return my jewels to their apartment."
|
|
|
|
And they did as he ordered.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.
|
|
|
|
THE DOWAR IN THE ORCHARD OF PALMS.
|
|
|
|
IF the reader will return now to the repast of the wise men at their
|
|
meeting in the desert, he will understand the preparations for the
|
|
supper in Ilderim's tent. The differences were chiefly such as were
|
|
incident to ampler means and better service.
|
|
|
|
Three rugs were spread on the carpet within the space so nearly
|
|
enclosed by the divan; a table not more than a foot in height was
|
|
brought and set within the same place, and covered with a cloth. Off
|
|
to one side a portable earthenware oven was established under the
|
|
presidency of a woman whose duty it was to keep the company in
|
|
bread, or, more precisely, in hot cakes of flour from the hand-mills
|
|
grinding with constant sound in a neighbouring tent.
|
|
|
|
Meanwhile, Balthasar was conducted to the divan, where Ilderim and
|
|
Ben-Hur received him standing. A loose black gown covered his
|
|
person; his step was feeble, and his whole movement slow and cautious,
|
|
apparently dependent upon a long staff and the arm of a servant.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you, my friend," said Ilderim, respectfully. "Peace and
|
|
welcome."
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian raised his head and replied, "And to thee, good
|
|
sheik- to thee and thine, peace and the blessing of the One God-
|
|
God, the true and loving."
|
|
|
|
The manner was gentle and devout, and impressed Ben-Hur with a
|
|
feeling of awe; besides which the blessing included in the answering
|
|
salutation had been partly addressed to him, and while that part was
|
|
being spoken, the eyes of the aged guest, hollow yet luminous,
|
|
rested upon his face long enough to stir an emotion new and
|
|
mysterious, and so strong that he again and again during the repast
|
|
scanned the much wrinkled and bloodless face for its meaning; but
|
|
always there was the expression bland, placid, and trustful as a
|
|
child's. A little later he found that expression habitual.
|
|
|
|
"This is he, O Balthasar," said the sheik, laying his hand on
|
|
Ben-Hur's arm, "who will break bread with us this evening."
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian glanced at the young man, and looked again, surprised
|
|
and doubting; seeing which the sheik continued, "I have promised him
|
|
my horses for trial to-morrow; and if all goes well, he will drive
|
|
them in the Circus."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar continued his gaze.
|
|
|
|
"He came well recommended," Ilderim pursued, much puzzled. "You
|
|
may know him as the son of Arrius, who was a noble Roman sailor,
|
|
though"- the sheik hesitated, then resumed, with a laugh- "though he
|
|
declares himself an Israelite of the tribe of Judah; and, by the
|
|
splendour of God, I believe that he tells me!"
|
|
|
|
Balthasar could no longer withhold explanation.
|
|
|
|
"To-day, O most generous sheik, my life was in peril, and would have
|
|
been lost had not a youth, the counterpart of this one- if, indeed, he
|
|
be not the very same- intervened when all others fled, and saved
|
|
me." Then he addressed Ben-Hur directly, "Art thou not he?"
|
|
|
|
"I cannot answer so far," Ben-Hur replied, with modest deference. "I
|
|
am he who stopped the horses of the insolent Roman when they were
|
|
rushing upon thy camel at the Fountain of Castalia. Thy daughter
|
|
left a cup with me."
|
|
|
|
From the bosom of his tunic he produced the cup, and gave it to
|
|
Balthasar.
|
|
|
|
A glow lighted the faded countenance of the Egyptian.
|
|
|
|
"The Lord sent thee to me at the Fountain to-day," he said, in a
|
|
tremulous voice, stretching his hand towards Ben-Hur; "and he sends
|
|
thee to me now. I give him thanks; and praise him thou, for of his
|
|
favour I have wherewith to give thee great reward, and I will. The cup
|
|
is thine; keep it."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur took back the gift, and Balthasar, seeing the inquiry upon
|
|
Ilderim's face, related the occurrence at the Fountain.
|
|
|
|
"What!" said the sheik to Ben-Hur. "Thou saidst nothing of this to
|
|
me, when better recommendation thou couldst not have brought. Am I not
|
|
an Arab, and sheik of my tribe of tens of thousands? And is not he
|
|
my guest? And is it not in my guest-bond that the good or evil thou
|
|
dost him is good or evil done to me? Whither shouldst thou go for
|
|
reward but here? And whose the hand to give it but mine?"
|
|
|
|
His voice at the end of the speech rose to cutting shrillness.
|
|
|
|
"Good sheik, spare me, I pray. I came not for reward, great or
|
|
small; and that I may be acquitted of the thought, I say the help I
|
|
gave this excellent man would have been given as well to thy
|
|
humblest servant."
|
|
|
|
"But he is my friend, my guest- not my servant; and seest thou not
|
|
in the difference the favour of Fortune?" Then to Balthasar the
|
|
sheik subjoined, "Ah, by the splendour of God! I tell thee again he is
|
|
not a Roman."
|
|
|
|
With that he turned away, and gave attention to the servants,
|
|
whose preparations for the supper were about complete.
|
|
|
|
The reader who recollects the history of Balthasar as given by
|
|
himself at the meeting in the desert, will understand the effect of
|
|
Ben-Hur's assertion of disinterestedness upon that worthy. In his
|
|
devotion to men there had been, it will be remembered, no
|
|
distinctions; while the redemption which had been promised him in
|
|
the way of reward- the redemption for which he was waiting- was
|
|
universal. To him, therefore, the assertion sounded somewhat like an
|
|
echo of himself. He took a step nearer Ben-Hur, and spoke to him in
|
|
the childlike way.
|
|
|
|
"How did the sheik say I should call you? It was a Roman name, I
|
|
think."
|
|
|
|
"Arrius, the son of Arrius."
|
|
|
|
"Yet thou art not a Roman?"
|
|
|
|
"All my people were Jews."
|
|
|
|
"Were, saidst thou? Are they not living?"
|
|
|
|
The question was subtle as well as simple; but Ilderim saved Ben-Hur
|
|
from reply.
|
|
|
|
"Come," he said to them, "the meal is ready."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur gave his arm to Balthasar, and conducted him to the table,
|
|
where shortly they were all seated on their rugs, Eastern fashion. The
|
|
lavers were brought them, and they washed and dried their hands;
|
|
then the sheik made a sign, the servants stopped, and the voice of the
|
|
Egyptian arose, tremulous with holy feeling-
|
|
|
|
"Father of All- God! What we have is of thee; take our thanks, and
|
|
bless us, that we may continue to do thy will."
|
|
|
|
It was the grace the good man had said simultaneously with his
|
|
brethren Gaspar the Greek and Melchior the Hindoo, the utterance in
|
|
diverse tongues out of which had come the miracle attesting the Divine
|
|
Presence at the meal in the desert years before.
|
|
|
|
The table to which they immediately addressed themselves was, as may
|
|
be thought, rich in the substantials and delicacies favourite in the
|
|
East- in cakes hot from the oven, vegetables from the gardens, meats
|
|
singly, compounds of meats and vegetables, milk of kine, and honey and
|
|
butter- all eaten or drunk, it should be remarked, without any of
|
|
the modern accessories- knives, forks, spoons, cups, or plates; and in
|
|
this part of the repast but little was said, for they were hungry. But
|
|
when the dessert was in course it was otherwise. They laved their
|
|
hands again, had the lap-cloths shaken out, and with a renewed table
|
|
and the sharp edge of their appetites gone, they were disposed to talk
|
|
and listen.
|
|
|
|
With such a company- an Arab, a Jew, and an Egyptian, all
|
|
believers alike in one God- there could be at that age but one subject
|
|
of conversation; and of the three, which should be speaker but he to
|
|
whom the Deity had been so nearly a personal appearance, who had
|
|
seen him in a star, had heard his voice in direction, had been led
|
|
so far and so miraculously by his Spirit? And of what should he talk
|
|
but that of which he had been called to testify?
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV.
|
|
|
|
BALTHASAR IMPRESSES BEN-HUR.
|
|
|
|
THE shadows cast over the Orchard of Palms by the mountains at set
|
|
of sun left no sweet margin time of violet sky and drowsing earth
|
|
between the day and night. The latter came early and swift; and
|
|
against its glooming in the tent this evening the servants brought
|
|
four candlesticks of brass, and set them by the corners of the
|
|
table. To each candlestick there were four branches, and on each
|
|
branch a lighted silver lamp and a supply cup of olive-oil. In light
|
|
ample, even brilliant, the group at dessert continued their
|
|
conversation, speaking in the Syriac dialect, familiar to all
|
|
peoples in that part of the world.
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian told his story of the meeting of the three in the
|
|
desert, and agreed with the sheik that it was in December,
|
|
twenty-seven years before, when he and his companions fleeing from
|
|
Herod arrived at the tent praying shelter. The narrative was heard
|
|
with intense interest; even the servants lingering when they could
|
|
to catch its details. Ben-Hur received it as became a man listening to
|
|
a revelation of deep concern to all humanity, and to none of more
|
|
concern than the people of Israel. In his mind, as we shall
|
|
presently see, there was crystalizing an idea which was to change
|
|
his course of life, if not absorb it absolutely.
|
|
|
|
As the recital proceeded, the impression made by Balthasar upon
|
|
the young Jew increased; at its conclusion, his feeling was too
|
|
profound to permit a doubt of its truth; indeed, there was nothing
|
|
left him desirable in the connection but assurances, if such were to
|
|
be had, pertaining exclusively to the consequences of the amazing
|
|
event.
|
|
|
|
And now there is wanting an explanation which the very discerning
|
|
may have heretofore demanded; certainly it can be no longer delayed.
|
|
Our tale begins, in point of date not less than fact, to trench
|
|
close upon the opening of the ministry of the Son of Mary, whom we
|
|
have seen but once since this same Balthasar left him worshipfully
|
|
in his mother's lap in the cave by Bethlehem. Henceforth to the end
|
|
the mysterious Child will be a subject of continual reference; and
|
|
slowly though surely the current of events with which we are dealing
|
|
will bring us nearer and nearer to him, until finally we see him a
|
|
man- we would like, if armed contrariety of opinion would permit it,
|
|
to add- A MAN WHOM THE WORLD COULD NOT DO WITHOUT. Of this
|
|
declaration, apparently so simple, a shrewd mind inspired by faith
|
|
will make much- and in welcome. Before his time, and since, there have
|
|
been men indispensable to particular people and periods; but his
|
|
indispensability was to the whole race, and for all time- a respect in
|
|
which it is unique, solitary, divine.
|
|
|
|
To Sheik Ilderim the story was not new. He had heard it from the
|
|
three wise men together under circumstances which left no room for
|
|
doubt; he had acted upon it seriously, for the helping a fugitive
|
|
escape from the anger of the first Herod was dangerous. Now one of the
|
|
three sat at his table again, a welcome guest and revered friend.
|
|
Sheik Ilderim certainly believed the story; yet, in the nature of
|
|
things, its mighty central fact could not come home to him with the
|
|
force and absorbing effect it came to Ben-Hur. He was an Arab, whose
|
|
interest in the consequences was but general; on the other hand,
|
|
Ben-Hur was an Israelite and a Jew, with more than a special
|
|
interest in- if the solecism can be pardoned- the truth of the fact.
|
|
He laid hold of the circumstance with a purely Jewish mind.
|
|
|
|
From his cradle, let it be remembered, he had heard of the
|
|
Messiah; at the colleges he had been made familiar with all that was
|
|
known of that Being at once the hope, the fear, and the peculiar glory
|
|
of the chosen people; the prophets from the first to the last of the
|
|
heroic line foretold him; and the coming had been, and yet was, the
|
|
theme of endless exposition with the rabbis- in the synagogues, in the
|
|
schools, in the Temple, of fast-days and feast-days, in public and
|
|
in private, the national teachers expounded and kept expounding
|
|
until all the children of Abraham wherever their lots were cast bore
|
|
the Messiah in expectation, and by it literally, and with iron
|
|
severity, ruled and moulded their lives.
|
|
|
|
Doubtless, it will be understood from this that there was much
|
|
argument among the Jews themselves about the Messiah, and so there
|
|
was; but the disputation was all limited to one point, and one only-
|
|
when would he come?
|
|
|
|
Disquisition is for the preacher; whereas the writer is but
|
|
telling a tale, and that he may not lose his character, the
|
|
explanation he is making requires notice merely of a point connected
|
|
with the Messiah about which the unanimity among the chosen people was
|
|
matter of marvellous astonishment: he was to be, when come, the KING
|
|
OF THE JEWS- their political King, their Caesar. By their
|
|
instrumentality he was to make armed conquest of the earth, and
|
|
then, for their profit and in the name of God, hold it down forever.
|
|
On this faith, dear reader, the Pharisees or Separatists- the latter
|
|
being rather a political term- in the cloisters and around the
|
|
altars of the Temple, built an edifice of hope far overtopping the
|
|
dream of the Macedonian. His but covered the earth; theirs covered the
|
|
earth and filled the skies; that is to say, in their bold boundless
|
|
fantasy of blasphemous egotism, God the Almighty was in effect to
|
|
suffer them for their uses to nail him by the ear to a door in sign of
|
|
eternal servitude.
|
|
|
|
Returning directly to Ben-Hur, it is to be observed now that there
|
|
were two circumstances in his life the result of which had been to
|
|
keep him in a state comparatively free from the influence and hard
|
|
effects of the audacious faith of his Separatist countrymen.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, his father followed the faith of the
|
|
Sadducees. who may, in a general way, be termed the Liberals of
|
|
their time. They had some loose opinions in denial of the soul. They
|
|
were strict constructionists and rigorous observers of the Law as
|
|
found in the books of Moses; but they held the vast mass of Rabbinical
|
|
addenda to those books in derisive contempt. They were
|
|
unquestionably a sect, yet their religion was more a philosophy than a
|
|
creed; they did not deny themselves the enjoyments of life, and saw
|
|
many admirable methods and productions among the Gentile divisions
|
|
of the race. In politics they were the active opposition of the
|
|
Separatists. In the natural order of things, these circumstances and
|
|
conditions, opinions and peculiarities, would have descended to the
|
|
son as certainly and really as any portion of his father's estate;
|
|
and, as we have seen, he was actually in course of acquiring them,
|
|
when the second saving event overtook him.
|
|
|
|
Upon a youth of Ben-Hur's mind and temperament the influence of five
|
|
years of affluent life in Rome can be appreciated best by recalling
|
|
that the great city was then, in fact, the meeting-place of the
|
|
nations- their meeting-place politically and commercially, as well
|
|
as for the indulgence of pleasure without restraint. Round and round
|
|
the golden mile-stone in front of the Forum- now in gloom of
|
|
eclipse, now in unapproachable splendour- flowed all the active
|
|
currents of humanity. If excellence of manner, refinements of society,
|
|
attainments of intellect, and glory of achievement made no
|
|
impression upon him, how could he, as the son of Arrius, pass day
|
|
after day, through a period so long, from the beautiful villa near
|
|
Misenum into the receptions of Caesar, and be wholly uninfluenced by
|
|
what he saw there of kings, princes, ambassadors, hostages, and
|
|
delegates, suitors all of them from every known land, waiting humbly
|
|
the yes or no which was to make or unmake them? As mere assemblages,
|
|
to be sure, there was nothing to compare with the gatherings at
|
|
Jerusalem in celebration of the Passover; yet when he sat, under the
|
|
purple velaria of the Circus Maximus, one of three hundred and fifty
|
|
thousand spectators, he must have been visited by the thought that
|
|
possibly there might be some branches of the family of man worthy
|
|
divine consideration, if not mercy, though they were of the
|
|
uncircumcised- some, by their sorrows, and, yet worse, by their
|
|
hopelessness in the midst of sorrows, fitted for brotherhood in the
|
|
promises to his countrymen.
|
|
|
|
That he should have had such a thought under such circumstances
|
|
was but natural; we think so much, at least, will be admitted: but
|
|
when the reflection came to him, and he gave himself up to it, he
|
|
could not have been blind to a certain distinction. The wretchedness
|
|
of the masses, and their hopeless condition, had no relation
|
|
whatever to religion; their murmurs and groans were not against
|
|
their gods or for want of gods. In the oak-woods of Britain the Druids
|
|
held their followers; Odin and Freya maintained their godships in Gaul
|
|
and Germany and among the Hyperboreans; Egypt was satisfied with her
|
|
crocodiles and Anubis; the Persians were yet devoted to Ormuzd and
|
|
Ahriman, holding them in equal honour; in hope of the Nirvana, the
|
|
Hindoos moved on patient as ever in the rayless paths of Brahm; the
|
|
beautiful Greek mind, in pauses of philosophy, still sang the heroic
|
|
gods of Homer; while in Rome nothing was so common and cheap as
|
|
gods. According to whim, the masters of the world, because they were
|
|
masters, carried their worship and offerings indifferently from
|
|
altar to altar, delighted in the pandemonium they had erected. Their
|
|
discontent, if they were discontented, was with the number of gods;
|
|
for, after borrowing all the divinities of the earth, they proceeded
|
|
to deify their Caesars, and vote them altars and holy service. No, the
|
|
unhappy condition was not from religion, but misgovernment and
|
|
usurpations and countless tyrannies. The Avernus men had been
|
|
tumbled into, and were praying to be relieved from, was terribly but
|
|
essentially political. The supplication- everywhere alike, in Lodinum,
|
|
Alexandria, Athens, Jerusalem- was for a king to conquer with, not a
|
|
god to worship.
|
|
|
|
Studying the situation after two thousand years, we can see and
|
|
say that religiously there was no relief from the universal
|
|
confusion except some God could prove himself a true God, and a
|
|
masterful one, and come to the rescue; but the people of the time,
|
|
even the discerning and philosophical, discovered no hope except in
|
|
crushing Rome; that done, the relief would follow in restorations
|
|
and reorganizations; therefore they prayed, conspired, rebelled,
|
|
fought, and died, drenching the soil to-day with blood, to-morrow with
|
|
tears- and always with the same result.
|
|
|
|
It remains to be said now that Ben-Hur was in agreement with the
|
|
mass of men of his time not Romans. The five years' residence in the
|
|
capital served him with opportunity to see and study the miseries of
|
|
the subjugated world; and in full belief that the evils which
|
|
afflicted it were political, and to be cured only by the sword, he was
|
|
going forth to fit himself for a part in the day of resort to the
|
|
heroic remedy. By practice of arms he was a perfect soldier; but war
|
|
has its higher fields, and he who would move successfully in them must
|
|
know more than to defend with shield and thrust with spear. In those
|
|
fields the general finds his tasks, the greatest of which is the
|
|
reduction of the many into one, and that one himself; the consummate
|
|
captain is a fighting man armed with an army. This conception
|
|
entered into the scheme of life to which he was further swayed by
|
|
the reflection that the vengeance he dreamed of, in connection with
|
|
his individual wrongs, would be more surely found in some of the
|
|
ways of war than in any pursuit of peace.
|
|
|
|
The feelings with which he listened to Balthasar can be now
|
|
understood. The story touched two of the most sensitive points of
|
|
his being so they rang within him. His heart beat fast- and faster
|
|
still when, searching himself, he found not a doubt either that the
|
|
recital was true in every particular, or that the Child so
|
|
miraculously found was the Messiah. Marvelling much that Israel rested
|
|
so dead to the revelation, and that he had never heard of it before
|
|
that day, two questions presented themselves to him as centring all it
|
|
was at that moment further desirable to know-
|
|
|
|
Where was the Child then?
|
|
|
|
And what was his mission?
|
|
|
|
With apologies for the interruptions, he proceeded to draw out the
|
|
opinions of Balthasar, who was in nowise loath to speak.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI.
|
|
|
|
CHRIST IS COMING- BALTHASAR.
|
|
|
|
"IF I could answer you," Balthasar said, in his simple, earnest,
|
|
devout way- "oh, if I knew where he is, how quickly I would go to him!
|
|
The seas should not stay me, nor the mountains."
|
|
|
|
"You have tried to find him, then?" asked Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
A smile flitted across the face of the Egyptian.
|
|
|
|
"The first task I charged myself with after leaving the shelter
|
|
given me in the desert!"- Balthasar cast a grateful look at Ilderim-
|
|
"was to learn what became of the Child. But a year had passed, and I
|
|
dared not go up to Judea in person, for Herod still held the throne
|
|
bloody-minded as ever. In Egypt, upon my return, there were a few
|
|
friends to believe the wonderful things I told them of what I had seen
|
|
and heard- a few who rejoiced with me that a Redeemer was born- a
|
|
few who never tired of the story. Some of them came up for me
|
|
looking after the Child. They went first to Bethlehem, and found there
|
|
the khan and the cave; but the steward- he who sat at the gate the
|
|
night of the birth, and the night we came following the star- was
|
|
gone. The king had taken him away, and he was no more seen."
|
|
|
|
"But they found some proofs, surely," said Ben-Hur, eagerly.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, proofs written in blood- a village in mourning; mothers yet
|
|
crying for their little ones. You must know, when Herod heard of our
|
|
flight, he sent down and slew the youngest-born of the children of
|
|
Bethlehem. Not one escaped. The faith of my messengers was
|
|
confirmed; but they came to me saying the Child was dead, slain with
|
|
the other innocents."
|
|
|
|
"Dead!" exclaimed Ben-Hur, aghast. "Dead, sayest thou?"
|
|
|
|
"Nay, my son, I did not say so. I said they, my messengers told me
|
|
the Child was dead. I did not believe the report then; I do not
|
|
believe it now."
|
|
|
|
"I see- thou hast some special knowledge."
|
|
|
|
"Not so, not so," said Balthasar, dropping his gaze. "The Spirit was
|
|
to go with us no farther than to the Child. When we came out of the
|
|
cave, after our presents were given and we had seen the babe, we
|
|
looked first thing for the star; but it was gone, and we knew we
|
|
were left to ourselves. The last inspiration of the Holy One- the last
|
|
I can recall- was that which sent us to Ilderim for safety."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said the sheik, fingering his beard nervously. "You told me
|
|
you were sent to me by a Spirit- I remember it."
|
|
|
|
"I have no special knowledge," Balthasar continued, observing the
|
|
dejection which had fallen upon Ben-Hur; "but, my son, I have given
|
|
the matter much thought- thought continuing through years, inspired by
|
|
faith, which, I assure you, calling God for witness, is as strong.
|
|
in me now as in the hour I heard the Spirit calling me by the shore of
|
|
the lake. If you will listen to me, I will tell you why I believe
|
|
the Child is living."
|
|
|
|
Both Ilderim and Ben-Hur looked assent, and appeared to summon their
|
|
faculties that they might understand as well as hear. The interest
|
|
reached the servants, who drew near to the divan, and stood listening.
|
|
Throughout the tent there was the profoundest silence.
|
|
|
|
"We three believe in God."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar bowed his head as he spoke.
|
|
|
|
"And he is the Truth," he resumed. "His word is God. The hills may
|
|
turn to dust, and the seas be drunk dry by south winds, but his word
|
|
shall stand, because it is the Truth."
|
|
|
|
The utterance was in a manner inexpressibly solemn.
|
|
|
|
"The voice, which was his, speaking to me by the lake, said,
|
|
'Blessed art thou, O son of Mizraim! The Redemption cometh. With two
|
|
others from the remoteness of the earth thou shalt see the Saviour.' I
|
|
have seen the Saviour- blessed be his name!- but the Redemption, which
|
|
was the second part of the promise, is yet to come. Seest thou now? If
|
|
the Child be dead, there is no agent to bring the Redemption about,
|
|
and the word is naught, and God- nay, I dare not say it!"
|
|
|
|
He threw up both hands in horror.
|
|
|
|
"The Redemption was the work for which the Child was born; and so
|
|
long as the promise abides, not even death can separate him from his
|
|
work until it is fulfilled, or at least in the way of fulfillment.
|
|
Take you that now as one reason for my belief; then give me further
|
|
attention."
|
|
|
|
The good man paused.
|
|
|
|
"Wilt thou not taste the wine? It is at thy hand- see," said
|
|
Ilderim, respectfully.
|
|
|
|
Balthasar drank, and, seeming refreshed, continued-
|
|
|
|
"The Saviour I saw was born of woman, in nature like us, and subject
|
|
to all our ills- even death. Let that stand as the first
|
|
proposition. Consider next the work set apart to him. Was it not a
|
|
performance for which only a man is fitted?- a man wise, firm,
|
|
discreet- a man, not a child? To become such he had to grow as we
|
|
grow. Bethink you now of the dangers his life was subject to in the
|
|
interval- the long interval between childhood and maturity. The
|
|
existing powers were his enemies; Herod was his enemy; and what
|
|
would Rome have been? And as for Israel- that he should not be
|
|
accepted by Israel was the motive for cutting him off. See you now?
|
|
What better way was there to take care of his life in the helpless
|
|
growing time than by passing him into obscurity? Wherefore I say to
|
|
myself, and to my listening faith, which is never moved except by
|
|
yearning of love- I say he is not dead, but lost; and, his work
|
|
remaining undone, he will come again. There you have the reasons for
|
|
my belief. Are they not good?"
|
|
|
|
Ilderim's small Arab eyes were bright with understanding, and
|
|
Ben-Hur, lifted from his dejection, said heartily, "I, at least, may
|
|
not gainsay them. What further, pray?"
|
|
|
|
"Hast thou not enough, my son? Well," he began, in calmer tone,
|
|
"seeing that the reasons were good- more plainly, seeing it was
|
|
God's will that the Child should not be found- I settled my faith into
|
|
the keeping of patience, and took to waiting." He raised his eyes,
|
|
full of holy trust, and broke off abstractedly- "I am waiting now.
|
|
He lives, keeping well his mighty secret. What though I cannot go to
|
|
him, or name the hill or the vale of his abiding-place? He lives- it
|
|
may be as the fruit in blossom, it may be as the fruit just
|
|
ripening; but by the certainty there is in the promise and reason of
|
|
God, I know he lives."
|
|
|
|
A thrill of awe struck Ben-Hur- a thrill which was but the dying
|
|
of his half-formed doubt.
|
|
|
|
"Where thinkest thou he is?" he asked in a low voice, and
|
|
hesitating, like one who feels upon his lips the pressure of a
|
|
sacred silence.
|
|
|
|
Balthasar looked at him kindly, and replied, his mind not entirely
|
|
freed from its abstraction-
|
|
|
|
"In my house on the Nile, so close to the river that the
|
|
passers-by in boats see it and its reflection in the water at the same
|
|
time- in my house, a few weeks ago, I sat thinking. A man thirty years
|
|
old, I said to myself, should have his fields of life all ploughed,
|
|
and his planting well done; for after that it is summer-time, with
|
|
space scarce enough to ripen his sowing. The Child, I said further, is
|
|
now twenty-seven- his time to plant must be at hand. I asked myself,
|
|
as you here asked me, my son, and answered by coming hither, as to a
|
|
good resting-place close by the land they fathers had from God.
|
|
Where else should he appear, if not in Judea? In what city should he
|
|
begin his work, if not in Jerusalem? Who should be first to receive
|
|
the blessings he is to bring, if not the children of Abraham, Isaac,
|
|
and Jacob; in love, at least, the children of the Lord? If I were
|
|
bidden go seek him, I would search well the hamlets and villages on
|
|
the slopes of the mountains of Judea and Galilee falling eastwardly
|
|
into the valley of the Jordan. He is there now. Standing in a door
|
|
or on a hill-top, only this evening he saw the sun set one day
|
|
nearer the time when he himself shall become the light of the world."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar ceased, with his hand raised and finger pointing as if
|
|
at Judea. All the listeners, even the dull servants outside the divan,
|
|
affected by his fervour, were startled as if by a majestic presence
|
|
suddenly apparent within the tent. Nor did the sensation die away at
|
|
once: of those at the table, each sat awhile thinking. The spell was
|
|
finally broken by Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"I see, good Balthasar," he said, "that thou hast been much and
|
|
strangely favoured. I see, also, that thou art a wise man indeed. It
|
|
is not in my power to tell how grateful I am for the things thou
|
|
hast told me. I am warned of the coming of great events, and borrow
|
|
somewhat from thy faith. Complete the obligation, I pray thee, by
|
|
telling further of the mission of him for whom thou art waiting, and
|
|
for whom from this night I too shall wait as becomes a believing son
|
|
of Judah. He is to be a Saviour, thou saidst; is he not to be King
|
|
of the Jews also?"
|
|
|
|
"My son," said Balthasar, in his benignant way, "the mission is
|
|
yet a purpose in the bosom of God. All I think about it is wrung
|
|
from the words of the Voice in connection with the prayer to which
|
|
they were in answer. Shall we refer to them again?"
|
|
|
|
"Thou art the teacher."
|
|
|
|
"The cause of my disquiet," Balthasar began, calmly- "that which
|
|
made me a preacher in Alexandria and in the villages of the Nile; that
|
|
which drove me at last into the solitude where the Spirit found me-
|
|
was the fallen condition of men, occasioned, as I believed, by loss of
|
|
the knowledge of God. I sorrowed for the sorrows of my kind- not of
|
|
one class, but all of them. So utterly were they fallen it seemed to
|
|
me there could be no Redemption unless God himself would make it his
|
|
work; and I prayed him to come, and that I might see him. 'Thy good
|
|
works have conquered. The Redemption cometh; thou shalt see the
|
|
Saviour'- thus the Voice spake; and with the answer I went up to
|
|
Jerusalem rejoicing. Now, to whom is the Redemption? To all the world.
|
|
And how shall it be? Strengthen thy faith, my son! Men say, I know,
|
|
that there will be no happiness until Rome is razed from her hills.
|
|
That is to say, the ills of the time are not, as I thought them,
|
|
from ignorance of God, but from the misgovernment of rulers. Do we
|
|
need to be told that human governments are never for the sake of
|
|
religion? How many kings have you heard of who were better than
|
|
their subjects? Oh no, no! The Redemption cannot be for a political
|
|
purpose- to pull down rulers and powers, and vacate their places
|
|
merely that others may take and enjoy them. If that were all of it,
|
|
the wisdom of God would cease to be surpassing. I tell you, though
|
|
it be but the saying of blind to blind, he that comes is to be a
|
|
Saviour of souls; and the Redemption means God once more on earth, and
|
|
righteousness, that his stay here may be tolerable to himself."
|
|
|
|
Disappointment showed plainly on Ben-Hur's face- his head drooped;
|
|
and if he was not convinced, he yet felt himself incapable that moment
|
|
of disputing the opinion of the Egyptian. Not so Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"By the splendour of God!" he cried, impulsively, "the judgment does
|
|
away with all custom. The ways of the world are fixed, and cannot be
|
|
changed. There must be a leader in every community clothed with power,
|
|
else there is no reform."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar received the burst gravely.
|
|
|
|
"Thy wisdom, good sheik, is of the world; and thou dost forget
|
|
that it is from the ways of the world we are to be redeemed. Man as
|
|
a subject is the ambition of a king; the soul of a man for its
|
|
salvation is the desire of a God."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim, though silenced, shook his head, unwilling to believe.
|
|
Ben-Hur took up the argument for him.
|
|
|
|
"Father- I call thee such by permission," he said- "for whom wert
|
|
thou required to ask at the gates of Jerusalem?"
|
|
|
|
The sheik threw him a grateful look.
|
|
|
|
"I was to ask of the people," said Balthasar, quietly, "Where is
|
|
he that is born King of the Jews?"
|
|
|
|
"And you saw him in the cave by Bethlehem?"
|
|
|
|
"We saw and worshipped him, and gave him presents- Melchoir, gold;
|
|
Gaspar, frankincense; and I, myrrh."
|
|
|
|
"When thou dost speak of fact, O father, to hear thee is to
|
|
believe," said Ben-Hur; "but in the matter of opinion, I cannot
|
|
understand the kind of king thou wouldst make of the Child- I cannot
|
|
separate the ruler from his powers and duties."
|
|
|
|
"Son," said Balthasar, "we have the habit of studying closely the
|
|
things which chance to lie at our feet, giving but a look at the
|
|
greater objects in the distance. Thou seest now but the title- King of
|
|
the Jews; wilt thou lift thine eyes to the mystery beyond it, the
|
|
stumbling-block will disappear. Of the title, a word. Thy Israel
|
|
hath seen better days- days in which God called they people
|
|
endearingly his people, and dealt with them through prophets. Now,
|
|
if in those days he promised them the Saviour I saw- promised him as
|
|
King of the Jews- the appearance must be according to the promise,
|
|
if only for the word's sake. Ah, thou seest the reason of my
|
|
question at the gate!- thou seest, and I will no more of it, but
|
|
pass on. It may be, next, thou art regarding the dignity of the Child;
|
|
if so, bethink thee- what is it to be a successor of Herod?- by the
|
|
world's standard of honour, what? Could not God better by his beloved?
|
|
If thou canst think of the Almighty Father in want of a title, and
|
|
stooping to borrow the inventions of men, why was I not bidden ask for
|
|
a Caesar at once? Oh, for the substance of that whereof we speak, look
|
|
higher, I pray thee! Ask rather of what he whom we await shall be
|
|
king; for I do tell, my son, that is the key to the mystery, which
|
|
no man shall understand without the key."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar raised his eyes devoutly.
|
|
|
|
"There is a kingdom on the earth, though it is not of it- a
|
|
kingdom of wider bounds than the earth- wider than the sea and the
|
|
earth, though they are rolled together as finest gold and spread by
|
|
the beating of hammers. Its existence is a fact as our hearts are
|
|
facts, and we journey through it from birth to death without seeing
|
|
it; nor shall any man see it until he hath first known his own soul;
|
|
for the kingdom is not for him, but for his soul. And in its
|
|
dominion there is glory such as hath not entered imagination-
|
|
original, incomparable, impossible of increase."
|
|
|
|
"What thou sayest, father, is a riddle to me," said Ben-Hur. "I
|
|
never heard of such a kingdom."
|
|
|
|
"Nor did I," said Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"And I may not tell more of it," Balthasar added, humbly dropping
|
|
his eye's. "What it is, what it is for, how it may be reached, none
|
|
can know until the Child comes to take possession of it as his own. He
|
|
brings the key of the viewless gate, which he will open for his
|
|
beloved, among whom will be all who love him, for of such only the
|
|
redeemed will be."
|
|
|
|
After that there was a long silence, which Balthasar accepted as the
|
|
end of the conversation.
|
|
|
|
"Good sheik," he said, in his placid way, "to-morrow or the next day
|
|
I will go up to the city for a time. My daughter wishes to see the
|
|
preparations for the games. I will speak further about the time of our
|
|
going. And, my son, I will see you again. To you both, peace, and good
|
|
night."
|
|
|
|
They all arose from the table. The sheik and Ben-Hur remained
|
|
looking after the Egyptian until he was conducted out of the tent.
|
|
|
|
"Sheik Ilderim," said Ben-Hur then, "I have heard strange things
|
|
to-night. I pray to walk by the lake that I may think of them."
|
|
|
|
"Go; and I will come after you."
|
|
|
|
They washed their hands again; after which, at a sign from the
|
|
master, a servant brought Ben-Hur his shoes, and directly he went out.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII.
|
|
|
|
THE KINGDOM- SPIRITUAL OR POLITICAL?
|
|
|
|
UP a little way from the dowar there was a cluster of palms, which
|
|
threw its shades half in the water, half on the land. A bulbul sang
|
|
from the branches a song of invitation. Ben-Hur stopped beneath to
|
|
listen. At any other time the notes of the bird would have driven
|
|
thought away; but the story of the Egyptian was a burden of wonder and
|
|
he was a labourer carrying it, and like other labourers, there was
|
|
to him no music in the sweetest music until mind and body were happily
|
|
attuned at rest.
|
|
|
|
The night was quiet. Not a ripple broke upon the shore. The old
|
|
stars of the old East were all out, each in its accustomed place;
|
|
and there was summer everywhere- on land, on lake, in the sky.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur's imagination was heated, his feelings aroused, his will all
|
|
unsettled.
|
|
|
|
So the palms, the sky, the air, seemed to him of the far south
|
|
zone into which Balthasar had been driven by despair for men; the
|
|
lake, with its motionless surface, was a suggestion of the Nilotic
|
|
mother by which the good man stood praying when the Spirit made its
|
|
radiant appearance. Had all these accessories of the miracle come to
|
|
Ben-Hur? or had he been transferred to them? And what if the miracle
|
|
should be repeated- and to him? He feared, yet wished, and even waited
|
|
for the vision. When at last his feverish mood was cooled,
|
|
permitting him to become himself, he was able to think.
|
|
|
|
His scheme of life has been explained. In all reflection about it
|
|
heretofore there had been one hiatus which he had not been able to
|
|
bridge or fill up- one so broad he could see but vaguely to the
|
|
other side of it. When, finally, he was graduated a captain as well as
|
|
a soldier, to what object should he address his efforts? Revolution he
|
|
contemplated, of course; but the processes of revolution have always
|
|
been the same, and to lead men into them there have always been
|
|
required, first, a cause or pretence to enlist adherents; second, an
|
|
end, or something as a practical achievement. As a rule he fights well
|
|
who has wrongs to redress; but vastly better fights he who, with
|
|
wrongs as a spur, has also steadily before him a glorious result in
|
|
prospect- a result in which he can discern balm for wounds,
|
|
compensation for valour, remembrance and gratitude in the event of
|
|
death.
|
|
|
|
To determine the sufficiency of either the cause or the end, it
|
|
was needful that Ben-Hur should study the adherents to whom he
|
|
looked when all was ready for action. Very naturally, they were his
|
|
countrymen. The wrongs of Israel were to every son of Abraham, and
|
|
each one was a cause vastly holy, vastly inspiring.
|
|
|
|
Aye, the cause was there; but the end- what should it be?
|
|
|
|
The hours and days he had given this branch of his scheme were
|
|
past calculation- all with the same conclusion- a dim, uncertain
|
|
general idea of national liberty. Was it sufficient? He could not
|
|
say no, for that would have been the death of his hope; he shrank from
|
|
saying yes, because his judgment taught him better. He could not
|
|
assure himself even that Israel was able single-handed to successfully
|
|
combat Rome. He knew the resources of that great enemy; he knew her
|
|
art was superior to her resources. A universal alliance might suffice,
|
|
but, alas! that was impossible, except- and upon the exception how
|
|
long and earnestly he had dwelt!- except a hero would come from one of
|
|
the suffering nations, and by martial successes accomplish a renown to
|
|
fill the whole earth. What glory to Judea could she prove the
|
|
Macedonia of the new Alexander! Alas, again! Under the rabbis valour
|
|
was possible, but not discipline. And then the taunt of Messala in the
|
|
garden of Herod- "All you conquer in the six days, you lose on the
|
|
seventh."
|
|
|
|
So it happened he never approached the chasm thinking to surmount
|
|
it, but he was beaten back; and so incessantly had he failed in the
|
|
object that he had about given it over, except as a thing of chance.
|
|
The hero might be discovered in his day, or he might not. God only
|
|
knew. Such his state of mind, there need be no lingering upon the
|
|
effect of Malluch's skeleton recital of the story of Balthasar. He
|
|
heard it with a bewildering satisfaction- a feeling that here was
|
|
the solution of the trouble- here was the requisite hero found at
|
|
last; and he a son of the Lion tribe, and King of the Jews! Behind the
|
|
hero, lo! the world in arms.
|
|
|
|
The king implied a kingdom; he was to be a warrior glorious as
|
|
David, a ruler wise and magnificent as Solomon; the kingdom was to
|
|
be a power against which Rome was to dash itself to pieces. There
|
|
would be colossal war, and the agonies of death and birth- then peace,
|
|
meaning, of course, Judean dominion forever.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur's heart beat hard as for an instant he had a vision of
|
|
Jerusalem the capital of the world, and Zion, the site of the throne
|
|
of the Universal Master.
|
|
|
|
It seemed to the enthusiast rare fortune that the man who had seen
|
|
the king was at the tent to which he was going. He could see him
|
|
there, and hear him, and learn of him what all he knew of the coming
|
|
change, especially all he knew of the time of its happening. If it
|
|
were at hand, the campaign with Maxentius should be abandoned; and
|
|
he would go and set about organizing and arming the tribes, that
|
|
Israel might be ready when the great day of the restoration began to
|
|
break.
|
|
|
|
Now, as we have seen, from Balthasar himself Ben-Hur had the
|
|
marvellous story. Was he satisfied?
|
|
|
|
There was a shadow upon him deeper than that of the cluster of
|
|
palms- the shadow of a great uncertainty, which- take note, O reader I
|
|
which pertained more to the kingdom than the king.
|
|
|
|
"What of this kingdom? And what is it to be?" Ben-Hur asked
|
|
himself in thought.
|
|
|
|
Thus early arose the questions which were to follow the Child to his
|
|
end, and survive him on earth- incomprehensible in his day, a
|
|
dispute in this- an enigma to all who do not or cannot understand that
|
|
every man is two in one- a deathless Soul and a mortal Body.
|
|
|
|
"What is it to be?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
For us, O reader, the Child himself has answered; but for Ben-Hur
|
|
there were only the words of Balthasar, "On the earth, yet not of
|
|
it- not for men, but for their souls- a dominion, nevertheless, of
|
|
unimaginable glory."
|
|
|
|
What wonder the hapless youth found the phrases but the darkening of
|
|
a riddle?
|
|
|
|
"The hand of man is not in it," he said, despairingly. "Nor has
|
|
the king of such a kingdom use for men; neither toilers, nor
|
|
councillors, nor soldiers. The earth must die or be made anew, and for
|
|
government new principles must be discovered- something besides
|
|
armed hands- something in place of Force. But what?"
|
|
|
|
Again, O reader!
|
|
|
|
That which we will not see, he could not. The power there is in Love
|
|
had not yet occurred to any man; much less had one come saying
|
|
directly that for government and its objects- peace and order- Love is
|
|
better and mightier than Force.
|
|
|
|
In the midst of his reverie a hand was laid upon his shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"I have a word to say, O son of Arrius," said Ilderim, stopping by
|
|
his side- "a word, and then I must return, for the night is going."
|
|
|
|
"I give you welcome, sheik."
|
|
|
|
"As to the things you have heard but now," said Ilderim, almost
|
|
without pause, "take in belief all save that relating to the kind of
|
|
kingdom the Child will set up when he comes; as to so much keep virgin
|
|
mind until you hear Simonides the merchant- a good man here in
|
|
Antioch, to whom I will make you known. The Egyptian gives you coinage
|
|
of his dreams which are too good for the earth; Simonides is wiser; he
|
|
will ring you the sayings of your prophets, giving book and page, so
|
|
you cannot deny that the Child will be King of the Jews in fact-
|
|
aye, by the splendour of God I a king as Herod was, only better and
|
|
far more magnificent. And then, see you, we will taste the sweetness
|
|
of vengeance. I have said. Peace to you!"
|
|
|
|
"Stay- sheik!"
|
|
|
|
If Ilderim heard his call, he did not stay.
|
|
|
|
"Simonides again!" said Ben-Hur, bitterly. "Simonides here,
|
|
Simonides there; from this one now, then from that! I am like to be
|
|
well ridden by my father's servant, who knows at least to hold fast
|
|
that which is mine; wherefore he is richer, if indeed he be not wiser,
|
|
than the Egyptian. By the covenant! it is not to the faithless a man
|
|
should go to find a faith to keep- and I will not. But, hark! singing-
|
|
and the voice a woman's- or an angel's! It comes this way."
|
|
|
|
Down the lake towards the dowar came a woman singing. Her voice
|
|
floated along the hushed water melodious as a flute, and louder
|
|
growing each instant. Directly the dipping of oars was heard in slow
|
|
measure; a little later the words were distinguishable- words in
|
|
purest Greek, best fitted of all the tongues of the day for the
|
|
expression of passionate grief.
|
|
|
|
THE LAMENT.
|
|
|
|
(Egyptian.)
|
|
|
|
"I sigh as I sing for the story land
|
|
|
|
Across the Syrian sea.
|
|
|
|
The odorous winds from the musky sand
|
|
|
|
Were breaths of life to me.
|
|
|
|
They play with the plumes of the whispering palm
|
|
|
|
For me, alas! no more;
|
|
|
|
Nor more does the Nile in the moonlit calm
|
|
|
|
Moan past the Memphian shore.
|
|
|
|
O Nilus! thou god of my fainting soul!
|
|
|
|
In dreams thou comest to me;
|
|
|
|
And, dreaming, I play with the lotus bowl,
|
|
|
|
And sing old songs to thee;
|
|
|
|
And hear from afar the Memnonian strain,
|
|
|
|
And calls from dear Simbel;
|
|
|
|
And wake to a passion of grief and pain
|
|
|
|
That e'er I said- Farewell!"
|
|
|
|
At the conclusion of the song the singer was past the cluster of
|
|
palms. The last word- farewell- floated past Ben-Hur weighted with all
|
|
the sweet sorrow of parting. The passing of the boat was as the
|
|
passing of a deeper shadow into the deeper night.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur drew a long breath hardly distinguishable from a sigh.
|
|
|
|
"I know her by the song- the daughter of Balthasar. How beautiful it
|
|
was! And how beautiful is she!"
|
|
|
|
He recalled her large eyes curtained slightly by the drooping
|
|
lids, the cheeks oval and rosy rich, the lips full and deep with
|
|
dimpling in the corners, and all the grace of the tall lithe figure.
|
|
|
|
"How beautiful she is!" he repeated.
|
|
|
|
And his heart made answer by a quickening of its movement.
|
|
|
|
Then, almost the same instant, another face, younger and quite as
|
|
beautiful- more childlike and tender, if not so passionate- appeared
|
|
as if held up to him out of the lake.
|
|
|
|
"Esther!" he said, smiling. "As I wished, a star has been sent to
|
|
me."
|
|
|
|
He turned, and passed slowly back to the tent.
|
|
|
|
His life had been crowded with griefs and with vengeful
|
|
preparations- too much crowded for love. Was this the beginning of a
|
|
happy change?
|
|
|
|
And if the influence went with him into the tent, whose was it?
|
|
|
|
Esther had given him a cup.
|
|
|
|
So had the Egyptian.
|
|
|
|
And both had come to him at the same time under the palms.
|
|
|
|
Which?
|
|
|
|
BOOK FIFTH.
|
|
|
|
"Only the actions of the just
|
|
|
|
Smell sweet and blossom in the dust."
|
|
|
|
-SHIRLEY.
|
|
|
|
"And, through the heat of conflict, keeps the law,
|
|
|
|
In calmness made, and sees what he foresaw."
|
|
|
|
-WORDSWORTH.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
MESSALA DOFFS HIS CHAPLET.
|
|
|
|
THE morning after the bacchanalia in the saloon of the palace, the
|
|
divan was covered with young patricians. Maxentius might come, and the
|
|
city throng to receive him; the legion might descend from Mount
|
|
Sulpius in glory of arms and armour; from Nymphaeum to Omphalus
|
|
there might be ceremonial splendours to shame the most notable ever
|
|
before seen or heard of in the gorgeous East; yet would the many
|
|
continue to sleep ignominiously on the divan where they had fallen
|
|
or been carelessly tumbled by the indifferent slaves; that they
|
|
would be able to take part in the reception that day was about as
|
|
possible as for the lay-figures in the studio of a modern artist to
|
|
rise and go bonneted and plumed through the one, two, three of a
|
|
waltz.
|
|
|
|
Not all, however, who participated in the orgie were in the shameful
|
|
condition. When dawn began to peer through the skylights of the
|
|
saloon, Messala arose, and took the chaplet from his head, in sign
|
|
that the revel was at end; then he gathered his robe about him, gave a
|
|
last look at the scene, and, without a word, departed for his
|
|
quarters. Cicero could not have retired with more gravity from a
|
|
night-long senatorial debate.
|
|
|
|
Three hours afterwards two couriers entered his room, and from his
|
|
own hand received each a despatch, sealed and in duplicate, and
|
|
consisting chiefly of a letter to Valerius Gratus, the procurator,
|
|
still resident in Caesarea. The importance attached to the speedy
|
|
and certain delivery of the paper may be inferred. One courier was
|
|
to proceed overland, the other by sea; both were to make the utmost
|
|
haste.
|
|
|
|
It is of great concern now that the reader should be fully
|
|
informed of the contents of the letter thus forwarded, and it is
|
|
accordingly given:-
|
|
|
|
"ANTIOCH, XII. Kal. Jul.
|
|
|
|
"Messala to Gratus.
|
|
|
|
"O my Midas!
|
|
|
|
"I pray thou take no offence at the address, seeing it is one of
|
|
love and gratitude, and an admission that thou art most fortunate
|
|
among men; seeing, also, that thy ears are as they were derived from
|
|
thy mother, only proportionate to thy matured condition.
|
|
|
|
"O my Midas!
|
|
|
|
"I have to relate to thee an astonishing event, which, though as yet
|
|
somewhat in the field of conjecture, will, I doubt not, justify thy
|
|
instant consideration.
|
|
|
|
"Allow me first to revive thy recollection. Remember, a good many
|
|
years ago, a family of a prince of Jerusalem, incredibly ancient and
|
|
vastly rich- by name Ben-Hur. If thy memory have a limp or ailment
|
|
of any kind, there is, if I mistake not, a wound on thy head which may
|
|
help thee to a revival of the circumstance.
|
|
|
|
"Next, to arouse thy interest. In punishment of the attempt upon thy
|
|
life- for dear repose of conscience, may all the gods forbid it should
|
|
ever prove to have been an accident!- the family were seized and
|
|
summarily disposed of, and their property confiscated. And inasmuch, O
|
|
my Midas! as the action had the approval of our Caesar, who was as
|
|
just as he was wise- be there flowers upon his altars forever!-
|
|
there should be no shame in referring to the sums which were
|
|
realized to us respectively from that source, for which it is not
|
|
possible I can ever cease to be grateful to thee, certainly not
|
|
while I continue, as at present, in the uninterrupted enjoyment of the
|
|
part which fell to me.
|
|
|
|
"In vindication of thy wisdom- a quality for which, as I am now
|
|
advised, the son of Gordius, to whom I have boldly likened thee, was
|
|
never distinguished among men or gods- I recall further that thou
|
|
didst make disposition of the family of Hur, both of us at the time
|
|
supposing the plan hit upon to be the most effective possible for
|
|
the purposes in view, which were silence and delivery over to
|
|
inevitable but natural death. Thou wilt remember what thou didst
|
|
with the mother and sister of the malefactor; yet, if now I yield to a
|
|
desire to learn whether they be living or dead, I know, from knowing
|
|
the amiability of thy nature, O my Gratus, that thou wilt pardon me as
|
|
one scarcely less amiable than thyself.
|
|
|
|
"As more immediately essential to the present business, however, I
|
|
take the liberty of inviting to thy remembrance that the actual
|
|
criminal was sent to the galleys a slave for life- so the precept ran;
|
|
and it may serve to make the event which I am about to relate the more
|
|
astonishing by saying here that I saw and read the receipt for his
|
|
body delivered in course to the tribune commanding a galley.
|
|
|
|
"Thou mayst begin now to give me more especial heed, O my most
|
|
excellent Phrygian!
|
|
|
|
"Referring to the limit of life at the oar, the outlaw thus justly
|
|
disposed of should be dead, or, better speaking, some one of the three
|
|
thousand Oceanides should have. taken him to husband at least five
|
|
years ago. And if thou wilt excuse a momentary weakness, O most
|
|
virtuous and tender of men! inasmuch as I loved him in childhood,
|
|
and also because he was very handsome- I used in much admiration to
|
|
call him my Ganymede- he ought in right to have fallen into the arms
|
|
of the most beautiful daughter of the family. Of opinion, however,
|
|
that he was certainly dead, I have lived quite five years in calm
|
|
and innocent enjoyment of the fortune for which I am in a degree
|
|
indebted to him. I make the admission of indebtedness without
|
|
intending it to diminish my obligation to thee.
|
|
|
|
"Now I am at the very point of interest.
|
|
|
|
"Last night, while acting as master of the feast for a party just
|
|
from Rome- their extreme youth and inexperience appealed to my
|
|
compassion- I heard a singular story. Maxentius, the consul, as you
|
|
know, comes to-day to conduct a campaign against the Parthians. Of the
|
|
ambitious who are to accompany him there is one, a son of the late
|
|
duumvir Quintus Arrius. I had occasion to inquire about him
|
|
particularly. When Arrius set out in pursuit of the pirates, whose
|
|
defeat gained him his final honours, he had no family; when he
|
|
returned from the expedition, he brought back with him an heir. Now be
|
|
thou composed as becomes the owner of so many talents in ready
|
|
sestertia! The son and heir of whom I speak is he whom thou didst send
|
|
to the galleys- the very Ben-Hur who should have died at his oar
|
|
five years ago- returned now with fortune and rank, and possibly as
|
|
a Roman citizen, too.- Well, thou art too firmly seated to be alarmed,
|
|
but I, O my Midas! I am in danger- no need to tell thee of what. Who
|
|
should know, if thou dost not?
|
|
|
|
"Sayst thou to all this, tut-tut?
|
|
|
|
"When Arrius, the father, by adoption, of this apparition from the
|
|
arms of the most beautiful of the Oceanides (see above my opinion of
|
|
what she should be), joined battle with the pirates, his vessel was
|
|
sunk, and but two of all her crew escaped drowning- Arrius himself,
|
|
and this one, his heir.
|
|
|
|
"The officers who took them from the plank on which they were
|
|
floating say the associate of the unfortunate tribune was a young
|
|
man who, when lifted to the deck, was in the dress of a galley slave.
|
|
|
|
"This should be convincing, to say least; but lest thou say
|
|
tut-tut again, I tell thee. O my Midas! that yesterday, by good
|
|
chance- I have a vow to Fortune in consequence- I met the mysterious
|
|
son of Arrius face to face; and I declare now that, though I did not
|
|
then recognize him, he is the very Ben-Hur who was for years my
|
|
playmate; the very Ben-Hur who, if he be a man, though of the
|
|
commonest grade, must this very moment of my writing be thinking of
|
|
vengeance- for so would I were I he- vengeance not to be satisfied
|
|
short of life; vengeance for country, mother, sister, self, and- I say
|
|
it last, though thou mayst think it should be first- for fortune lost.
|
|
|
|
"By this time, O good my benefactor and friend! my Gratus! in
|
|
consideration of thy sesteria in peril, their loss being the worst
|
|
which could befall one of thy high estate- I quit calling thee after
|
|
the foolish old King of Phrygia- by this time, I say (meaning after
|
|
having read me so far), I have faith to believe thou hast ceased
|
|
saying tut-tut, and art ready to think what ought to be done in such
|
|
emergency.
|
|
|
|
"It were vulgar to ask thee now what shall be done. Rather let me
|
|
say I am thy client; or, better yet, thou art my Ulysses whose part it
|
|
is to give me sound direction.
|
|
|
|
"And I please myself thinking I see thee when this letter is put
|
|
into thy hand. I see thee read it once, thy countenance all gravity,
|
|
and then again with a smile; then, hesitation ended, and thy
|
|
judgment formed, it is this, or it is that; wisdom like Mercury's,
|
|
promptitude like Caesar's.
|
|
|
|
"The sun is now fairly risen. An hour hence two messengers will
|
|
depart from my door, each with a sealed copy hereof; one of them
|
|
will go by land, the other by sea, so important do I regard it that
|
|
thou shouldst be early and particularly informed of the appearance
|
|
of our enemy in this part of our Roman world.
|
|
|
|
"I will await thy answer here.
|
|
|
|
"Ben-Hur's going and coming will of course be regulated by his
|
|
master, the consul, who, though he exert himself without rest day
|
|
and night, cannot get away under a month. Thou knowest what work it is
|
|
to assemble and provide for an army destined to operate in a desolate,
|
|
townless country.
|
|
|
|
"I saw the Jew yesterday in the Grove of Daphne; and if he be not
|
|
there now, he is certainly in the neighbourhood, making it easy for me
|
|
to keep him in eye. Indeed, wert thou to ask me where he is now, I
|
|
should say, with the most positive assurance, he is to be found at the
|
|
Orchard of Palms, under the tent of the traitor Sheik Ilderim, who
|
|
cannot long escape our strong hand. Be not surprised if Maxentius,
|
|
as his first measure, places the Arab on ship for forwarding to Rome.
|
|
|
|
"I am so particular about the whereabouts of the Jew because it will
|
|
be important to thee, O illustrious! when thou comest to consider what
|
|
is to be done; for already I know, and by the knowledge I flatter
|
|
myself I am growing in wisdom, that in every scheme involving human
|
|
action there are three elements always to be taken into account- time,
|
|
place, and agency.
|
|
|
|
"If thou sayest this is the place, have thou then no hesitancy in
|
|
trusting the business to thy most loving friend, who would be thy
|
|
aptest scholar as well.
|
|
|
|
"MESSALA."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
ILDERIM'S ARABS UNDER THE YOKE.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT the time the couriers departed from Messala's door with the
|
|
despatches (it being yet the early morning hour), Ben-Hur entered
|
|
Ilderim's tent. He had taken a plunge into the lake, and
|
|
breakfasted, and appeared now in an under-tunic, sleeveless, and
|
|
with skirt scarcely reaching to the knee.
|
|
|
|
The sheik saluted him from the divan.
|
|
|
|
"I give thee peace, son of Arrius," he said, with admiration, for,
|
|
in truth, he had never seen a more perfect illustration of glowing,
|
|
powerful, confident manhood. "I give thee peace and good-will. The
|
|
horses are ready, I am ready. And thou?"
|
|
|
|
"The peace thou givest me, good sheik, I give thee in return. I
|
|
thank thee for so much good-will. I am ready."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim clapped his hands.
|
|
|
|
"I will have the horses brought. Be seated."
|
|
|
|
"Are they yoked?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Then suffer me to serve myself," said Ben-Hur. "It is needful
|
|
that I make the acquaintance of thy Arabs. I must know them by name, O
|
|
sheik, that I may speak to them singly; nor less must I know their
|
|
temper, for they are like men: if bold, the better of scolding; if
|
|
timid, the better of praise and flattery. Let the servants bring me
|
|
the harness."
|
|
|
|
"And the chariot?" asked the sheik.
|
|
|
|
"I will let the chariot alone to-day. In its place, let them bring
|
|
me a fifth horse, if thou hast it; he should be barebacked, and
|
|
fleet as the others."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim's wonder was aroused, and he summoned a servant immediately.
|
|
|
|
"Bid them bring the harness for the four," he said; "the harness for
|
|
the four, and the bridle for Sirius."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim then arose.
|
|
|
|
"Sirius is my love, and I am his, O son of Arrius. We have been
|
|
comrades for twenty years- in tent, in battle, in all stages of the
|
|
desert we have been comrades. I will show him to you."
|
|
|
|
Going to the division curtain, he held it, while Ben-Hur passed
|
|
under. The horses came to him in a body. One with a small head,
|
|
luminous eyes, neck like the segment of a bended bow, and mighty
|
|
chest, curtained thickly by a profusion of mane soft and wavy as a
|
|
damsel's locks, nickered low and gladly at sight of him.
|
|
|
|
"Good horse," said the sheik, patting the dark-brown cheek. "Good
|
|
horse, good-morning." Turning then to Ben-Hur, he added, "This is
|
|
Sirius, father of the four here. Mira, the mother, awaits our
|
|
return, being too precious to be hazarded in a region where there is a
|
|
stronger hand than mine. And much I doubt," he laughed as he spoke-
|
|
"much I doubt, O son of Arrius, if the tribe could endure her absence.
|
|
She is their glory; they worship her; did she gallop over them, they
|
|
would laugh. Ten thousand horsemen, sons of the desert, will ask
|
|
to-day, 'Have you heard of Mira?' And to the answer, 'She is well,'
|
|
they will say, 'God is good! blessed be God!'"
|
|
|
|
"Mira- Sirius- names of stars, are they not, O sheik?" asked
|
|
Ben-Hur, going to each of the four, and to the sire, offering his
|
|
hand.
|
|
|
|
"And why not?" replied Ilderim "Wert thou ever abroad on the
|
|
desert at night?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Then thou canst not know how much we Arabs depend upon the stars.
|
|
We borrow their names in gratitude, and give them in love. My
|
|
fathers all had their Miras, as I have mine; and these children are
|
|
stars no less. There, see thou, is Rigel, and there Antares; that
|
|
one is Atair, and he whom thou goest to now is Aldebaran, the youngest
|
|
of the brood, but none the worse of that- no, not he! Against the wind
|
|
he will carry thee till it roar in thy ears like Akaba; and he will go
|
|
where thou sayest, son of Arrius- aye, by the glory of Solomon! he
|
|
will take thee to the lion's jaws, if thou darest so much."
|
|
|
|
The harness was brought. With his own hands Ben-Hur equipped the
|
|
horses; with his own hands he led them out of the tent, and there
|
|
attached the reins.
|
|
|
|
"Bring me Sirius," he said.
|
|
|
|
An Arab could not have better sprung to seat on the courser's back.
|
|
|
|
"And now the reins."
|
|
|
|
They were given him, and carefully separated.
|
|
|
|
"Good sheik," he said, "I am ready. Let a guide go before me to
|
|
the field, and send some of thy men with water."
|
|
|
|
There was no trouble at starting. The horses were not afraid.
|
|
Already there seemed a tacit understanding between them and the new
|
|
driver, who had performed his part calmly, and with the confidence
|
|
which always begets confidence. The order of going was precisely
|
|
that of driving, except that Ben-Hur sat upon Sirius instead of
|
|
standing in the chariot. Ilderim's spirit arose. He combed his
|
|
beard, and smiled with satisfaction as he muttered, "He is not a
|
|
Roman, no, by the splendour of God!" He followed on foot, the entire
|
|
tenantry of the dowar- men, women, and children- pouring after him,
|
|
participants all in his solicitude, if not in his confidence.
|
|
|
|
The field, when reached, proved ample and well fitted for the
|
|
training, which Ben-Hur began immediately by driving the four at first
|
|
slowly, and in perpendicular lines, and then in wide circles.
|
|
Advancing a step in the course, he put them next into a trot; again
|
|
progressing, he pushed into a gallop; at length he contracted the
|
|
circles, and yet later drove eccentrically here and there, right,
|
|
left, forward, and without a break. An hour was thus occupied. Slowing
|
|
the gait to a walk, he drove up to Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"The work is done, nothing now but practice," he said. "I give you
|
|
joy, Sheik Ilderim, than you have such servants as these. See," he
|
|
continued, dismounting and going to the horses, "see, the gloss of
|
|
their red coats is without spot; they breathe lightly as when I began.
|
|
I give thee great joy, and it will go hard if"- he turned his flashing
|
|
eyes upon the old man's face- "if we have not the victory and our- "
|
|
|
|
He stopped, coloured, bowed. At the sheik's side he observed, for
|
|
the first time, Balthasar, leaning upon his staff, and two women
|
|
closely veiled. At one of the latter he looked a second time, saying
|
|
to himself, with a flutter about his heart, "'Tis she- 'tis the
|
|
Egyptian!" Ilderim picked up his broken sentence-
|
|
|
|
"The victory, and our revenge!" Then he said aloud, "I am not
|
|
afraid; I am glad. Son of Arrius, thou art the man. Be the end like
|
|
the beginning, and thou shalt see of what stuff is the lining of the
|
|
hand of an Arab who is able to give."
|
|
|
|
"I thank thee, good sheik," Ben-Hur returned, modestly. "Let the
|
|
servants bring drink for the horses."
|
|
|
|
With his own hands he gave the water.
|
|
|
|
Remounting Sirius, he renewed the training, going as before from
|
|
walk to trot, from trot to gallop; finally, he pushed the steady
|
|
racers into the run, gradually quickening it to full speed. The
|
|
performance then became exciting; and there were applause for the
|
|
dainty handling of the reins, and admiration for the four, which
|
|
were the same, whether they flew forward or wheeled in varying
|
|
curvature. In their action there were unity, power, grace, pleasure,
|
|
all without effort or sign of labour. The admiration was unmixed
|
|
with pity or reproach, which would have been as well bestowed upon
|
|
swallows in their evening flight.
|
|
|
|
In the midst of the exercises, and the attention they received
|
|
from all the bystanders, Malluch came upon the ground, seeking the
|
|
sheik.
|
|
|
|
"I have a message for you, O sheik," he said, availing himself of
|
|
a moment he supposed favourable for the speech- "a message from
|
|
Simonides, the merchant."
|
|
|
|
"Simonides!" ejaculated the Arab. "'Ah! 'tis well. May Abaddon
|
|
take all his enemies."
|
|
|
|
"He bade me give thee first the holy peace of God," Malluch
|
|
continued; "and then this despatch, with prayer that thou read it
|
|
the instant of receipt."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim standing in his place, broke the sealing of the package
|
|
delivered to him, and from a wrapping of fine linen took two
|
|
letters, which he proceeded to read.
|
|
|
|
[No. 1.]
|
|
|
|
"Simonides to Sheik Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"O friend!
|
|
|
|
"Assure thyself first of a place in my inner heart.
|
|
|
|
"Then-
|
|
|
|
"There is in thy dowar a youth of fair presence, calling himself the
|
|
son of Arrius; and such he is by adoption.
|
|
|
|
"He is very dear to me.
|
|
|
|
"He hath a wonderful history, which I will tell thee; come thou
|
|
to-day or to-morrow, that I may tell thee the history, and have thy
|
|
counsel.
|
|
|
|
"Meantime, favour all his requests, so they be not against honour.
|
|
Should there be need of reparation, I am bound to thee for it.
|
|
|
|
"That I have interest in this youth, keep thou private.
|
|
|
|
"Remember me to thy other guest. He, his daughter, thyself, and
|
|
all whom thou mayst choose to be of thy company, must depend upon me
|
|
at the Circus the day of the games. I have seats already engaged.
|
|
|
|
"To thee and all thine. peace.
|
|
|
|
"What should I be, O friend, but thy friend?
|
|
|
|
"SIMONIDES."
|
|
|
|
[No. 2.]
|
|
|
|
"Simonides to Sheik Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"O friend!
|
|
|
|
"Out of the abundance of my experience, I send you a word.
|
|
|
|
"There is a sign which all persons not Romans, and who have moneys
|
|
or goods subject to despoilment, accept as warning- that is, the
|
|
arrival at a seat of power of some high Roman official charged with
|
|
authority.
|
|
|
|
"To-day comes the Consul Maxentius.
|
|
|
|
"Be thou warned!
|
|
|
|
"Another word of advice.
|
|
|
|
"A conspiracy, to be of effect against thee, O friend, must
|
|
include the Herods as parties; thou hast great properties in their
|
|
dominions.
|
|
|
|
"Wherefore keep thou watch.
|
|
|
|
"Send this morning to thy trusty keepers of the roads leading
|
|
south from Antioch, and bid them search every courier going and
|
|
coming; if they find private despatches relating to thee or thy
|
|
affairs, thou shouldst see them.
|
|
|
|
"You should have received this yesterday, though it is not too late,
|
|
if you act promptly.
|
|
|
|
"If couriers left Antioch this morning, your messengers know the
|
|
byways, and can get before them with your orders.
|
|
|
|
"Do not hesitate.
|
|
|
|
"Burn this after reading.
|
|
|
|
"O my friend! thy friend.
|
|
|
|
"SIMONIDES."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim read the letters a second time, and refolded them in the
|
|
linen wrap, and put the package under his girdle.
|
|
|
|
The exercises in the field continued but a little longer- in all
|
|
about two hours. At their conclusion, Ben-Hur brought the four to a
|
|
walk, and drove to Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"With leave, O sheik," he said, "I will return thy Arabs to the
|
|
tent, and bring them out again this afternoon."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim walked to him as he sat on Sirius, and said, "I give them to
|
|
you, son of Arrius, to do with as you will until after the games.
|
|
You have done with them in two hours what the Roman- may jackals
|
|
gnaw his bones fleshless!- could not in as many weeks. We will win- by
|
|
the splendour of God, we will win."
|
|
|
|
At the tent Ben-Hur remained with the horses while they were being
|
|
cared for; then, after a plunge in the lake and a cup of arrack with
|
|
the sheik, whose flow of spirits was royally exuberant, he dressed
|
|
himself in his Jewish garb again, and walked with Malluch on into
|
|
the Orchard.
|
|
|
|
There was much conversation between the two, not all of it
|
|
important. One part, however, must not be overlooked. Ben-Hur was
|
|
speaking.
|
|
|
|
"I will give you," he said, "an order for my property stored in
|
|
the khan this side the river by the Seleucian Bridge. Bring it to me
|
|
to-day, if you can. And, good Malluch- if I do not overtask you- "
|
|
|
|
Malluch protested heartily his willingness to be of service.
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, Malluch, thank you," said Ben-Hur. "I will take you at
|
|
your word, remembering that we are brethren of the old tribe, and that
|
|
the enemy is a Roman. First, then- as you are a man of business, which
|
|
I much fear Sheik Ilderim is not- "
|
|
|
|
"Arabs seldom are," said Malluch, gravely.
|
|
|
|
"Nay, I do not impeach their shrewdness, Malluch. It is well,
|
|
however, to look after them. To save all forfeit or hindrance in
|
|
connection with the race, you would put me perfectly at rest by
|
|
going to the office of the Circus, and seeing that he has complied
|
|
with every preliminary rule; and if you can get a copy of the rules,
|
|
the service may be of great avail to me. I would like to know the
|
|
colours I am to wear, and particularly the number of the crypt I am to
|
|
occupy at the starting; if it be next Messala's on the right or
|
|
left, it is well; if not, and you can have it changed so as to bring
|
|
me next the Roman, do so. Have you good memory, Malluch?"
|
|
|
|
"It has failed me but never, son of Arrius, where the heart helped
|
|
it as now."
|
|
|
|
"I will venture, then, to charge you with one further service. I saw
|
|
yesterday that Messala was proud of his chariot, as he might be, for
|
|
the best of Caesar's scarcely surpass it. Can you not make its display
|
|
an excuse which will enable you to find if it be light or heavy? I
|
|
would like to have its exact weight and measurements- and, Malluch,
|
|
though you fail in all else, bring me exactly the height his axle
|
|
stands above the ground. You understand, Malluch? I do not wish him to
|
|
have any actual advantage of me. I do not care for his splendour; if I
|
|
beat him, it will make his fall the harder, and my triumph the more
|
|
complete. If there are advantages really important, I want them."
|
|
|
|
"I see, I see!" said Malluch. "A line dropped from the centre of the
|
|
axle is what you want."
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast it; and be glad, Malluch- it is the last of my
|
|
commissions. Let us return to the dowar."
|
|
|
|
At the door of the tent they found a servant replenishing the
|
|
smoke-stained bottles of leben freshly made, and stopped to refresh
|
|
themselves. Shortly afterwards Malluch returned to the city.
|
|
|
|
During their absence a messenger well-mounted had been despatched
|
|
with orders as suggested by Simonides. He was an Arab, and carried
|
|
nothing written.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
THE ARTS OF CLEOPATRA.
|
|
|
|
"IRAS, the daughter of Balthasar, sends me with salutation and a
|
|
message," said a servant to Ben-Hur, who was taking his ease in the
|
|
tent.
|
|
|
|
"Give me the message."
|
|
|
|
"Would it please you to accompany her upon the lake?"
|
|
|
|
"I will carry the answer myself. Tell her so."
|
|
|
|
His shoes were brought him, and in a few minutes Ben-Hur sallied out
|
|
to find the fair Egyptian. The shadow of the mountains was creeping
|
|
over the Orchard of Palms in advance of night. Afar through the
|
|
trees came the tinkling of sheep-bells, the lowing of cattle, and
|
|
the voices of the herdsmen bringing their charges home. Life at the
|
|
Orchard, it should be remembered, was in all respects as pastoral as
|
|
life on the scantier meadows of the desert.
|
|
|
|
Sheik Ilderim had witnessed the exercises of the afternoon, being
|
|
a repetition of those of the morning; after which he had gone to the
|
|
city in answer to the invitation of Simonides; he might return in
|
|
the night; but, considering the immensity of the field to be talked
|
|
over with his friend, it was hardly possible. Ben-Hur, thus left
|
|
alone, had seen his horses cared for; cooled and purified himself in
|
|
the lake; exchanged the field garb for his customary vestments, all
|
|
white, as became a Sadducean of the pure blood; supped early; and,
|
|
thanks to the strength of youth, was well recovered from the violent
|
|
exertion he had undergone.
|
|
|
|
It is neither wise nor honest to detract from beauty as a quality.
|
|
There cannot be a refined soul insensible to its influence. The
|
|
story of Pygmalion and his statue is as natural as it is poetical.
|
|
Beauty is of itself a power; and it was now drawing Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian was to him a wonderfully beautiful woman- beautiful
|
|
of face, beautiful of form. In his thought she always appeared to
|
|
him as he saw her at the fountain; and he felt the influence of her
|
|
voice, sweeter because in tearful expression of gratitude to him,
|
|
and of her eyes- the large, soft, black, almond-shaped eyes
|
|
declarative of her race- eyes which looked more than lies in the
|
|
supremest wealth of words to utter; and recurrences of the thought
|
|
of her were returns just so frequent of a figure tall, slender,
|
|
graceful, refined, wrapped in rich and floating drapery, wanting
|
|
nothing but a fitting mind to make her, like the Shulamite, and in the
|
|
same sense, terrible as an army with banners. In other words, as she
|
|
returned to his fancy, the whole passionate Song of Solomon came
|
|
with her, inspired by her presence. With this sentiment and that
|
|
feeling, he was going to see if she actually justified them. It was
|
|
not love that was taking him, but admiration and curiosity, which
|
|
might be the heralds of love.
|
|
|
|
The landing was a simple affair, consisting of a short stairway, and
|
|
a platform garnished by some lamp-posts; yet at the top of the steps
|
|
he paused, arrested by what he beheld.
|
|
|
|
There was a shallop resting upon the clear water lightly as an
|
|
egg-shell. An Ethiop- the camel-driver at the Castalian fount-
|
|
occupied the rower's place, his blackness intensified by a livery of
|
|
shining white. All the boat aft was cushioned and carpeted with stuffs
|
|
brilliant with Tyrian red. On the rudder seat sat the Egyptian
|
|
herself, sunk in Indian shawls and a very vapour of most delicate
|
|
veils and scarfs. Her arms were bare to the shoulders; and, not merely
|
|
faultless in shape, they had the effect of compelling attention to
|
|
them- their pose, their action, their expression; the hands, the
|
|
fingers even, seemed endowed with graces and meaning; each was an
|
|
object of beauty. The shoulders and neck were protected from the
|
|
evening air by an ample scarf, which yet did not hide them.
|
|
|
|
In the glance he gave her, Ben-Hur paid no attention to these
|
|
details. There was simply an impression made upon him; and, like
|
|
strong light, it was a sensation, not a thing of sight or enumeration.
|
|
Thy lips are like a thread of scarlet; thy temples are like a piece of
|
|
pomegranate within thy locks. Rise up, my love, my fair one, and
|
|
come away; for, lo! the winter is past, the rain is over and gone; the
|
|
flowers appear on the earth; the time of the singing of birds is come,
|
|
and the voice of the turtle is heard in the land- such was the
|
|
impression she made upon him translated into words.
|
|
|
|
"Come," she said, observing him stop, "come, or I shall think you
|
|
a poor sailor."
|
|
|
|
The red of his cheek deepened. Did she know anything of his life
|
|
upon the sea? He descended to the platform at once.
|
|
|
|
"I was afraid," he said, as he took the vacant seat before her.
|
|
|
|
"Of what?"
|
|
|
|
"Of sinking the boat," he replied, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"Wait until we are in deeper water," she said, giving a signal to
|
|
the black, who dipped the oars, and they were off.
|
|
|
|
If love and Ben-Hur were enemies, the latter was never more at
|
|
mercy. The Egyptian sat where he could not but see her; she, whom he
|
|
had already engrossed in memory as his ideal of the Shulamite. With
|
|
her eyes giving light to his, the stars might come out, and he not see
|
|
them; and so they did. The night might fall with unrelieved darkness
|
|
everywhere else; her look would make illumination for him. And then,
|
|
as everybody knows, given youth and such companionship, there is no
|
|
situation in which the fancy takes such complete control as upon
|
|
tranquil waters under a calm night sky, warm with summer. It is so
|
|
easy at such time to glide imperceptibly out of the commonplace into
|
|
the ideal.
|
|
|
|
"Give me the rudder," he said.
|
|
|
|
"No," she replied, "that were to reverse the relation. Did I not ask
|
|
you to ride with me? I am indebted to you, and would begin payment.
|
|
You may talk and I will listen, or I will talk and you will listen:
|
|
that choice is yours; but it shall be mine to choose where we go,
|
|
and the way thither."
|
|
|
|
"And where may that be?"
|
|
|
|
"You are alarmed again."
|
|
|
|
"O fair Egyptian, I but asked you the first question of every
|
|
captive."
|
|
|
|
"Call me Egypt."
|
|
|
|
"I would rather call you Iras."
|
|
|
|
"You may think of me by that name, but call me Egypt."
|
|
|
|
"Egypt is a country, and means many people."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes! And such a country!"
|
|
|
|
"I see; it is to Egypt we are going."
|
|
|
|
"Would we were! I would be so glad."
|
|
|
|
She sighed as she spoke.
|
|
|
|
"You have no care for me, then," he said.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, by that I know you were never there."
|
|
|
|
"I never was."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, it is the land where there are no unhappy people, the desired
|
|
of all the rest of the earth, the mother of all the gods, and
|
|
therefore supremely blest. There, O son of Arrius, there the happy
|
|
find increase of happiness, and the wretched, going, drink once of the
|
|
sweet water of the sacred river, and laugh and sing, rejoicing like
|
|
children."
|
|
|
|
"Are not the very poor with you there as elsewhere?"
|
|
|
|
"The very poor in Egypt are the very simple in wants and ways,"
|
|
she replied. "They have no wish beyond enough, and how little that is,
|
|
a Greek or a Roman cannot know."
|
|
|
|
"But I am neither Greek nor Roman."
|
|
|
|
She laughed.
|
|
|
|
"I have a garden of roses, and in the midst of it is a tree, and its
|
|
bloom is the richest of all. Whence came it, think you?"
|
|
|
|
"From Persia, the home of the rose."
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"From India, then."
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Ah! one of the isles of Greece."
|
|
|
|
"I will tell you," she said; "a traveller found it perishing by
|
|
the roadside on the plain of Rephaim."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, in Judea!"
|
|
|
|
"I put it in the earth left bare by the receding Nile, and the
|
|
soft south wind blew over the desert and nursed it, and the sun kissed
|
|
it in pity; after which it could not else than grow and flourish. I
|
|
stand in its shade now, and it thanks me with much perfume. As with
|
|
the roses, so with the men of Israel. Where shall they reach
|
|
perfection but in Egypt?"
|
|
|
|
"Moses was but one of millions."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, there was a reader of dreams. Will you forget him?"
|
|
|
|
"The friendly Pharaohs are dead."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes! The river by which they dwelt sings to them in their
|
|
tombs; yet the same sun tempers the same air to the same people."
|
|
|
|
"Alexandria is but a Roman town."
|
|
|
|
"She has but exchanged sceptres. Caesar took from her that of the
|
|
sword, and in its place left that of learning. Go with me to the
|
|
Brucheium, and I will show you the college of nations; to the
|
|
Serapeion, and see the perfection of architecture; to the Library, and
|
|
read the immortals; to the theatre, and hear the heroics of the Greeks
|
|
and Hindoos; to the quay, and count the triumphs of commerce;
|
|
descend with me into the streets, O son of Arrius, and, when the
|
|
philosophers have dispersed, and taken with them the masters of all
|
|
the arts, and all the gods have home their votaries, and nothing
|
|
remains of the day but its pleasures, you shall hear the stories
|
|
that have amused men from the beginning, and the songs which will
|
|
never, never die."
|
|
|
|
As he listened, Ben-Hur was carried back to the night when, in the
|
|
summer-house in Jerusalem, his mother, in much the same poetry of
|
|
patriotism, declaimed the departed glories of Israel.
|
|
|
|
"I see now why you wish to be called Egypt. Will you sing me a
|
|
song if I call you by that name? I heard you last night."
|
|
|
|
"That was a hymn of the Nile," she answered, "a lament which I
|
|
sing when I would fancy I smell the breath of the desert, and hear the
|
|
surge of the dear old river; let me rather give you a piece of the
|
|
Indian mind. When we get to Alexandria, I will take you to the
|
|
corner of the street where you can hear it from the daughter of the
|
|
Ganga, who taught it to me. Kapila, you should know, was one of the
|
|
most revered of the Hindoo sages."
|
|
|
|
Then, as if it were a natural mode of expression, she began the
|
|
song.
|
|
|
|
KAPILA.
|
|
|
|
I.
|
|
|
|
"Kapila, Kapila, so young and true,
|
|
|
|
I yearn for a glory like thine,
|
|
|
|
And hail thee from battle to ask anew
|
|
|
|
Can ever thy Valour be mine?
|
|
|
|
"Kapila sat on his charger dun,
|
|
|
|
A hero never so grave:
|
|
|
|
'Who loveth all things hath fear of none,
|
|
|
|
'Tis love that maketh me brave.
|
|
|
|
A woman gave me her soul one day,
|
|
|
|
The soul of my soul to be alway;
|
|
|
|
Thence came my Valour to me,
|
|
|
|
Go try it- try it- and see.'
|
|
|
|
II.
|
|
|
|
"Kapila, Kapila, so old and grey,
|
|
|
|
The queen is calling for me;
|
|
|
|
But ere I go hence, I wish thou wouldst say,
|
|
|
|
How Wisdom first came to thee.
|
|
|
|
"Kapila stood in his temple door,
|
|
|
|
A priest in eremite guise:
|
|
|
|
'It did not come as men get their lore,
|
|
|
|
'Tis faith that maketh me wise.
|
|
|
|
A woman gave me her heart one day,
|
|
|
|
The heart of my heart to be alway;
|
|
|
|
Thence came my Wisdom to me,
|
|
|
|
Go try it- try it- and see.'"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur had not time to express his thanks for the song before the
|
|
keel of the boat grated upon the underlying sand, and, next moment,
|
|
the bow ran upon the shore.
|
|
|
|
"A quick voyage, O Egypt!" he cried.
|
|
|
|
"And a briefer stay!" she replied, as, with a strong push, the black
|
|
sent them shooting into the open water again.
|
|
|
|
"You will give me the rudder now."
|
|
|
|
"Oh no," said she, laughing. "To you, the chariot; to me, the
|
|
boat. We are merely at the lake's end, and the lesson is that I must
|
|
not sing any more. Having been to Egypt, let us now go to the Grove of
|
|
Daphne."
|
|
|
|
"Without a song on the way?" he said, in deprecation.
|
|
|
|
"Tell me something of the Roman from whom you saved us yesterday,"
|
|
she asked.
|
|
|
|
The request struck Ben-Hur unpleasantly.
|
|
|
|
"I wish this were the Nile," he said, evasively. "The kings and
|
|
queens, having slept so long, might come down from their tombs, and
|
|
ride with us."
|
|
|
|
"They were of the colossi, and would sink our boat. The pygmies
|
|
would be preferable. But tell me of the Roman. He is very wicked, is
|
|
he not?"
|
|
|
|
"I cannot say."
|
|
|
|
"Is he of noble family, and rich?"
|
|
|
|
"I cannot speak of his riches."
|
|
|
|
"How beautiful his horses were! and the bed of his chariot was gold,
|
|
and the wheels ivory. And his audacity! The bystanders laughed as he
|
|
rode away; they, who were so nearly under his wheels!"
|
|
|
|
She laughed at the recollection.
|
|
|
|
"They were rabble," said Ben-Hur, bitterly.
|
|
|
|
"He must be one of the monsters who are said to be growing up in
|
|
Rome- Apollos ravenous as Cerberus. Does he reside in Antioch?"
|
|
|
|
"He is of the East somewhere."
|
|
|
|
"Egypt would suit him better than Syria."
|
|
|
|
"Hardly," Ben-Hur replied. "Cleopatra is dead."
|
|
|
|
That instant the lamps burning before the door of the tent came into
|
|
view.
|
|
|
|
"The dowar!" she cried.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, then, we have not been to Egypt. I have not seen Karnak or
|
|
Philae or Abydos. This is not the Nile. I have but heard a song of
|
|
India, and been boating in a dream."
|
|
|
|
"Philae- Karnak. Mourn rather that you have not seen the Rameses
|
|
at Aboo Simbul, looking at which makes it so easy to think of God, the
|
|
maker of the heavens and earth. Or why should you mourn at all? Let us
|
|
go on to the river; and if I cannot sing"- she laughed- "because I
|
|
have said I would not, yet I can tell you stories of Egypt."
|
|
|
|
"Go on! Aye, till morning comes, and the evening, and the next
|
|
morning!" he said, vehemently.
|
|
|
|
"Of what shall my stories be? Of the mathematicians?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh no."
|
|
|
|
"Of the philosophers?"
|
|
|
|
"No, no."
|
|
|
|
"Of the magicians and genii?"
|
|
|
|
"If you will."
|
|
|
|
"Of war?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Of love?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"I will tell you a cure for love. It is the story of a queen. Listen
|
|
reverently. The papyrus from which it was taken by the priests of
|
|
Philae was wrested from the hand of the heroine herself. It is correct
|
|
in form, and must be true:
|
|
|
|
NE-NE-HOFRA.
|
|
|
|
I.
|
|
|
|
"There is no parallelism in human lives.
|
|
|
|
"No life runs a straight line.
|
|
|
|
"The most perfect life develops as a circle, and terminates in its
|
|
beginning, making it impossible to say, This is the commencement, that
|
|
the end.
|
|
|
|
"Perfect lives are the treasures of God; of great days he wears them
|
|
on the ring-finger of his heart hand."
|
|
|
|
II.
|
|
|
|
"Ne-ne-hofra dwelt in a house close by Essouan, yet closer to the
|
|
first cataract- so close, indeed, that the sound of the eternal battle
|
|
waged there between river and rocks was of the place a part.
|
|
|
|
"She grew in beauty day by day, so that it was said of her, as of
|
|
the poppies in her father's garden, What will she not be in the time
|
|
of blooming?
|
|
|
|
"Each year of her life was the beginning of a new song more
|
|
delightful than any of those which went before.
|
|
|
|
"Child was she of a marriage between the North, bounded by the
|
|
sea, and the South, bounded by the desert beyond the Luna mountains;
|
|
and one gave her its passion, the other its genius; so when they
|
|
beheld her, both laughed, saying, not meanly, 'She is mine,' but
|
|
generously, 'Ha, ha! she is ours.'
|
|
|
|
"All excellences in nature contributed to her perfection and
|
|
rejoiced in her presence. Did she come or go, the birds ruffled
|
|
their wings in greeting; the unruly winds sank to cooling zephyrs; the
|
|
white lotus rose from the water's depth to look at her; the solemn
|
|
river loitered on its way; the palm-trees, nodding, shook all their
|
|
plumes; and they seemed to say, this one, I gave her of my grace;
|
|
that, I gave her of my brightness; the other, I gave her of my purity:
|
|
and so each as it had a virtue to give.
|
|
|
|
"At twelve, Ne-ne-hofra was the delight of Essouan; at sixteen,
|
|
the fame of her beauty was universal; at twenty, there was never a day
|
|
which did not bring to her door princes of the desert on swift camels,
|
|
and lords of Egypt in gilded barges; and, going away disconsolate,
|
|
they reported everywhere, 'I have seen her, and she is not a woman,
|
|
but Athor herself.'"
|
|
|
|
III.
|
|
|
|
"Now of the three hundred and thirty successors of good King
|
|
Menes, eighteen were Ethiopians, of whom Oraetes was one hundred and
|
|
ten years old. He had reigned seventy-six years. Under him the
|
|
people thrived, and the land groaned with fatness of plenty. He
|
|
practised wisdom because, having seen so much, he knew what it was. He
|
|
dwelt in Memphis, having there his principal palace, his arsenals, and
|
|
his treasure-house. Frequently he went down to Butos to talk with
|
|
Latona.
|
|
|
|
"The wife of the good king died. Too old was she for perfect
|
|
embalmment; yet he loved her, and mourned as the inconsolable;
|
|
seeing which, a colchyte presumed one day to speak to him.
|
|
|
|
"'O Oraetes, I am astonished that one so wise and great should not
|
|
know how to cure a sorrow like this.'
|
|
|
|
"'Tell me a cure,' said the king.
|
|
|
|
"Three times the colchyte kissed the floor. and then he replied,
|
|
knowing the dead could not hear him. 'At Essouan lives Ne-ne-hofra,
|
|
beautiful as Athor the beautiful. Send for her. She has refused all
|
|
the lords and princes, and I know not how many kings; but who can
|
|
say no to Oraetes?'"
|
|
|
|
IV.
|
|
|
|
"Ne-ne-hofra descended the Nile in a barge richer than any ever
|
|
before seen, attended by an army in barges each but a little less
|
|
fine. All Nubia and Egypt, and a myriad from Libya, and a host of
|
|
Troglodytes, and not a few Macrobii from beyond the Mountains of the
|
|
Moon, lined the tented shores to see the cortege pass, wafted by
|
|
perfumed winds and golden oars.
|
|
|
|
"Through a dromos of sphinxes and couchant double-winged lions she
|
|
was borne, and set down before Oraetes sitting on a throne specially
|
|
erected at the sculptured pylon of the palace. He raised her up,
|
|
gave her place by his side, clasped the uraeus upon her arm, kissed
|
|
her, and Ne-ne-hofra was queen of all queens.
|
|
|
|
"That was not enough for the wise Oraetes; he wanted love, and a
|
|
queen happy in his love. So he dealt with her tenderly, showing her
|
|
his possessions, cities, places, people; his armies, his ships: and
|
|
with his own hand he led her through his treasure-house, saying, 'O,
|
|
Ne-ne-hofra! but kiss me in love, and they are all thine.'
|
|
|
|
"And, thinking she could be happy, if she was not then, she kissed
|
|
him once, twice, thrice- kissed him thrice, his hundred and ten
|
|
years notwithstanding.
|
|
|
|
"The first year she was happy, and it was very short; the third year
|
|
she was wretched, and it was very long; then she was enlightened: that
|
|
which she thought love of Oraetes was only daze of his power. Well for
|
|
her had the daze endured! Her spirits deserted her; she had long
|
|
spells of tears, and her women could not remember when they heard
|
|
her laugh; of the roses on her cheeks only ashes remained; she
|
|
languished and faded gradually, but certainly. Some said she was
|
|
haunted by the Erinnyes for cruelty to a lover; others, that she was
|
|
stricken, by some god envious of Oraetes. Whatever the cause of her
|
|
decline, the charms of the magicians availed not to restore her, and
|
|
the prescript of the doctor was equally without virtue. Ne-ne-hofra
|
|
was given over to die.
|
|
|
|
"Oraetes chose a crypt for her up in the tombs of the queens; and,
|
|
calling the master-sculptors and painters to Memphis, he set them to
|
|
work upon designs more elaborate than any even in the great
|
|
galleries of the dead kings.
|
|
|
|
"'O thou beautiful as Athor herself, my queen!' said the king, whose
|
|
hundred and thirteen years did not lessen his ardour as a lover, 'tell
|
|
me, I pray, the ailment of which, alas! thou art so certainly
|
|
perishing before my eyes.'
|
|
|
|
"'You will not love me any more if I tell you,' she said, in doubt
|
|
and fear.
|
|
|
|
"'Not love you! I will love you the more. I swear it, by the genii
|
|
of Amente! by the eye of Osiris, I swear it! Speak!' he cried,
|
|
passionate as a lover, authoritative as a king.
|
|
|
|
"'Hear then,' she said. 'There is an anchorite, the oldest and
|
|
holiest of his class, in a cave near Essouan. His name is Menopha.
|
|
He was my teacher and guardian. Send for him, O Oraetes, and he will
|
|
tell you that you seek to know; he will also help you find the cure
|
|
for my affliction.'
|
|
|
|
"Oraetes arose rejoicing. He went away in spirit a hundred years
|
|
younger than when he came."
|
|
|
|
V.
|
|
|
|
"'Speak!' said Oraetes to Menopha, in the palace at Memphis.
|
|
|
|
"And Menopha replied, 'Most mighty king, if you were young, I should
|
|
not answer, because I am yet pleased with life; as it is, I will say
|
|
the queen like any other mortal, is paying the penalty of a crime.'
|
|
|
|
"'A crime!' exclaimed Oraetes, angrily.
|
|
|
|
"Menopha bowed very low.
|
|
|
|
"'Yes; to herself.'
|
|
|
|
"'I am not in mood for riddles,' said the king.
|
|
|
|
"'What I say is not a riddle, as you shall hear. Ne-ne-hofra grew up
|
|
under my eyes, and confided every incident of her life to me; among
|
|
others, that she loved the son of her father's gardener, Barbec by
|
|
name.'
|
|
|
|
"Oraetes' frown, strangely enough, began to dissipate.
|
|
|
|
"'With that love in her heart, O king, she came to you; of that love
|
|
she is dying.'
|
|
|
|
"'Where is the gardener's son now?' asked Oraetes.
|
|
|
|
"'In Essouan.'
|
|
|
|
"The king went out and gave two orders. To one oeris he said, 'Go to
|
|
Essouan and bring hither a youth named Barbec. You will find him in
|
|
the garden of the queen's father;' to another, 'Assemble workmen and
|
|
cattle and tools, and construct for me in Lake Chemmis an island,
|
|
which, though laden with a temple, a palace, and a garden, and all
|
|
manner of trees bearing fruit, and all manner of vines, shall
|
|
nevertheless float about as the winds may blow it. Make the island,
|
|
and let it be fully furnished by the time the moon begins to wane.'
|
|
|
|
"Then to the queen he said,
|
|
|
|
"'Be of cheer. I know all, and have sent for Barbec.'
|
|
|
|
"Ne-ne-hofra kissed his hands.
|
|
|
|
"'You shall have him to yourself, and he you to himself; nor shall
|
|
any disturb your loves for a year.'
|
|
|
|
"She kissed his feet; he raised her, and kissed her in return; and
|
|
the rose came back to her cheek, the scarlet to her lips, and the
|
|
laugh to her heart."
|
|
|
|
VI.
|
|
|
|
"For one year Ne-ne-hofra and Barbec the gardener floated as the
|
|
winds blew on the island of Chemmis, which became one of the wonders
|
|
of the world; never a home of love more beautiful; one year, seeing no
|
|
one and existing for no one but themselves. Then she returned in state
|
|
to the palace in Memphis.
|
|
|
|
"'Now whom lovest thou best?' asked the king.
|
|
|
|
"She kissed his cheek and said, 'Take me back, O good king, for I am
|
|
cured.'
|
|
|
|
"Oraetes laughed, none the worse, that moment, of his hundred and
|
|
fourteen years.
|
|
|
|
"'Then it is true, as Menopha said: ha, ha, ha! it is true, the cure
|
|
of love is love.'
|
|
|
|
"'Even so,' she replied.
|
|
|
|
"Suddenly his manner changed, and his look became terrible.
|
|
|
|
"'I did not find it so,' he said.
|
|
|
|
"She shrank affrighted.
|
|
|
|
"'Thou guilty!' he continued. 'Thy offence to Oraetes the man he
|
|
forgives; but thy offence to Oraetes the king remains to be punished.'
|
|
|
|
"She cast herself at his feet.
|
|
|
|
"'Hush!' he cried. 'Thou art dead!'
|
|
|
|
"He clapped his hands, and a terrible procession came in- a
|
|
procession of parachistes, or embalmers, each with some implement or
|
|
material of his loathsome art.
|
|
|
|
"The king pointed to Ne-ne-hofra.
|
|
|
|
"'She is dead. Do thy work well.'
|
|
|
|
VII.
|
|
|
|
"Ne-ne-hofra the beautiful, after seventy-two days, was carried to
|
|
the crypt chosen for her the year before, and laid with her queenly
|
|
predecessors; yet there was no funeral procession in her honour across
|
|
the sacred lake."
|
|
|
|
At the conclusion of the story, Ben-Hur was sitting at the
|
|
Egyptian's feet, and her hand upon the tiller was covered by his hand.
|
|
|
|
"Menopha was wrong," he said.
|
|
|
|
"How?"
|
|
|
|
"Love lives by loving."
|
|
|
|
"Then there is no cure for it?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Oraetes found the cure."
|
|
|
|
"What was it?"
|
|
|
|
"Death."
|
|
|
|
"You are a good listener, O son of Arrius."
|
|
|
|
And so with conversation and stories, they whiled the hours away. As
|
|
they stepped ashore, she said,
|
|
|
|
"To-morrow we go to the city."
|
|
|
|
"But you will be at the games?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes."
|
|
|
|
"I will send you my colours."
|
|
|
|
With that they separated.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
MESSALA ON GUARD.
|
|
|
|
ILDERIM returned to the dowar next day about the third hour. As he
|
|
dismounted, a man whom he recognized as of his own tribe came to him
|
|
and said, "O sheik, I was bidden give thee this package, with
|
|
request that thou read it at once. If there be answer, I was to wait
|
|
thy pleasure."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim gave the package immediate attention. The seal was already
|
|
broken. The address ran, To Valerius Gratus at Caesarea.
|
|
|
|
"Abaddon take him!" growled the sheik, at discovering a letter in
|
|
Latin.
|
|
|
|
Had the missive been in Greek or Arabic, he could have read it; as
|
|
it was, the utmost he could make out was the signature in bold Roman
|
|
letters- MESSALA- whereat his eyes twinkled.
|
|
|
|
"Where is the young Jew?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"In the field with the horses," a servant replied.
|
|
|
|
The sheik replaced the papyrus in its envelopes, and, tucking the
|
|
package under his girdle, remounted the horse. That moment a
|
|
stranger made his appearance, coming, apparently, from the city.
|
|
|
|
"I am looking for Sheik Ilderim, surnamed the Generous," the
|
|
stranger said.
|
|
|
|
His language and attire bespoke him a Roman.
|
|
|
|
What he could not read, he yet could speak; so the old Arab
|
|
answered, with dignity, "I am Sheik Ilderim."
|
|
|
|
The man's eyes fell; he raised them again, and said, with forced
|
|
composure, "I heard you had need of a driver for the games."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim's lip under the white moustache curled contemptuously.
|
|
|
|
"Go thy way," he said. "I have a driver."
|
|
|
|
He turned to ride away, but the man, lingering, spoke again.
|
|
|
|
"Sheik, I am a lover of horses, and they say you have the most
|
|
beautiful in the world."
|
|
|
|
The old man was touched; he drew rein, as if on the point of
|
|
yielding to the flattery, but finally replied, "Not to-day, not
|
|
to-day; some other time I will show them to you. I am too busy just
|
|
now."
|
|
|
|
He rode to the field, while the stranger betook himself to town
|
|
again, with a smiling countenance. He had accomplished his mission.
|
|
|
|
And every day thereafter, down to the great day of the games, a man-
|
|
sometimes two or three men- came to the sheik at the Orchard,
|
|
pretending to seek an engagement as driver.
|
|
|
|
In such manner Messala kept watch over Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
ILDERIM AND BEN-HUR DELIBERATE.
|
|
|
|
THE sheik waited, well satisfied, until Ben-Hur drew his horses
|
|
off the field for the forenoon- well satisfied, for he had seen
|
|
them, after being put through all the other paces, run full speed in
|
|
such manner that it did not seem there were one the slowest and
|
|
another the fastest- run, in other words, as the four were one.
|
|
|
|
"This afternoon, O sheik, I will give Sirius back to you." Ben-Hur
|
|
patted the neck of the old horse as he spoke. "I will give him back,
|
|
and take to the chariot."
|
|
|
|
"So soon?" Ilderim asked.
|
|
|
|
"With such as these, good sheik, one day suffices. They are not
|
|
afraid; they have a man's intelligence, and they love the exercise.
|
|
This one," he shook a rein over the back of the youngest of the
|
|
four- "you called him Aldebaran, I believe- is the swiftest; in once
|
|
round a stadium he would lead the others thrice his length."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim pulled his beard, and said, with twinkling eyes,
|
|
"Aldebaran is the swiftest; but what of the slowest?"
|
|
|
|
"This is he." Ben-Hur shook the rein over Antares. "This is he:
|
|
but he will win, for, look you, sheik, he will run his utmost all day-
|
|
all day; and, as the sun goes down, he will reach his swiftest."
|
|
|
|
"Right again," said Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"I have but one fear, O sheik."
|
|
|
|
The sheik became doubly serious.
|
|
|
|
"In his greed of triumph, a Roman cannot keep honour pure. In the
|
|
games- all of them, mark you- their tricks are infinite; in
|
|
chariot-racing their knavery extends to everything- from horse to
|
|
driver, from driver to master. Wherefore, good sheik, look well to all
|
|
thou hast; from this till the trial is over, let no stranger so much
|
|
as see the horses. Would you be perfectly safe, do more- keep watch
|
|
over them with armed hand as well as sleepless eye; then I will have
|
|
no fear of the end."
|
|
|
|
At the door of the tent they dismounted.
|
|
|
|
"What you say shall be attended to. By the splendour of God, no hand
|
|
shall come near them except it belong to one of the faithful. To-night
|
|
I will set watches. But, son of Arrius"- Ilderim drew forth the
|
|
package, and opened it slowly, while they walked to the divan and
|
|
seated themselves- "son of Arrius, see thou here, and help me with thy
|
|
Latin."
|
|
|
|
He passed the despatch to Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"There; read- and read aloud, rendering what thou findest into the
|
|
tongue of thy fathers. Latin is an abomination."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur was in good spirits, and began the reading carelessly.
|
|
"'Messala to Gratus!'" He paused. A premonition drove the blood to his
|
|
heart. Ilderim observed his agitation.
|
|
|
|
"Well; I am waiting."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur prayed pardon, and recommenced the paper, which, it is
|
|
sufficient to say, was one of the duplicates of the letter
|
|
despatched so carefully to Gratus by Messala the morning after the
|
|
revel in the palace.
|
|
|
|
The paragraphs in the beginning were remarkable only as proof that
|
|
the writer had not outgrown his habit of mockery; when they were
|
|
passed, and the reader came to the parts intended to refresh the
|
|
memory of Gratus, his voice trembled, and twice he stopped to regain
|
|
his self-control. By a strong effort he continued. "'I recall
|
|
further'" he read, "'that thou didst make disposition of the family of
|
|
Hur'"- there the reader again paused and drew a long breath- "'both of
|
|
us at the time supposing the plan hit upon to be the most effective
|
|
possible for the purposes in view, which were silence and delivery
|
|
over to inevitable but natural death.'"
|
|
|
|
Here Ben-Hur broke down utterly. The paper fell from his hands,
|
|
and he covered his face.
|
|
|
|
"They are dead- dead. I alone am left."
|
|
|
|
The sheik had been a silent, but not unsympathetic, witness of the
|
|
young man's suffering; now he arose and said, "Son of Arrius, it is
|
|
for me to beg thy pardon. Read the paper by thyself. When thou art
|
|
strong enough to give the rest of it to me, send word, and I will
|
|
return."
|
|
|
|
He went out of the tent, and nothing in all his life became him
|
|
better.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur flung himself on the divan and gave way to his feelings.
|
|
When somewhat recovered, he recollected that a portion of the letter
|
|
remained unread, and, taking it up, he resumed the reading. "Thou wilt
|
|
remember," the missive ran, "what thou didst with the mother and
|
|
sister of the malefactor; yet, if now I yield to a desire to learn
|
|
if they be living or dead"- Ben-Hur started, and read again, and
|
|
then again, and at last broke into exclamation. "He does not know they
|
|
are dead; he does not know it! Blessed be the name of the Lord!
|
|
there is yet hope." He finished the sentence, and was strengthened
|
|
by it, and went on bravely to the end of the letter.
|
|
|
|
"They are not dead," he said, after reflection; "they are not
|
|
dead, or he would have heard of it."
|
|
|
|
A second reading, more careful than the first, confirmed him in
|
|
the opinion. Then he sent for the sheik.
|
|
|
|
"In coming to your hospitable tent, O sheik," he said, calmly,
|
|
when the Arab was seated and they were alone, "it was not in my mind
|
|
to speak of myself further than to assure you I had sufficient
|
|
training to be intrusted with your horses. I declined to tell you my
|
|
history. But the chances which have sent this paper to my hand and
|
|
given it to me to be read are so strange that I feel bidden to trust
|
|
you with everything. And I am the more inclined to do so by
|
|
knowledge here conveyed that we are both of us threatened by the
|
|
same enemy, against whom it is needful that we make common cause. I
|
|
will read the letter and give you explanation; after which you will
|
|
not wonder I was so moved. If you thought me weak or childish, you
|
|
will then excuse me."
|
|
|
|
The sheik held his peace, listening closely, until Ben-Hur came to
|
|
the paragraph in which he was particularly mentioned- "'I saw the
|
|
Jew yesterday in the Grove of Daphne;'" so ran the part, "'and if he
|
|
be not there now, he is certainly in the neighbourhood, making it easy
|
|
for me to keep him in eye. Indeed, were thou to ask me where he is
|
|
now, I should say, with the most positive assurance, he is to be found
|
|
at the old Orchard of Palms.'"
|
|
|
|
"A- h!" exclaimed Ilderim, in such a tone one might hardly say he
|
|
was more surprised than angry; at the same time, he clutched his
|
|
beard.
|
|
|
|
"'At the old Orchard of Palms,'" Ben-Hur repeated, "'under the
|
|
tent of the traitor Sheik Ilderim.'"
|
|
|
|
"Traitor!- I?" the old man cried, in his shrillest tone, while lip
|
|
and beard curled with ire, and on his forehead and neck the veins
|
|
swelled and beat as they would burst.
|
|
|
|
"Yet a moment, sheik," said Ben-Hur, with a deprecatory gesture.
|
|
"Such is Messala's opinion of you. Hear his threat." And he read on-
|
|
"'under the tent of the traitor Sheik Ilderim, who cannot long
|
|
escape our strong hand. Be not surprised if Maxentius, as his first
|
|
measure, places the Arab on ship for forwarding to Rome.'"
|
|
|
|
"To Rome! Me- Ilderim- sheik of ten thousand horsemen with spears-
|
|
me to Rome!"
|
|
|
|
He leaped rather than rose to his feet, his arms outstretched, his
|
|
fingers spread and curved like claws, his eyes glittering like a
|
|
serpent's.
|
|
|
|
"O God!- nay, by all the gods except of Rome!- when shall this
|
|
insolence end? A freeman am I; free are my people. Must we die slaves?
|
|
Or, worse, must I live a dog, crawling to a master's feet? Must I lick
|
|
his hand lest he lash me? What is mine is not mine; I am not my own;
|
|
for breath of body I must be beholden to a Roman. Oh, if I were
|
|
young again! Oh, could I shake off twenty years- or ten- or five!"
|
|
|
|
He ground his teeth and shook his hands overhead; then, under the
|
|
impulse of another idea, he walked away and back again to Ben-Hur
|
|
swiftly, and caught his shoulder with a strong grasp.
|
|
|
|
"If I were as thou, son of Arrius- as young, as strong, as practised
|
|
in arms; if I had a motive hissing me to revenge- a motive, like
|
|
thine, great enough to make hate holy.- Away with disguise on thy part
|
|
and on mine! Son of Hur, son of Hur, I say- "
|
|
|
|
At that name all the currents of Ben-Hur's blood stopped; surprised,
|
|
bewildered, he gazed into the Arab's eyes, now close to his, and
|
|
fiercely bright.
|
|
|
|
"Son of Hur, I say, were I as thou, with half thy wrongs, bearing
|
|
about with me memories like thine, I would not, I could not, rest."
|
|
Never pausing, his words following each other torrent-like, the old
|
|
man swept on. "To all my grievances, I would add those of the world,
|
|
and devote myself to vengeance. From land to land I would go firing
|
|
all mankind. No war for freedom but should find me engaged; no
|
|
battle against Rome in which I would not bear a part. I would turn
|
|
Parthian, if I could not better. If men failed me, still I would not
|
|
give over the effort- ha, ha, ha! By the splendour of God! I would
|
|
herd with wolves, and make friends of lions and tigers, in hope of
|
|
marshalling them against the common enemy. I would use every weapon.
|
|
So my victims were Romans, I would rejoice in slaughter. Quarter I
|
|
would not ask; quarter I would not give. To the flames everything
|
|
Roman; to the sword every Roman born. Of nights I would pray the gods,
|
|
the good and the bad alike, to lend me their special terrors-
|
|
tempests, drought, heat, cold, and all the nameless poisons they let
|
|
loose in air, all the thousand things of which men die on sea and on
|
|
land. Oh, I could not sleep. I- I- "
|
|
|
|
The sheik stopped for want of breath, panting, wringing his hands.
|
|
And, sooth to say, of all the passionate burst Ben-Hur retained but
|
|
a vague impression wrought by fiery eyes, a piercing voice, and a rage
|
|
too intense for coherent expression.
|
|
|
|
For the first time in years, the desolate youth heard himself
|
|
addressed by his proper name. One man at least knew him, and
|
|
acknowledged it without demand of identity; and he an Arab fresh
|
|
from the desert!
|
|
|
|
How came the man by his knowledge? The letter? No. It told the
|
|
cruelties from which his family had suffered; it told the story of his
|
|
own misfortunes, but it did not say he was the very victim whose
|
|
escape from doom was the theme of the heartless narrative. That was
|
|
the point of explanation he had notified the sheik would follow the
|
|
reading of the letter. He was pleased, and thrilled with hope
|
|
restored, yet kept an air of calmness.
|
|
|
|
"Good sheik, tell me how you came by this letter."
|
|
|
|
"My people keep the roads between cities," Ilderim answered,
|
|
bluntly. "They took it from a courier."
|
|
|
|
"Are they known to be thy people?"
|
|
|
|
"No. To the world they are robbers, whom it is mine to catch and
|
|
slay."
|
|
|
|
"Again, sheik. You call me son of Hur- my father's name. I did not
|
|
think myself known to a person on earth. How came you by the
|
|
knowledge?"
|
|
|
|
Ilderim hesitated; but, rallying, he answered, "I know you, yet I am
|
|
not free to tell you more."
|
|
|
|
"Some one holds you in restraint?"
|
|
|
|
The sheik closed his mouth, and walked away; but, observing
|
|
Ben-Hur's disappointment, he came back, and said, "Let us say no
|
|
more about the matter now. I will go to town; when I return, I may
|
|
talk to you fully. Give me the letter."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim rolled the papyrus carefully, restored it to its envelope,
|
|
and became once more all energy.
|
|
|
|
"What sayest thou?" he asked, while waiting for his horse and
|
|
retinue. "I told what I would do, were I thou, and thou hast made no
|
|
answer.
|
|
|
|
"I intended to answer, sheik, and I will." Ben-Hur's countenance and
|
|
voice changed with the feeling invoked. "All thou hast said, I will
|
|
do- all at least in the power of a man. I devoted myself to
|
|
vengeance long ago. Every hour of the five years passed, I have
|
|
lived with no other thought. I have taken no respite. I have had no
|
|
pleasures of youth. The blandishments of Rome were not for me. I
|
|
wanted her to educate me for revenge. I resorted to her most famous
|
|
masters and professors- not those of rhetoric or philosophy: alas! I
|
|
had no time for them. The arts essential to a fighting-man were my
|
|
desire. I associated with gladiators, and with winners of prizes in
|
|
the circus; and they were my teachers. The drill-masters in the
|
|
great camp accepted me as a scholar, and were proud of my
|
|
attainments in their line. O sheik, I am a soldier; but the things
|
|
of which I dream require me to be a captain. With that thought, I have
|
|
taken part in the campaign against the Parthians; when it is over,
|
|
then, if the Lord spare my life and strength- then"- he raised his
|
|
clenched hands, and spoke vehemently- "then I will be an enemy
|
|
Roman-taught in all things; then Rome shall account to me in Roman
|
|
lives for her ills. You have my answer, sheik."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim put an arm over his shoulder, and kissed him, saying,
|
|
passionately, "If thy God favour thee not, son of Hur, it is because
|
|
he is dead. Take thou this from me- sworn to, if so thy preference
|
|
run: thou shalt have my hands, and their fulness- men, horses, camels,
|
|
and the desert for preparation. I swear it! For the present, enough.
|
|
Thou shalt see or hear from me before night."
|
|
|
|
Turning abruptly off, the sheik was speedily on the road to the
|
|
city.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
TRAINING THE FOUR.
|
|
|
|
THE intercepted letter was conclusive upon a number of points of
|
|
great interest to Ben-Hur. It had all the effect of a confession
|
|
that the writer was a party to the putting-away of the family with
|
|
murderous intent; that he had sanctioned the plan adopted for the
|
|
purpose; that he had received a portion of the proceeds of the
|
|
confiscation and was yet in enjoyment of his part; that he dreaded the
|
|
unexpected appearance of what he was pleased to call the chief
|
|
malefactor, and accepted it as a menace; that he contemplated such
|
|
further action as would secure him in the future, and was ready to
|
|
do whatever his accomplice in Caesarea might advise.
|
|
|
|
And, now that the letter had reached the hand of him really its
|
|
subject, it was notice of danger to come, as well as a confession of
|
|
guilt. So when Ilderim left the tent, Ben-Hur had much to think about,
|
|
requiring immediate action. His enemies were as adroit and powerful as
|
|
any in the East. If they were afraid of him, he had greater reason
|
|
to be afraid of them. He strove earnestly to reflect upon the
|
|
situation, but could not; his feelings constantly overwhelmed him.
|
|
There was a certain qualified pleasure in the assurance that his
|
|
mother and sister were alive; and it mattered little that the
|
|
foundation of the assurance was a mere inference. That there was one
|
|
person who could tell him where they were seemed to his hope so long
|
|
deferred as if discovery were now close at hand. These were mere
|
|
causes of feeling; underlying them, it must be confessed he had a
|
|
superstitious fancy that God was about to make ordination in his
|
|
behalf, in which event faith whispered him to stand still.
|
|
|
|
Occasionally, referring to the words of Ilderim, he wondered
|
|
whence the Arab derived his information about him; not from Malluch
|
|
certainly; nor from Simonides, whose interests, all adverse, would
|
|
hold him dumb. Could Messala have been the informant? No, no:
|
|
disclosure might be dangerous in that quarter. Conjecture was vain; at
|
|
the same time, often as Ben-Hur was beaten back from the solution,
|
|
he was consoled with the thought that whoever the person with the
|
|
knowledge might be, he was a friend, and, being such, would reveal
|
|
himself in good time. A little more waiting- a little more patience.
|
|
Possibly the errand of the sheik was to see the worthy; possibly the
|
|
letter might precipitate a full disclosure.
|
|
|
|
And patient he would have been if only he could have believed Tirzah
|
|
and his mother were waiting for him under circumstances permitting
|
|
hope on their part strong as his; if, in other words, conscience had
|
|
not stung him with accusations respecting them.
|
|
|
|
To escape such accusations, he wandered far through the Orchard,
|
|
pausing now where the date-gatherers were busy, yet not too busy to
|
|
offer him of their fruit and talk with him; then, under the great
|
|
trees, to watch the nesting birds, or hear the bees swarming about the
|
|
berries bursting with honeyed sweetness, and filling all the green and
|
|
golden spaces with the music of their beating wings.
|
|
|
|
By the lake, however, he lingered longest. He might not look upon
|
|
the water and its sparkling ripples, so like sensuous life, without
|
|
thinking of the Egyptian and her marvellous beauty, and of floating
|
|
with her here and there through the night, made brilliant by her songs
|
|
and stories; he might not forget the charm of her manner, the
|
|
lightness of her laugh, the flattery of her attention, the warmth of
|
|
her little hand under his upon the tiller of the boat From her it
|
|
was for his thought but a short way to Balthasar, and the strange
|
|
things of which he had been witness, unaccountable by any law of
|
|
nature; and from him, again, to the King of the Jews, whom the good
|
|
man, with such pathos of patience, was holding in holy promise, the
|
|
distance was even nearer. And there his mind stayed, finding in the
|
|
mysteries of that personage a satisfaction answering well for the rest
|
|
he was seeking. Because, it may have been, nothing is so easy as
|
|
denial of an idea not agreeable to our wishes, he rejected the
|
|
definition given by Balthasar of the kingdom the king was coming to
|
|
establish. A kingdom of souls, if not intolerable to the Sadducean
|
|
faith, seemed to him but an abstraction drawn from the depths of a
|
|
devotion too fond and dreamy. A kingdom of Judea, on the other hand,
|
|
was more than comprehensible: such had been, and, if only for that
|
|
reason, might be again. And it suited his pride to think of a new
|
|
kingdom broader of domain, richer in power, and of a more
|
|
unapproachable splendour than the old one; of a new king wiser and
|
|
mightier than Solomon- a new king under whom, especially, he could
|
|
find both service and revenge. In that mood he returned to the dowar.
|
|
|
|
The mid-day meal disposed of, still further to occupy himself,
|
|
Ben-Hur had the chariot rolled out into the sunlight for inspection.
|
|
The word but poorly conveys the careful study the vehicle underwent.
|
|
No point or part of it escaped him. With a pleasure which will be
|
|
better understood hereafter, he saw the pattern was Greek, in his
|
|
judgment preferable to the Roman in many respects; it was wider
|
|
between the wheels, and lower and stronger, and the disadvantage of
|
|
greater weight would be more than compensated by the greater endurance
|
|
of his Arabs. Speaking generally, the carriage-makers of Rome built
|
|
for the games almost solely, sacrificing safety to beauty, and
|
|
durability to grace; while the chariots of Achilles and "the king of
|
|
men," designed for war and all its extreme tests, still ruled the
|
|
tastes of those who met and struggled for the crowns Isthmian and
|
|
Olympic.
|
|
|
|
Next he brought the horses, and, hitching them to the chariot, drove
|
|
to the field of exercise, where, hour after hour, he practised them in
|
|
movement under the yoke. When he came away in the evening, it was with
|
|
restored spirit, and a fixed purpose to defer action in the matter
|
|
of Messala until the race was won or lost. He could not forego the
|
|
pleasure of meeting his adversary under the eyes of the East; that
|
|
there might be other competitors seemed not to enter his thought.
|
|
His confidence in the result was absolute; no doubt of his own
|
|
skill; and as to the four, they were his full partners in the glorious
|
|
game.
|
|
|
|
"Let him look to it, let him look to it! Ha, Antares- Aldebaran!
|
|
Shall he not, O honest Rigel? and thou, Atair, king among coursers,
|
|
shall he not beware of us? Ha, ha! good hearts!"
|
|
|
|
So in rests he passed from horse to horse, speaking, not as a
|
|
master, but the senior of as many brethren.
|
|
|
|
After nightfall, Ben-Hur sat by the door of the tent waiting for
|
|
Ilderim, not yet returned from the city. He was not impatient, or
|
|
vexed, or doubtful. The sheik would be heard from, at least. Indeed,
|
|
whether it was from satisfaction with the performance of the four,
|
|
or the refreshment there is in cold water succeeding bodily
|
|
exercise, or supper partaken with royal appetite, or the reaction
|
|
which, as a kindly provision of nature, always follows depression, the
|
|
young man was in good-humour verging upon elation. He felt himself
|
|
in the hands of Providence no longer his enemy. At last there was a
|
|
sound of horse's feet coming rapidly, and Malluch rode up.
|
|
|
|
"Son of Arrius," he said, cheerily, after salutation, "I salute
|
|
you for Sheik Ilderim, who requests you to mount and go to the city.
|
|
He is waiting for you."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur asked no questions, but went in where the horses were
|
|
feeding. Aldebaran came to him, as if offering his service. He
|
|
played with him lovingly, but passed on, and chose another, not of the
|
|
four- they were sacred to the race. Very shortly the two were on the
|
|
road, going swiftly and in silence.
|
|
|
|
Some distance below the Seleucian Bridge, they crossed the river
|
|
by a ferry, and, riding far round on the right bank, and recrossing by
|
|
another ferry, entered the city from the west. The detour was long,
|
|
but Ben-Hur accepted it as a precaution for which there was good
|
|
reason.
|
|
|
|
Down to Simonides' landing they rode, and in front of the great
|
|
warehouse, under the bridge, Malluch drew rein.
|
|
|
|
"We are come," he said. "Dismount."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur recognised the place.
|
|
|
|
"Where is the sheik?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Come with me. I will show you."
|
|
|
|
A watchman took the horses, and almost before he realised it Ben-Hur
|
|
stood once more at the door of the house up on the greater one,
|
|
listening to the response from within- "In God's name, enter."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
SIMONIDES RENDERS ACCOUNT.
|
|
|
|
MALLUCH stopped at the door; Ben-Hur entered alone.
|
|
|
|
The room was the same in which he had formerly interviewed
|
|
Simonides, and it had been in nowise changed, except now, close by the
|
|
arm-chair, a polished brazen rod, set on a broad wooden pedestal,
|
|
arose higher than a tall man, holding lamps of silver on sliding arms,
|
|
half-a-dozen or more in number, and all burning. The light was
|
|
clear, bringing into view the panelling on the walls, the cornice with
|
|
its row of gilded balls, and the dome dully tinted with violet mica.
|
|
|
|
Within, a few steps, Ben-Hur stopped.
|
|
|
|
Three persons were present, looking at him- Simonides, Ilderim,
|
|
and Esther.
|
|
|
|
He glanced hurriedly from one to another, as if to find answer to
|
|
the question half formed in his mind, What business can these have
|
|
with me? He became calm, with every sense on the alert, for the
|
|
question was succeeded by another, Are they friends or enemies?
|
|
|
|
At length, his eyes rested upon Esther.
|
|
|
|
The men returned his look kindly; in her face there was something
|
|
more than kindness- something too spirituel for definition, which
|
|
yet went to his inner consciousness without definition.
|
|
|
|
Shall it be said, good reader? Back of his gaze there was a
|
|
comparison in which the Egyptian arose and set herself over against
|
|
the gentle Jewess; but it lived an instant, and, as is the habit of
|
|
such comparisons, passed away without a conclusion.
|
|
|
|
"Son of Hur- "
|
|
|
|
The guest turned to the speaker.
|
|
|
|
"Son of Hur," said Simonides, repeating the address slowly, and with
|
|
distinct emphasis, as if to impress all its meaning upon him most
|
|
interested in understanding it, "take thou the peace of the Lord God
|
|
of our fathers- take it from me." He paused, then added, "From me
|
|
and mine."
|
|
|
|
The speaker sat in his chair; there were the royal head, the
|
|
bloodless face, the masterful air, under the influence of which
|
|
visitors forgot the broken limbs and distorted body of the man. The
|
|
full black eyes gazed out under the white brows steadily, but not
|
|
sternly. A moment thus, then he crossed his hands upon his breast.
|
|
|
|
The action, taken with the salutation, could not be misunderstood,
|
|
and was not.
|
|
|
|
"Simonides," Ben-Hur answered, much moved, "the holy peace you
|
|
tender is accepted. As son to father, I return it to you. Only let
|
|
there be perfect understanding between us."
|
|
|
|
Thus delicately he sought to put aside the submission of the
|
|
merchant, and, in place of the relation of master and servant,
|
|
substitute one higher and holier.
|
|
|
|
Simonides let fall his hands, and, turning to Esther, said, "A
|
|
seat for the master, daughter."
|
|
|
|
She hastened, and brought a stool, and stood, with suffused face,
|
|
looking from one to the other- from Ben-Hur to Simonides, from
|
|
Simonides to Ben-Hur; and they waited, each declining the
|
|
superiority direction would imply. When at length the pause began to
|
|
be embarrassing, Ben-Hur advanced, and gently took the stool from her,
|
|
and, going to the chair, placed it at the merchant's feet.
|
|
|
|
"I will sit here," he said.
|
|
|
|
His eyes met hers- an instant only; but both were better of the
|
|
look. He recognised her gratitude, she his generosity and forbearance.
|
|
|
|
Simonides bowed his acknowledgment.
|
|
|
|
"Esther, child, bring me the paper," he said, with a breath of
|
|
relief.
|
|
|
|
She went to a panel in the wall, opened it, took out a roll of
|
|
papyri, and brought and gave it to him.
|
|
|
|
"Thou saidst well, son of Hur," Simonides began, while unrolling the
|
|
sheets. "Let us understand each other. In anticipation of the
|
|
demand- which I would have made hadst thou waived it- I have here a
|
|
statement covering everything necessary to the understanding required.
|
|
I could see but two points involved- the property first, and then
|
|
our relation. The statement is explicit as to both. Will it please
|
|
thee to read it now?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur received the papers, but glanced at Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"Nay," said Simonides, "the sheik shall not deter thee from reading.
|
|
The account- such thou wilt find it- is of a nature requiring a
|
|
witness. In the attesting place at the end thou wilt find, when thou
|
|
comest to it, the name- Ilderim, Sheik. He knows all. He is thy
|
|
friend. All he has been to me, that will he be to thee also."
|
|
|
|
Simonides looked at the Arab, nodding pleasantly, and the latter
|
|
gravely returned the nod, saying, "Thou hast said."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur replied, "I know already the excellence of his friendship,
|
|
and have yet to prove myself worthy of it." Immediately he
|
|
continued, "Later, O Simonides, I will read the papers carefully;
|
|
for the present, do thou take them, and if thou be not too weary, give
|
|
me their substance."
|
|
|
|
Simonides took back the roll.
|
|
|
|
"Here, Esther, stand by me and receive the sheets, lest they fall
|
|
into confusion."
|
|
|
|
She took place by his chair, letting her right arm fall lightly
|
|
across his shoulder, so, when he spoke, the account seemed to have
|
|
rendition from both of them jointly.
|
|
|
|
"This," said Simonides, drawing out the first leaf, "shows the money
|
|
I had of thy father's, being the amount saved from the Romans; there
|
|
was no property saved, only money, and that the robbers would have
|
|
secured but for our Jewish custom of bills of exchange. The amount
|
|
saved, being sums I drew from Rome, Alexandria, Damascus, Carthage,
|
|
Valentia, and elsewhere within the circle of trade, was one hundred
|
|
and twenty talents Jewish money."
|
|
|
|
He gave the sheet to Esther, and took the next one.
|
|
|
|
"With that amount- one hundred and twenty talents- I charged myself.
|
|
Hear now my credits. I use the word, as thou wilt see, with
|
|
reference rather to the proceeds gained from the use of the money."
|
|
|
|
From separate sheets he then read footings, which, fractions
|
|
omitted, were as follows:-
|
|
|
|
CR.
|
|
|
|
By ships................................. 60 talents
|
|
|
|
" goods in store........................ 110 "
|
|
|
|
" cargoes in transit.................... 75 "
|
|
|
|
" camels, horses, etc................... 20 "
|
|
|
|
" warehouses............................ 10 "
|
|
|
|
" bills due............................. 54 "
|
|
|
|
" money on hand and subject to draft.... 224 "
|
|
|
|
Total........................ 553 "
|
|
|
|
"To these now, to the five hundred and fifty-three talents gained,
|
|
add the original capital I had from thy father, and thou hast SIX
|
|
HUNDRED AND SEVENTY-THREE TALENTS!- and all thine- making thee, O
|
|
son of Hur, the richest subject in the world."
|
|
|
|
He took the papyri from Esther, and, reserving one, rolled them
|
|
and offered them to Ben-Hur. The pride perceptible in his manner was
|
|
not offensive; it might have been from a sense of duty well done; it
|
|
might have been for Ben-Hur without reference to himself.
|
|
|
|
"And there is nothing," he added, dropping his voice, but not his
|
|
eyes- "there is nothing now thou mayst not do."
|
|
|
|
The moment was one of absorbing interest to all present. Simonides
|
|
crossed his hands upon his breast again; Esther was anxious; Ilderim
|
|
nervous. A man is never so on trial as in the moment of excessive
|
|
good-fortune.
|
|
|
|
Taking the roll, Ben-Hur arose, struggling with emotion.
|
|
|
|
"All this is to me as a light from heaven, sent to drive away a
|
|
night which has been so long I feared it would never end, and so
|
|
dark I had lost the hope of seeing," he said, with a husky voice. "I
|
|
give first thanks to the Lord, who has not abandoned me, and my next
|
|
to thee, O Simonides. Thy faithfulness outweighs the cruelty of
|
|
others, and redeems our human nature. 'There is nothing I cannot
|
|
do:' be it so. Shall any man in this my hour of such mighty
|
|
privilege be more generous than I? Serve me as a witness now, Sheik
|
|
Ilderim. Hear thou my words as I shall speak them- hear and
|
|
remember. And thou, Esther, good angel of this good man! hear thou
|
|
also."
|
|
|
|
He stretched his hand with the roll to Simonides.
|
|
|
|
"The things these papers take into account- all of them: ships,
|
|
houses, goods, camels, horses, money; the least as well as the
|
|
greatest- give I back to thee, O Simonides, making them all thine, and
|
|
sealing them to thee and thine forever."
|
|
|
|
Esther smiled through her tears; Ilderim pulled his beard with rapid
|
|
motion, his eyes glistening like beads of jet. Simonides alone was
|
|
calm.
|
|
|
|
"Sealing them to thee and thine forever," Ben-Hur continued, with
|
|
better control of himself, "with one exception, and upon one
|
|
condition."
|
|
|
|
The breath of the listeners waited upon his words.
|
|
|
|
"The hundred and twenty talents which were my father's thou shalt
|
|
return to me."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim's countenance brightened.
|
|
|
|
"And thou shalt join me in search of my mother and sister, holding
|
|
all thine subject to the expense of discovery, even as I will hold
|
|
mine."
|
|
|
|
Simonides was much affected. Stretching out his hand, he said, "I
|
|
see thy spirit, son of Hur, and I am grateful to the Lord that he hath
|
|
sent thee to me such as thou art. If I served well thy father in life,
|
|
and his memory afterwards, be not afraid of default to thee; yet
|
|
must I say the exception cannot stand."
|
|
|
|
Exhibiting, then, the reserved sheet, he continued.
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast not all the account. Take this and read- read aloud."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur took the supplement, and read it.
|
|
|
|
"Statement of the servants of Hur, rendered by Simonides, steward of
|
|
the estate.
|
|
|
|
1. Amrah, Egyptian, keeping the palace in Jerusalem.
|
|
|
|
2. Simonides, the steward, in Antioch.
|
|
|
|
3. Esther, daughter of Simonides."
|
|
|
|
Now, in all his thoughts of Simonides, not once had it entered
|
|
Ben-Hur's mind that, by the law, a daughter followed the parent's
|
|
condition. In all his visions of her, the sweet-faced Esther had
|
|
figured as the rival of the Egyptian, and an object of possible
|
|
love. He shrank from the revelation so suddenly brought him, and
|
|
looked at her blushing; and, blushing, she dropped her eyes before
|
|
him. Then he said, while the papyrus rolled itself together-
|
|
|
|
"A man with six hundred talents is indeed rich, and may do what he
|
|
pleases; but, rarer than the money, more priceless than the
|
|
property, is the mind which amassed the wealth, and the heart it could
|
|
not corrupt when amassed. O Simonides- and thou- fair Esther- fear
|
|
not. Sheik Ilderim here shall be witness that in the same moment ye
|
|
were declared my servants, that moment I declared ye free; and what
|
|
I declare, that will I put in writing. Is it not enough? Can I do
|
|
more?"
|
|
|
|
"Son of Hur," said Simonides, "verily thou dost make servitude
|
|
lightsome. I was wrong; there are some things thou canst not do;
|
|
thou canst not make us free in law. I am thy servant forever,
|
|
because I went to the door with thy father one day, and in my ear
|
|
the awl-marks yet abide."
|
|
|
|
"Did my father that?"
|
|
|
|
"Judge him not," cried Simonides, quickly. "He accepted me a servant
|
|
of that class because I prayed him to do so. I never repented the
|
|
step. It was the price I paid for Rachel, the mother of my child here;
|
|
for Rachel, who would not be my wife unless I became what she was."
|
|
|
|
"Was she a servant forever?"
|
|
|
|
"Even so."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur walked the floor in pain of impotent wish.
|
|
|
|
"I was rich before," he said, stopping suddenly. "I was rich with
|
|
the gifts of the generous Arrius; now comes this greater fortune,
|
|
and the mind which achieved it. Is there not a purpose of God in it
|
|
all? Counsel me, O Simonides! Help me to see the right and do it. Help
|
|
me to be worthy my name, and what thou art in law to me, that will I
|
|
be to thee in fact and deed. I will be thy servant forever."
|
|
|
|
Simonides' face actually glowed.
|
|
|
|
"O son of my dead master! I will do better than help; I will serve
|
|
thee with all my might of mind and heart. Body, I have not; it
|
|
perished in thy cause; but with mind and heart I will serve thee. I
|
|
swear it, by the altar of our God, and the gifts upon the altar!
|
|
Only make me formally what I have assumed to be."
|
|
|
|
"Name it," said Ben-Hur, eagerly.
|
|
|
|
"As steward the care of the property will be mine."
|
|
|
|
"Count thyself steward now; or wilt thou have it in writing?"
|
|
|
|
"Thy word simply is enough; it was so with the father, and I will
|
|
not more from the son. And now, if the understanding be perfect"-
|
|
Simonides paused.
|
|
|
|
"It is with me," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"And thou, daughter of Rachel, speak!" said Simonides, lifting her
|
|
arm from his shoulder.
|
|
|
|
Esther, left thus alone, stood a moment abashed, her colour coming
|
|
and going; then she went to Ben-Hur, and said, with a womanliness
|
|
singularly sweet, "I am not better than my mother was; and, as she
|
|
is gone, I pray you, O my master, let me care for my father."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur took her hand, and led her back to the chair, saying,
|
|
"Thou art a good child. Have thy will."
|
|
|
|
Simonides replaced her arm upon his neck, and there was silence
|
|
for a time in the room.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.
|
|
|
|
SPIRITUAL OR POLITICAL?- SIMONIDES ARGUES.
|
|
|
|
SIMONIDES looked up, none the less a master.
|
|
|
|
"Esther," he said, quietly, "the night is going fast; and, lest we
|
|
become too weary for that which is before us, let the refreshments
|
|
be brought."
|
|
|
|
She rang a bell. A servant answered with wine and bread, which she
|
|
bore round.
|
|
|
|
"The understanding, good my master," continued Simonides, when all
|
|
were served, "is not perfect in my sight. Henceforth our lives will
|
|
run on together like rivers which have met and joined their waters.
|
|
I think their flowing will be better if every cloud is blown from
|
|
the sky above them. You left my door the other day with what seemed
|
|
a denial of the claims which I have just allowed in the broadest
|
|
terms; but it was not so, indeed it was not. Esther is witness that
|
|
I recognised you; and that I did not abandon you, let Malluch say."
|
|
|
|
"Malluch!" exclaimed Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"One bound to a chair, like me, must have many hands far-reaching,
|
|
if he would move the world from which he is so cruelly barred. I
|
|
have many such, and Malluch is one of the best of them. And,
|
|
sometimes"- he cast a grateful glance at the sheik- "sometimes I
|
|
borrow from others good of heart, like Ilderim the Generous- good
|
|
and brave. Let him say if I either denied or forgot you."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked at the Arab.
|
|
|
|
"This is he, good Ilderim, this is he who told you of me?"
|
|
|
|
Ilderim's eyes twinkled as he nodded his answer.
|
|
|
|
"How, O my master," said Simonides, "may we without trial tell
|
|
what a man is? I knew you; I saw your father in you; but the kind of
|
|
man you were I did not know. There are people to whom fortune is a
|
|
curse in disguise. Were you of them? I sent Malluch to find out for
|
|
me, and in the service he was my eyes and ears. Do not blame him. He
|
|
brought me report of you which was all good."
|
|
|
|
"I do not," said Ben-Hur, heartily. "There was wisdom in your
|
|
goodness."
|
|
|
|
"The words are very pleasant to me," said the merchant, with
|
|
feeling, "very pleasant. My fear of misunderstanding is laid. Let
|
|
the rivers run on now as God may give them direction."
|
|
|
|
After an interval he continued-
|
|
|
|
"I am compelled now by truth. The weaver sits weaving, and, as the
|
|
shuttle flies, the cloth increases, and the figures grow, and he
|
|
dreams dreams meanwhile; so to my hands the fortune grew, and I
|
|
wondered at the increase, and asked myself about it many times. I
|
|
could see a care not my own went with the enterprises I set going. The
|
|
simooms which smote others on the desert pumped over the things
|
|
which were mine. The storms which heaped the seashore with wrecks
|
|
did but blow my ships the sooner into port. Strangest of all, I, so
|
|
dependent upon others, fixed to a place like a dead thing, had never a
|
|
loss by an agent- never. The elements stooped to serve me, and all
|
|
my servants, in fact, were faithful."
|
|
|
|
"It is very strange," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"So I said, and kept saying. Finally, O my master, finally I came to
|
|
be of your opinion- God was in it- and, like you, I asked, What can
|
|
his purpose be? Intelligence is never wasted; intelligence like
|
|
God's never stirs except with design. I have held the question in
|
|
heart, lo! these many years, watching for an answer. I felt sure, if
|
|
God were in it, some day, in his own good time, in his own way, he
|
|
would show me his purpose, making it clear as a whited house upon a
|
|
hill. And I believe he has done so."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur listened with every faculty intent.
|
|
|
|
"Many years ago, with my people- thy mother was with me, Esther,
|
|
beautiful as morning over old Olivet- I sat by the wayside out north
|
|
of Jerusalem, near the Tombs of the Kings, when three men passed by
|
|
riding great white camels, such as had never been seen in the Holy
|
|
City. The men were strangers, and from far countries. The first one
|
|
stopped and asked me a question, 'Where is he that is born King of the
|
|
Jews?' As if to allay my wonder, he went on to say, 'We have seen
|
|
his star in the east, and have come to worship him.' I could not
|
|
understand, but followed them to the Damascus Gate; and of every
|
|
person they met on the way- of the guard at the Gate, even- they asked
|
|
the question. All who heard it were amazed like me. In time I forgot
|
|
the circumstance, though there was much talk of it as a presage of the
|
|
Messiah. Alas, alas! What children we are, even the wisest! When God
|
|
walks the earth, his steps are often centuries apart. You have seen
|
|
Balthasar?"
|
|
|
|
"And heard him tell his story," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"A miracle!- a very miracle!" cried Simonides. "As he told it to me,
|
|
good my master, I seemed to hear the answer I had so long waited;
|
|
God's purpose burst upon me. Poor will the King be when he comes- poor
|
|
and friendless; without following, without armies, without cities or
|
|
castles; a kingdom to be set up, and Rome reduced and blotted out.
|
|
See, see, O my master! thou flushed with strength, thou trained to
|
|
arms, thou burdened with riches; behold the opportunity the Lord
|
|
hath sent thee! Shall not his purpose be thine? Could a man be born to
|
|
a more perfect glory?"
|
|
|
|
Simonides put his whole force in the appeal.
|
|
|
|
"But the kingdom, the kingdom!" Ben-Hur answered, eagerly.
|
|
"Balthasar says it is to be of souls."
|
|
|
|
The pride of the Jew was strong in Simonides, and therefore the
|
|
slightly contemptuous curl of the lip with which he began his reply-
|
|
|
|
"Balthasar has been a witness of wonderful things- of miracles, O my
|
|
master; and when he speaks of them, I bow with belief, for they are of
|
|
sight and sound personal to him. But he is a son of Mizraim, and not
|
|
even a proselyte. Hardly may he be supposed to have special
|
|
knowledge by virtue of which we must bow to him in a matter of God's
|
|
dealing with our Israel. The prophets had their light from Heaven
|
|
directly, even as he had his- many to one, and Jehovah the same
|
|
forever. I must believe the prophets.- Bring me the Torah, Esther."
|
|
|
|
He proceeded without waiting for her.
|
|
|
|
"May the testimony of a whole people be slighted, my master?
|
|
Though you travel from Tyre, which is by the sea in the north, to
|
|
the capital of Edom, which is in the desert south, you will not find a
|
|
lisper of the Shema, an alms-giver in the Temple, or any one who has
|
|
ever eaten of the lamb of the Passover, to tell you the kingdom the
|
|
King is coming to build for us, the children of the covenant, is other
|
|
than of this world, like our father David's. Now, where got they the
|
|
faith, ask you? We will see presently."
|
|
|
|
Esther here returned, bringing a number of rolls carefully enveloped
|
|
in dark-brown linen lettered quaintly in gold.
|
|
|
|
"Keep them, daughter, to give to me as I call for them," the
|
|
father said, in the tender voice he always used in speaking to her,
|
|
and continued his argument-
|
|
|
|
"It were long, good my master- too long, indeed- for me to repeat to
|
|
you the names of the holy men who, in the providence of God, succeeded
|
|
the prophets, only a little less favoured than they- the seers who
|
|
have written and the preachers who have taught since the Captivity;
|
|
the very wise who borrowed their lights from the lamp of Malachi,
|
|
the last of his line, and whose great names Hillel and Shammai never
|
|
tired of repeating in the colleges. Will you ask them of the
|
|
kingdom? Thus, the Lord of the sheep in the Book of Enoch- who is
|
|
he? Who but the King of whom we are speaking? A throne is set up for
|
|
him; he smites the earth, and the other kings are shaken from their
|
|
thrones, and the scourges of Israel flung into a cavern of fire
|
|
flaming with pillars of fire. So also the singer of the Psalms of
|
|
Solomon- 'Behold, O Lord, and raise up to Israel their king, the son
|
|
of David, at the time thou knowest, O God, to rule Israel, thy
|
|
children.... And he will bring the peoples of the heathen under his
|
|
yoke to serve him.... And he shall be a righteous king taught of
|
|
God,.... for he shall rule all the earth by the word of his mouth
|
|
forever.' And last, though not least, hear Ezra, the second Moses,
|
|
in his visions of the night, and ask him who is the lion with human
|
|
voice that says to the eagle- which is Rome- 'Thou hast loved liars,
|
|
and overthrown the cities of the industrious, and razed their walls,
|
|
though they did thee no harm. Therefore, begone, that the earth may be
|
|
refreshed, and recover itself, and hope in the justice and piety of
|
|
him who made her.' Whereat the eagle was seen no more. Surely, O my
|
|
master, the testimony of these should be enough! But the way to the
|
|
fountain's head is open. Let us go up to it at once.- Some wine,
|
|
Esther, and then the Torah."
|
|
|
|
"Dost thou believe the prophets, master?" he asked, after
|
|
drinking. "I know thou dost, for of such was the faith of all thy
|
|
kindred.- Give me, Esther, the book which hath in it the visions of
|
|
Isaiah."
|
|
|
|
He took one of the rolls which she had unwrapped for him, and
|
|
read, "'The people that walked in darkness have seen a great light:
|
|
they that dwell in the land of the shadow of death, upon them hath the
|
|
light shined.... For unto us a child is born, unto us a son is
|
|
given: and the government shall be upon his shoulder.... Of the
|
|
increase of his government and peace there shall be no end, upon the
|
|
throne of David, and upon his kingdom, to order it, and to establish
|
|
it with judgment and with justice from henceforth even forever.'-
|
|
Believest thou the prophets, O my master?- Now, Esther, the word of
|
|
the Lord that came to Micah."
|
|
|
|
She gave him the roll he asked.
|
|
|
|
"'But thou,'" he began reading- "'but thou, Bethlehem Ephrath,
|
|
though thou be little among the thousands of Judah, yet out of thee
|
|
shall he come forth unto me that is to be ruler in Israel.'- This
|
|
was he, the very child Balthasar saw and worshipped in the cave.
|
|
Believest thou the prophets, O my master?- Give me, Esther, the
|
|
words of Jeremiah."
|
|
|
|
Receiving that roll, he read as before, "'Behold, the days come,
|
|
saith the Lord, that I will raise unto David a righteous branch, and a
|
|
king shall reign and prosper, and shall execute judgment and justice
|
|
in the earth. In his days Judah shall be saved, and Israel shall dwell
|
|
safely.' As a king he shall reign- as a king, O my master! Believest
|
|
thou the prophets?- Now, daughter, the roll of the sayings of that son
|
|
of Judah in whom there was no blemish."
|
|
|
|
She gave him the Book of Daniel.
|
|
|
|
"Hear, my master," he said: "'I saw in the night visions, and
|
|
behold, one like the Son of man came with the clouds of heaven.... And
|
|
there was given him dominion, and glory, and a kingdom, that all
|
|
people, nations, and languages should serve him; his dominion is an
|
|
everlasting dominion, which shall not pass away, and his kingdom
|
|
that which shall not be destroyed.'- Believest thou the prophets, O my
|
|
master?"
|
|
|
|
"It is enough. I believe," cried Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"What then?" asked Simonides. "If the King come poor, will not my
|
|
master, of his abundance, give him help?"
|
|
|
|
"Help him? To the last shekel and the last breath. But why speak
|
|
of his coming poor?"
|
|
|
|
"Give me, Esther, the word of the Lord as it came to Zechariah,"
|
|
said Simonides.
|
|
|
|
She gave him one of the rolls.
|
|
|
|
"Hear how the King will enter Jerusalem." Then he read, "'Rejoice
|
|
greatly, O daughter of Zion.... Behold, thy King cometh unto thee with
|
|
justice and salvation; lowly, and riding upon an ass, and upon a colt,
|
|
the foal of an ass.'
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked away.
|
|
|
|
"What see you, O my master?"
|
|
|
|
"Rome!" he answered, gloomily- "Rome, and her legions. I have
|
|
dwelt with them in their camps. I know them."
|
|
|
|
"Ah!" said Simonides. "Thou shalt be a master of legions for the
|
|
King, with millions to choose from."
|
|
|
|
"Millions!" cried Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
Simonides sat a moment thinking.
|
|
|
|
"The question of power should not trouble you," he next said.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked at him inquiringly.
|
|
|
|
"You were seeing the lowly King in the act of coming to his own,"
|
|
Simonides answered- "seeing him on the right hand, as it were, and
|
|
on the left the brassy legions of Caesar, and you were asking, What
|
|
can he do?"
|
|
|
|
"It was my very thought."
|
|
|
|
"Oh my master!" Simonides continued, "you do not know how strong our
|
|
Israel is. You think of him as a sorrowful old man weeping by the
|
|
rivers of Babylon. But go up to Jerusalem next Passover, and stand
|
|
on the Xystus, or in the Street of Barter, and see him as he is. The
|
|
promise of the Lord to father Jacob coming out of Padan-Aram was a law
|
|
under which our people have not ceased multiplying- not even in
|
|
captivity; they grew under foot of the Egyptian; the clench of the
|
|
Roman has been but wholesome nurture to them; now they are indeed 'a
|
|
nation, and a company of nations.' Nor that only, my master; in
|
|
fact, to measure the strength of Israel- which is, in fact,
|
|
measuring what the King can do- you shall not bide solely by the
|
|
rule of natural increase, but add thereto the other- I mean the spread
|
|
of the faith, which will carry you to the far and near of the whole
|
|
known earth. Further, the habit is, I know, to think and speak of
|
|
Jerusalem as Israel, which may be likened to our finding an
|
|
embroidered shred, and holding it up as a magisterial robe of
|
|
Caesar's. Jerusalem is but a stone of the Temple, or the heart in
|
|
the body. Turn from beholding the legions, strong though they be,
|
|
and count the hosts of the faithful waiting the old alarm, 'To your
|
|
tents, O Israel!- count the many in Persia, children of those who
|
|
chose not to return with the returning; count the brethren who swarm
|
|
the marts of Egypt and Farther Africa; count the Hebrew colonists
|
|
eking profit in the West- in Lodinum and the trade-courts of Spain;
|
|
count the pure of blood and the proselytes in Greece and in the
|
|
isles of the sea, and over in Pontus, and here in Antioch, and, for
|
|
that matter, those of that city lying accursed in the shadow of the
|
|
unclean walls of Rome herself; count the worshippers of the Lord
|
|
dwelling in tents along the deserts next us, as well as in the deserts
|
|
beyond the Nile; and in the regions across the Caspian, and up in
|
|
the old lands of Gog and Magog even, separate those who annually
|
|
send gifts to the Holy Temple in acknowledgment of God- separate them,
|
|
that they may be counted also. And when you have done counting, lo! my
|
|
master, a census of the sword hands that await you; lo! a kingdom
|
|
ready fashioned for him who is to do 'judgment and justice in the
|
|
whole earth'- in Rome not less than in Zion. Have then the answer,
|
|
What Israel can do, that can the King."
|
|
|
|
The picture was fervently given.
|
|
|
|
Upon Ilderim it operated like the blowing of a trumpet. "Oh that I
|
|
had back my youth!" he cried, starting to his feet.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur sat still. The speech, he saw, was an invitation to devote
|
|
his life and fortune to the mysterious Being who was palpably as
|
|
much the centre of a great hope with Simonides as with the devout
|
|
Egyptian. The idea, as we have seen, was not a new one, but had come
|
|
to him repeatedly- once while listening to Malluch in the Grove of
|
|
Daphne; afterwards more distinctly while Balthasar was giving his
|
|
conception of what the kingdom was to be; still later, in the walk
|
|
through the old Orchard, it had risen almost, if not quite, into a
|
|
resolve. At such times it had come and gone only an idea, attended
|
|
with feelings more or less acute. Not so now. A master had it in
|
|
charge, a master was working it up; already he had exalted it into a
|
|
cause brilliant with possibilities and infinitely holy. The effect was
|
|
as if a door theretofore unseen had suddenly opened flooding Ben-Hur
|
|
with light, and admitting him to a service which had been his one
|
|
perfect dream- a service reaching far into the future, and rich with
|
|
the rewards of duty done, and prizes to sweeten and soothe his
|
|
ambition. One touch more was needed.
|
|
|
|
"Let us concede all you say, O Simonides," said Ben-Hur- "that the
|
|
King will come, and his kingdom be as Solomon's; say also I am ready
|
|
to give myself and all I have to him and his cause; yet more, say that
|
|
I should do as was God's purpose in the ordering of my life and in
|
|
your quick amassment of astonishing fortune; then what? Shall we
|
|
proceed like blind men building? Shall we wait till the King comes? Or
|
|
until he sends for me? You have age and experience on your side.
|
|
Answer."
|
|
|
|
Simonides answered at once.
|
|
|
|
"We have no choice; none. This letter"- he produced Messala's
|
|
despatch as he spoke- "this letter is the signal for action. The
|
|
alliance proposed between Messala and Gratus we are not strong
|
|
enough to resist; we have not the influence at Rome nor the force
|
|
here. They will kill you if we wait. How merciful they are, look at me
|
|
and judge."
|
|
|
|
He shuddered at the terrible recollection.
|
|
|
|
"O good my master," he continued, recovering himself; "how-strong
|
|
are you- in purpose, I mean?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur did not understand him.
|
|
|
|
"I remember how pleasant the world was to me in my youth," Simonides
|
|
proceeded.
|
|
|
|
"Yet," said Ben-Hur, "you were capable of a great sacrifice."
|
|
|
|
"Yes; for love."
|
|
|
|
"Has not life other motives as strong?"
|
|
|
|
Simonides shook his head.
|
|
|
|
"There is ambition."
|
|
|
|
"Ambition is forbidden a son of Israel."
|
|
|
|
"What, then, of revenge?"
|
|
|
|
The spark dropped upon the inflammable passion; the man's eyes
|
|
gleamed; his hands shook; he answered, quickly, "Revenge is a Jew's of
|
|
right; it is the law."
|
|
|
|
"A camel, even a dog, will remember a wrong," cried Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
Directly Simonides picked up the broken thread of his thought.
|
|
|
|
"There is a work, a work for the King, which should be done in
|
|
advance of his coming. We may not doubt that Israel is to be his right
|
|
hand; but, alas! it is a hand of peace, without cunning in war. Of the
|
|
millions, there is not one trained band, not a captain. The
|
|
mercenaries of the Herods I do not count, for they are kept to crush
|
|
us. The condition is as the Roman would have it; his policy has
|
|
fruited well for his tyranny; but the time of change is at hand,
|
|
when the shepherd shall put on armour, and take to spear and sword,
|
|
and the feeding flocks be turned to fighting lions. Some one, my
|
|
son, must have place next the King at his right hand. Who shall it
|
|
be if not he who does this work well?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur's face flushed at the prospect, though he said, "I see but
|
|
speak plainly. A deed to be done is one thing; how to do it is
|
|
another."
|
|
|
|
Simonides sipped the wine Esther brought him, and replied,
|
|
|
|
"The sheik, and thou, my master, shall be principals, each with a
|
|
part. I will remain here, carrying on as now, and watchful that the
|
|
spring go not dry. Thou shalt betake thee to Jerusalem, and thence
|
|
to the wilderness, and begin numbering the fighting-men of Israel, and
|
|
telling them into tens and hundreds, and choosing captains and
|
|
training them, and in secret places hoarding arms, for which I shall
|
|
keep thee supplied. Commencing over in Perea, thou shalt go then to
|
|
Galilee, whence it is but a step to Jerusalem. In Perea, the desert
|
|
will be at thy back, and Ilderim in reach of thy hand. He will keep
|
|
the roads, so that nothing shall pass without thy knowledge. He will
|
|
help thee in many ways. Until the ripening time no one shall know what
|
|
is here contracted. Mine is but a servant's part. I have spoken to
|
|
Ilderim. What sayest thou?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked at the sheik.
|
|
|
|
"It is as he says, son of Hur," the Arab responded. "I have given my
|
|
word, and he is content with it; but thou shalt have my oath,
|
|
binding me, and the ready hands of my tribe, and whatever
|
|
serviceable thing I have."
|
|
|
|
The three- Simonides, Ilderim, Esther- gazed at Ben-Hur fixedly.
|
|
|
|
"Every man," he answered, at first sadly, "has a cup of pleasure
|
|
poured for him, and soon or late it comes to his hand, and he tastes
|
|
and drinks- every man but me. I see, Simonides, and thou, O generous
|
|
sheik!- I see whither the proposal tends. If I accept, and enter
|
|
upon the course, farewell peace, and the hopes which cluster around
|
|
it. The doors I might enter and the gates of quiet life will shut
|
|
behind me, never to open again, for Rome keeps them all; and her
|
|
outlawry will follow me, and her hunters; and in the tombs near cities
|
|
and the dismal caverns of remotest hills, I must eat my crust and take
|
|
my rest."
|
|
|
|
The speech was broken by a sob. All turned to Esther, who hid her
|
|
face upon her father's shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"I did not think of you, Esther," said Simonides, gently, for he was
|
|
himself deeply moved.
|
|
|
|
"It is well enough, Simonides," said Ben-Hur. "A man bears a hard
|
|
doom better, knowing there is pity for him. Let me go on."
|
|
|
|
They gave him ear again.
|
|
|
|
"I was about to say," he continued, "I have no choice, but take
|
|
the part you assign me; and as remaining here is to met an ignoble
|
|
death, I will to the work at once."
|
|
|
|
"Shall we have writings?" asked Simonides, moved by his habit of
|
|
business.
|
|
|
|
"I rest upon your word," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"And I," Ilderim answered.
|
|
|
|
Thus simply was effected the treaty which was to alter Ben-Hur's
|
|
life. And almost immediately the latter added-
|
|
|
|
"It is done, then."
|
|
|
|
"May the God of Abraham help us!" Simonides exclaimed.
|
|
|
|
"One word now, my friends," Ben-Hur said, more cheerfully. "By
|
|
your leave, I will be my own until after the games. It is not probable
|
|
Messala will set peril on foot for me until he has given the
|
|
procurator time to answer him; and that cannot be in less than seven
|
|
days from the despatch of his letter. The meeting him in the Circus is
|
|
a pleasure I would buy at whatever risk."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim, well pleased, assented readily, and Simonides, intent on
|
|
business, added, "It is well; for look you, my master, the delay
|
|
will give me time to do you a good part. I understood you to speak
|
|
of an inheritance derived from Arrius. Is it in property?"
|
|
|
|
"A villa near Misenum, and houses in Rome."
|
|
|
|
"I suggest, then, the sale of the property, and safe deposit of
|
|
the proceeds. Give me an account of it, and I will have authorities
|
|
drawn, and despatch an agent on the mission forthwith. We will
|
|
forestall the imperial robbers at least this once."
|
|
|
|
"You shall have the account to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"Then, if there be nothing more, the work of the night is done,"
|
|
said Simonides.
|
|
|
|
Ilderim combed his beard complacently, saying, "And well done."
|
|
|
|
"The bread and wine again, Esther. Sheik Ilderim will make us
|
|
happy by staying with us till to-morrow, or at his pleasure; and thou,
|
|
my master- "
|
|
|
|
"Let the horses be brought," said Ben-Hur. "I will return to the
|
|
Orchard. The enemy will not discover me if I go now, and"- he
|
|
glanced at Ilderim- "the four will be glad to see me."
|
|
|
|
As the day dawned, he and Malluch dismounted at the door of the
|
|
tent.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.
|
|
|
|
ESTHER AND BEN-HUR.
|
|
|
|
NEXT night, about the fourth hour, Ben-Hur stood on the terrace of
|
|
the great warehouse with Esther. Below them, on the landing, there was
|
|
much running about, and shifting of packages and boxes, and shouting
|
|
of men, whose figures, stooping, heaving, hauling, looked, in the
|
|
light of the crackling torches kindled in their aid, like the
|
|
labouring genii of the fantastic Eastern tales. A galley was being
|
|
laden for instant departure. Simonides had not yet come from his
|
|
office, in which, at the last moment, he would deliver to the
|
|
captain of the vessel instructions to proceed without stop to Ostia,
|
|
the seaport of Rome, and, after landing a passenger there, continue
|
|
more leisurely to Valentia, on the coast of Spain.
|
|
|
|
The passenger is the agent going to dispose of the estate derived
|
|
from Arrius the duumvir. When the lines of the vessel are cast off,
|
|
and she is put about, and her voyage begun, Ben-Hur will be
|
|
committed irrevocably to the work undertaken the night before. If he
|
|
is disposed to repent the agreement with Ilderim, a little time is
|
|
allowed him to give notice and break it off. He is master, and has
|
|
only to say the word.
|
|
|
|
Such may have been the thought at the moment in his mind. He was
|
|
standing with folded arms, looking upon the scene in the manner of a
|
|
man debating with himself. Young, handsome, rich, but recently from
|
|
the patrician circles of Roman society, it is easy to think of the
|
|
world besetting him with appeals not to give more to onerous duty or
|
|
ambition attended with outlawry and danger. We can even imagine the
|
|
arguments with which he was pressed; the hopelessness of contention
|
|
with Caesar; the uncertainty veiling everything connected with the
|
|
King and his coming; the ease, honours, state, purchaseable like goods
|
|
in market; and strongest of all, the sense newly acquired of home,
|
|
with friends to make it delightful. Only those who have been wanderers
|
|
long desolate can know the power there was in the latter appeal.
|
|
|
|
Let us add, now, the world- always cunning enough of itself;
|
|
always whispering to the weak, Stay, take thine ease; always
|
|
presenting the sunny side of life- the world was in this instance
|
|
helped by Ben-Hur's companion.
|
|
|
|
"Were you ever at Rome?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"No," Esther replied.
|
|
|
|
"Would you like to go?"
|
|
|
|
"I think not."
|
|
|
|
"Why?"
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid of Rome," she answered, with a perceptible tremor of
|
|
the voice.
|
|
|
|
He looked at her then- or rather down upon her, for at his side
|
|
she appeared little more than a child. In the dim light he could not
|
|
see her face distinctly; even the form was shadowy. But again he was
|
|
reminded of Tirzah, and a sudden tenderness fell upon him- just so the
|
|
lost sister stood with him on the house-top the calamitous morning
|
|
of the accident to Gratus. Poor Tirzah! Where was she now? Esther
|
|
had the benefit of the feeling evoked. If not his sister, he could
|
|
never look upon her as his servant; and that she was his servant in
|
|
fact would make him always the more considerate and gentle towards
|
|
her.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot think of Rome," she continued, recovering her voice, and
|
|
speaking in her quiet, womanly way- "I cannot think of Rome as a
|
|
city of palaces and temples, and crowded with people; she is to me a
|
|
monster which has possession of one of the beautiful lands, and lies
|
|
there luring men to ruin and death- a monster which it is not possible
|
|
to resist- a ravenous beast gorging with blood. Why- "
|
|
|
|
She faltered, looked down, stopped.
|
|
|
|
"Go on," said Ben-Hur, reassuringly.
|
|
|
|
She drew closer to him, looked up again, and said- "Why trust you
|
|
make her your enemy? Why not rather make peace with her, and be at
|
|
rest? You have had many ills, and borne them; you have survived the
|
|
snares laid for you by foes. Sorrow has consumed your youth; is it
|
|
well to give it the remainder of your days?"
|
|
|
|
The girlish face under his eyes seemed to come nearer and get whiter
|
|
as the pleading went on; he stooped towards it, and asked, softly,
|
|
"What would you have me do, Esther?"
|
|
|
|
She hesitated a moment, then asked, in return, "Is the property near
|
|
Rome a residence?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"And pretty?"
|
|
|
|
"It is beautiful- a palace in the midst of gardens and
|
|
shell-strewn walks; fountains without and within; statuary in the
|
|
shady nooks; hills around covered with vines, and so high that
|
|
Neapolis and Vesuvius are in sight, and the sea an expanse of purpling
|
|
blue dotted with restless sails. Caesar has a country-seat near-by,
|
|
but in Rome they say the old Arrian villa is the prettiest."
|
|
|
|
"And the life there, is it quiet?"
|
|
|
|
"There was never a summer day, never a moonlit night, more quiet,
|
|
save when visitors come. Now that the old owner is gone, and I am
|
|
here, there is nothing to break its silence- nothing, unless it be the
|
|
whispering of servants, or the whistling of happy birds, or the
|
|
noise of fountains at play; it is changeless, except as day by day old
|
|
flowers fade and fall, and new ones bud and bloom, and the sunlight
|
|
gives place to the shadow of a passing cloud. The life, Esther, was
|
|
all too quiet for me. It made me restless by keeping always present
|
|
a feeling that I, who have so much to do, was dropping into idle
|
|
habits, and tying myself with silken chains, and after a while- and
|
|
not a long while either- would end with nothing done."
|
|
|
|
She looked off over the river.
|
|
|
|
"Why did you ask?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Good, my master- "
|
|
|
|
"No, no, Esther- not that. Call me friend- brother, if you will; I
|
|
am not your master, and will not be. Call me brother."
|
|
|
|
He could not see the flush of pleasure which reddened her face,
|
|
and the glow of the eyes that went out lost in the void above the
|
|
river.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot understand," she said, "the nature which prefers the
|
|
life you are going to- a life of- "
|
|
|
|
"Of violence, and it may be of blood," he said, completing the
|
|
sentence.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," she added, "the nature which could prefer that life to such
|
|
as might be in the beautiful villa."
|
|
|
|
"Esther, you mistake. There is no preference. Alas! the Roman is not
|
|
so kind. I am going of necessity. To stay here is to die; and if I
|
|
go there, the end will be the same- a poisoned cup, a bravo's blow, or
|
|
a Judge's sentence obtained by perjury. Messala and the procurator
|
|
Gratus are rich with plunder of my father's estate, and it is more
|
|
important to them to keep their gains now than was their getting in
|
|
the first instance. A peaceable settlement is out of reach, because of
|
|
the confession it would imply. And then- then- Ah, Esther, if I
|
|
could buy them, I do not know that I would. I do not believe peace
|
|
possible to me; no, not even in the sleepy shade and sweet air of
|
|
the marble porches of the old villa- no matter who might be there to
|
|
help me bear the burden of the days nor by what patience of love she
|
|
made the effort. Peace is not possible to me while my people are lost,
|
|
for I must be watchful to find them. If I find them, and they have
|
|
suffered wrong, shall not the guilty suffer for it? If they are dead
|
|
by violence, shall the murderers escape? Oh, I could not sleep for
|
|
dreams! Nor could the holiest love, by any stratagem, lull me to a
|
|
rest which conscience would not strangle."
|
|
|
|
"Is it so bad then?" she asked, her voice tremulous with feeling.
|
|
"Can nothing, nothing be done?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur took her hand.
|
|
|
|
"Do you care so much for me?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," she answered, simply.
|
|
|
|
The hand was warm, and in the palm of his it was lost. He felt it
|
|
tremble. Then the Egyptian came, so the opposite of this little one;
|
|
so tall, so audacious, with a flattery so cunning, a wit so ready, a
|
|
beauty so wonderful, a manner so bewitching. He carried the hand to
|
|
his lips, and gave it back.
|
|
|
|
"You shall be another Tirzah to me, Esther."
|
|
|
|
"Who is Tirzah."
|
|
|
|
"The little sister the Roman stole from me, and whom I must find
|
|
before I can rest or be happy."
|
|
|
|
Just then a gleam of light flashed athwart the terrace and fell upon
|
|
the two; and, looking round, they saw a servant roll Simonides in
|
|
his chair out of the door. They went to the merchant, and in the
|
|
after-talk he was principal.
|
|
|
|
Immediately the lines of the galley were cast off, and she swung
|
|
round, and, midst the flashing of torches and the shouting of joyous
|
|
sailors, hurried off to the sea- leaving Ben-Hur committed to the
|
|
cause of the KING WHO WAS TO COME.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.
|
|
|
|
POSTED FOR THE RACE.
|
|
|
|
THE day before the games, in the afternoon, all Ilderim's racing
|
|
property was taken to the city, and put in quarters adjoining the
|
|
Circus. Along with it the good man carried a great deal of property
|
|
not of that class; so with servants, retainers mounted and armed,
|
|
horses in leading, cattle driven, camels laden with baggage, his
|
|
outgoing from the Orchard was not unlike a tribal migration. The
|
|
people along the road failed not to laugh at his motley procession; on
|
|
the other side, it was observed that, with all his irascibility, he
|
|
was not in the least offended by their rudeness. If he was under
|
|
surveillance, as he had reason to believe, the informer would describe
|
|
the semi-barbarous show with which he came up to the races. The Romans
|
|
would laugh; the city would be amused; but what cared he? Next morning
|
|
the pageant would be far on the road to the desert, and going with
|
|
it would be every movable thing of value belonging to the Orchard-
|
|
everything save such as were essential to the success of his four.
|
|
He was, in fact, started home; his tents were all folded; the dowar
|
|
was no more; in twelve hours all would be out of reach, pursue who
|
|
might. A man is never safer than when he is under the laugh; and the
|
|
shrewd old Arab knew it.
|
|
|
|
Neither he nor Ben-Hur over-estimated the influence of Messala; it
|
|
was their opinion, however, that he would not begin active measures
|
|
against them until after the meeting in the Circus; if defeated there,
|
|
especially if defeated by Ben-Hur, they might instantly look for the
|
|
worst he could do; he might not even wait for advices from Gratus.
|
|
With this view, they shaped their course, and were prepared to
|
|
betake themselves out of harm's way. They rode together now in good
|
|
spirits, calmly confident of success on the morrow.
|
|
|
|
On the way, they came upon Malluch in waiting for them. The faithful
|
|
fellow gave no sign by which it was possible to infer any knowledge on
|
|
his part of the relationship so recently admitted between Ben-Hur
|
|
and Simonides, or of the treaty between them and Ilderim. He exchanged
|
|
salutations as usual, and produced a paper, saying to the sheik, "I
|
|
have here the notice of the editor of the games, just issued, in which
|
|
you will find your horses published for the race. You will find in
|
|
it also the order of exercises. Without waiting, good sheik, I
|
|
congratulate you upon your victory."
|
|
|
|
He gave the paper over, and, leaving the worthy to master it, turned
|
|
to Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"To you also, son of Arrius, my congratulations. There is nothing
|
|
now to prevent your meeting Messala. Every condition preliminary to
|
|
the race is complied with. I have the assurance from the editor
|
|
himself."
|
|
|
|
"I thank you, Malluch," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
Malluch proceeded-
|
|
|
|
"Your colour is white, and Messala's mixed scarlet and gold. The
|
|
good effects of the choice are visible already. Boys are now hawking
|
|
white ribbons along the streets; to-morrow every Arab and Jew in the
|
|
city will wear them. In the circus you will see the white fairly
|
|
divide the galleries with the red."
|
|
|
|
"The galleries- but not the tribunal over the Porta Pompae."
|
|
|
|
"No; the scarlet and gold will rule there. But if we win"- Malluch
|
|
chuckled with the pleasure of the thought- "if we win, how the
|
|
dignitaries will tremble! They will bet, of course, according to their
|
|
scorn of everything not Roman- two, three, five to one on Messala,
|
|
because he is Roman." Dropping his voice yet lower, he added, "it
|
|
ill becomes a Jew of good standing in the Temple to put his money at
|
|
such a hazard; yet, in confidence, I will have a friend next behind
|
|
the consul's seat to accept offers of three to one, or five, or ten-
|
|
the madness may go to such height. I have put to his order six
|
|
thousand shekels for the purpose."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, Malluch," said Ben-Hur, "a Roman will wager only in his
|
|
Roman coin. Suppose you find your friend to-night, and place to his
|
|
order sestertii in such amount as you choose. And look you, Malluch-
|
|
let him be instructed to seek wagers with Messala and his
|
|
supporters; Ilderim's four against Messala's."
|
|
|
|
Malluch reflected a moment.
|
|
|
|
"The effect will be to centre interest upon your contest."
|
|
|
|
"The very thing I seek, Malluch."
|
|
|
|
"I see, I see."
|
|
|
|
"Ay, Malluch; would you serve me perfectly, help me to fix the
|
|
public eye upon our race- Messala's and mine."
|
|
|
|
Malluch spoke quickly- "It can be done."
|
|
|
|
"Then let it be done," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"Enormous wagers offered will answer; if the offers are accepted,
|
|
all the better."
|
|
|
|
Malluch turned his eyes watchfully upon Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"Shall I not have back the equivalent of his robbery?" said Ben-Hur,
|
|
partly to himself. "Another opportunity may not come. And if I could
|
|
break him in fortune as well as in pride! Our father Jacob could
|
|
take no offence."
|
|
|
|
A look of determined will knit his handsome face, giving emphasis to
|
|
his further speech.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, it shall be. Hark, Malluch! Stop not in thy offer of
|
|
sestertii. Advance them to talents, if any there be who dare so
|
|
high. Five, ten, twenty talents; ay, fifty, so the wager be with
|
|
Messala himself."
|
|
|
|
"It is a mighty sum," said Malluch. "I must have security."
|
|
|
|
"So thou shalt. Go to Simonides, and tell him I wish the matter
|
|
arranged. Tell him my heart is set on the ruin of my enemy and that
|
|
the opportunity hath such excellent promise that I choose such
|
|
hazards. On our side be the God of our fathers! Go, good Malluch.
|
|
Let this not slip."
|
|
|
|
And Malluch, greatly delighted, gave him parting salutation, and
|
|
started to ride away, but returned presently.
|
|
|
|
"Your pardon," he said to Ben-Hur. "There was another matter. I
|
|
could not get near Messala's chariot myself, but I had another measure
|
|
it; and, from his report, its hub stands quite a palm higher from
|
|
the ground than yours."
|
|
|
|
"A palm! So much?" cried Ben-Hur, joyfully.
|
|
|
|
Then he leaned over to Malluch.
|
|
|
|
"As thou art a son of Judah, Malluch, and faithful to thy kin, get
|
|
thee a seat in the gallery over the Gate of Triumph, down close to the
|
|
balcony in front of the pillars, and watch well when we make the turns
|
|
there; watch well, for if I have favour at all, I will- Nay,
|
|
Malluch, let it go unsaid! Only get thee there, and watch well.
|
|
|
|
At that moment a cry burst from Ilderim.
|
|
|
|
"Ha! By the splendour of God! what is this?"
|
|
|
|
He drew near Ben-Hur with a finger pointing on the face of the
|
|
notice.
|
|
|
|
"Read," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"No; better thou."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur took the paper, which, signed by the prefect of the province
|
|
as editor, performed the office of a modern programme, giving
|
|
particularly the several divertisements provided for the occasion.
|
|
It informed the public that there would be first a procession of
|
|
extraordinary splendour; that the procession would be succeeded by the
|
|
customary honours to the god Consus whereupon the games would begin;
|
|
running, leaping, wrestling, boxing, each in the order stated. The
|
|
names of the competitors were given, with their several
|
|
nationalities and schools of training, the trials in which they had
|
|
been engaged, the prizes won, and the prizes now offered; under the
|
|
latter head the sums of money were stated in illuminated letters,
|
|
telling of the departure of the day when the simple chaplet of pine or
|
|
laurel was fully enough for the victor, hungering for glory as
|
|
something better than riches, and content with it.
|
|
|
|
Over these parts of the programme Ben-Hur sped with rapid eyes. At
|
|
last he came to the announcement of the race. He read it slowly.
|
|
Attending lovers of the heroic sports were assured they would
|
|
certainly be gratified by an Orestean struggle unparalleled in
|
|
Antioch. The city offered the spectacle in honour of the consul. One
|
|
hundred thousand sestertii and a crown of laurel were the prizes. Then
|
|
followed the particulars. The entries were six in all- fours only
|
|
permitted; and, to further interest in the performance, the
|
|
competitors would be turned into the course together. Each four then
|
|
received description.
|
|
|
|
"I. A four of Lysippus the Corinthian- two greys, a bay, and a
|
|
black; entered at Alexandria last year, and again at Corinth, where
|
|
they were winners. Lysippus, driver. Colour, yellow.
|
|
|
|
"II. A four of Messala of Rome- two white, two black; victors of the
|
|
Circensian as exhibited in the Circus Maximus last year. Messala,
|
|
driver. Colours, scarlet and gold.
|
|
|
|
"III. A four of Cleanthes the Athenian- three grey, one bay; winners
|
|
at the Isthmian last year. Cleanthes, driver. Colour, green.
|
|
|
|
"IV. A four of Dicaeus the Byzantine- two black, one grey, one
|
|
bay; winners this year at Byzantium. Dicaeus, driver. Colour, black.
|
|
|
|
"V. A four of Admetus the Sidonian- all greys. Thrice entered at
|
|
Caesarea, and thrice victors. Admetus, driver. Colour, blue.
|
|
|
|
"VI. A four of Ilderim, sheik of the Desert. All bays; first race.
|
|
Ben-Hur, a Jew, driver. Colour, white.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur, a Jew, driver!
|
|
|
|
Why that name instead of Arrius?
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur raised his eyes to Ilderim. He had found the cause of the
|
|
Arab's outcry. Both rushed to the same conclusion.
|
|
|
|
The hand was the hand of Messala!
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI.
|
|
|
|
MAKING THE WAGERS.
|
|
|
|
EVENING was hardly come upon Antioch, when the Omphalus, nearly in
|
|
the centre of the city, became a troubled fountain from which in every
|
|
direction, but chiefly down to the Nymphaeum and east and west along
|
|
the Colonnade of Herod, flowed currents of people, for the time
|
|
given up to Bacchus and Apollo.
|
|
|
|
For such indulgence anything more fitting cannot be imagined than
|
|
the great roofed streets, which were literally miles on miles of
|
|
porticos wrought of marble, polished to the last degree of finish, and
|
|
all gifts to the voluptuous city by princes careless of expenditure
|
|
where, as in this instance, they thought they were eternising
|
|
themselves. Darkness was not permitted anywhere; and the singing,
|
|
the laughter, the shouting, were incessant, and in compound like the
|
|
roar of waters dashing through hollow grots, confused by a multitude
|
|
of echoes.
|
|
|
|
The many nationalities represented, though they might have amazed
|
|
a stranger, were not peculiar to Antioch. Of the various missions of
|
|
the great empire, one seems to have been the fusion of men and the
|
|
introduction of strangers to each other; accordingly, whole peoples
|
|
rose up and went at pleasure, taking with them their costumes,
|
|
customs, speech, and gods; and where they chose, they stopped, engaged
|
|
in business, built houses, erected altars, and were what they had been
|
|
at home.
|
|
|
|
There was a peculiarity, however, which could not have failed the
|
|
notice of a looker-on this night in Antioch. Nearly everybody wore the
|
|
colours of one or other of the charioteers announced for the
|
|
morrow's race. Sometimes it was in form of a scarf, sometimes a badge;
|
|
often a ribbon or a feather. Whatever the form, it signified merely
|
|
the wearer's partiality; thus, green published a friend of Cleanthes
|
|
the Athenian, and black an adherent of the Byzantine. This was
|
|
according to a custom, old probably as the day of the race of Orestes-
|
|
a custom, by-the-way, worthy of study as a marvel of history,
|
|
illustrative of the absurd yet appalling extremities to which men
|
|
frequently suffer their follies to drag them.
|
|
|
|
The observer abroad on this occasion, once attracted to the
|
|
wearing of colours, would have very shortly decided that there were
|
|
three in predominance- green, white, and the mixed scarlet and gold.
|
|
|
|
But let us from the streets to the palace on the island.
|
|
|
|
The five great chandeliers in the saloon are freshly lighted. The
|
|
assemblage is much the same as that already noticed in connection with
|
|
the place. The divan has its corps of sleepers and burden of garments,
|
|
and the tables yet resound with the rattle and clash of dice. Yet
|
|
the greater part of the company are not doing anything. They walk
|
|
about, or yawn tremendously, or pause as they pass each other to
|
|
exchange idle nothings. Will the weather be fair to-morrow? Are the
|
|
preparations for the games complete? Do the laws of the Circus in
|
|
Antioch differ from the laws of the Circus in Rome? Truth is, the
|
|
young fellows are suffering ennui. Their heavy work is done; that
|
|
is, we would find their tablets, could we look at them, covered with
|
|
memoranda of wagers- wagers on every contest; on the running, the
|
|
wrestling, the boxing; on everything but the chariot-race.
|
|
|
|
And why not on that?
|
|
|
|
Good reader, they cannot find anybody who will hazard so much as a
|
|
denarius with them against Messala.
|
|
|
|
There are no colours in the saloon but his.
|
|
|
|
No one thinks of his defeat.
|
|
|
|
Why, they say, is he not perfect in his training? Did he not
|
|
graduate from an imperial lanista? Were not his horses winners at
|
|
the Circensian in the Circus Maximus? And then- ah, yes! he is a
|
|
Roman!
|
|
|
|
In a corner, at ease on the divan, Messala himself may be seen.
|
|
Around him, sitting or standing, are his courtierly admirers, plying
|
|
him with questions. There is, of course, but one topic.
|
|
|
|
Enter Drusus and Cecilius.
|
|
|
|
"Ah!" cries the young prince, throwing himself on the divan at
|
|
Messala's feet, "ah, by Bacchus, I am tired!"
|
|
|
|
"Whither away?" asks Messala.
|
|
|
|
"Up the street; up to the Omphalus, and beyond- who shall say how
|
|
far? Rivers of people; never so many in the city before. They say we
|
|
will see the whole world at the Circus to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
Messala laughed scornfully.
|
|
|
|
"The idiots! Perpol! They never beheld a Circensian with Caesar
|
|
for editor. But, my Drusus, what found you?"
|
|
|
|
"Nothing."
|
|
|
|
"Oh- ah! You forget," said Cecilius.
|
|
|
|
"What?" asked Drusus.
|
|
|
|
"The procession of whites."
|
|
|
|
"Mirabile!" cried Drusus, half rising. "We met a faction of
|
|
whites, and they had a banner. But- ha, ha, ha!"
|
|
|
|
He fell back indolently.
|
|
|
|
"Cruel Drusus- not to go on," said Messala.
|
|
|
|
"Scum of the desert were they, my Messala, and garbage-eaters from
|
|
the Jacob's Temple in Jerusalem. What had I to do with them?"
|
|
|
|
"Nay," said Cecilius, "Drusus is afraid of a laugh, but I am not, my
|
|
Messala."
|
|
|
|
"Speak thou, then."
|
|
|
|
"Well, we stopped the faction, and- "
|
|
|
|
"Offered them a wager," said Drusus, relenting, and taking the
|
|
word from the shadow's mouth. "And- ha, ha, ha!- one fellow with not
|
|
enough skin on his face to make a worm for a carp stepped forth,
|
|
and- ha, ha, ha!- said yes. I drew my tablets. 'Who is your man?' I
|
|
asked. 'Ben-Hur, the Jew,' said he. Then I: 'What shall it be? How
|
|
much?' He answered, 'A- a-' Excuse me, Messala. By Jove's thunder, I
|
|
cannot go on for laughter! Ha, ha, ha!"
|
|
|
|
The listeners leaned forward.
|
|
|
|
Messala looked to Cecilius.
|
|
|
|
"A shekel," said the latter.
|
|
|
|
"A shekel! A shekel!"
|
|
|
|
A burst of scornful laughter ran fast upon the repetition.
|
|
|
|
"And what did Drusus?" asked Messala.
|
|
|
|
An outcry over about the door just then occasioned a rush to that
|
|
quarter; and, as the noise there continued, and grew louder, even
|
|
Cecilius betook himself off, pausing only to say, "The noble Drusus,
|
|
my Messala, put up his tablets and- lost the shekel."
|
|
|
|
"A white! A white!"
|
|
|
|
"Let him come!"
|
|
|
|
"This way, this way!"
|
|
|
|
These and like exclamations filled the saloon, to the stoppage of
|
|
other speech. The dice-players quit their games; the sleepers awoke,
|
|
rubbed their eyes, drew their tablets, and hurried to the common
|
|
centre.
|
|
|
|
"I offer you- "
|
|
|
|
"And I- "
|
|
|
|
"I- "
|
|
|
|
The person so warmly received was the respectable Jew, Ben-Hur's
|
|
fellow-voyager from Cyprus. He entered, grave, quiet, observant. His
|
|
robe was spotlessly white; so was the cloth of his turban. Bowing
|
|
and smiling at the welcome, he moved slowly towards the central table.
|
|
Arrived there, he drew his robe about him in a stately manner, took
|
|
seat, and waved his hand. The gleam of a jewel on a finger helped
|
|
him not a little to the silence which ensued.
|
|
|
|
"Romans- most noble Romans- I salute you!" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Easy, by Jupiter! Who is he?" asked Drusus.
|
|
|
|
"A dog of Israel- Sanballat by name- purveyor for the army;
|
|
residence, Rome; vastly rich; grown so as a contractor of furnishments
|
|
which he never furnishes. He spins mischief, nevertheless, finer
|
|
than spiders spin their webs. Come- by the girdle of Venus! let us
|
|
catch him!"
|
|
|
|
Messala arose as he spoke, and, with Drusus, joined the mass crowded
|
|
about the purveyor.
|
|
|
|
"It came to me on the street," said that person, producing his
|
|
tablets, and opening them on the table with an impressive air of
|
|
business, "that there was great discomfort in the palace because
|
|
offers on Messala were going without takers. The gods, you know,
|
|
must have sacrifices; and here I am. You see my colour; let us to
|
|
the matter. Odds first, amounts next. What will you give me?"
|
|
|
|
The audacity seemed to stun his hearers.
|
|
|
|
"Haste!" he said. "I have an engagement with the consul."
|
|
|
|
The spur was effective.
|
|
|
|
"Two to one," cried half-a-dozen in a voice.
|
|
|
|
"What!" exclaimed the purveyor, astonished. "Only two to one, and
|
|
yours a Roman!"
|
|
|
|
"Take three, then."
|
|
|
|
"Three say you- only three- and mine but a dog of a Jew! Give me
|
|
four."
|
|
|
|
"Four it is," said a boy, stung by the taunt.
|
|
|
|
"Five- give me five," cried the purveyor, instantly.
|
|
|
|
A profound stillness fell upon the assemblage.
|
|
|
|
"The consul- your master and mine- is waiting for me."
|
|
|
|
The inaction became awkward to the many.
|
|
|
|
"Give me five- for the honour of Rome, five."
|
|
|
|
"Five let it be," said one in answer.
|
|
|
|
There was a sharp cheer- a commotion- and Messala himself appeared.
|
|
|
|
"Five let it be," he said.
|
|
|
|
And Sanballat smiled, and made ready to write.
|
|
|
|
"If Caesar die to-morrow," he said, "Rome will not be all bereft.
|
|
There is at least one other with spirit to take his place. Give me
|
|
six."
|
|
|
|
"Six be it," answered Messala.
|
|
|
|
There was another shout louder than the first.
|
|
|
|
"Six be it," repeated Messala. "Six to one- the difference between a
|
|
Roman and a Jew. And, having found it, now, O redemptor of the flesh
|
|
of swine, let us on. The amount- and quickly. The consul may send
|
|
for thee, and I will then be bereft."
|
|
|
|
Sanballat took the laugh against him coolly, and wrote, and
|
|
offered the writing to Messala.
|
|
|
|
"Read, read!" everybody demanded.
|
|
|
|
And Messala read-
|
|
|
|
"Mem- Chariot-race. Messala of Rome, in wager with Sanballat, also
|
|
of Rome, says he will beat Ben-Hur, the Jew. Amount of wager, twenty
|
|
talents. Odds to Sanballat, six to one.
|
|
|
|
"Witnesses: "SANBALLAT."
|
|
|
|
There was no noise, no motion. Each person seemed held in the pose
|
|
the reading found him. Messala stared at the memorandum, while the
|
|
eyes which had him in view opened wide, and stared at him. He felt the
|
|
gaze, and thought rapidly. So lately he stood in the same place, and
|
|
in the same way hectored the countrymen around him. They would
|
|
remember it. If he refused to sign, his heroship was lost. And sign he
|
|
could not; he was not worth one hundred talents, nor the fifth part of
|
|
the sum. Suddenly his mind became a blank; he stood speechless; the
|
|
colour fled his face. An idea at last came to his relief.
|
|
|
|
"Thou Jew!" he said, "where hast thou twenty talents? Show me."
|
|
|
|
Sanballat's provoking smile deepened.
|
|
|
|
"There," he replied, offering Messala a paper.
|
|
|
|
"Read, read!" arose all round.
|
|
|
|
Again Messala read-
|
|
|
|
"AT ANTIOCH, Tammuz 16th day.
|
|
|
|
"The bearer, Sanballat of Rome, hath now to his order with me
|
|
fifty talents, coin of Caesar.
|
|
|
|
"SIMONIDES."
|
|
|
|
"Fifty talents, fifty talents!" echoed the throng, in amazement.
|
|
|
|
Then Drusus came to the rescue.
|
|
|
|
"By Hercules!" he shouted, "the paper lies, and the Jew is a liar.
|
|
Who but Caesar hath fifty talents at order? Down with the insolent
|
|
white!"
|
|
|
|
The cry was angry, and it was angrily repeated; yet Sanballat kept
|
|
his seat, and his smile grew more exasperating the longer he waited.
|
|
At length Messala spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Hush! One to one, my countrymen- one to one, for love of our
|
|
ancient Roman name."
|
|
|
|
The timely action recovered him his ascendancy.
|
|
|
|
"O thou circumcised dog!" he continued, to Sanballat, "I gave thee
|
|
six to one, did I not?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said the Jew, quietly.
|
|
|
|
"Well, give me now the fixing of the amount."
|
|
|
|
"With reserve, if the amount be trifling, have thy will," answered
|
|
Sanballat.
|
|
|
|
"Write, then, five in place of twenty."
|
|
|
|
"Hast thou so much?"
|
|
|
|
"By the mother of the gods, I will show you receipts."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, the word of so brave a Roman must pass. Only make the sum
|
|
even- six make it, and I will write."
|
|
|
|
"Write it so."
|
|
|
|
And forthwith they exchanged writings.
|
|
|
|
Sanballat immediately arose and looked around him, a sneer in
|
|
place of his smile. No man better than he knew those with whom he
|
|
was dealing.
|
|
|
|
"Romans," he said, "another wager, if you dare! Five talents against
|
|
five talents that the white will win. I challenge you collectively."
|
|
|
|
They were again surprised.
|
|
|
|
"What!" he cried louder. "Shall it be said in the Circus to-morrow
|
|
that a dog of Israel went into the saloon of the palace full of
|
|
Roman nobles- among them the scion of a Caesar- and laid five
|
|
talents before them in challenge, and they had not the courage to take
|
|
it up?"
|
|
|
|
The sting was unendurable.
|
|
|
|
"Have done, O insolent!" said Drusus; "write the challenge, and
|
|
leave it on the table; and to-morrow, if we find thou hast indeed so
|
|
much money to put at such hopeless hazard, I, Drusus, promise it shall
|
|
be taken."
|
|
|
|
Sanballat wrote again, and, rising, said, unmoved as ever, "See,
|
|
Drusus, I leave the offer with you. When it is signed, send it to me
|
|
any time before the race begins. I will be found with the consul in
|
|
a seat over the Porta Pompae. Peace to you; peace to all."
|
|
|
|
He bowed, and departed, careless of the shout of derision with which
|
|
they pursued him out of the door.
|
|
|
|
In the night the story of the prodigious wager flew along the
|
|
streets and over the city; and Ben-Hur, lying with his four, was
|
|
told of it, and also that Messala's whole fortune was on the hazard.
|
|
|
|
And he slept never so soundly.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.
|
|
|
|
THE CIRCUS.
|
|
|
|
THE Circus at Antioch stood on the south bank of the river, nearly
|
|
opposite the island, differing in no respect from the plan of such
|
|
buildings in general.
|
|
|
|
In the purest sense, the games were a gift to the public;
|
|
consequently, everybody was free to attend; and, vast as the holding
|
|
capacity of the structure was, so fearful were the people, on this
|
|
occasion, lest there should not be room for them, that, early the
|
|
day before the opening of the exhibition, they took up all the
|
|
vacant spaces in the vicinity, where their temporary shelter suggested
|
|
an army in waiting.
|
|
|
|
At midnight the entrances were thrown wide, and the rabble,
|
|
surging in, occupied the quarters assigned to them, from which nothing
|
|
less than an earthquake or an army with spears could have dislodged
|
|
them. They dozed the night away on the benches, and breakfasted there;
|
|
and there the close of the exercises found them, patient and
|
|
sight-hungry as in the beginning.
|
|
|
|
The better people, their seats secured, began moving towards the
|
|
Circus about the first hour of the morning, the noble and very rich
|
|
among them distinguished by litters and retinues of liveried servants.
|
|
|
|
By the second hour, the efflux from the city was a stream unbroken
|
|
and innumerable.
|
|
|
|
Exactly as the gnomon of the official dial up in the citadel pointed
|
|
the second hour half gone, the legion, in full panoply, and with an
|
|
its standards on exhibit, descended from Mount Sulpius; and when the
|
|
rear of the last cohort disappeared in the bridge, Antioch was
|
|
literally abandoned- not that the Circus could hold the multitude, but
|
|
that the multitude was gone out to it, nevertheless.
|
|
|
|
A great concourse on the river shore witnessed the consul come
|
|
over from the island in a barge of state. As the great man landed, and
|
|
was received by the legion, the martial show for one brief moment
|
|
transcended the attraction of the Circus.
|
|
|
|
At the third hour, the audience, if such it may be termed, was
|
|
assembled; at last, a flourish of trumpets called for silence, and
|
|
instantly the gaze of over a hundred thousand persons was directed
|
|
towards a pile forming the eastern section of the building.
|
|
|
|
There was a basement first, broken in the middle by a broad arched
|
|
passage, called the Porta Pompae, over which, on an elevated
|
|
tribunal magnificently decorated with insignia and legionary
|
|
standards, the consul sat in the place of honour. On both sides of the
|
|
passage the basement was divided into stalls termed carceres, each
|
|
protected in front by massive gates swung to statuesque pilasters.
|
|
Over the stalls next was a cornice crowned by a low balustrade; back
|
|
of which the seats arose in theatre arrangement, all occupied by a
|
|
throng of dignitaries superbly attired. The pile extended the width of
|
|
the Circus, and was flanked on both sides by towers which, besides
|
|
helping the architects give grace to their work, served the velaria,
|
|
or purple awnings, stretched between them so as to throw the whole
|
|
quarter in a shade that became exceedingly grateful as the day
|
|
advanced.
|
|
|
|
This structure, it is now thought, can be made useful in helping the
|
|
reader to a sufficient understanding of the arrangement of the rest of
|
|
the interior of the Circus. He has only to fancy himself seated on the
|
|
tribunal with the consul, facing to the west, where everything is
|
|
under his eye.
|
|
|
|
On the right and left, if he will look, he will see the main
|
|
entrances, very ample, and guarded by gates hinged to the towers.
|
|
|
|
Directly below him is the arena- a level plane of considerable
|
|
extent, covered with fine white sand. There all the trials will take
|
|
place except the running.
|
|
|
|
Looking across this sanded arena westwardly still, there is a
|
|
pedestal of marble supporting three low conical pillars of grey stone,
|
|
much carven. Many an eye will hunt for those pillars before the day is
|
|
done, for they are the first goal, and mark the beginning and end of
|
|
the race-course. Behind the pedestal, leaving a passage-way and
|
|
space for an altar, commences a wall ten or twelve feet in breadth and
|
|
five or six in height, extending thence exactly two hundred yards,
|
|
or one Olympic stadium. At the farther, or westward, extremity of
|
|
the wall there is another pedestal, surmounted with pillars which mark
|
|
the second goal.
|
|
|
|
The racers will enter the course on the right of the first goal, and
|
|
keep the wall all the time to their left. The beginning and ending
|
|
points of the contest lie, consequently, directly in front of the
|
|
consul across the arena; and for that reason his seat was admittedly
|
|
the most desirable in the Circus.
|
|
|
|
Now if the reader, who is still supposed to be seated on the
|
|
consular tribunal over the Porta Pompae, will look up from the
|
|
ground arrangement of the interior, the first point to attract his
|
|
notice will be the marking of the outer boundary-line of the course-
|
|
that is, a plain-faced, solid wall, fifteen or twenty feet in
|
|
height, with a balustrade on its cope, like that over the carceres, or
|
|
stall, in the east. This balcony, if followed round the course, will
|
|
be found broken in three places to allow passages of exit and
|
|
entrance, two in the north and one in the west; the latter very
|
|
ornate, and called the Gate of Triumph, because, when all is over, the
|
|
victors will pass out that way, crowned, and with triumphal escort and
|
|
ceremonies.
|
|
|
|
At the west end the balcony encloses the course in the form of a
|
|
half-circle, and is made to uphold two great galleries.
|
|
|
|
Directly behind the balustrade on the coping of the balcony is the
|
|
first seat, from which ascend the succeeding benches, each higher than
|
|
the one in front of it; giving to view a spectacle of surpassing
|
|
interest- the spectacle of a vast space ruddy and glistening with
|
|
human faces, and rich with vari-coloured costumes.
|
|
|
|
The commonalty occupy quarters over in the west, beginning at the
|
|
point of termination of an awning, stretched, it would seem, for the
|
|
accommodation of the better classes exclusively.
|
|
|
|
Having thus the whole interior of the Circus under view at the
|
|
moment of the sounding of the trumpets, let the reader next imagine
|
|
the multitude seated and sunk to sudden silence, and motionless in its
|
|
intensity of interest.
|
|
|
|
Out of the Porta Pompae over in the east rises a sound mixed of
|
|
voices and instruments harmonized. Presently, forth issues the
|
|
chorus of the procession with which the celebration begins; the editor
|
|
and civic authorities of the city, givers of the games, follow in
|
|
robes and garlands; then the gods, some on platforms borne by men,
|
|
others in great four-wheel carriages gorgeously decorated; next
|
|
them, again, the contestants of the day, each in costume exactly as he
|
|
will run, wrestle, leap, box, or drive.
|
|
|
|
Slowly crossing the arena, the procession proceeds to make circuit
|
|
of the course. The display is beautiful and imposing. Approval runs
|
|
before it in a shout, as the water rises and swells in front of a boat
|
|
in motion. If the dumb, figured gods make no sign of appreciation of
|
|
the welcome, the editor and his associates are not so backward.
|
|
|
|
The reception of the athletes is even more demonstrative, for
|
|
there is not a man in the assemblage who has not something in wager
|
|
upon them, though but a mite or farthing. And it is noticeable, as the
|
|
classes move by, that the favourites among them are speedily singled
|
|
out: either their names are loudest in the uproar, or they are more
|
|
profusely showered with wreaths and garlands tossed to them from the
|
|
balcony.
|
|
|
|
If there is a question as to the popularity with the public of the
|
|
several games, it is now put to rest. To the splendour of the chariots
|
|
and the superexcellent beauty of the horses, the charioteers add the
|
|
personality necessary to perfect the charm of their display. Their
|
|
tunics, short, sleeveless, and of the finest woollen texture, are of
|
|
the assigned colours. A horseman accompanies each one of them except
|
|
Ben-Hur, who, for some reason- possibly distrust- has chosen to go
|
|
alone; so, too, they are all helmeted but him. As they approach, the
|
|
spectators stand upon the benches, and there is a sensible deepening
|
|
of the clamour, in which a sharp listener may detect the shrill piping
|
|
of women and children; at the same time, the things roseate flying
|
|
from the balcony thicken into a storm, and, striking the men, drop
|
|
into the chariot-beds, which are threatened with filling to the
|
|
tops. Even the horses have a share in the ovation; nor may it be
|
|
said they are less conscious than their masters of the honours they
|
|
receive.
|
|
|
|
Very soon, as with the other contestants, it is made apparent that
|
|
some of the drivers are more in favour than others; and then the
|
|
discovery follows that nearly every individual on the benches, women
|
|
and children as well as men, wears a colour, most frequently a
|
|
ribbon upon the breast or in the hair: now it is green, now yellow,
|
|
now blue; but, searching the great body carefully, it is manifest that
|
|
there is a preponderance of white, and scarlet and gold.
|
|
|
|
In a modern assemblage called together as this one is,
|
|
particularly where there are sums at hazard upon the race, a
|
|
preference would be decided by the qualities or performance of the
|
|
horses; here, however, nationality was the rule. If the Byzantine
|
|
and Sidonian found small support, it was because their cities were
|
|
scarcely represented on the benches. On their side, the Greeks, though
|
|
very numerous, were divided between the Corinthian and the Athenian,
|
|
leaving but a scant showing of green and yellow. Messala's scarlet and
|
|
gold would have been but little better had not the citizens of
|
|
Antioch, proverbially a race of courtiers, joined the Romans by
|
|
adopting the colour of their favourite. There were left then the
|
|
country people, or Syrians, the Jews, and the Arabs; and they, from
|
|
faith in the blood of the sheik's four, blent largely with hate of the
|
|
Romans, whom they desired, above all things, to see beaten and
|
|
humbled, mounted the white, making the most noisy, and probably the
|
|
most numerous, faction of all.
|
|
|
|
As the charioteers move on in the circuit, the excitement increases;
|
|
at the second goal, where, especially in the galleries, the white is
|
|
the ruling colour, the people exhaust their flowers and rive the air
|
|
with screams.
|
|
|
|
"Messala! Messala!"
|
|
|
|
"Ben-Hur! Ben-Hur!"
|
|
|
|
Such are the cries.
|
|
|
|
Upon the passage of the procession, the factionists take their seats
|
|
and resume conversation.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, by Bacchus! was he not handsome?" exclaims a woman. whose
|
|
Romanism is betrayed by the colours flying in her hair.
|
|
|
|
"And how splendid his chariot!" replies a neighbour, of the same
|
|
proclivities. "It is all ivory and gold. Jupiter grant he wins!"
|
|
|
|
The notes on the bench behind them were entirely different.
|
|
|
|
"A hundred shekels on the Jew!"
|
|
|
|
The voice is high and shrill.
|
|
|
|
"Nay, be thou not rash," whispers a moderating friend to the
|
|
speaker. "The children of Jacob are not much given to Gentile
|
|
sports, which are too often accursed in the sight of the Lord."
|
|
|
|
"True, but saw you ever one more cool and assured? And what an arm
|
|
he has!"
|
|
|
|
"And what horses!" says a third.
|
|
|
|
"And for that," a fourth one adds, "they say he has all the tricks
|
|
of the Romans."
|
|
|
|
A woman completes the eulogium.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, and he is even handsomer than the Roman."
|
|
|
|
Thus encouraged, the enthusiast shrieks again, "A hundred shekels on
|
|
the Jew!"
|
|
|
|
"Thou fool!" answers an Antiochian, from a bench well forward on the
|
|
balcony. "Knowest thou not there are fifty talents laid against him,
|
|
six to one, on Messala? Put up thy shekels, lest Abraham rise and
|
|
smite thee."
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha! thou ass of Antioch! Cease thy bray. Knowest thou not it
|
|
was Messala betting on himself?"
|
|
|
|
Such the reply.
|
|
|
|
And so ran the controversy, not always good-natured.
|
|
|
|
When at length the march was ended and the Porta Pompae received
|
|
back the procession, Ben-Hur knew he had his prayer.
|
|
|
|
The eyes of the East were upon his contest with Messala.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.
|
|
|
|
THE START.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT three o'clock, speaking in modern style, the programme was
|
|
concluded except the chariot-race. The editor, wisely considerate of
|
|
the comfort of the people, chose that time for a recess. At once the
|
|
vomitoria were thrown open, and all who could hastened to the
|
|
portico outside where the restaurateurs had their quarters. Those
|
|
who remained yawned, talked, gossiped, consulted their tablets, and,
|
|
all distinctions else forgotten, merged into but two classes- the
|
|
winners, who were happy, and the losers, who were grim and captious.
|
|
|
|
Now, however, a third class of spectators, composed of citizens
|
|
who desired only to witness the chariot-race, availed themselves of
|
|
the recess to come in and take their reserved seats; by so doing
|
|
they thought to attract the least attention and give the least
|
|
offence. Among these were Simonides and his party, whose places were
|
|
in the vicinity of the main entrance on the north side, opposite the
|
|
consul.
|
|
|
|
As the four stout servants carried the merchant in his chair up
|
|
the aisle, curiosity was much excited. Presently some one called his
|
|
name. Those about caught it and passed it on along the benches to
|
|
the west; and there was hurried climbing on seats to get sight of
|
|
the man about whom common report had coined and put in circulation a
|
|
romance so mixed of good fortune and bad that the like had never
|
|
been known or heard of before.
|
|
|
|
Ilderim was also recognized and warmly greeted; but nobody knew
|
|
Balthasar or the two women who followed him closely veiled.
|
|
|
|
The people made way for the party respectfully, and the ushers
|
|
seated them in easy speaking distance of each other down by the
|
|
balustrade overlooking the arena. In providence of comfort, they sat
|
|
upon cushions and had stools for foot-rests.
|
|
|
|
The women were Iras and Esther.
|
|
|
|
Upon being seated, the latter cast a frightened look over the
|
|
Circus, and drew the veil closer about her face; while the Egyptian,
|
|
letting her veil fall upon her shoulders, gave herself to view, and
|
|
gazed at the scene with the seeming unconsciousness of being stared
|
|
at, which, in a woman, is usually the result of long social habitude.
|
|
|
|
The new-comers generally were yet making their first examination
|
|
of the great spectacle, beginning with the consul and his
|
|
attendants, when some workmen ran in and commenced to stretch a
|
|
chalked rope across the arena from balcony to balcony in front of
|
|
the pillars of the first goal.
|
|
|
|
About the same time, also, six men came in through the Porta
|
|
Pompae and took post, one in front of each occupied stall; whereat
|
|
there was a prolonged hum of voices in every quarter.
|
|
|
|
"See, see! The green goes to number four on the right; the
|
|
Athenian is there."
|
|
|
|
"And Messala- yes, he is number two."
|
|
|
|
"The Corinthian- "
|
|
|
|
"Watch the white! See, he crosses over- he stops; number one it
|
|
is- number one on the left."
|
|
|
|
"No, the black stops there, and the white at number two."
|
|
|
|
"So it is."
|
|
|
|
These gate-keepers, it should be understood, were dressed in
|
|
tunics coloured like those of the competing charioteers; so, when they
|
|
took their stations, everybody knew the particular stall in which
|
|
his favourite was that moment waiting.
|
|
|
|
"Did you ever see Messala?" the Egyptian asked Esther.
|
|
|
|
The Jewess shuddered as she answered no. If not her father's
|
|
enemy, the Roman was Ben-Hur's.
|
|
|
|
"He is beautiful as Apollo."
|
|
|
|
As Iras spoke, her large eyes brightened and she shook her
|
|
jewelled fan. Esther looked at her with the thought, "Is he, then,
|
|
so much handsomer than Ben-Hur?" Next moment she heard Ilderim say
|
|
to her father, "Yes, his stall is number two on the left of the
|
|
Porta Pompae;" and, thinking it was of Ben-Hur he spoke, her eyes
|
|
turned that way. Taking but the briefest glance at the wattled face of
|
|
the gate, she drew the veil close and muttered a little prayer.
|
|
|
|
Presently Sanballat came to the party.
|
|
|
|
"I am just from the stalls, O sheik," he said, bowing gravely to
|
|
Ilderim, who began combing his beard, while his eyes glittered with
|
|
eager inquiry. "The horses are in perfect condition."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim replied simply, "If they are beaten, I pray it be by some
|
|
other than Messala."
|
|
|
|
Turning then to Simonides, Sanballat drew out a tablet, saying, "I
|
|
bring you also something of interest. I reported, you will remember,
|
|
the wager concluded with Messala last night, and stated that I left
|
|
another which, if taken, was to be delivered to me in writing to-day
|
|
before the race began. Here it is."
|
|
|
|
Simonides took the tablet and read the memorandum carefully.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he said, "their emissary came to ask me if you had so much
|
|
money with me. Keep the tablet close. If you lose, you know where to
|
|
come; if you win"- his face knit hard- "if you win- ah, friend, see to
|
|
it! See the signers escape not; hold them to the last shekel. That
|
|
is what they would with us."
|
|
|
|
"Trust me," replied the purveyor.
|
|
|
|
"Will you not sit with us?" asked Simonides.
|
|
|
|
"You are very good," the other returned; "but if I leave the consul,
|
|
young Rome yonder will boil over. Peace to you; peace to all."
|
|
|
|
At length the recess came to an end.
|
|
|
|
The trumpeters blew a call at which the absentees rushed back to
|
|
their places. At the same time, some attendants appeared in the arena,
|
|
and, climbing upon the division wall, went to an entablature near
|
|
the second goal at the west end, and placed upon it seven wooden
|
|
balls; then returning to the first goal, upon an entablature there
|
|
they set up seven other pieces of wood hewn to represent dolphins.
|
|
|
|
"What shall they do with the balls and fishes, O sheik?" asked
|
|
Balthasar.
|
|
|
|
"Hast thou never attended a race?"
|
|
|
|
"Never before; and hardly know I why I am here."
|
|
|
|
"Well, they are to keep the count. At the end of each round run thou
|
|
shalt see one ball and one fish taken down."
|
|
|
|
The preparations were now complete, and presently a trumpeter in
|
|
gaudy uniform arose by the editor, ready to blow the signal of
|
|
commencement promptly at his order. Straightway the stir of the people
|
|
and the hum of their conversation died away. Every face near-by, and
|
|
every face in the lessening perspective, turned to the east, as all
|
|
eyes settled upon the gates of the six stalls which shut in the
|
|
competitors.
|
|
|
|
The unusual flush upon his face gave proof that even Simonides had
|
|
caught the universal excitement. Ilderim pulled his beard fast and
|
|
furious.
|
|
|
|
"Look now for the Roman," said the fair Egyptian to Esther, who
|
|
did not hear her, for, with close-drawn veil and beating heart, she
|
|
sat watching for Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
The structure containing the stalls, it should be observed, was in
|
|
form of the segment of a circle, retired on the right so that its
|
|
central point was projected forward, and midway the course, on the
|
|
starting side of the first goal. Every stall, consequently, was
|
|
equally distant from the starting-line or chalked rope above
|
|
mentioned.
|
|
|
|
The trumpet sounded short and sharp; whereupon the starters, one for
|
|
each chariot, leaped down from behind the pillars of the goal, ready
|
|
to give assistance if any of the fours proved unmanageable.
|
|
|
|
Again the trumpet blew, and simultaneously the gate-keepers threw
|
|
the stalls open.
|
|
|
|
First appeared the mounted attendants of the charioteers, five in
|
|
all, Ben-Hur having rejected the service. The chalked line was lowered
|
|
to let them pass, then raised again. They were beautifully mounted,
|
|
yet scarcely observed as they rode forward; for all the time the
|
|
trampling of eager horses, and the voices of drivers scarcely less
|
|
eager, were heard behind in the stalls, so that one might not look
|
|
away an instant from the gaping doors.
|
|
|
|
The chalked line up again, the gate-keepers called their men;
|
|
instantly the ushers on the balcony waved their hands, and shouted
|
|
with all their strength, "Down! down!"
|
|
|
|
As well have whistled to stay a storm.
|
|
|
|
Forth from each stall, like missiles in a volley from so many
|
|
great guns, rushed the six fours; and up the vast assemblage arose,
|
|
electrified and irrepressible, and, leaping upon the benches, filled
|
|
the Circus and the air above it with yells and screams. This was the
|
|
time for which they had so patiently waited!- this the moment of
|
|
supreme interest treasured up in talk and dreams since the
|
|
proclamation of the games!
|
|
|
|
"He is come- there- look!" cried Iras, pointing to Messala.
|
|
|
|
"I see him," answered Esther, looking at Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
The veil was withdrawn. For an instant the little Jewess was
|
|
brave. An idea of the joy there is in doing an heroic deed under the
|
|
eyes of a multitude came to her, and she understood ever after how, at
|
|
such times, the souls of men, in the frenzy of performance, laugh at
|
|
death or forget it utterly.
|
|
|
|
The competitors were now under view from nearly every part of the
|
|
Circus, yet the race was not begun; they had first to make the chalked
|
|
line successfully.
|
|
|
|
The line was stretched for the purpose of equalizing the start. If
|
|
it were dashed upon, discomfiture of man and horses might be
|
|
apprehended; on the other hand, to approach it timidly was to incur
|
|
the hazard of being thrown behind in the beginning of the race; and
|
|
that was certain forfeit of the great advantage always striven for-
|
|
the position next the division wall on the inner line of the course.
|
|
|
|
This trial, its perils and consequences, the spectators knew
|
|
thoroughly; and if the opinion of old Nestor, uttered what time he
|
|
handed the reins to his son, were true-
|
|
|
|
"It is not strength, but art, obtained the prize,
|
|
|
|
And to be swift is less than to be wise,"
|
|
|
|
all on the benches might well look for warning of the winner to be now
|
|
given, justifying the interest with which they breathlessly watched
|
|
for the result.
|
|
|
|
The arena swam in a dazzle of light; yet each driver looked first
|
|
thing for the rope, then for the coveted inner line. So, all six
|
|
aiming at the same point and speeding furiously, a collision seemed
|
|
inevitable; nor that merely. What if the editor, at the last moment,
|
|
dissatisfied with the start, should withhold the signal to drop the
|
|
rope? Or if he should not give it in time?
|
|
|
|
The crossing was about two hundred and fifty feet in width. Quick
|
|
the eye, steady the hand, unerring the judgment required. If now one
|
|
look away! or his mind wander! or a rein slip! And what attraction
|
|
in the ensemble of the thousands over the spreading balcony!
|
|
Calculating upon the natural impulse to give one glance- just one-
|
|
in sooth of curiosity or vanity, malice might be there with an
|
|
artifice; while friendship and love, did they serve the same result,
|
|
might be as deadly as malice.
|
|
|
|
The divine last touch in perfecting the beautiful is animation.
|
|
Can we accept the saying, then these latter days, so tame in pastime
|
|
and dull in sports, have scarcely anything to compare to the spectacle
|
|
offered by the six contestants. Let the reader try to fancy it; let
|
|
him first look down upon the arena, and see it glistening in its frame
|
|
of dull-grey granite walls; let him then, in this perfect field, see
|
|
the chariots, light of wheel, very graceful, and ornate as paint and
|
|
burnishing can make them- Messala's rich with ivory and gold; let
|
|
him see the drivers, erect and statuesque, undisturbed by the motion
|
|
of the cars, their limbs naked, and fresh and ruddy with the healthful
|
|
polish of the baths- in their right hands goads, suggestive of torture
|
|
dreadful to the thought- in their left hands, held in careful
|
|
separation, and high, that they may not interfere with view of the
|
|
steeds, the reins passing taut from the fore ends of the
|
|
carriage-poles; let him see the fours, chosen for beauty as well as
|
|
speed; let him see them in magnificent action, their masters not
|
|
more conscious of the situation and all that is asked and hoped from
|
|
them- their heads tossing, nostrils in play, now distent, now
|
|
contracted- limbs too dainty for the sand which they touch but to
|
|
spurn- limbs slender, yet with impact crushing as hammers- every
|
|
muscle of the rounded bodies instinct with glorious life, swelling,
|
|
diminishing, justifying the world in taking from them its ultimate
|
|
measure of force; finally, along with chariots, drivers, horses, let
|
|
the reader see the accompanying shadows fly; and, with such
|
|
distinctness as the picture comes, he may share the satisfaction and
|
|
deeper pleasure of those to whom it was a thrilling fact, not a feeble
|
|
fancy. Every age has its plenty of sorrows; heaven help where there
|
|
are no pleasures!
|
|
|
|
The competitors having started each on the shortest line for the
|
|
position next the wall, yielding would be like giving up the race; and
|
|
who dared yield? It is not in common nature to change a purpose in
|
|
mid-career; and the cries of encouragement from the balcony were
|
|
indistinguishable and indescribable: a roar which had the same
|
|
effect upon all the drivers.
|
|
|
|
The fours neared the rope together. Then the trumpeter by the
|
|
editor's side blew a signal vigorously. Twenty feet away it was not
|
|
heard. Seeing the action, however, the judges dropped the rope, and
|
|
not an instant too soon, for the hoof of one of Messala's horses
|
|
struck it as it fell. Nothing daunted, the Roman shook out his long
|
|
lash, loosed the reins, leaned forward, and, with a triumphant
|
|
shout, took the wall.
|
|
|
|
"Jove with us! Jove with us!" yelled all the Roman faction, in a
|
|
frenzy of delight.
|
|
|
|
As Messala turned in, the bronze lion's head at the end of his
|
|
axle caught the fore-leg of the Athenian's right-hand trace-mate,
|
|
flinging the brute over against its yoke-fellow. Both staggered,
|
|
struggled, and lost their headway. The ushers had their will, at least
|
|
in part. The thousands held their breath with horror; only up where
|
|
the consul sat was there shouting.
|
|
|
|
"Jove with us!" screamed Drusus, frantically.
|
|
|
|
"He wins! Jove with us!" answered his associates, seeing Messala
|
|
speed on.
|
|
|
|
Tablet in hand, Sanballat turned to them; a crash from the course
|
|
below stopped his speech, and he could not but look that way.
|
|
|
|
Messala having passed, the Corinthian was the only contestant on the
|
|
Athenian's right, and to that side the latter tried to turn his broken
|
|
four; and then, as ill-fortune would have it, the wheel of the
|
|
Byzantine, who was next on the left, struck the tail-piece of his
|
|
chariot, knocking his feet from under him. There was a crash, a scream
|
|
of rage and fear, and the unfortunate Cleanthes fell under the hoofs
|
|
of his own steeds: a terrible sight, against which Esther covered
|
|
her eyes.
|
|
|
|
On swept the Corinthian, on the Byzantine, on the Sidonian.
|
|
|
|
Sanballat looked for Ben-Hur, and turned again to Drusus and his
|
|
coterie.
|
|
|
|
"A hundred sestertii on the Jew!" he cried.
|
|
|
|
"Taken!" answered Drusus.
|
|
|
|
"Another hundred on the Jew!" shouted Sanballat.
|
|
|
|
Nobody appeared to hear him. He called again; the situation below
|
|
was too absorbing, and they were too busy shouting, "Messala! Messala!
|
|
Jove with us!"
|
|
|
|
When the Jewess ventured to look again, a party of workmen were
|
|
removing the horses and broken car; another party were taking off
|
|
the man himself; and every bench upon which there was a Greek was
|
|
vocal with execrations and prayers for vengeance. Suddenly she dropped
|
|
her hands; Ben-Hur, unhurt, was to the front, coursing freely
|
|
forward along with the Roman! Behind them, in a group, followed the
|
|
Sidonian, the Corinthian, and the Byzantine.
|
|
|
|
The race was on; the souls of the racers were in it; over them
|
|
bent the myriads.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.
|
|
|
|
THE RACE.
|
|
|
|
WHEN the dash for position began, Ben-Hur, as we have seen, was on
|
|
the extreme left of the six. For a moment, like the others, he was
|
|
half-blinded by the light in the arena; yet he managed to catch
|
|
sight of his antagonists and divine their purpose. At Messala, who was
|
|
more than an antagonist to him, he gave one searching look. The air of
|
|
passionless hauteur characteristic of the fine patrician face was
|
|
there as of old, and so was the Italian beauty, which the helmet
|
|
rather increased; but more- it may have been a jealous fancy, or the
|
|
effect of the brassy shadow in which the features were at the moment
|
|
cast, still the Israelite thought he saw the soul of the man as
|
|
through a glass, darkly: cruel, cunning, desperate; not so excited
|
|
as determined- a soul in a tension of watchfulness and fierce resolve.
|
|
|
|
In a time not longer than was required to turn to his four again,
|
|
Ben-Hur felt his own resolution harden to a like temper. At whatever
|
|
cost, at all hazards, he would humble this enemy! Prize, friends,
|
|
wagers, honour- everything that can be thought of as a possible
|
|
interest in the race was lost in the one deliberate purpose. Regard
|
|
for life even should not hold him back. Yet there was no passion on
|
|
his part; no blinding rush of heated blood from heart to brain, and
|
|
back again; no impulse to fling himself upon Fortune: he did not
|
|
believe in Fortune; far otherwise. He had his plan, and, confiding
|
|
in himself, he settled to the task never more observant, never more
|
|
capable. The air about him seemed aglow with a renewed and perfect
|
|
transparency.
|
|
|
|
When not half-way across the arena, he saw that Messala's rush
|
|
would, if there was no collision, and the rope fell, give him the
|
|
wall; that the rope would fall, he ceased as soon to doubt; and,
|
|
further, it came to him, a sudden flash-like insight, that Messala
|
|
knew it was to be let drop at the last moment (pre-arrangement with
|
|
the editor could safely reach that point in the contest); and it
|
|
suggested, what more Roman-like than for the official to lend
|
|
himself to a countryman who, besides being so popular, had also so
|
|
much at stake? There could be no other accounting for the confidence
|
|
with which Messala pushed his four forward the instant his competitors
|
|
were prudentially checking their fours in front of the obstruction- no
|
|
other except madness.
|
|
|
|
It is one thing to see a necessity and another to act upon it.
|
|
Ben-Hur yielded the wall for the time.
|
|
|
|
The rope fell, and all the four but his sprang into the course under
|
|
urgency of voice and lash. He drew head to the right, and, with all
|
|
the speed of his Arabs, darted across the trails of his opponents, the
|
|
angle of movement being such as to lose the least time and gain the
|
|
greatest possible advance. So, while the spectators were shivering
|
|
at the Athenian's mishap, and the Sidonian, Byzantine, and
|
|
Corinthian were striving, with such skill as they possessed, to
|
|
avoid involvement in the ruin, Ben-Hur swept around and took the
|
|
course neck and neck with Messala, though on the outside. The
|
|
marvellous skill shown in making the change thus from the extreme left
|
|
across to the right without appreciable loss did not fail the sharp
|
|
eyes upon the benches: the Circus seemed to rock and rock again with
|
|
prolonged applause. Then Esther clasped her hands in glad surprise;
|
|
then Sanballat, smiling, offered his hundred sestertii a second time
|
|
without a taker; and then the Romans began to doubt, thinking
|
|
Messala might have found an equal, if not a master, and that in an
|
|
Israelite!
|
|
|
|
And now, racing together side by side, a narrow interval between
|
|
them, the two neared the second goal.
|
|
|
|
The pedestal of the three pillars there, viewed from the west, was a
|
|
stone wall in the form of a half-circle, around which the course and
|
|
opposite balcony were bent in exact parallelism. Making this turn
|
|
was considered in all respects the most telling test of a
|
|
charioteer; it was, in fact, the very feat in which Orestes failed. As
|
|
an involuntary admission of interest on the part of the spectators,
|
|
a hush fell over all the Circus, so that for the first time in the
|
|
race the rattle and clang of the cars plunging after the tugging
|
|
steeds were distinctly heard. Then, it would seem, Messala observed
|
|
Ben-Hur, and recognized him; and at once the audacity of the man
|
|
flamed out in an astonishing manner.
|
|
|
|
"Down Eros, up Mars!" he shouted, whirling his lash with practised
|
|
hand- "Down Eros, up Mars!" he repeated, and caught the well-doing
|
|
Arabs of Ben-Hur a cut the like of which they had never known.
|
|
|
|
The blow was seen in every quarter, and the amazement was universal.
|
|
The silence deepened; up on the benches behind the consul the
|
|
boldest held his breath, waiting for the outcome. Only a moment
|
|
thus: then, involuntarily, down from the balcony, as thunder falls,
|
|
burst the indignant cry of the people.
|
|
|
|
The four sprang forward affrighted. No hand had ever been laid
|
|
upon them except in love; they had been nurtured ever so tenderly; and
|
|
as they grew, their confidence in man became a lesson to men beautiful
|
|
to see. What should such dainty natures do under such indignity but
|
|
leap as from death?
|
|
|
|
Forward they sprang as with one impulse, and forward leaped the car.
|
|
Past question, every experience is serviceable to us. Where got
|
|
Ben-Hur the large hand and mighty grip which helped him now so well?
|
|
Where but from the oar with which so long he fought the sea? And
|
|
what was this spring of the floor under his feet to the dizzy
|
|
eccentric lurch with which in the old time the trembling ship
|
|
yielded to the beat of staggering billows, drunk with their power?
|
|
So he kept his place, and gave the four free rein, and called to
|
|
them in soothing voice, trying merely to guide them round the
|
|
dangerous turn; and before the fever of the people began to abate,
|
|
he had back the mastery. Nor that only: on approaching the first goal,
|
|
he was again side by side with Messala, bearing with him the
|
|
sympathy and admiration of every one not a Roman. So clearly was the
|
|
feeling shown, so vigorous its manifestation, that Messala, with all
|
|
his boldness, felt it unsafe to trifle further.
|
|
|
|
As the cars whirled round the goal, Esther caught sight of Ben-Hur's
|
|
face- a little pale, a little higher raised, otherwise calm, even
|
|
placid.
|
|
|
|
Immediately a man climbed on the entablature at the west end of
|
|
the division wall, and took down one of the conical wooden balls. A
|
|
dolphin on the east entablature was taken down at the same time.
|
|
|
|
In like manner, the second ball and second dolphin disappeared.
|
|
|
|
And then the third ball and third dolphin.
|
|
|
|
Three rounds concluded: still Messala held the inside position;
|
|
still Ben-Hur moved with him side by side; still the other competitors
|
|
followed as before. The contest began to have the appearance of one of
|
|
the double races which became so popular in Rome during the later
|
|
Caesarean period- Messala and Ben-Hur in the first, the Corinthian,
|
|
Sidonian, and Byzantine in the second. Meantime the ushers succeeded
|
|
in returning the multitude to their seats, though the clamour
|
|
continued to run the rounds, keeping, as it were, even pace with the
|
|
rivals in the course below.
|
|
|
|
In the fifth round the Sidonian succeeded in getting a place outside
|
|
Ben-Hur, but lost it directly.
|
|
|
|
The sixth round was entered upon without change of relative
|
|
position.
|
|
|
|
Gradually the speed had been quickened- gradually the blood of the
|
|
competitors warmed with the work. Men and beasts seemed to know
|
|
alike that the final crisis was near, bringing the time for the winner
|
|
to assert himself.
|
|
|
|
The interest which from the beginning had centred chiefly in the
|
|
struggle between the Roman and the Jew, with an intense and general
|
|
sympathy for the latter, was fast changing to anxiety on his
|
|
account. On all the benches the spectators bent forward motionless,
|
|
except as their faces turned following the contestants. Ilderim
|
|
quitted combing his beard, and Esther forgot her fears.
|
|
|
|
"A hundred sestertii on the Jew!" cried Sanballat to the Romans
|
|
under the consul's awning.
|
|
|
|
There was no reply.
|
|
|
|
"A talent- or five talents, or ten; choose ye!"
|
|
|
|
He shook his tablets at them defiantly.
|
|
|
|
"I will take thy sestertii," answered a Roman youth, preparing to
|
|
write.
|
|
|
|
"Do not so," interposed a friend.
|
|
|
|
"Why?"
|
|
|
|
"Messala hath reached his utmost speed. See him lean over his
|
|
chariot-rim, the reins loose as flying-ribbons. Look then at the Jew."
|
|
|
|
The first one looked.
|
|
|
|
"By Hercules!" he replied, his countenance falling. "The dog
|
|
throws all his weight on the bits. I see, I see! If the gods help
|
|
not our friend, he will be run away with by the Israelite. No, not
|
|
yet. Look! Jove with us, Jove with us!"
|
|
|
|
The cry, swelled by every Latin tongue, shook the velaria over the
|
|
consul's head.
|
|
|
|
If it were true that Messala had attained his utmost speed, the
|
|
effort was with effect; slowly but certainly he was beginning to forge
|
|
ahead. His horses were running with their heads low down; from the
|
|
balcony their bodies appeared actually to skim the earth; their
|
|
nostrils showed blood-red in expansion; their eyes seemed straining in
|
|
their sockets. Certainly the good steeds were doing their best! How
|
|
long could they keep the pace? It was but the commencement of the
|
|
sixth round. On they dashed. As they neared the second goal, Ben-Hur
|
|
turned in behind the Roman's car.
|
|
|
|
The joy of the Messala faction reached its bound: they screamed
|
|
and howled, and tossed their colours; and Sanballat filled his tablets
|
|
with wagers of their tendering.
|
|
|
|
Malluch, in the lower gallery over the Gate of Triumph, found it
|
|
hard to keep his cheer. He had cherished the vague hint dropped to him
|
|
by Ben-Hur of something to happen in the turning of the western
|
|
pillars. It was the fifth round, yet the something had not come; and
|
|
he had said to himself, the sixth will bring it; but, lo! Ben-Hur
|
|
was hardly holding a place at the tail of his enemy's car.
|
|
|
|
Over in the east end, Simonides' party held their peace. The
|
|
merchant's head was bent low. Ilderim tugged at his beard, and dropped
|
|
his brows till there was nothing of his eyes but an occasional sparkle
|
|
of light. Esther scarcely breathed. Iras alone appeared glad.
|
|
|
|
Along the home-stretch- sixth round- Messala leading, next him
|
|
Ben-Hur, and so close, it was the old story-
|
|
|
|
"First flew Eumelus on Pheretian steeds;
|
|
|
|
With those of Tros bold Diomed succeeds:
|
|
|
|
Close on Eumelus' back they puff the wind,
|
|
|
|
And seem just mounting on his car behind;
|
|
|
|
Full on his neck he feels the sultry breeze,
|
|
|
|
And, hovering o'er, their stretching shadow sees."
|
|
|
|
Thus to the first goal, and round it. Messala, fearful of losing his
|
|
place, hugged the stony wall with perilous clasp; a foot to the
|
|
left, and he had been dashed to pieces; yet, when the turn was
|
|
finished, no man, looking at the wheel-tracks of the two cars, could
|
|
have said, here went Messala, there the Jew. They left but one trace
|
|
behind them.
|
|
|
|
As they whirled by, Esther saw Ben-Hur's face again, and it was
|
|
whiter than before.
|
|
|
|
Simonides, shrewder than Esther, said to Ilderim, the moment the
|
|
rivals turned into the course, "I am no judge, good sheik, if
|
|
Ben-Hur be not about to execute some design. His face hath that look."
|
|
|
|
To which Ilderim answered, "Saw you how clean they were and fresh?
|
|
By the splendour of God, friend, they have not been running! But now
|
|
watch!"
|
|
|
|
One ball and one dolphin remained on the entablatures; and all the
|
|
people drew a long breath, for the beginning of the end was at hand.
|
|
|
|
First, the Sidonian gave the scourge to his four, and, smarting with
|
|
fear and pain, they dashed desperately forward, promising for a
|
|
brief time to go to the front. The effort ended in promise. Next,
|
|
the Byzantine and Corinthian each made the trial with like result,
|
|
after which they were practically out of the race. Thereupon, with a
|
|
readiness perfectly explicable, all the factions except the Romans
|
|
joined hope in Ben-Hur, and openly indulged their feeling.
|
|
|
|
"Ben-Hur! Ben-Hur!" they shouted, and the blent voices of the many
|
|
rolled overwhelmingly against the consular stand.
|
|
|
|
From the benches above him as he passed the favour descended in
|
|
fierce injunctions.
|
|
|
|
"Speed thee, Jew!"
|
|
|
|
"Take the wall now!"
|
|
|
|
"On! loose the Arabs! Give them rein and scourge!"
|
|
|
|
"Let them not have the turn on thee again. Now or never!"
|
|
|
|
Over the balustrade they stooped low, stretching their hands
|
|
imploringly to him.
|
|
|
|
Either he did not hear, or could not do better, for half-way round
|
|
the course, and he was still following; at the second goal even
|
|
still no change?
|
|
|
|
And now, to make the turn, Messala began to draw in his left-hand
|
|
steeds, an act which necessarily slackened their speed. His spirit was
|
|
high; more than one altar was richer of his vows; the Roman genius was
|
|
still president. On the three pillars only six hundred feet away
|
|
were fame, increase of fortune, promotions, and a triumph, ineffably
|
|
sweetened by hate, all in store for him! That moment Malluch, in the
|
|
gallery, saw Ben-Hur lean forward over his Arabs, and give them the
|
|
reins. Out flew the many-folded lash in his hand; over the backs of
|
|
the startled steeds it writhed and hissed, and hissed and writhed
|
|
again and again; and though it fell not, there were both sting and
|
|
menace in its quick report; and as the man passed thus from quiet to
|
|
resistless action, his face suffused, his eyes gleaming, along the
|
|
reins he seemed to flash his will; and instantly not one, but the four
|
|
as one, answered with a leap that landed them alongside the Roman's
|
|
car. Messala, on the perilous edge of the goal, heard, but dared not
|
|
look to see what the awakening portended. From the people he
|
|
received no sign. Above the noises of the race there was but one
|
|
voice, and that was Ben-Hur's. In the old Aramaic, as the sheik
|
|
himself, he called to the Arabs-
|
|
|
|
"On, Atair! On, Rigel! What, Antares! dost thou linger now? Good
|
|
horse- oho, Aldebaran! I hear them singing in the tents. I hear the
|
|
children singing and the women- singing of the stars, of Atair,
|
|
Antares, Rigel, Aldebaran, victory!- and the song will never end. Well
|
|
done! Home to-morrow, under the black tent- home!- On, Antares! The
|
|
tribe is waiting for us, and the master is waiting! 'Tis done! 'tis
|
|
done! Ha, ha! We have overthrown the proud. The hand that smote us
|
|
in the dust. Ours the glory! Ha, ha!- steady! The work is done-
|
|
soho! Rest!"
|
|
|
|
There had never been anything of the kind more simple; seldom
|
|
anything so instantaneous.
|
|
|
|
At the moment chosen for the dash, Messala was moving in a circle
|
|
round the goal. To pass him, Ben-Hur had to cross the track, and
|
|
good strategy required the movement to be in a forward direction; that
|
|
is, on a like circle limited to the least possible increase. The
|
|
thousands on the benches understood it all: they saw the signal given-
|
|
the magnificent response; the four close outside Messala's outer
|
|
wheel; Ben-Hur's inner wheel behind the other's car- all this they
|
|
saw. Then they heard a crash loud enough to send a thrill through
|
|
the Circus, and, quicker than thought, out over the course a spray
|
|
of shining white and yellow flinders flew. Down on its right side
|
|
toppled the bed of the Roman's chariot. There was a rebound as of
|
|
the axle hitting the hard earth; another and another; then the car
|
|
went to pieces; and Messala, entangled in the reins, pitched forward
|
|
headlong.
|
|
|
|
To increase the horror of the sight by making death certain, the
|
|
Sidonian, who had the wall next behind, could not stop or turn out.
|
|
Into the wreck full speed he drove; then over the Roman, and into
|
|
the latter's four, all mad with fear. Presently, out of the turmoil,
|
|
the fighting of horses, the resound of blows, the murky cloud of
|
|
dust and sand, he crawled, in time to see the Corinthian and Byzantine
|
|
go on down the course after Ben-Hur, who had not been an instant
|
|
delayed.
|
|
|
|
The people arose, and leaped upon the benches, and shouted and
|
|
screamed. Those who looked that way caught glimpses of Messala, now
|
|
under the trampling of the fours, now under the abandoned cars. He was
|
|
still; they thought him dead; but far the greater number followed
|
|
Ben-Hur in his career. They had not seen the cunning touch of the
|
|
reins by which, turning a little to the left, he caught Messala's
|
|
wheel with the iron-shod point of his axle, and crushed it; but they
|
|
had seen the transformation of the man, and themselves felt the heat
|
|
and glow of his spirit, the heroic resolution, the maddening energy of
|
|
action with which, by look, word, and gesture, he so suddenly inspired
|
|
his Arabs. And such running! It was rather the long leaping of lions
|
|
in harness; but for the lumbering chariot, it seemed the four were
|
|
flying. When the Byzantine and Corinthian were half-way down the
|
|
course, Ben-Hur turned the first goal.
|
|
|
|
And the race was WON!
|
|
|
|
The consul arose; the people shouted themselves hoarse; the editor
|
|
came down from his seat, and crowned the victors.
|
|
|
|
The fortunate man among the boxers was a low-browed, yellow-haired
|
|
Saxon, of such brutalized face as to attract a second look from
|
|
Ben-Hur, who recognized a teacher with whom he himself had been a
|
|
favourite at Rome. From him the young Jew looked up and beheld
|
|
Simonides and his party on the balcony. They waved their hands to him.
|
|
Esther kept her seat; but Iras arose, and gave him a smile and a
|
|
wave of her fan- favours not the less intoxicating to him because we
|
|
know, O reader, they would have fallen to Messala had he been the
|
|
victor.
|
|
|
|
The procession was then formed, and, midst the shouting of the
|
|
multitude which had had its will, passed out of the Gate of Triumph.
|
|
|
|
And the day was over.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV.
|
|
|
|
THE INVITATION OF IRAS.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR tarried across the river with Ilderim; for at midnight, as
|
|
previously determined, they would take the road which the caravan,
|
|
then thirty hours out, had pursued.
|
|
|
|
The sheik was happy; his offers of gifts had been royal; but Ben-Hur
|
|
had refused everything, insisting that he was satisfied with the
|
|
humiliation of his enemy. The generous dispute was long continued.
|
|
|
|
"Think," the sheik would say, "what thou hast done for me. In
|
|
every black tent down to the Akaba and to the ocean, and across to the
|
|
Euphrates, and beyond to the sea of the Scythians, the renown of my
|
|
Mira and her children will go; and they who sing of them will
|
|
magnify me, and forget that I am in the wane of life; and all the
|
|
spears now masterless will come to me, and my sword-hands multiply
|
|
past counting. Thou dost not know what it is to have sway of the
|
|
desert such as will now be mine. I tell thee it will bring tribute
|
|
incalculable from commerce, and immunity from kings. Ay, by the
|
|
sword of Solomon! doth my messenger seek favour for me of Caesar, that
|
|
will he get. Yet nothing- nothing?"
|
|
|
|
And Ben-Hur would answer-
|
|
|
|
"Nay, sheik, have I not thy hand and heart? Let thy increase of
|
|
power and influence inure to the King who comes. Who shall say it
|
|
was not allowed thee for him? In the work I am going to, I may have
|
|
great need. Saying no now will leave me to ask of thee with better
|
|
grace hereafter."
|
|
|
|
In the midst of a controversy of the kind, two messengers arrived-
|
|
Malluch and one unknown. The former was admitted first.
|
|
|
|
The good fellow did not attempt to hide his joy over the event of
|
|
the day.
|
|
|
|
"But, coming to that with which I am charged," he said, "the
|
|
master Simonides sends me to say that, upon the adjournment of the
|
|
games, some of the Roman faction made haste to protest against payment
|
|
of the money prize."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim started up, crying, in his shrillest tones-
|
|
|
|
"By the splendour of God! the East shall decide whether the race was
|
|
fairly won."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, good sheik," said Malluch, "the editor has paid the money."
|
|
|
|
"Tis well."
|
|
|
|
"When they said Ben-Hur struck Messala's wheel, the editor
|
|
laughed, and reminded them of the blow the Arabs had at the turn of
|
|
the goal."
|
|
|
|
"And what of the Athenian?"
|
|
|
|
"He is dead."
|
|
|
|
"Dead!" cried Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"Dead!" echoed Ilderim. "What fortune these Roman monsters have!
|
|
Messala escaped?"
|
|
|
|
"Escaped- yes, O sheik, with life; but it shall be a burden to
|
|
him. The physicians say he will live, but never walk again."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked silently up to heaven. He had a vision of Messala,
|
|
chair-bound like Simonides, and, like him, going abroad on the
|
|
shoulders of servants. The good man had abode well; but what would
|
|
this one with his pride and ambition?
|
|
|
|
"Simonides bade me say, further," Malluch continued, "Sanballat is
|
|
having trouble. Drusus, and those who signed with him, referred the
|
|
question of paying the five talents they lost to the Consul Maxentius,
|
|
and he has referred it to Caesar. Messala also refused his losses, and
|
|
Sanballat, in imitation of Drusus, went to the consul, where the
|
|
matter is still in advisement. The better Romans say the protestants
|
|
shall not be excused; and all the adverse factions join with them. The
|
|
city rings with the scandal."
|
|
|
|
"What says Simonides?" asked Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"The master laughs, and is well pleased. If the Roman pays, he is
|
|
ruined; if he refuses to pay, he is dishonoured. The imperial policy
|
|
will decide the matter. To offend the East would be a bad beginning
|
|
with the Parthians; to offend Sheik Ilderim would be to antagonize the
|
|
desert, over which lie all Maxentius's lines of operation. Wherefore
|
|
Simonides bade me tell you to have no disquiet; Messala will pay."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim was at once restored to his good-humour.
|
|
|
|
"Let us be off now," he said, rubbing his hands. "The business
|
|
will do well with Simonides. The glory is ours. I will order the
|
|
horses."
|
|
|
|
"Stay," said Malluch. "I left a messenger outside. Will you see
|
|
him?"
|
|
|
|
"By the splendour of God! I forgot him."
|
|
|
|
Malluch retired, and was succeeded by a lad of gentle manners and
|
|
delicate appearance, who knelt upon one knee, and said, winningly,
|
|
"Iras, the daughter of Balthasar, well known to good Sheik Ilderim,
|
|
hath intrusted me with a message to the sheik, who, she saith, will do
|
|
her great favour so he receive her congratulations on account of the
|
|
victory of his four."
|
|
|
|
"The daughter of my friend is kind," said Ilderim, with sparkling
|
|
eyes. "Do thou give her this jewel, in sign of the pleasure I have
|
|
from her message."
|
|
|
|
He took a ring from his finger as he spoke.
|
|
|
|
"I will as thou sayest, O sheik," the lad replied, and continued,
|
|
"The daughter of the Egyptian charged me further. She prays the good
|
|
Sheik Ilderim to send word to the youth Ben-Hur that her father hath
|
|
taken residence for a time in the palace of Idernee, where she will
|
|
receive the youth after the fourth hour to-morrow. And if, with her
|
|
congratulations, Sheik Ilderim will accept her gratitude for this
|
|
other favour done, she will be ever so pleased."
|
|
|
|
The sheik looked at Ben-Hur, whose face was suffused with pleasure.
|
|
|
|
"What will you?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"By your leave, O sheik, I will see the fair Egyptian."
|
|
|
|
Ilderim laughed, and said, "Shall not a man enjoy his youth?"
|
|
|
|
Then Ben-Hur answered the messenger-
|
|
|
|
"Say to her who sent you that I, Ben-Hur, will see her at the palace
|
|
of Idernee, wherever that may be, to-morrow at noon."
|
|
|
|
The lad arose, and, with silent salute, departed.
|
|
|
|
At midnight Ilderim took the road, having arranged to leave a
|
|
horse and a guide for Ben-Hur, who was to follow him.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI.
|
|
|
|
IN THE PALACE OF IDERNEE.
|
|
|
|
GOING next day to fill his appointment with Iras, Ben-Hur turned
|
|
from the Omphalus, which was in the heart of the city, into the
|
|
Colonnade of Herod, and came shortly to the palace of Idernee.
|
|
|
|
From the street he passed first into a vestibule, on the sides of
|
|
which were stairways under cover, leading up to a portico. Winged
|
|
lions sat by the stairs; in the middle there was a gigantic ibis
|
|
spouting water over the floor; the lions, ibis, walls, and floor
|
|
were reminders of the Egyptians: everything, even the balustrading
|
|
of the stairs, was of massive grey stone.
|
|
|
|
Above the vestibule, and covering the landing of the steps, arose
|
|
the portico, a pillared grace, so light, so exquisitely
|
|
proportioned, it was at that period hardly possible of conception
|
|
except by a Greek. Of marble snowy white, its effect was that of a
|
|
lily dropped carelessly upon a great bare rock.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur paused in the shade of the portico to admire its tracery and
|
|
finish, and the purity of its marble; then he passed on into the
|
|
palace. Ample folding-doors stood open to receive him. The passage
|
|
into which he first entered was high, but somewhat narrow; red
|
|
tiling formed the floor, and the walls were tinted to correspond.
|
|
Yet this plainness was a warning of something beautiful to come.
|
|
|
|
He moved on slowly, all his faculties in repose. Presently he
|
|
would be in the presence of Iras; she was waiting for him; waiting
|
|
with song and story and badinage, sparkling, fanciful, capricious-
|
|
with smiles which glorified her glance, and glances which lent
|
|
voluptuous suggestion to her whisper. She had sent for him the evening
|
|
of the boat-ride on the lake in the Orchard of Palms; she had sent for
|
|
him now; and he was going to her in the beautiful palace of Idernee.
|
|
He was happy and dreamful rather than thoughtless.
|
|
|
|
The passage brought him to a closed door, in front of which he
|
|
paused; and, as he did so, the broad leaves began to open of
|
|
themselves, without creak or sound of lock or latch, or touch of
|
|
foot or finger. The singularity was lost in the view that broke upon
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Standing in the shade of the dull passage, and looking through the
|
|
doorway, he beheld the atrium of a Roman house, roomy and rich to a
|
|
fabulous degree of magnificence.
|
|
|
|
How large the chamber was cannot be stated, because of the deceit
|
|
there is in exact proportions; its depth was vista-like, something
|
|
never to be said of an equal interior. When he stopped to make survey,
|
|
and looked down upon the floor, he was standing upon the breast of a
|
|
Leda, represented as caressing a swan; and, looking farther, he saw
|
|
the whole floor was similarly laid in mosaic pictures of
|
|
mythological subjects. And there were stools and chairs, each a
|
|
separate design, and a work of art exquisitely composed, and tables
|
|
much carven, and here and there couches which were invitations of
|
|
themselves. The articles of furniture, which stood out from the walls,
|
|
were duplicated on the floor distinctly as if they floated upon
|
|
unrippled water; even the panelling of the, walls, the figures upon
|
|
them in painting and bas-relief, and the fresco of the ceiling were
|
|
reflected on the floor. The ceiling curved up towards the centre,
|
|
where there was an opening through which the sunlight poured without
|
|
hindrance, and the sky, ever so blue, seemed in hand-reach; the
|
|
impluvium under the opening was guarded by bronzed rails; the gilded
|
|
pillars supporting the roof at the edges of the opening shone like
|
|
flame where the sun struck them, and their reflections beneath
|
|
seemed to stretch to infinite depth. And there were candelabra
|
|
quaint and curious, and statuary and vases; the whole making an
|
|
interior that would have befitted well the house on the Palatine
|
|
Hill which Cicero bought of Crassus, or that other, yet more famous
|
|
for extravagance, the Tusculan villa of Scaurus.
|
|
|
|
Still in his dreamful mood, Ben-Hur sauntered about, charmed by
|
|
all he beheld, and waiting. He did not mind a little delay; when
|
|
Iras was ready, she would come or send a servant. In every
|
|
well-regulated Roman house the atrium was the reception chamber for
|
|
visitors.
|
|
|
|
Twice, thrice, he made the round. As often he stood under the
|
|
opening in the roof, and pondered the sky and its azure depth; then,
|
|
leaning against a pillar, he studied the distribution of light and
|
|
shade, and its effects; here a veil diminishing objects, there a
|
|
brilliance exaggerating others; yet nobody came. Time, or rather the
|
|
passage of time, began at length to impress itself upon him, and he
|
|
wondered why Iras stayed so long. Again he traced out the figures upon
|
|
the floor, but not with the satisfaction that the first inspection
|
|
gave him. He paused often to listen: directly impatience blew a little
|
|
fevered breath upon his spirit; next time it blew stronger and hotter;
|
|
and at last he woke to a consciousness of the silence which held the
|
|
house in thrall, and the thought of it made him uneasy and
|
|
distrustful. Still he put the feeling off with a smile and a
|
|
promise. "Oh, she is giving the last touch to her eyelids, or she is
|
|
arranging a chaplet for me; she will come presently, more beautiful of
|
|
the delay!" He sat down then to admire a candelabrum- a bronze
|
|
plinth on rollers, filigree on the sides and edges; the post at one
|
|
end, and on the end opposite it an altar and a female celebrant; the
|
|
lamp-rests swinging by delicate chains from the extremities of
|
|
drooping palm-branches; altogether a wonder in its way. But the
|
|
silence would obtrude itself: he listened even as he looked at the
|
|
pretty object- he listened, but there was not a sound; the palace
|
|
was still as a tomb.
|
|
|
|
There might be a mistake. No, the messenger had come from the
|
|
Egyptian, and this was the palace of Idernee. Then he remembered how
|
|
mysteriously the door had opened, so soundlessly, so of itself. He
|
|
would see!
|
|
|
|
He went to the same door. Though he walked ever so lightly, the
|
|
sound of his stepping was loud and harsh, and he shrank from it. He
|
|
was getting nervous. The cumbrous Roman lock resisted his first effort
|
|
to raise it; and the second- the blood chilled in his cheek- he
|
|
wrenched with all his might: in vain- the door was not even shaken.
|
|
A sense of danger seized him, and for a moment he stood irresolute.
|
|
|
|
Who in Antioch had the motive to do him harm?
|
|
|
|
Messala!
|
|
|
|
And this palace of Idernee? He had seen Egypt in the vestibule,
|
|
Athens in the snowy portico; but here, in the atrium, was Rome;
|
|
everything about him betrayed Roman ownership. True, the site was on
|
|
the great thoroughfare of the city, a very public place in which to do
|
|
him violence; but for that reason it was more accordant with the
|
|
audacious genius of his enemy. The atrium underwent a change; with all
|
|
its elegance and beauty, it was no more than a trap. Apprehension
|
|
always paints in black.
|
|
|
|
The idea irritated Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
There were many doors on the right and left of the atrium,
|
|
leading, doubtless, to sleeping-chambers; he tried them, but they were
|
|
all firmly fastened. Knocking might bring response. Ashamed to make
|
|
outcry, he betook himself to a couch, and, lying down, tried to
|
|
reflect.
|
|
|
|
All too plainly he was a prisoner; but for what purpose? and by
|
|
whom?
|
|
|
|
If the work were Messala's! He sat up, looked about, and smiled
|
|
defiantly. There were weapons in every table. But birds had been
|
|
starved in golden cages; not so would he- the couches would serve
|
|
him as battering-rams; and he was strong, and there was such
|
|
increase of might in rage and despair!
|
|
|
|
Messala himself could not come. He would never walk again; he was
|
|
a cripple like Simonides; still he could move others. And where were
|
|
there not others to be moved by him? Ben-Hur arose, and tried the
|
|
doors again. Once be called out; the room echoed so that he was
|
|
startled. With such calmness as he could assume, he made up his mind
|
|
to wait a time before attempting to break a way out.
|
|
|
|
In such a situation the mind has its ebb and flow of disquiet,
|
|
with intervals of peace between. At length- how long, though, he could
|
|
not have said- he came to the conclusion that the affair was an
|
|
accident or mistake. The palace certainly belonged to somebody; it
|
|
must have care and keeping; and the keeper would come; the evening
|
|
or the night would bring him. Patience! I
|
|
|
|
So concluding, he waited.
|
|
|
|
Half an hour passed- a much longer period to Ben-Hur- when the
|
|
door which had admitted him opened and closed noiselessly as before,
|
|
and without attracting his attention.
|
|
|
|
The moment of the occurrence he was sitting at the farther end of
|
|
the room. A footstep startled him.
|
|
|
|
"At last she has come!" he thought, with a throb of relief and
|
|
pleasure, and arose.
|
|
|
|
The step was heavy, and accompanied with the gride and clang of
|
|
coarse sandals. The gilded pillars were between him and the door; he
|
|
advanced quietly, and leaned against one of them. Presently he heard
|
|
voices- the voices of men- one of them rough and guttural. What was
|
|
said he could not understand, as the language was not of the East or
|
|
South of Europe.
|
|
|
|
After a general survey of the room, the strangers crossed to their
|
|
left, and were brought into Ben-Hur's view- two men, one very stout,
|
|
both tall, and both in short tunics. They had not the air of masters
|
|
of the house or domestics. Everything they saw appeared wonderful to
|
|
them; everything they stopped to examine they touched. They were
|
|
vulgarians. The atrium seemed profaned by their presence. At the
|
|
same time, their leisurely manner and the assurance with which they
|
|
proceeded pointed to some right or business; if business, with whom?
|
|
|
|
With much jargon they sauntered this way and that, all the time
|
|
gradually approaching the pillar by which Ben-Hur was standing. Off
|
|
a little way, where a slanted gleam of the sun fell with a glare
|
|
upon the mosaic of the floor, there was a statue which attracted their
|
|
notice. In examining it, they stopped in the light.
|
|
|
|
The mystery surrounding his own presence in the palace tended, as we
|
|
have seen, to make Ben-Hur nervous; so now, when in the tall stout
|
|
stranger he recognized the Northman whom he had known in Rome, and
|
|
seen crowned only the day before in the Circus as the winning
|
|
pugilist; when he saw the man's face, scarred with the wounds of
|
|
many battles, and imbruted by ferocious passions; when he surveyed the
|
|
fellow's naked limbs, very marvels of exercise and training, and his
|
|
shoulders of Herculean breadth, a thought of personal danger started a
|
|
chill along every vein. A sure instinct warned him that the
|
|
opportunity for murder was too perfect to have come by chance; and
|
|
here now were the myrmidons, and their business was with him. He
|
|
turned an anxious eye upon the Northman's comrade- young,
|
|
black-eyed, black-haired, and altogether Jewish in appearance; he
|
|
observed, also, that both the men were in costume exactly such as
|
|
professionals of their class were in the habit of wearing in the
|
|
arena. Putting the several circumstances together, Ben-Hur could not
|
|
be longer in doubt: he had been lured into the palace with design. Out
|
|
of reach of aid, in this splendid privacy, he was to die!
|
|
|
|
At a loss what to do, he gazed from man to man, while there was
|
|
enacted within him that miracle of mind by which life is passed before
|
|
us in awful detail, to be looked at by ourselves as if it were
|
|
another's; and from the evolvement, from a hidden depth, cast up as it
|
|
were, by a hidden hand, he was given to see that he had entered upon a
|
|
new life, different from the old one in this: whereas, in that, he had
|
|
been the victim of violences done to him, henceforth he was to be
|
|
the aggressor. Only yesterday he had found his first victim! To the
|
|
purely Christian nature the presentation would have brought the
|
|
weakness of remorse. Not so with Ben-Hur; his spirit had its
|
|
emotions from the teachings of the first law-giver, not the last and
|
|
greatest one. He had dealt punishment, not wrong, to Messala. By
|
|
permission of the Lord, he had triumphed; and he derived faith from
|
|
the circumstance- faith, the source of all rational strength,
|
|
especially strength in peril.
|
|
|
|
Nor did the influence stop there. The new life was made appear to
|
|
him a mission just begun, and holy as the King to come was holy, and
|
|
certain as the coming of the King was certain- a mission in which
|
|
force was lawful if only because it was unavoidable. Should he, on the
|
|
very threshold of such an errand, be afraid?
|
|
|
|
He undid the sash around his waist, and, baring his head and casting
|
|
off his white Jewish gown, stood forth in an under-tunic not unlike
|
|
those of the enemy, and was ready, body and mind. Folding his arms, he
|
|
placed his back against the pillar, and calmly waited.
|
|
|
|
The examination of the statue was brief. Directly the Northman
|
|
turned, and said something in the unknown tongue; then both looked
|
|
at Ben-Hur. A few more words, and they advanced towards him.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you?" he asked, in Latin.
|
|
|
|
The Northman fetched a smile which did not relieve his face of its
|
|
brutalism, and answered-
|
|
|
|
"Barbarians."
|
|
|
|
"This is the palace of Idernee. Whom seek you? Stand and answer."
|
|
|
|
The words were spoken with earnestness. The strangers stopped, and
|
|
in his turn the Northman asked, "Who are you?"
|
|
|
|
"A Roman."
|
|
|
|
The giant laid his head back upon his shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha, ha! I have heard how a god once came from a cow licking a
|
|
salted stone; but not even a god can make a Roman of a Jew."
|
|
|
|
The laugh over, he spoke to his companion again, and they moved
|
|
nearer.
|
|
|
|
"Hold!" said Ben-Hur, quitting the pillar. "One word."
|
|
|
|
They stopped again.
|
|
|
|
"A word!" replied the Saxon, folding his immense arms across his
|
|
breast, and relaxing the menace beginning to blacken his face. "A
|
|
word! Speak."
|
|
|
|
"You are Thord the Northman."
|
|
|
|
The giant opened his blue eyes.
|
|
|
|
"You were lanista in Rome."
|
|
|
|
Thord nodded.
|
|
|
|
"I was your scholar."
|
|
|
|
"No," said Thord, shaking his head. "By the beard of Irmin, I had
|
|
never a Jew to make a fighting-man of."
|
|
|
|
"But I will prove my saying."
|
|
|
|
"How?"
|
|
|
|
"You came here to kill me."
|
|
|
|
"That is true."
|
|
|
|
"Then let this man fight me singly, and I will make the proof on his
|
|
body."
|
|
|
|
A gleam of humour shone in the Northman's face. He spoke to his
|
|
companion, who made answer; then he replied with the naivete of a
|
|
diverted child-
|
|
|
|
"Wait till I say begin."
|
|
|
|
By repeated touches of his foot, he pushed a couch out on the floor,
|
|
and proceeded leisurely to stretch his burly form upon it; when
|
|
perfectly at ease, he said, simply, "Now begin."
|
|
|
|
Without ado, Ben-Hur walked to his antagonist.
|
|
|
|
"Defend thyself," he said.
|
|
|
|
The man, nothing loath, put up his hands.
|
|
|
|
As the two thus confronted each other in approved position, there
|
|
was no discernible inequality between them; on the contrary, they were
|
|
as like as brothers. To the stranger's confident smile Ben-Hur opposed
|
|
an earnestness which, had his skill been known, would have been
|
|
accepted fair warning of danger. Both knew the combat was to be
|
|
mortal.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur feinted with his right hand. The stranger warded, slightly
|
|
advancing his left arm! Ere he could return to guard, Ben-Hur caught
|
|
him by the wrist in a grip which years at the oar had made terrible as
|
|
a vise. The surprise was complete, and no time given. To throw himself
|
|
forward; to push the arm across the man's throat and over his right
|
|
shoulder, and turn him left side front; to strike surely with the
|
|
ready left hand; to strike the bare neck under the ear- were but petty
|
|
divisions of the same act. No need of a second blow. The myrmidon fell
|
|
heavily, and without a cry, and lay still.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur turned to Thord.
|
|
|
|
"Ha! What! By the beard of Irmin!" the latter cried, in
|
|
astonishment, rising to a sitting posture. Then he laughed.
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha, ha! I could not have done it better myself."
|
|
|
|
He viewed Ben-Hur coolly from head to foot, and, rising, faced him
|
|
with undisguised admiration.
|
|
|
|
"It was my trick- the trick I have practised for ten years in the
|
|
schools of Rome. You are not a Jew. Who are you?"
|
|
|
|
"You knew Arrius the duumvir."
|
|
|
|
"Quintus Arrius? Yes, he was my patron."
|
|
|
|
"He had a son."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said Thord, his battered features lighting dully, "I knew the
|
|
boy; he would have made a king gladiator. Caesar offered him his
|
|
patronage. I taught him the very trick you played on this one here-
|
|
a trick impossible except to a hand and arm like mine. It has won me
|
|
many a crown."
|
|
|
|
"I am that son of Arrius."
|
|
|
|
Thord drew nearer, and viewed him carefully; then his eyes
|
|
brightened with genuine pleasure, and, laughing, he held out his hand.
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha, ha! He told me I would find a Jew here- a Jew- a dog of a
|
|
Jew- killing whom was serving the gods."
|
|
|
|
"Who told you so?" asked Ben-Hur, taking the hand.
|
|
|
|
"He- Messala- ha, ha, ha!"
|
|
|
|
"When, Thord?"
|
|
|
|
"Last night."
|
|
|
|
"I thought he was hurt."
|
|
|
|
"He will never walk again. On his bed he told me between groans."
|
|
|
|
A very vivid portrayal of hate in a few words; and Ben-Hur saw
|
|
that the Roman, if he lived, would still be capable and dangerous, and
|
|
follow him unrelentingly. Revenge remained to sweeten the ruined life;
|
|
therefore the clinging to fortune lost in the wager with Sanballat.
|
|
Ben-Hur ran the ground over, with a distinct foresight of the many
|
|
ways in which it would be possible for his enemy to interfere with him
|
|
in the work he had undertaken for the King who was coming. Why not
|
|
he resort to the Roman's methods? The man hired to kill him could be
|
|
hired to strike back. It was in his power to offer higher wages. The
|
|
temptation was strong; and, half yielding, he chanced to look down
|
|
at his late antagonist lying still, with white upturned face, so
|
|
like himself. A light came to him, and he asked, "Thord, what was
|
|
Messala to give you for killing me?"
|
|
|
|
"A thousand sestertii."
|
|
|
|
"You shall have them yet; and so you do now what I tell you, I
|
|
will add three thousand more to the sum."
|
|
|
|
The giant reflected aloud-
|
|
|
|
"I won five thousand yesterday; from the Roman one- six. Give me
|
|
four, good Arrius- four more- and I will stand firm for you, though
|
|
old Thor, my namesake, strike me with his hammer. Make it four, and
|
|
I will kill the lying patrician, if you say so. I have only to cover
|
|
his mouth with my hand- thus."
|
|
|
|
He illustrated the process by clapping his hand over his own mouth.
|
|
|
|
"I see," said Ben-Hur; "ten thousand sestertii is a fortune. It will
|
|
enable you to return to Rome, and open a wine-shop near the Great
|
|
Circus, and live as becomes the first of the lanistae."
|
|
|
|
The very scars on the giant's face glowed afresh with the pleasure
|
|
the picture gave him.
|
|
|
|
"I will make it four thousand," Ben-Hur continued; "and in what
|
|
you shall do for the money there will be no blood on your hands,
|
|
Thord. Hear me now. Did not your friend here look like me?"
|
|
|
|
"I would have said he was an apple from the same tree."
|
|
|
|
"Well, if I put on his tunic, and dress him in these clothes of
|
|
mine, and you and I go away together, leaving him here, can you not
|
|
get your sestertii from Messala all the same? You have only to make
|
|
him believe it me that is dead."
|
|
|
|
Thord laughed till the tears ran into his mouth.
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha, ha! Ten thousand sestertii were never won so easily. And
|
|
a wine-shop by the Great Circus!- all for a lie without blood in it!
|
|
Ha, ha, ha! Give me thy hand, O son of Arrius. Get on now, and- ha,
|
|
ha, ha!- if ever you come to Rome, fail not to ask for the wine-shop
|
|
of Thord the Northman. By the beard of Irmin, I will give you the
|
|
best, though I borrow it from Caesar!"
|
|
|
|
They shook hands again; after which the exchange of clothes was
|
|
effected. It was arranged then that a messenger should go at night
|
|
to Thord's lodging-place with the four thousand sestertii. When they
|
|
were done, the giant knocked at the front door; it opened to him; and,
|
|
passing out of the atrium, he led Ben-Hur into a room adjoining, where
|
|
the latter completed his attire from the coarse garments of the dead
|
|
pugilist. They separated directly in the Omphalus.
|
|
|
|
"Fail not, O son of Arrius, fail not the wine-shop near the Great
|
|
Circus! Ha, ha, ha! By the beard of Irmin, there never was fortune
|
|
gained so cheap. The gods keep you."
|
|
|
|
Upon leaving the atrium, Ben-Hur gave a last look at the myrmidon as
|
|
he lay in the Jewish vestments, and was satisfied. The likeness was
|
|
striking. If Thord kept faith, the cheat was a secret to endure
|
|
forever.
|
|
|
|
* * * * *
|
|
|
|
At night, in the house of Simonides, Ben-Hur told the good man all
|
|
that had taken place in the palace of Idernee; and it was agreed that,
|
|
after a few days, public inquiry should be set afloat for the
|
|
discovery of the whereabouts of the son of Arrius. Eventually the
|
|
matter was to be carried boldly to Maxentius; then, if the mystery
|
|
came not out, it was concluded that Messala and Gratus would be at
|
|
rest and happy, and Ben-Hur free to betake himself to Jerusalem, to
|
|
make search for his lost people.
|
|
|
|
At the leave-taking, Simonides sat in his chair out on the terrace
|
|
overlooking the river, and gave his farewell and the peace of the Lord
|
|
with the impressment of a father. Esther went with the young man to
|
|
the head of the steps.
|
|
|
|
"If I find my mother, Esther, thou shalt go to her at Jerusalem, and
|
|
be a sister to Tirzah."
|
|
|
|
And with the words he kissed her.
|
|
|
|
Was it only a kiss of peace?
|
|
|
|
He crossed the river next to the late quarters of Ilderim, where
|
|
he found the Arab who was to serve him as guide. The horses were
|
|
brought out.
|
|
|
|
"This one is thine," said the Arab.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked, and, lo! it was Aldebaran, the swiftest and
|
|
brightest of the sons of Mira, and, next to Sirius, the beloved of the
|
|
sheik; and he knew the old man's heart came to him along with the
|
|
gift.
|
|
|
|
The corpse in the atrium was taken up and buried by night; and, as
|
|
part of Messala's plan, a courier was sent off to Gratus to make him
|
|
at rest by the announcement of Ben-Hur's death- this time past
|
|
question.
|
|
|
|
Ere long a wine-shop was opened near the Circus Maximus, with
|
|
inscription over the door-
|
|
|
|
THORD THE NORTHMAN.
|
|
|
|
BOOK SIXTH.
|
|
|
|
"Is that a Death? and are there two?
|
|
|
|
Is Death that woman's mate?
|
|
|
|
Her skin was as white as leprosy,
|
|
|
|
The Nightmare Life-in-Death was she,
|
|
|
|
Who thicks man's blood with cold."
|
|
|
|
-COLERIDGE.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
THE TOWER OF ANTONIA- CELL No. VI.
|
|
|
|
OUR story moves forward now thirty days from the night Ben-Hur
|
|
left Antioch to go out with Sheik Ilderim into the desert.
|
|
|
|
A great change has befallen- great at least as respects the fortunes
|
|
of our hero. Valerius Gratus has been succeeded by Pontius Pilate!
|
|
|
|
The removal, it may be remarked, cost Simonides exactly five talents
|
|
Roman money in hand paid to Sejanus, who was then in height of power
|
|
as imperial favourite; the object being to help Ben-Hur, by
|
|
lessening his exposure while in and about Jerusalem attempting
|
|
discovery of his people. To such pious use the faithful servant put
|
|
the winnings from Drusus and his associates; all of whom, having
|
|
paid their wagers, became at once and naturally the enemies of
|
|
Messala, whose repudiation was yet an unsettled question in Rome.
|
|
|
|
Brief as the time was, already the Jews knew the change of rulers
|
|
was not for the better.
|
|
|
|
The cohorts sent to relieve the garrison of Antonia made their entry
|
|
into the city by night; next morning the first sight that greeted
|
|
the people resident in the neighbourhood was the walls of the old
|
|
Tower decorated with military ensigns, which unfortunately consisted
|
|
of busts of the emperor mixed with eagles and globes. A multitude,
|
|
in passion, marched to Caesarea, where Pilate was lingering, and
|
|
implored him to remove the detested images. Five days and nights
|
|
they beset his palace gates; at last he appointed a meeting with
|
|
them in the Circus. When they were assembled, he encircled them with
|
|
soldiers; instead of resisting, they offered him their lives, and
|
|
conquered. He recalled the images and ensigns to Caesarea, where
|
|
Gratus, with more consideration, had kept such abominations housed
|
|
during the eleven years of his reign.
|
|
|
|
The worst of men do once in a while vary their wickednesses by
|
|
good acts; so with Pilate. He ordered an inspection of all the prisons
|
|
in Judea, and a return of the names of the persons in custody, with
|
|
a statement of the crimes for which they had been committed.
|
|
Doubtless, the motive was the one so common with officials just
|
|
installed- dread of entailed responsibility; the people, however, in
|
|
thought of the good which might come of the measure, gave him
|
|
credit, and, for a period, were comforted. The revelations were
|
|
astonishing. Hundreds of persons were released against whom there were
|
|
no accusations; many others came to light who had long been
|
|
accounted dead; yet more amazing, there was opening of dungeons not
|
|
merely unknown at the time by the people, but actually forgotten by
|
|
the prison authorities. With one instance of the latter kind we have
|
|
now to deal; and, strange to say, it occurred in Jerusalem.
|
|
|
|
The Tower of Antonia, which will be remembered as occupying
|
|
two-thirds of the sacred area on Mount Moriah, was originally a castle
|
|
built by the Macedonians. Afterwards, John Hyrcanus erected the castle
|
|
into a fortress for the defence of the Temple, and in his day it was
|
|
considered impregnable to assault; but when Herod came with his bolder
|
|
genius, he strengthened its walls and extended them, leaving a vast
|
|
pile which included every appurtenance necessary for the stronghold he
|
|
intended it to be forever; such as offices, barracks, armories,
|
|
magazines, cisterns, and last, though not least, prisons of all
|
|
grades. He levelled the solid rock, and tapped it with deep
|
|
excavations, and built over them; connecting the whole great mass with
|
|
the Temple by a beautiful colonnade, from the roof of which one
|
|
could look down over the courts of the sacred structure. In such
|
|
condition the Tower fell at last out of his hands into those of the
|
|
Romans, who were quick to see its strength and advantages, and convert
|
|
it to uses becoming such masters. All through the administration of
|
|
Gratus it had been a garrisoned citadel and underground prison
|
|
terrible to revolutionists. Woe when the cohorts poured from its gates
|
|
to suppress disorder! Woe not less when a Jew passed the same gates
|
|
going in under arrest!
|
|
|
|
With this explanation, we hasten to our story.
|
|
|
|
* * * * *
|
|
|
|
The order of the new procurator requiring a report of the persons in
|
|
custody was received at the Tower of Antonia, and promptly executed;
|
|
and two days have gone since the last unfortunate was brought up for
|
|
examination. The tabulated statement, ready for forwarding, lies on
|
|
the table of the tribune in command; in five minutes more it will be
|
|
on the way to Pilate, sojourning in the palace up on Mount Zion.
|
|
|
|
The tribune's office is spacious and cool, and furnished in a
|
|
style suitable to the dignity of the commandant of a post in every
|
|
respect so important. Looking in upon him about the seventh hour of
|
|
the day, the officer appears weary and impatient; when the report is
|
|
despatched, he will to the roof of the colonnade for air and exercise,
|
|
and the amusement to be had watching the Jews over in the courts of
|
|
the Temple. His subordinates and clerks share his impatience.
|
|
|
|
In the spell of waiting a man appeared in a doorway leading to an
|
|
adjoining apartment. He rattled a bunch of keys, each heavy as a
|
|
hammer, and at once attracted the chief's attention.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, Gesius! come in," the tribune said.
|
|
|
|
As the new-comer approached the table behind which the chief sat
|
|
in an easy-chair, everybody present looked at him, and, observing a
|
|
certain expression of alarm and mortification on his face, became
|
|
silent that they might hear what he had to say.
|
|
|
|
"O tribune!" he began, bending low, "I fear to tell what now I bring
|
|
you."
|
|
|
|
"Another mistake- ha, Gesius?"
|
|
|
|
"If I could persuade myself it is but a mistake, I would not be
|
|
afraid."
|
|
|
|
"A crime then- or, worse, a breach of duty. Thou mayst laugh at
|
|
Caesar, or curse the gods, and live; but if the offence be to the
|
|
eagles- ah, thou knowest, Gesius- go on!"
|
|
|
|
"It is now about eight years since Valerius Gratus selected me to be
|
|
keeper of prisoners here in the Tower," said the man, deliberately. "I
|
|
remember the morning I entered upon the duties of my office. There had
|
|
been a riot the day before, and fighting in the streets. We slew
|
|
many Jews, and suffered on our side. The affair came, it was said,
|
|
of an attempt to assassinate Gratus, who had been knocked from his
|
|
horse by a tile thrown from a roof. I found him sitting where you
|
|
now sit, O tribune, his head swathed in bandages. He told me of my
|
|
selection, and gave me these keys, numbered to correspond with the
|
|
numbers of the cells; they were the badges of my office, he said,
|
|
and not to be parted with. There was a roll of parchment on the table.
|
|
Calling me to him, he opened the roll. 'Here are maps of the cells,'
|
|
said he. There were three of them. 'This one,' he went on, 'shows
|
|
the arrangement of the upper floor; this second one gives you the
|
|
second floor; and this last is of the lower floor. I give them to
|
|
you in trust.' I took them from his hand, and he said, further, 'Now
|
|
you have the keys and the maps; go immediately, and acquaint
|
|
yourself with the whole arrangement; visit each cell, and see to its
|
|
condition. When anything is needed for the security of a prisoner,
|
|
order it according to your judgment, for you are the master under
|
|
me, and no other."
|
|
|
|
"I saluted him, and turned to go away; he called me back. 'Ah, I
|
|
forgot,' he said. 'Give me the map of the third floor.' I gave it to
|
|
him, and he spread it upon the table. 'Here, Gesius,' he said, 'see
|
|
this cell.' He laid his finger on the one numbered V. 'There are three
|
|
men confined in that cell, desperate characters, who by some means got
|
|
hold of a state secret, and suffer for their curiosity, which'- he
|
|
looked at me severely- 'in such matters is worse than a crime.
|
|
Accordingly, they are blind and tongueless, and are placed there for
|
|
life. They shall have nothing but food and drink, to be given them
|
|
through a hole, which you will find in the wall covered by a slide. Do
|
|
you hear, Gesius?' I made him answer. 'It is well,' he continued. 'One
|
|
thing more which you shall not forget, or'- he looked at me
|
|
threateningly- 'The door of their cell- cell number V. on the same
|
|
floor- this one, Gesius'- he put his finger on the particular cell
|
|
to impress my memory- 'shall never be opened for any purpose,
|
|
neither to let one in nor out, not even yourself.' 'But if they
|
|
die?' I asked. 'If they die,' he said, 'the cell shall be their
|
|
tomb. They were put there to die, and be lost. The cell is leprous. Do
|
|
you understand?' With that he let me go."
|
|
|
|
Gesius stopped, and from the breast of his tunic drew three
|
|
parchments, all much yellowed by time and use; selecting one of
|
|
them, he spread it upon the table before the tribune, saying,
|
|
simply, "This is the lower floor."
|
|
|
|
The whole company looked at-
|
|
|
|
THE MAP
|
|
|
|
| PASSAGE |
|
|
|
|
| |
|
|
|
|
|--||----||------||-----||----||--|
|
|
|
|
| | | | | |
|
|
|
|
| V | IV | III | II | I |
|
|
|
|
"This is exactly, O tribune, as I had it from Gratus. See, there
|
|
is cell number V.," said Gesius.
|
|
|
|
"I see," the tribune replied. "Go on now. The cell was leprous, he
|
|
said."
|
|
|
|
"I would like to ask you a question," remarked the keeper, modestly.
|
|
|
|
The tribune assented.
|
|
|
|
"Had I not a right, under the circumstances, to believe the map a
|
|
true one?"
|
|
|
|
"What else couldst thou?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, it is not a true one."
|
|
|
|
The chief looked up surprised.
|
|
|
|
"It is not a true one," the keeper repeated. "It shows but five
|
|
cells upon that floor, while there are six."
|
|
|
|
"Six sayest thou?"
|
|
|
|
"I will show you the floor as it is- or as I believe it to be."
|
|
|
|
Upon a page of his tablets, Gesius drew the following diagram, and
|
|
gave it to the tribune:-
|
|
|
|
| |
|
|
|
|
|--||-----||-----||-----||----||--|
|
|
|
|
| | | | | |
|
|
|
|
| V | IV | III | II | I |
|
|
|
|
|--||-----------------------------|
|
|
|
|
| VI |
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast done well," said the tribune, examining the drawing,
|
|
and thinking the narrative at an end. "I will have the map
|
|
corrected, or, better, I will have a new one made, and given thee.
|
|
Come for it in the morning."
|
|
|
|
So saying, he arose.
|
|
|
|
"But hear me further, O tribune."
|
|
|
|
"To-morrow, Gesius, to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"That which I have yet to tell will not wait."
|
|
|
|
The tribune good-naturedly resumed his chair.
|
|
|
|
"I will hurry," said the keeper, humbly, "only let me ask another
|
|
question. Had I not a right to believe Gratus in what he further
|
|
told me as to the prisoners in cell number V.?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, it was thy duty to believe there were three prisoners in the
|
|
cell- prisoners of state- blind and without tongues."
|
|
|
|
"Well," said the keeper, "that was not true either."
|
|
|
|
"No!" said the tribune, with returning interest.
|
|
|
|
"Hear, and judge for yourself, O tribune. As required I visited
|
|
all the cells, beginning with those on the first floor, and ending
|
|
with those on the lower. The order that the door of number V. should
|
|
not be opened had been respected; through all the eight years food and
|
|
drink for three men had been passed through a hole in the wall. I went
|
|
to the door yesterday, curious to see the wretches who, against all
|
|
expectation, had lived so long. The locks refused the key. We pulled a
|
|
little, and the door fell down, rusted from its hinges. Going in, I
|
|
found but one man, old, blind, tongueless, and naked. His hair dropped
|
|
in stiffen'd mats below his waist. His skin was like the parchment
|
|
there. He held his hands out, and the finger-nails curled and
|
|
twisted like the claws of a bird. I asked him where his companions
|
|
were. He shook his head in denial. Thinking to find the others, we
|
|
searched the cell. The floor was dry; so were the walls. If three
|
|
men had been shut in there, and two of them had died, at least their
|
|
bones would have endured."
|
|
|
|
"Wherefore thou thinkest- "
|
|
|
|
"I think, O tribune, there has been but one prisoner there in the
|
|
eight years."
|
|
|
|
The chief regarded the keeper sharply, and said, "Have a care;
|
|
thou art more than saying Valerius lied."
|
|
|
|
Gesius bowed, but said, "He might have been mistaken."
|
|
|
|
"No, he was right," said the tribune, warmly. "By thine own
|
|
statement he was right. Didst thou not say but now that for eight
|
|
years food and drink had been furnished three men?"
|
|
|
|
The bystanders approved the shrewdness of their chief; yet Gesius
|
|
did not seem discomfited.
|
|
|
|
"You have but half the story, O tribune. When you have it all, you
|
|
will agree with me. You know what I did with the man: that I sent
|
|
him to the bath, and had him shorn and clothed, and then took him to
|
|
the gate of the Tower, and bade him go free. I washed my hands of him.
|
|
To-day he came back, and was brought to me. By signs and tears he at
|
|
last made me understand he wished to return to his cell, and I so
|
|
ordered. As they were leading him off, he broke away and kissed my
|
|
feet, and, by piteous dumb imploration, insisted I should go with him;
|
|
and I went. The mystery of the three men stayed in my mind. I was
|
|
not satisfied about it. Now I am glad I yielded to his entreaty."
|
|
|
|
The whole company at this point became very still.
|
|
|
|
"When we were in the cell again, and the prisoner knew it, he caught
|
|
my hand eagerly, and led me to a hole like that through which we
|
|
were accustomed to pass him his food. Though large enough to push your
|
|
helmet through, it escaped me yesterday. Still holding my hand, he put
|
|
his face to the hole and gave a beastlike cry. A sound came faintly
|
|
back. I was astonished, and drew him away, and called out, 'Ho, here!'
|
|
At first there was no answer. I called again, and received back
|
|
these words, 'Be thou praised, O Lord!' Yet more astonishing, O
|
|
tribune, the voice was a woman's. And I asked 'Who are you?' and had
|
|
reply 'A woman of Israel, entombed here with her daughter. Help us
|
|
quickly, or we die.' I told them to be of cheer, and hurried here to
|
|
know your will."
|
|
|
|
The tribune arose hastily.
|
|
|
|
"Thou wert right, Gesius," he said, "and I see now. The map was a
|
|
lie, and so was the tale of the three men. There have been better
|
|
Romans than Valerius Gratus."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said the keeper. "I gleaned from the prisoner that he had
|
|
regularly given the women of the food and drink he had received."
|
|
|
|
"It is accounted for," replied the tribune; and observing the
|
|
countenances of his friends, and reflecting how well it would be to
|
|
have witnesses, he added, "Let us rescue the women. Come all."
|
|
|
|
Gesius was pleased.
|
|
|
|
"We will have to pierce the wall," he said. "I found where a door
|
|
had been, but it was filled solidly with stones and mortar."
|
|
|
|
The tribune stayed to say to a clerk, "Send workmen after me with
|
|
tools. Make haste; but hold the report, for I see it will have to be
|
|
corrected."
|
|
|
|
In a short time they were gone.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
THE LEPERS.
|
|
|
|
"A WOMAN of Israel, entombed here with her daughter. Help us
|
|
quickly, or we die."
|
|
|
|
Such was the reply Gesius, the keeper, had from the cell which
|
|
appears on his amended map as VI. The reader, when he observed the
|
|
answer, knew who the unfortunates were, and, doubtless, said to
|
|
himself, "At last the mother of Ben-Hur, and Tirzah, his sister!"
|
|
|
|
And so it was.
|
|
|
|
The morning of their seizure, eight years before, they had been
|
|
carried to the Tower, where Gratus proposed to put them out of the
|
|
way. He had chosen the Tower for the purpose as more immediately in
|
|
his own keeping, and cell VI. because, first, it could be better
|
|
lost than any other; and, secondly, it was infected with leprosy;
|
|
for these prisoners were not merely to be put in a safe place, but
|
|
in a place to die. They were, accordingly, taken down by slaves in the
|
|
night-time when there were no witnesses of the deed; then, in
|
|
completion of the savage task, the same slaves walled up the door,
|
|
after which they were themselves separated, and sent away never to
|
|
be heard of more. To save accusation, and, in the event of
|
|
discovery, to leave himself such justification as might be allowed
|
|
in a distinction between the infliction of a punishment and the
|
|
commission of a double murder, Gratus preferred sinking his victims
|
|
where natural death was certain, though slow. That they might linger
|
|
along, he selected a convict who had been made blind and tongueless,
|
|
and sank him in the only connecting cell, there to serve them with
|
|
food and drink. Under no circumstances could the poor wretch tell
|
|
the tale or identify either the prisoners or their doomsman. So,
|
|
with a cunning partly due to Messala, the Roman, under colour of
|
|
punishing a brood of assassins, smoothed a path to confiscation of the
|
|
estate of the Hurs, of which no portion ever reached the imperial
|
|
coffers.
|
|
|
|
As the last step in the scheme, Gratus summarily removed the old
|
|
keeper of the prisons, not because he knew what had been done- for
|
|
he did not- but because, knowing the underground floors as he did,
|
|
it would be next to impossible to keep the transaction from him. Then,
|
|
with masterly ingenuity, the procurator had new maps drawn for
|
|
delivery to a new keeper, with the omission, as we have seen, of
|
|
cell VI. The instructions given the latter, taken with the omission on
|
|
the map, accomplished the design- the cell and its unhappy tenants
|
|
were all alike lost.
|
|
|
|
What may be thought of the life of the mother and daughter during
|
|
the eight years must have relation to their culture and previous
|
|
habits. Conditions are pleasant or grievous to us according to our
|
|
sensibilities. It is not extreme to say, if there was a sudden exit of
|
|
all men from the world, heaven, as prefigured in the Christian idea,
|
|
would not be a heaven to the majority; on the other hand, neither
|
|
would all suffer equally in the so-called Tophet. Cultivation has
|
|
its balances. As the mind is made intelligent, the capacity of the
|
|
soul for pure enjoyment is proportionally increased. Well,
|
|
therefore, if it be saved! If lost, however, alas that it ever had
|
|
cultivation! its capacity for enjoyment in the one case is the measure
|
|
of its capacity to suffer in the other. Wherefore repentance must be
|
|
something more than mere remorse for sins; it comprehends a change
|
|
of nature befitting heaven.
|
|
|
|
We repeat, to form an adequate idea of the suffering endured by
|
|
the mother of Ben-Hur, the reader must think of her spirit and its
|
|
sensibilities as much as, if not more than, of the conditions of the
|
|
immurement; the question being, not what the conditions were, but
|
|
how she was affected by them. And now we may be permitted to say it
|
|
was in anticipation of this thought that the scene in the summer-house
|
|
on the roof of the family palace was given so fully in the beginning
|
|
of the Second Book of our story. So, too, to be helpful when the
|
|
inquiry should come up, we ventured the elaborate description of the
|
|
palace of the Hurs.
|
|
|
|
In other words, let the serene, happy, luxurious life in the
|
|
princely house be recalled and contrasted with this existence in the
|
|
lower dungeon of the Tower of Antonia; then if the reader, in his
|
|
effort to realize the misery of the woman, persists in mere
|
|
reference to conditions physical, he cannot go amiss: as he is a lover
|
|
of his kind, tender of heart, he will be melted with much sympathy.
|
|
But will he go further; will he more than sympathize with her; will he
|
|
share her agony of mind and spirit; will he at least try to measure
|
|
it- let him recall her as she discoursed to her son of God, and
|
|
nations, and heroes; one moment a philosopher, the next a teacher, and
|
|
all the time a mother.
|
|
|
|
Would you hurt a man keenest, strike at his self-love; would you
|
|
hurt a woman worst, aim at her affections.
|
|
|
|
With quickened remembrance of these unfortunates- remembrance of
|
|
them as they were- let us go down and see them as they are.
|
|
|
|
The cell VI. was in form as Gesius drew it on his map. Of its
|
|
dimensions but little idea can be had; enough that it was a roomy,
|
|
roughened interior, with ledged and broken walls and floors.
|
|
|
|
In the beginning, the site of the Macedonian Castle was separated
|
|
from the site of the Temple by a narrow but deep cliff somewhat in
|
|
shape of a wedge. The workmen, wishing to hew out a series of
|
|
chambers, made their entry in the north face of the cleft, and
|
|
worked in, leaving a ceiling of the natural stone; delving farther,
|
|
they executed the cells V., IV., III., II., I., with no connection
|
|
with number VI. except through number V. In like manner, they
|
|
constructed the passage and stairs to the floor above. The process
|
|
of the work was precisely that resorted to in carving out the Tombs of
|
|
the Kings, yet to be seen a short distance north of Jerusalem; only
|
|
when the cutting was done, cell VI. was enclosed on its outer side
|
|
by a wall of prodigious stones, in which, for ventilation, narrow
|
|
apertures were left bevelled like modern portholes. Herod, when he
|
|
took hold of the Temple and Tower, put a facing yet more massive
|
|
upon this outer wall, and shut up all the apertures but one, which yet
|
|
admitted a little vitalizing air, and a ray of light not nearly strong
|
|
enough to redeem the room from darkness.
|
|
|
|
Such was cell VI.
|
|
|
|
Startle not now!
|
|
|
|
The description of the blind and tongueless wretch just liberated
|
|
from cell V. may be accepted to break the horror of what is coming.
|
|
|
|
The two women are grouped close by the aperture; one is seated,
|
|
the other is half reclining against her; there is nothing between them
|
|
and the bare rock. The light, slanting upwards, strikes them with
|
|
ghastly effect, and we cannot avoid seeing they are without vesture or
|
|
covering. At the same time we are helped to the knowledge that love is
|
|
there yet, for the two are in each other's arms. Riches take wings,
|
|
comforts vanish, hope withers away, but love stays with us. Love is
|
|
God.
|
|
|
|
Where the two are thus grouped the stony floor is polished
|
|
shining-smooth. Who shall say how much of the eight years they have
|
|
spent in that space there in front of the aperture, nursing their hope
|
|
of rescue by that timid yet friendly ray of light? When the brightness
|
|
came creeping in, they knew it was dawn; when it began to fade, they
|
|
knew the world was hushing for the night, which could not be
|
|
anywhere so long and utterly dark as with them. The world! Through
|
|
that crevice, as if it were broad and high as a king's gate, they went
|
|
to the world in thought, and passed the weary time going up and down
|
|
as spirits go, looking and asking, the one for her son, the other
|
|
for her brother. On the seas they sought him, and on the islands of
|
|
the seas; to-day he was in this city, to-morrow in that other; and
|
|
everywhere, and at all times, he was a flitting sojourner; for, as
|
|
they lived waiting for him, he lived looking for them. How often their
|
|
thoughts passed each other in the endless search, his coming, theirs
|
|
going! It was such sweet flattery for them to say to each other,
|
|
"While he lives, we shall not be forgotten; as long as he remembers
|
|
us, there is hope!" The strength one can eke from little, who knows
|
|
till he has been subjected to the trial?
|
|
|
|
Our recollections of them in former days enjoin us to be respectful;
|
|
their sorrows clothe them with sanctity. Without going too near,
|
|
across the dungeon, we see they have undergone a change of
|
|
appearance not to be accounted for by time or long confinement. The
|
|
mother was beautiful as a woman, the daughter beautiful as a child;
|
|
not even love could say so much now. Their hair is long, unkempt,
|
|
and strangely white; they make us shrink and shudder with an
|
|
indefinable repulsion, though the effect may be from an illusory
|
|
glozing of the light, glimmering dismally through the unhealthy
|
|
murk; or they may be enduring the tortures of hunger and thirst, not
|
|
having had to eat or drink since their servant, the convict, was taken
|
|
away- that is, since yesterday.
|
|
|
|
Tirzah, reclining against her mother in half-embrace, moans
|
|
piteously.
|
|
|
|
"Be quiet, Tirzah. They will come. God is good. We have been mindful
|
|
of him, and forgotten not to pray at every sounding of the trumpets
|
|
over in the Temple. The light, you see, is still bright; the sun is
|
|
standing in the south sky yet, and it is hardly more than the
|
|
seventh hour. Somebody will come to us. Let us have faith. God is
|
|
good."
|
|
|
|
Thus the mother. The words were simple and effective, although,
|
|
eight years being now to be added to the thirteen she had attained
|
|
when last we saw her, Tirzah was no longer a child.
|
|
|
|
"I will try and be strong, mother," she said. "Your suffering must
|
|
be great as mine; and I do so want to live for you and my brother! But
|
|
my tongue burns, my lips scorch. I wonder where he is, and if he
|
|
will ever, ever find us!"
|
|
|
|
There is something in the voices that strikes us singularly- an
|
|
unexpected tone, sharp, dry, metallic, unnatural.
|
|
|
|
The mother draws the daughter closer to her breast, and says, "I
|
|
dreamed about him last night, and saw him as plainly, Tirzah, as I see
|
|
you. We must believe in dreams, you know, because our fathers did. The
|
|
Lord spoke to them so often. in that way. I thought we were in the
|
|
Women's Court just before the Gate Beautiful; there were many women
|
|
with us; and he came and stood in the shade of the Gate, and looked
|
|
here and there, at this one and that. My heart beat strong. I knew
|
|
he was looking for us, and stretched my arms to him, and ran,
|
|
calling him. He heard me and saw me, but he did not know me. In a
|
|
moment he was gone."
|
|
|
|
"Would it not be so, mother, if we were to meet him in fact? We
|
|
are so changed."
|
|
|
|
"It might be so; but- " The mother's head droops, and her face knits
|
|
as with a wrench of pain; recovering, however, she goes on- "but we
|
|
could make ourselves known to him."
|
|
|
|
Tirzah tossed her arms, and moaned again.
|
|
|
|
"Water, mother, water, though but a drop."
|
|
|
|
The mother stares around in blank helplessness. She has named God so
|
|
often, and so often promised in his name, the repetition is
|
|
beginning to have a mocking effect upon herself. A shadow passes
|
|
before her dimming the dim light, and she is brought down to think
|
|
of death as very near, waiting to come in as her faith goes out.
|
|
Hardly knowing what she does, speaking aimlessly, because speak she
|
|
must, she says again-
|
|
|
|
"Patience, Tirzah; they are coming- they are almost here."
|
|
|
|
She thought she heard a sound over by the little trap in the
|
|
partition-wall through which they held all their actual
|
|
communication with the world. And she was not mistaken. A moment,
|
|
and the cry of the convict rang through the cell. Tirzah heard it
|
|
also; and they both arose, still keeping hold of each other.
|
|
|
|
"Praised be the Lord forever!" exclaimed the mother, with the
|
|
fervour of restored faith and hope.
|
|
|
|
"Ho, there!" they heard next; and then, "Who are you?"
|
|
|
|
The voice was strange. What matter? Except from Tirzah, they were
|
|
the first and only words the mother had heard in eight years. The
|
|
revulsion was mighty- from death to life- and so instantly!
|
|
|
|
"A woman of Israel, entombed here with her daughter. Help us
|
|
quickly, or we die."
|
|
|
|
"Be of cheer. I will return."
|
|
|
|
The women sobbed aloud. They were found; help was coming. From
|
|
wish to wish hope flew as the twittering swallows fly. They were
|
|
found; they would be released. And restoration would follow-
|
|
restoration to all they had lost- home, society, property, son and
|
|
brother! The scanty light glozed them with the glory of day, and,
|
|
forgetful of pain, and thirst, and hunger, and of the menace of death,
|
|
they sank upon the floor and cried, keeping fast hold of each other
|
|
the while.
|
|
|
|
And this time they had not long to wait. Gesius, the keeper, told
|
|
his tale methodically, but finished it at last. The tribune was
|
|
prompt.
|
|
|
|
"Within there!" he shouted through the trap.
|
|
|
|
"Here!" said the mother, rising.
|
|
|
|
Directly she heard another sound in another place, as of blows on
|
|
the wall- blows quick, ringing, and delivered with iron tools. She did
|
|
not speak, nor did Tirzah, but they listened, well knowing the meaning
|
|
of it all- that a way to liberty was being made for them. So men a
|
|
long time buried in deep mines hear the coming of rescuers, heralded
|
|
by thrust of bar and beat of pick, answer gratefully with
|
|
heart-throbs, their eyes fixed upon the spot whence the sounds
|
|
proceed; and they cannot look away, lest the work should cease, and
|
|
they be returned to despair.
|
|
|
|
The arms outside were strong, the hands skilful, the will good. Each
|
|
instant the blows sounded more plainly; now and then a piece fell with
|
|
a crash; and liberty came nearer and nearer. Presently the workmen
|
|
could be heard speaking. Then- O happiness! through a crevice
|
|
flashed a red ray of torches. Into the darkness it cut incisive as
|
|
diamond brilliance, beautiful as if from a spear of the morning.
|
|
|
|
"It is he, mother, it is he! He has found us at last!" cried Tirzah,
|
|
with the quickened fancy of youth.
|
|
|
|
But the mother answered meekly, "God is good!"
|
|
|
|
A block fell inside, and another- then a great mass, and the door
|
|
was open. A man grimed with mortar and stone-dust stepped in, and
|
|
stopped, holding a torch over his head. Two or three others followed
|
|
with torches, and stood aside for the tribune to enter.
|
|
|
|
Respect for women is not all a conventionality, for it is the best
|
|
proof of their proper nature. The tribune stopped, because they fled
|
|
from him- not with fear, be it said, but shame; nor yet, O reader,
|
|
from shame alone! From the obscurity of their partial hiding he
|
|
heard these words, the saddest, most dreadful, most utterly despairing
|
|
of the human tongue-
|
|
|
|
"Come not near us- unclean, unclean!"
|
|
|
|
The men flared their torches while they stared at each other.
|
|
|
|
"Unclean, unclean!" came from the corner again, a slow tremulous
|
|
wail, exceedingly sorrowful. With such a cry we can imagine a spirit
|
|
vanishing from the gates of Paradise, looking back the while.
|
|
|
|
So the widow and mother performed her duty, and in the moment
|
|
realized that the freedom she had prayed for and dreamed of, fruit
|
|
of scarlet and gold seen afar, was but an apple of Sodom in the hand.
|
|
|
|
She and Tirzah were- LEPERS!
|
|
|
|
Possibly the reader does not know all the word means. Let him be
|
|
told it with reference to the Law of that time, only a little modified
|
|
in this.
|
|
|
|
"These four are accounted as dead- the blind, the leper, the poor,
|
|
and the childless." Thus the Talmud.
|
|
|
|
That is, to be a leper was to be treated as dead- to be excluded
|
|
from the city as a corpse; to be spoken to by the best beloved and
|
|
most loving only at a distance; to dwell with none but lepers; to be
|
|
utterly unprivileged; to be denied the rites of the Temple and the
|
|
synagogue; to go about in rent garments and with covered mouth, except
|
|
when crying, "Unclean, unclean!" to find home in the wilderness or
|
|
in abandoned tombs; to become a materialized spectre of Hinnom and
|
|
Gehenna; to be at all times less a living offence to others than a
|
|
breathing torment to self; afraid to die, yet without hope except in
|
|
death.
|
|
|
|
Once- she might not tell the day or the year, for down in the
|
|
haunted hell even time was lost- once the mother felt a dry scurf in
|
|
the palm of her right hand, a trifle which she tried to wash, away. It
|
|
clung to the member pertinaciously; yet she thought but little of
|
|
the sign till Tirzah complained that she, too, was attacked in the
|
|
same way. The supply of water was scant, and they denied themselves
|
|
drink that they might use it as a curative. At length the whole hand
|
|
was attacked; the skin cracked open, the finger-nails loosened from
|
|
the flesh. There was not much pain withal, chiefly a steadily
|
|
increasing discomfort. Later their lips began to parch and seam. One
|
|
day the mother, who was cleanly to godliness, and struggled against
|
|
the impurities of the dungeon with all ingenuity, thinking the enemy
|
|
was taking hold on Tirzah's face, led her to the light, and, looking
|
|
with the inspiration of a terrible dread, lo! the young girl's
|
|
eyebrows were white as snow.
|
|
|
|
Oh, the anguish of that assurance!
|
|
|
|
The mother sat awhile speechless, motionless, paralyzed of soul, and
|
|
capable of but one thought- leprosy, leprosy!
|
|
|
|
When she began to think, mother-like, it was not of herself, but her
|
|
child, and, mother-like, her natural tenderness turned to courage, and
|
|
she made ready for the last sacrifice of perfect heroism. She buried
|
|
her knowledge in her heart; hopeless herself, she redoubled her
|
|
devotion to Tirzah, and with wonderful ingenuity- wonderful chiefly in
|
|
its very inexhaustibility- continued to keep the daughter ignorant
|
|
of what they were beset with, and even hopeful that it was nothing.
|
|
She repeated her little games, and retold her stories, and invented
|
|
new ones, and listened with ever so much pleasure to the songs she
|
|
would have from Tirzah, while on her wasting lips the psalms of the
|
|
singing king of their race served to bring soothing of
|
|
forgetfulness, and keep alive in them both the recollection of the God
|
|
who would seem to have abandoned them- the world not more lightly or
|
|
utterly.
|
|
|
|
Slowly, steadily, with horrible certainty, the disease spread, after
|
|
a while bleaching their heads white, eating holes in their lips and
|
|
eyelids, and covering their bodies with scales; then it fell to
|
|
their throats, shrilling their voices, and to their joints,
|
|
hardening the tissues and cartileges- slowly, and, as the mother
|
|
well knew, past remedy, it was affecting their lungs and arteries
|
|
and bones, at each advance making the sufferers more and more
|
|
loathsome; and so it would continue till death, which might be years
|
|
before them.
|
|
|
|
Another day of dread at length came- the day the mother, under the
|
|
impulsion of duty, at last told Tirzah the name of their ailment;
|
|
and the two, in agony of despair, prayed that the end might come
|
|
quickly.
|
|
|
|
Still, as is the force of habit, these so afflicted grew in time not
|
|
merely to speak composedly of their disease; they beheld the hideous
|
|
transformation of their persons as of course, and in despite clung
|
|
to existence. One tie to earth remained to them; unmindful of their
|
|
own loneliness, they kept up a certain spirit by talking and
|
|
dreaming of Ben-Hur. The mother promised reunion with him to the
|
|
sister, and she to the mother, not doubting, either of them, that he
|
|
was equally faithful to them, and would be equally happy of the
|
|
meeting. And with the spinning and respinning of this slender thread
|
|
they found pleasure, and excused their not dying. In such manner as we
|
|
have seen, they were solacing themselves the moment Gesius called
|
|
them, at the end of twelve hours' fasting and thirst.
|
|
|
|
The torches flashed redly through the dungeon, and liberty was come.
|
|
"God is good," the widow cried- not for what had been, O reader, but
|
|
for what was. In thankfulness for present mercy, nothing so becomes us
|
|
as losing sight of past ills.
|
|
|
|
The tribune came directly; then in the corner to which she had fled,
|
|
suddenly a sense of duty smote the elder of the women, and straightway
|
|
the awful warning-
|
|
|
|
"Unclean, unclean!"
|
|
|
|
Ah, the pang the effort to acquit herself of that duty cost the
|
|
mother! Not all the selfishness of joy over the prospect could keep
|
|
her blind to the consequences of release, now that it was at hand. The
|
|
old happy life could never be again. If she went near the house called
|
|
home, it would be to stop at the gate and cry, "Unclean, unclean!" She
|
|
must go about with the yearnings of love alive in her breast strong as
|
|
ever, and more sensitive even, because return in kind could not be.
|
|
The boy of whom she had so constantly thought, and with all sweet
|
|
promises such as mothers find their purest delight in, must, at
|
|
meeting her, stand afar off. If he held out his hands to her, and
|
|
called "Mother, mother," for very love of him she must answer,
|
|
"Unclean, unclean!" And this other child, before whom, in want of
|
|
other covering, she was spreading her long tangled locks, bleached
|
|
unnaturally white- ah! that she was she must continue, sole partner of
|
|
her blasted remainder of life. Yet, O reader, the brave woman accepted
|
|
the lot, and took up the cry which had been its sign immemorially, and
|
|
which thenceforward was to be her salutation without change- "Unclean,
|
|
unclean!"
|
|
|
|
The tribune heard it with a tremor, but kept his place.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Two women dying of hunger and thirst. Yet"- the mother did not
|
|
falter- "come not near us, nor touch the floor or the wall. Unclean,
|
|
unclean!"
|
|
|
|
"Give me thy story, woman- thy name, and when thou wert put here,
|
|
and by whom, and for what."
|
|
|
|
"There was once in this City of Jerusalem a Prince Ben-Hur, the
|
|
friend of all generous Romans, and who had Caesar for his friend. I am
|
|
his widow, and this one with me is his child. How may I tell you for
|
|
what we were sunk here, when I do not know, unless it was because we
|
|
were rich? Valerius Gratus can tell you who our enemy was, and when
|
|
our imprisonment began. I cannot. See to what we have been reduced-
|
|
oh, see, and have pity!"
|
|
|
|
The air was heavy with the pest and the smoke of the torches, yet
|
|
the Roman called one of the torch-bearers to his side, and wrote the
|
|
answer nearly word for word. It was terse and comprehensive,
|
|
containing at once a history, an accusation, and a prayer. No common
|
|
person could have made it, and he could not but pity and believe.
|
|
|
|
"Thou shalt have relief, woman," he said, closing the tablets. "I
|
|
will send thee food and drink."
|
|
|
|
"And raiment, and purifying water, we pray you, O generous Roman!"
|
|
|
|
"As thou wilt," he replied.
|
|
|
|
"God is good," said the widow, sobbing. "May his peace abide with
|
|
you!"
|
|
|
|
"And, further," he added, "I cannot see thee again. Make
|
|
preparation, and to-night I will have thee taken to the gate of the
|
|
Tower, and set free. Thou knowest the law. Farewell."
|
|
|
|
He spoke to the men, and went out the door.
|
|
|
|
Very shortly some slaves came to the cell with a large gurglet of
|
|
water, a basin and napkins, a platter with bread and meat, and some
|
|
garments of women's wear; and, setting them down within reach of the
|
|
prisoners, they ran away.
|
|
|
|
About the middle of the first watch, the two were conducted to the
|
|
gate, and turned into the street. So the Roman quit himself of them,
|
|
and in the city of their fathers they were once more free.
|
|
|
|
Up to the stars, twinkling merrily as of old, they looked; then they
|
|
asked themselves-
|
|
|
|
"What next? and where to?"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
JERUSALEM AGAIN.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT the hour Gesius, the keeper, made his appearance before the
|
|
tribune in the Tower of Antonia, a footman was climbing the eastern
|
|
face of Mount Olivet. The road was rough and dusty, and vegetation
|
|
on that side burned brown, for it was the dry season in Judea. Well
|
|
for the traveller that he had youth and strength, not to speak of
|
|
the cool flowing garments with which he was clothed.
|
|
|
|
He proceeded slowly, looking often to his right and left; not with
|
|
the vexed anxious expression which marks a man going forward uncertain
|
|
of the way, but rather the air with which one approaches an old
|
|
acquaintance after a long separation- half of pleasure, half of
|
|
inquiry; as if he were saying, "I am glad to be with you again; let me
|
|
see in what you are changed."
|
|
|
|
As he arose higher, he sometimes paused to look behind him over
|
|
the gradually widening view terminating in the mountains of Moab;
|
|
but when at length he drew near the summit, he quickened his step,
|
|
unmindful of fatigue, and hurried on without pause or turning of the
|
|
face. On the summit- to reach which he bent his steps somewhat right
|
|
of the beaten path- he came to a dead stop, arrested as if by a strong
|
|
hand. Then one might have seen his eyes dilate, his cheeks flush,
|
|
his breath quicken, effects all of one bright sweeping glance at
|
|
what lay before him.
|
|
|
|
The traveller, good reader, was no other than Ben-Hur; the
|
|
spectacle, Jerusalem.
|
|
|
|
Not the Holy City of today, but the Holy City as left by Herod-
|
|
the Holy City of the Christ. Beautiful yet, as seen from old Olivet,
|
|
what must it have been then?
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur betook him to a stone and sat down, and, stripping his
|
|
head of the close white handkerchief which served it for covering,
|
|
made the survey at leisure.
|
|
|
|
The same has been done often since by a great variety of persons,
|
|
under circumstances surpassingly singular- by the son of Vespasian, by
|
|
the Islamite, by the Crusader, conquerors all of them; by many a
|
|
pilgrim from the great New World, which waited discovery nearly
|
|
fifteen hundred years after the time of our story; but of the
|
|
multitude probably not one has taken that view with sensations more
|
|
keenly poignant, more sadly sweet, more proudly bitter, than
|
|
Ben-Hur. He was stirred by recollections of his countrymen, their
|
|
triumphs and vicissitudes, their history the history of God. The
|
|
city was of their building, at once a lasting testimony of their
|
|
crimes and devotion, their weakness and genius, their religion and
|
|
their irreligion. Though he had seen Rome to familiarity, he was
|
|
gratified. The sight filled a measure of pride which would have made
|
|
him drunk with vain-glory but for the thought, princely as the
|
|
property was, it did not any longer belong to his countrymen; the
|
|
worship in the Temple was by permission of strangers; the hill where
|
|
David dwelt was a marbled cheat- an office in which the chosen of
|
|
the Lord were wrung and wrung for taxes, and scourged for very
|
|
deathlessness of faith. These, however, were pleasures and griefs of
|
|
patriotism common to every Jew of the period; in addition, Ben-Hur
|
|
brought with him a personal history which would not out of mind for
|
|
other consideration whatever, which the spectacle served only to
|
|
freshen and vivify.
|
|
|
|
A country of hills changes but little; where the hills are of
|
|
rock, it changes not at all. The scene Ben-Hur beheld is the same now,
|
|
except as respects the city. The failure is in the handiwork of man
|
|
alone.
|
|
|
|
The sun dealt more kindly by the west side of Olivet than by the
|
|
east, and men were certainly more loving towards it. The vines with
|
|
which it was partially dad, and the sprinkling of trees, chiefly
|
|
figs and old wild olives, were comparatively green. Down to the dry
|
|
bed of the Cedron the verdure extended, a refreshment to the vision;
|
|
there Olivet ceased and Moriah began- a wall of bluff boldness,
|
|
white as snow, founded by Solomon, completed by Herod. Up, up the wall
|
|
the eye climbed course by course of the ponderous rocks composing
|
|
it- up to Solomon's Porch, which was as the pedestal of the
|
|
monument, the hill being the plinth. Lingering there a moment, the eye
|
|
resumed its climbing, going next to the Gentiles' Court, then to the
|
|
Israelites' Court, then to the Women's Court, then to the Court of the
|
|
Priests, each a pillared tier of white marble, one above the other
|
|
in terraced retrocession; over them all a crown of crowns infinitely
|
|
sacred, infinitely beautiful, majestic in proportions, effulgent
|
|
with beaten gold- lo! the Tent, the Tabernacle, the Holy of Holies.
|
|
The Ark was not there, but Jehovah was- in the faith of every child of
|
|
Israel he was there a personal Presence. As a temple, as a monument,
|
|
there was nowhere anything of man's building to approach that
|
|
superlative apparition. Now, not a stone of it remains above
|
|
another. Who shall rebuild that building? When shall the rebuilding be
|
|
begun? So asks every pilgrim who has stood where Ben-Hur was- he asks,
|
|
knowing the answer is in the bosom of God, whose secrets are not least
|
|
marvellous in their well-keeping. And then the third question, What of
|
|
him who foretold the ruin which has so certainly befallen? God? Or man
|
|
of God? Or- enough that the question is for us to answer.
|
|
|
|
And still Ben-Hur's eyes climbed on and up- up over the roof of
|
|
the Temple, to the hill of Zion, consecrated to sacred memories,
|
|
inseparable from the anointed kings. He knew the Cheesemonger's Valley
|
|
dipped deep down between Moriah and Zion; that it was spanned by the
|
|
Xystus; that there were gardens and palaces in its depths; but over
|
|
them all his thoughts soared with his vision to the great grouping
|
|
on the royal hill- the house of Caiaphas, the Central Synagogue, the
|
|
Roman Praetorium, Hippicus the eternal, and the sad but mighty
|
|
cenotaphs Phasaelus and Mariamne- all relieved against Gareb,
|
|
purpling, in the distance. And when midst them he singled out the
|
|
palace of Herod, what could he but think of the King Who Was Coming,
|
|
to whom he was himself devoted, whose path he had undertaken to
|
|
smooth, whose empty hands he dreamed of filling? And forward ran his
|
|
fancy to the day the new King should come to claim his own and take
|
|
possession of it- of Moriah and its Temple; of Zion and its towers and
|
|
palaces; of Antonia, frowning darkly there just to the right of the
|
|
Temple; of the new unwalled city of Bezetha; of the millions of Israel
|
|
to assemble with palm-branches and banners, to sing rejoicing
|
|
because the Lord had conquered and given them the world.
|
|
|
|
Men speak of dreaming as if it were a phenomenon of night and sleep.
|
|
They should know better. All results achieved by us are self-promised,
|
|
and all self-promises are made in dreams awake. Dreaming is the relief
|
|
of labour, the wine that sustains us in act. We learn to love
|
|
labour, not for itself, but for the opportunity it furnishes for
|
|
dreaming, which is the great under-monotone of real life, unheard,
|
|
unnoticed, because of its constancy' Living is dreaming. Only in the
|
|
grave are there no dreams. Let no one smile at Ben-Hur for doing
|
|
that which he himself would have done at that time and place under the
|
|
same circumstances.
|
|
|
|
The sun stooped low in its course. Awhile the flaring disc seemed to
|
|
perch itself on the far summit of the mountains in the west, brazening
|
|
all the sky above the city, and rimming the walls and towers with
|
|
the brightness of gold. Then it disappeared as with a plunge. The
|
|
quiet turned Ben-Hur's thought homeward. There was a point in the
|
|
sky a little north of the peerless front of the Holy of Holies upon
|
|
which he fixed his gaze: under it, straight as a lead-line would
|
|
have dropped, lay his father's house, if yet the house endured.
|
|
|
|
The mellowing influences of the evening mellowed his feelings,
|
|
and, putting his ambitions aside, he thought of the duty that was
|
|
bringing him to Jerusalem.
|
|
|
|
Out in the desert while with Ilderim, looking for strong places
|
|
and acquainting himself with it generally, as a soldier studies a
|
|
country in which he has projected a campaign, a messenger came one
|
|
evening with the news that Gratus was removed, and Pontius Pilate sent
|
|
to take his place.
|
|
|
|
Messala was disabled and believed him dead; Gratus was powerless and
|
|
gone; why should Ben-Hur longer defer the search for his mother and
|
|
sister? There was nothing to fear now. If he could not himself see
|
|
into the prisons of Judea, he could examine them with the eyes of
|
|
others. If the lost were found, Pilate could have no motive in holding
|
|
them in custody- none, at least, which could not be overcome by
|
|
purchase. If found, he would carry them to a place of safety, and
|
|
then, in calmer mind, his conscience at rest, this one first duty
|
|
done, he could give himself more entirely to the King Who Was
|
|
Coming. He resolved at once. That night he counselled with Ilderim,
|
|
and obtained his assent. Three Arabs came with him to Jericho, where
|
|
he left them and the horses, and proceeded alone and on foot.
|
|
Malluch was to meet him in Jerusalem.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur's scheme, be it observed, was as yet a generality.
|
|
|
|
In view of the future, it was advisable to keep himself in hiding
|
|
from the authorities, particularly the Romans. Malluch was shrewd
|
|
and trusty: the very man to charge with the conduct of the
|
|
investigation.
|
|
|
|
Where to begin was the first point. He had no clear idea about it.
|
|
His wish was to commence with the Tower of Antonia. Tradition not of
|
|
long standing planted the gloomy pile over a labyrinth of
|
|
prison-cells, which, more even than the strong garrison, kept it a
|
|
terror to the Jewish fancy. A burial, such as his people had been
|
|
subjected to, might be possible there. Besides, in such a strait,
|
|
the natural inclination is to start search at the place where the loss
|
|
occurred and he could not forget that his last sight of the loved ones
|
|
was as the guard pushed them along the street in the direction to
|
|
the Tower. If they were not there now, but had been, some record of
|
|
the fact must remain, a clue which had only to be followed
|
|
faithfully to the end.
|
|
|
|
Under this inclination, moreover, there was a hope which he could
|
|
not forgo. From Simonides, he knew Amrah, the Egyptian nurse, was
|
|
living. It will be remembered, doubtless, that the faithful
|
|
creature, the morning the calamity overtook the Hurs, broke from the
|
|
guard and ran back into the palace, where, along with other
|
|
chattels, she had been sealed up. During the years following,
|
|
Simonides kept her supplied; so she was there now, sole occupant of
|
|
the great house, which, with all his offers, Gratus had not been
|
|
able to sell. The story of its rightful owners sufficed to secure
|
|
the property from strangers, whether purchasers or mere occupants.
|
|
People going to and fro passed it with whispers. Its reputation was
|
|
that of a haunted house, derived probably from the infrequent glimpses
|
|
of poor old Amrah, sometimes on the roof, sometimes in a latticed
|
|
window. Certainly no more constant spirit ever abided than she; nor
|
|
was there ever a tenement so shunned and fitted for ghostly
|
|
habitation. Now, if he could get to her, Ben-Hur fancied she could
|
|
help him to knowledge which, though faint, might yet be serviceable.
|
|
Anyhow, sight of her in that place, so endeared by recollection, would
|
|
be to him a pleasure next to finding the objects of his solicitude.
|
|
|
|
So, first of all things, he would go to the old house, and look
|
|
for Amrah.
|
|
|
|
Thus resolved, he arose shortly after the going-down of the sun, and
|
|
began descent of the Mount by the road which, from the summit, bends a
|
|
little north of east. Down nearly at the foot, close by the bed of the
|
|
Cedron, he came to the intersection with the road leading south to the
|
|
village of Siloam and the pool of that name. There he fell in with a
|
|
herdsman driving some sheep to market. He spoke to the man, and joined
|
|
him, and in his company passed by Gethsemane on into the city
|
|
through the Fish Gate.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR AT HIS FATHER'S GATE.
|
|
|
|
IT was dark when, parting with the drover inside the gate, Ben-Hur
|
|
turned into a narrow lane leading to the south. A few of the people
|
|
whom he met saluted him. The bouldering of the pavement was rough. The
|
|
houses on both sides were low, dark, and cheerless; the doors all
|
|
closed: from the roofs, occasionally, he heard women crooning to
|
|
children. The loneliness of his situation, the night, the
|
|
uncertainty cloaking the object of his coming, all affected him
|
|
cheerlessly. With feelings sinking lower and lower, he came directly
|
|
to the deep reservoir now known as the Pool of Bethesda, in which
|
|
the water reflected the overpending sky. Looking up, he beheld the
|
|
northern wall of the Tower of Antonia, a black frowning heap reared
|
|
into the dim steel-grey sky. He halted as if challenged by a
|
|
threatening sentinel.
|
|
|
|
The Tower stood up so high, and seemed so vast, resting apparently
|
|
upon foundations so sure, that he was constrained to acknowledge its
|
|
strength. If his mother were there in living burial, what could he
|
|
do for her? By the strong hand, nothing. An army might beat the
|
|
stony face with ballista and ram, and be laughed at. Against him
|
|
alone, the gigantic south-east turret looked down in the
|
|
self-containment of a hill. And he thought, cunning is so easily
|
|
baffled; and God, always the last resort of the helpless- God is
|
|
sometimes so slow to act!
|
|
|
|
In doubt and misgiving, he turned into the street in front of the
|
|
Tower, and followed it slowly on the west.
|
|
|
|
Over in Bezetha he knew there was a khan, where it was his intention
|
|
to seek lodgings while in the city; but just now he could not resist
|
|
the impulse to go home. His heart drew him that way.
|
|
|
|
The old formal salutation which he received from the few people
|
|
who passed him had never sounded so pleasantly. Presently, all the
|
|
eastern sky began to silver and shine, and objects before invisible in
|
|
the west- chiefly the tall towers on Mount Zion- emerged as from a
|
|
shadowy depth, and put on spectral distinctness, floating, as it were,
|
|
above the yawning blackness of the valley below, very castles in the
|
|
air.
|
|
|
|
He came, at length, to his father's house.
|
|
|
|
Of those who read this page, some there will be to divine his
|
|
feelings without prompting. They are such as had happy homes in
|
|
their youth, no matter how far that may have been back in time-
|
|
homes which are now the starting-points of all recollection; paradises
|
|
from which they went forth in tears, and which they would now return
|
|
to, if they could, as little children; places of laughter and singing,
|
|
and associations dearer than any or all the triumphs of after-life.
|
|
|
|
At the gate on the north side of the old house Ben-Hur stopped. In
|
|
the corners the wax used in the sealing-up was still plainly seen, and
|
|
across the valves was the board with the inscription-
|
|
|
|
"THIS IS THE PROPERTY OF.
|
|
|
|
THE EMPEROR."
|
|
|
|
Nobody had gone in or out of the gate since the dreadful day of
|
|
the separation. Should he knock as of old? It was useless, he knew;
|
|
yet he could not resist the temptation. Amrah might hear, and look out
|
|
of one of the windows on that side. Taking a stone, he mounted the
|
|
broad stone step, and tapped three times. A dull echo replied. He
|
|
tried again, louder than before; and again, pausing each time to
|
|
listen. The silence was mocking. Retiring into the street, he
|
|
watched the windows; but they, too, were lifeless. The parapet on
|
|
the roof was defined sharply against the brightening sky; nothing
|
|
could have stirred upon it unseen by him, and nothing did stir.
|
|
|
|
From the north side he passed to the west, where there were four
|
|
windows which he watched long and anxiously, but with little effect.
|
|
At times his heart swelled with impotent wishes; at others, he
|
|
trembled at the deceptions of his own fancy. Amrah made no sign- not
|
|
even a ghost stirred.
|
|
|
|
Silently, then, he stole round to the south. There, too, the gate
|
|
was sealed and inscribed. The mellow splendour of the August moon,
|
|
pouring over the crest of Olivet, since termed the Mount of Offence,
|
|
brought the lettering boldly out; and he read, and was filled with
|
|
rage. All he could do was to wrench the board from its nailing, and
|
|
hurl it into the ditch. Then he sat upon the step, and prayed for
|
|
the New King, and that his coming might be hastened. As his blood
|
|
cooled, insensibly he yielded to the fatigue of long travel in the
|
|
summer heat, and sank down lower, and, at last, slept.
|
|
|
|
About that time two women came down the street from the direction of
|
|
the Tower of Antonia, approaching the palace of the Hurs. They
|
|
advanced stealthily, with timid steps, pausing often to listen. At the
|
|
corner of the rugged pile, one said to the other, in a low voice-
|
|
|
|
"This is it, Tirzah!"
|
|
|
|
And Tirzah, after a look, caught her mother's hand, and leaned
|
|
upon her heavily, sobbing, but silent.
|
|
|
|
"Let us go on, my child, because"- the mother hesitated and
|
|
trembled; then, with an effort to be calm, continued- "because when
|
|
morning comes they will put us out of the gate of the city to-
|
|
return no more."
|
|
|
|
Tirzah sank almost to the stones.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes!" she said, between sobs; "I forgot. I had the feeling of
|
|
going home. But we are lepers, and have no homes; we belong to the
|
|
dead!"
|
|
|
|
The mother stooped and raised her tenderly, saying, "We have nothing
|
|
to fear. Let us go on."
|
|
|
|
Indeed, lifting their empty hands, they could have run upon a legion
|
|
and put it to flight.
|
|
|
|
And, creeping in close to the rough wall, they glided on, like two
|
|
ghosts, till they came to the gate, before which they also paused.
|
|
Seeing the board, they stepped upon the stone in the scarce cold
|
|
tracks of Ben-Hur, and read the inscription- "This is the property
|
|
of the Emperor."
|
|
|
|
Then the mother clasped her hands, and, with upraised eyes, moaned
|
|
in unutterable anguish.
|
|
|
|
"What now, mother? You scare me!"
|
|
|
|
And the answer was, presently, "Oh, Tirzah, the poor are dead! He is
|
|
dead!"
|
|
|
|
"Who, mother?"
|
|
|
|
"Your brother! They took everything from him- everything- even this
|
|
house!"
|
|
|
|
"Poor!" said Tirzah, vacantly.
|
|
|
|
"He will never be able to help us."
|
|
|
|
"And then, mother?"
|
|
|
|
"To-morrow, to-morrow, my child, we must find a seat by the wayside,
|
|
and beg alms as the lepers do; beg, or- "
|
|
|
|
Tirzah leaned upon her again, and said, whispering, "Let us- let
|
|
us die!"
|
|
|
|
"No!" the mother said, firmly. "The Lord has appointed our times,
|
|
and we are believers in the Lord. We will wait on him even in this.
|
|
Come away!"
|
|
|
|
She caught Tirzah's hand as, she spoke, and hastened to the west
|
|
corner of the house, keeping close to the wall. No one being in
|
|
sight there, they kept on to the next corner, and shrank from the
|
|
moonlight, which lay exceedingly bright over the whole south front,
|
|
and along a part of the street. The mother's will was strong.
|
|
Casting one look back and up to the windows on the west side, she
|
|
stepped out into the light, drawing Tirzah after her; and the extent
|
|
of their affliction was then to be seen- on their lips and cheeks,
|
|
in their bleared eyes, in their cracked hands; especially in the long,
|
|
snaky locks, stiff with loathsome ichor, and, like their eyebrows,
|
|
ghastly white. Nor was it possible to have told which was mother which
|
|
daughter; both alike seemed witch-like old.
|
|
|
|
"Hist!" said the mother. "There is someone lying upon the step- a
|
|
man. Let us go round him."
|
|
|
|
They crossed to the opposite side of the street quickly, and, in the
|
|
shade there, moved on till before the gate, where they stopped.
|
|
|
|
"He is asleep, Tirzah!" The man was very still.
|
|
|
|
The man was very still.
|
|
|
|
"Stay here, and I will try the gate."
|
|
|
|
So saying, the mother stole noiselessly across, and ventured to
|
|
touch the wicket; she never knew if it yielded, for that moment the
|
|
man sighed, and, turning restlessly, shifted the handkerchief on his
|
|
head in such a manner that the face was left upturned and fair in
|
|
the broad moonlight. She looked down at it and started; then looked
|
|
again, stooping a little, and arose and clasped her hands and raised
|
|
her eyes to heaven in mute appeal. An instant so, and she ran back
|
|
to Tirzah.
|
|
|
|
"As the Lord liveth, the man is my son- thy brother!" she said, in
|
|
an awe-inspiring whisper.
|
|
|
|
"My brother?- Judah?"
|
|
|
|
The mother caught her hand eagerly.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" she said, in the same enforced whisper, "let us look at
|
|
him together- once more- only once- then help thou thy servants,
|
|
Lord!"
|
|
|
|
They crossed the street hand in hand, ghostly-quick,
|
|
ghostly-still. When their shadows fell upon him, they stopped. One
|
|
of his hands was lying out upon the step palm up. Tirzah fell upon her
|
|
knees, and would have kissed it; but the mother drew her back.
|
|
|
|
"Not for thy life; not for thy life! Unclean, unclean!" she
|
|
whispered.
|
|
|
|
Tirzah shrank from him, as if he were the leprous one.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur was handsome as the manly are. His cheeks and forehead
|
|
were swarthy from exposure to the desert sun and air; yet under the
|
|
light moustache the lips were red, and the teeth shone white, and
|
|
the soft beard did not hide the full roundness of chin and throat. How
|
|
beautiful he appeared to the mother's eyes! How mightily she yearned
|
|
to put her arms about him, and take his head upon her bosom and kiss
|
|
him, as had been her wont in his happy childhood! Where got she the
|
|
strength to resist the impulse? From her love, O reader!- her
|
|
mother-love, which, if thou wilt observe well, hath this unlikeness to
|
|
any other love: tender to the object, it can be infinitely
|
|
tyrannical to itself, and thence all its power of self-sacrifice.
|
|
Not for restoration to health and fortune, not for any blessing of
|
|
life, not for life itself, would she have left her leprous kiss upon
|
|
his cheek! Yet touch him she must; in that instant of finding him
|
|
she must renounce him for ever! How bitter, bitter hard it was, let
|
|
some other mother say! She knelt down, and, crawling to his feet,
|
|
touched the sole of one of his sandals with her lips, yellow though it
|
|
was with the dust of the street- and touched it again and again; and
|
|
her very soul was in the kisses.
|
|
|
|
He stirred, and tossed his hand. They moved back, but heard him
|
|
mutter in his dream-
|
|
|
|
"Mother! Amrah! Where- "
|
|
|
|
He fell off into the deep sleep.
|
|
|
|
Tirzah stirred wistfully. The mother put her face in the dust,
|
|
struggling to suppress a sob so deep and strong it seemed her heart
|
|
was bursting. Almost she wished he might waken.
|
|
|
|
He had asked for her; she was not forgotten; in his sleep he was
|
|
thinking of her. Was it not enough?
|
|
|
|
Presently the mother beckoned to Tirzah, and they arose, and
|
|
taking one more look, as if to print his image past fading, hand in
|
|
hand they recrossed the street. Back in the shade of the wall there,
|
|
they retired and knelt, looking at him, waiting for him to wake-
|
|
waiting some revelation, they knew not what. Nobody has yet given us a
|
|
measure for the patience of a love like theirs.
|
|
|
|
By-and-by, the sleep being yet upon him, another woman appeared at
|
|
the corner of the palace. The two in the shade saw her plainly in
|
|
the light; a small figure, much-bent, dark-skinned, grey-haired,
|
|
dressed neatly in servant's garb, and carrying a basket full of
|
|
vegetables.
|
|
|
|
At sight of the man upon the step the new-comer stopped; then, as if
|
|
decided, she walked on- very lightly as she drew near the sleeper.
|
|
Passing round him, she went to the gate, slid the wicket latch
|
|
easily to one side, and put her hand in the opening. One of the
|
|
broad boards in the left valve swung ajar without noise. She put the
|
|
basket through, and was about to follow, when, yielding to
|
|
curiosity, she lingered to have one look at the stranger whose face
|
|
was below her in open view.
|
|
|
|
The spectators across the street heard a low exclamation, and saw
|
|
the woman rub her eyes as if to renew their power, bend closer down,
|
|
clasp her hands, gaze wildly around, look at the sleeper, stoop and
|
|
raise the outlying hand, and kiss it fondly- that which they wished so
|
|
mightily to do, but dared not.
|
|
|
|
Awakened by the action, Ben-Hur instinctively withdrew the hand;
|
|
as he did so, his eyes met the woman's.
|
|
|
|
"Amrah! O Amrah, is it thou?" he said.
|
|
|
|
The good heart made no answer in words, but fell upon his neck,
|
|
crying for joy.
|
|
|
|
Gently he put her arms away, and lifting the dark face wet with
|
|
tears, kissed it, his joy only a little less than hers. Then those
|
|
across the way heard him say-
|
|
|
|
"Mother- Tirzah- O Amrah, tell me of them! Speak, speak, I pray
|
|
thee!"
|
|
|
|
Amrah only cried afresh.
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast seen them, Amrah. Thou knowest where they are; tell me
|
|
they are at home."
|
|
|
|
Tirzah moved, but the mother, divining her purpose, caught her and
|
|
whispered, "Do not go- not for life. Unclean, unclean!"
|
|
|
|
Her love was in a tyrannical mood. Though both their hearts broke,
|
|
he should not become what they were; and she conquered.
|
|
|
|
Meantime Amrah, so entreated, only wept the more.
|
|
|
|
"Wert thou going in?" he asked, presently, seeing the board swung
|
|
back. "Come, then. I will go with thee." He arose as he spoke. "The
|
|
Romans- be the curse of the Lord upon them!- the Romans lied. The
|
|
house is mine. Rise, Amrah, and let us go in."
|
|
|
|
A moment and they were gone, leaving the two in the shade to
|
|
behold the gate staring blankly at them- the gate which they might not
|
|
ever enter more. They nestled together in the dust.
|
|
|
|
They had done their duty.
|
|
|
|
Their love was proven.
|
|
|
|
Next morning they were found, and driven out the city with stones.
|
|
|
|
"Begone! Ye are of the dead; go to the dead!"
|
|
|
|
With the doom ringing in their ears, they went forth.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
THE TOMB ABOVE THE KING'S GARDEN.
|
|
|
|
NOWADAYS travellers in the Holy Land looking for the famous place
|
|
with the beautiful name, the King's Garden, descend the bed of the
|
|
Cedron or the curve of Gihon and Hinnom as far as the old well
|
|
En-rogel, take a drink of the sweet living water, and stop, having
|
|
reached the limit of the interesting in that direction. They look at
|
|
the great stones with which the well is curbed, ask its depth, smile
|
|
at the primitive mode of drawing the purling treasure, and waste
|
|
some pity on the ragged wretch who presides over it; then, facing
|
|
about, they are enraptured with the mounts Moriah and Zion, both of
|
|
which slope towards them from the north, one terminating in Ophel, the
|
|
other in what used to be the site of the city of David. In the
|
|
background, up far in the sky, the garniture of the sacred places is
|
|
visible: here the Haram, with its graceful dome; yonder the stalwart
|
|
remains of Hippicus defiant even in ruins. When that view has been
|
|
enjoyed, and is sufficiently impressed upon the memory, the travellers
|
|
glance at the Mount of Offence standing in rugged stateliness at their
|
|
right hand, arid then at the Hill of Evil Counsel over on the left, in
|
|
which, if they be well up in Scriptural history and in the
|
|
traditions rabbinical and monkish, they will find a certain interest
|
|
not to be overcome by superstitious horror.
|
|
|
|
It were long to tell all the points of interest grouped round that
|
|
hill; for the present purpose, enough that its feet are planted in the
|
|
veritable orthodox Hell of the moderns- the Hell of brimstone and
|
|
fire- in the old nomenclature Gehenna; and that now, as in the days of
|
|
Christ, its bluff face opposite the city on the south and south-east
|
|
is seamed and pitted with tombs which have been immemorially the
|
|
dwelling-places of lepers, not singly, but collectively. There they
|
|
set up their government and established their society; there they
|
|
founded a city and dwelt by themselves, avoided as the accursed of
|
|
God.
|
|
|
|
The second morning after the incidents of the preceding chapter,
|
|
Amrah drew near the well En-rogel, and seated herself upon a stone.
|
|
One familiar with Jerusalem, looking at her, would have said she was
|
|
the favourite servant of some well-to-do family. She brought with
|
|
her a water-jar and a basket, the contents of the latter covered
|
|
with a snow-white napkin. Placing them on the ground at her side,
|
|
she loosened the shawl which fell from her head, knit her fingers
|
|
together in her lap, and gazed demurely up to where the hill drops
|
|
steeply down into the Aceldama and the Potter's Field.
|
|
|
|
It was very early, and she was the first to arrive at the well.
|
|
Soon, however, a man came bringing a rope and a leathern bucket.
|
|
Saluting the little dark-faced woman, he undid the rope, fixed it to
|
|
the bucket, and waited customers. Others who chose to do so might draw
|
|
water for themselves; he was a professional in the business, and would
|
|
fill the largest jar the stoutest woman could carry for a gerah.
|
|
|
|
Amrah sat still, and had nothing to say. Seeing the jar, the man
|
|
asked after a while if she wished it filled; she answered him civilly,
|
|
"Not now;" whereupon he gave her no more attention. When the dawn
|
|
was fairly defined over Olivet, his patrons began to arrive, and he
|
|
had all he could do to attend to them. All the time she kept her seat,
|
|
looking intently up at the hill.
|
|
|
|
The sun made its appearance, yet she sat watching and waiting; and
|
|
while she thus waits, let us see what her purpose is.
|
|
|
|
Her custom had been to go to market after nightfall. Stealing out
|
|
unobserved, she would seek the shops in the Tyropoeon, or those over
|
|
by the Fish Gate in the east, make her purchases of meat and
|
|
vegetables, and return and shut herself up again.
|
|
|
|
The pleasure she derived from the presence of Ben-Hur in the old
|
|
house once more may be imagined. She had nothing to tell him of her
|
|
mistress or Tirzah- nothing. He would have had her move to a place not
|
|
so lonesome; she refused. She would have had him take his own room
|
|
again, which was just as he had left it; but the danger of discovery
|
|
was too great, and he wished above all things to avoid inquiry. He
|
|
would come and see her often as possible. Coming in the night, he
|
|
would also go away in the night. She was compelled to be satisfied,
|
|
and at once occupied herself contriving ways to make him happy. That
|
|
he was a man now did not occur to her; nor did it enter her mind
|
|
that he might have put by or lost his boyish tastes; to please him,
|
|
she thought to go on her old round of services. He used to be fond
|
|
of confections; she remembered the things in that line which delighted
|
|
him most, and resolved to make them, and have a supply always ready
|
|
when he came. Could anything be happier? So next night, earlier than
|
|
usual, she stole out with her basket, and went over to the Fish Gate
|
|
Market. Wandering about, seeking the best honey, she chanced to hear a
|
|
man telling a story.
|
|
|
|
What the story was the reader can arrive at with sufficient
|
|
certainty when told that the narrator was one of the men who had
|
|
held torches for the commandant of the Tower of Antonia when, down
|
|
in cell VI., the Hurs were found. The particulars of the finding
|
|
were all told, and she heard them, with the names of the prisoners,
|
|
and the widow's account of herself.
|
|
|
|
The feelings with which Amrah listened to the recital were such as
|
|
became the devoted creature she was. She made her purchases, and
|
|
returned home in a dream. What a happiness she had in store for her
|
|
boy! She had found his mother!
|
|
|
|
She put the basket away, now laughing, now crying. Suddenly she
|
|
stopped and thought. It would kill him to be told that his mother
|
|
and Tirzah were lepers. He would go through the awful city over on the
|
|
Hill of Evil Counsel- into each infected tomb he would go without
|
|
rest, asking for them, and the disease would catch him, and their fate
|
|
would be his. She wrung her hands. What should she do?
|
|
|
|
Like many a one before her, and many a once since, she derived
|
|
inspiration, if not wisdom, from her affection, and came to a singular
|
|
conclusion.
|
|
|
|
The lepers, she knew, were accustomed of mornings to come down
|
|
from their sepulchral abodes in the hill, and take a supply of water
|
|
for the day from the well En-rogel. Bringing their jars, they would
|
|
set them on the ground and wait, standing afar until they were filled.
|
|
To that the mistress and Tirzah must come; for the law was inexorable,
|
|
and admitted no distinction. A rich leper was no better than a poor
|
|
one.
|
|
|
|
So Amrah decided not to speak to Ben-Hur of the story she had heard,
|
|
but go alone to the well and wait. Hunger and thirst would drive the
|
|
unfortunates thither, and she believed she could recognize them at
|
|
sight; if not, they might recognize her.
|
|
|
|
Meantime Ben-Hur came, and they talked much. To-morrow Malluch would
|
|
arrive; then the search should be immediately begun. He was
|
|
impatient to be about it. To amuse himself he would visit the sacred
|
|
places in the vicinity. The secret, we may be sure, weighed heavily on
|
|
the woman, but she held her peace.
|
|
|
|
When he was gone she busied herself in the preparation of things
|
|
good to eat, applying her utmost skill to the work. At the approach of
|
|
day, as signalled by the stars, she filled the basket, selected a jar,
|
|
and took the road to En-rogel, going out by the Fish Gate, which was
|
|
earliest open, and arriving as we have seen.
|
|
|
|
Shortly after sunrise, when business at the well was most
|
|
pressing, and the drawer of water most hurried; when, in fact,
|
|
half-a-dozen buckets were in use at the same time, everybody making
|
|
haste to get away before the cool of the morning melted into the
|
|
heat of the day, the tenantry of the hill began to appear and move
|
|
about the doors of their tombs. Somewhat later they were discernible
|
|
in groups, of which not a few were children so young that they
|
|
suggested the holiest relation. Numbers came momentarily around the
|
|
turn of the bluff- women with jars upon their shoulders, old and
|
|
very feeble men hobbling along on staffs and crutches. Some leaned
|
|
upon the shoulders of others; a few- the utterly helpless- lay, like
|
|
heaps of rags, upon litters. Even that community of superlative sorrow
|
|
had its love-light to make life endurable and attractive. Distance
|
|
softened without entirely veiling the misery of the outcasts.
|
|
|
|
From her seat by the well Amrah kept watch upon the spectral groups.
|
|
She scarcely moved. More than once she imagined she saw those she
|
|
sought. That they were there upon the hill she had no doubt; that they
|
|
must come down and near she knew; when the people at the well were all
|
|
served they would come.
|
|
|
|
Now, quite at the base of the bluff there was a tomb which had
|
|
more than once attracted Amrah by its wide gaping. A stone of large
|
|
dimensions stood near its mouth. The sun looked into it through the
|
|
hottest hours of the day, and altogether it seemed uninhabitable by
|
|
anything living, unless, perchance by some wild dogs returning from
|
|
scavenger duty down in Gehenna. Thence, however, and greatly to her
|
|
surprise, the patient Egyptian beheld two women come, one
|
|
half-supporting, half-leading the other. They were both
|
|
white-haired; both looked old; but their garments were not rent, and
|
|
they gazed about them as if the locality were new. The witness below
|
|
thought she even saw them shrink terrified at the spectacle offered by
|
|
the hideous assemblage of which they found themselves part. Slight
|
|
reasons, certainly, to make her heart beat faster, and draw her
|
|
attention to them exclusively; but so they did.
|
|
|
|
The two remained by the stone awhile; then they moved slowly,
|
|
painfully, and with much fear towards the well, whereat several voices
|
|
were raised to stop them; yet they kept on. The drawer of water picked
|
|
up some pebbles, and made ready to drive them back. The company cursed
|
|
them. The greater company on the hill shouted shrilly, "Unclean,
|
|
unclean!"
|
|
|
|
"Surely," thought Amrah of the two, as they kept coming- "surely,
|
|
they are strangers to the usage of lepers."
|
|
|
|
She arose, and went to meet them, taking the basket and jar. The
|
|
alarm at the well immediately subsided.
|
|
|
|
"What a fool," said one, laughing- "what a fool to give good bread
|
|
to the dead in that way!"
|
|
|
|
"And to think of her coming so far!" said another. "I would at least
|
|
make them meet me at the gate."
|
|
|
|
Amrah, with better impulse, proceeded. If she should be mistaken!
|
|
Her heart arose into her throat. And the farther she went the more
|
|
doubtful and confused she became. Four or five yards from where they
|
|
stood waiting for her she stopped.
|
|
|
|
That the mistress she loved! whose hand she had so often kissed in
|
|
gratitude! whose image of matronly loveliness she had treasured in
|
|
memory so faithfully! And that the Tirzah she had nursed through
|
|
babyhood! whose pains she had soothed, whose sports she had shared!
|
|
that the smiling, sweet-faced, songful Tirzah, the light of the
|
|
great house, the promised blessing of her old age! Her mistress, her
|
|
darling- they? The soul of the woman sickened at the sight.
|
|
|
|
"These are old women," she said to herself. "I never saw them
|
|
before. I will go back."
|
|
|
|
She turned away.
|
|
|
|
"Amrah," said one of the lepers.
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian dropped the jar, and looked back, trembling.
|
|
|
|
"Who called me?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"Amrah."
|
|
|
|
The servant's wondering eyes settled upon the speaker's face.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you?" she cried.
|
|
|
|
"We are they you are seeking."
|
|
|
|
Amrah fell upon her knees.
|
|
|
|
"O my mistress, my mistress! As I have made your God my God, be he
|
|
praised that he has led me to you!"
|
|
|
|
And upon her knees the poor overwhelmed creature began moving
|
|
forward.
|
|
|
|
"Stay, Amrah! Come not nearer. Unclean, unclean!"
|
|
|
|
The words sufficed. Amrah fell upon her face, sobbing so loud the
|
|
people at the well heard her. Suddenly she arose upon her knees again.
|
|
|
|
"O my mistress, where is Tirzah!"
|
|
|
|
"Here I am, Amrah, here! Will you bring me a little water?"
|
|
|
|
The habit of the servant renewed itself. Putting back the coarse
|
|
hair fallen over her face, Amrah arose and went to the basket and
|
|
uncovered it.
|
|
|
|
"See," she said, "here are bread and meat."
|
|
|
|
She would have spread the napkin upon the ground, but the mistress
|
|
spoke again-
|
|
|
|
"Do not so, Amrah. Those yonder may stone you, and refuse us
|
|
drink. Leave the basket with me. Take up the jar and fill it, and
|
|
bring it here. We will carry them to the tomb with us. For this day
|
|
you will then have rendered all the service that is lawful. Haste,
|
|
Amrah."
|
|
|
|
The people under whose eyes all this had passed made way for the
|
|
servant, and even helped her fill the jar, so piteous was the grief
|
|
her countenance showed.
|
|
|
|
"Who are they?" a woman asked.
|
|
|
|
Amrah meekly answered, "They used to be good to me."
|
|
|
|
Raising the jar upon her shoulder, she hurried back. In
|
|
forgetfulness she would have gone to them, but the cry "Unclean,
|
|
unclean! Beware!" arrested her. Placing the water by the basket, she
|
|
stepped back, and stood off a little way.
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, Amrah," said the mistress, taking the articles into
|
|
possession. "This is very good of you."
|
|
|
|
"Is there nothing more I can do?" asked Amrah.
|
|
|
|
The mother's hand was upon the jar, and she was fevered with thirst;
|
|
yet she paused, and, rising, said firmly, "Yes, I know that Judah
|
|
has come home. I saw him at the gate the night before last, asleep
|
|
on the step. I saw you wake him."
|
|
|
|
Amrah clasped her hands.
|
|
|
|
"O my mistress! You saw it, and did not come!"
|
|
|
|
"That would have been to kill him. I can never take him in my arms
|
|
again. I can never kiss him more. O Amrah, Amrah, you love him, I
|
|
know!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said the true heart, bursting into tears again, and kneeling.
|
|
"I would die for him."
|
|
|
|
"Prove to me what you say, Amrah."
|
|
|
|
"I am ready."
|
|
|
|
"Then you shall not tell him where we are or that you have seen
|
|
us- only that, Amrah."
|
|
|
|
"But he is looking for you. He has come from afar to find you."
|
|
|
|
"He must not find us. He shall become what we are. Hear, Amrah.
|
|
You shall serve us as you have this day. You shall bring us the little
|
|
we need- not long now- not long. You shall come every morning and
|
|
evening thus, and- and"- the voice trembled, the strong will almost
|
|
broke down- "and you shall tell us of him, Amrah; but to him you shall
|
|
say nothing of us. Hear you?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, it will be so hard to hear him speak of you, and see him
|
|
going about looking for you- to see all his love, and not tell him
|
|
so much as that you are alive!"
|
|
|
|
"Can you tell him we are well, Amrah?"
|
|
|
|
The servant bowed her head in her arms.
|
|
|
|
"No," the mistress continued; "wherefore be silent altogether. Go
|
|
now, and come this evening. We will look for you. Till then,
|
|
farewell."
|
|
|
|
"The burden will be heavy, O my mistress, and hard to bear," said
|
|
Amrah, falling upon her face.
|
|
|
|
"How much harder would it be to see him as we are," the mother
|
|
answered as she gave the basket to Tirzah. "Come again this
|
|
evening," she repeated, taking up the water, and starting for the
|
|
tomb.
|
|
|
|
Amrah waited kneeling until they had disappeared; then she took
|
|
the road sorrowfully home.
|
|
|
|
In the evening she returned and thereafter it became her custom to
|
|
serve them in the morning and evening, so that they wanted for nothing
|
|
needful. The tomb, though ever so stony and desolate, was less
|
|
cheerless than the cell in the Tower had been. Daylight gilded its
|
|
door, and it was in the beautiful world. Then, one can wait death with
|
|
so much more faith out under the open sky.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
A TRICK OF PILATE'S- THE COMBAT.
|
|
|
|
THE morning of the first day of the seventh month- Tishri in the
|
|
Hebrew, October in English- Ben-Hur arose from his couch in the khan
|
|
ill-satisfied with the whole world.
|
|
|
|
Little time had been lost in consultation upon the arrival of
|
|
Malluch. The latter began the search at the Tower of Antonia, and
|
|
began it boldly, by a direct inquiry of the tribune commanding. He
|
|
gave the officer a history of the Hurs, and all the particulars of the
|
|
accident to Gratus, describing the affair as wholly without
|
|
criminality. The object of the quest now, he said, was if any of the
|
|
unhappy family were discovered alive to carry a petition to the feet
|
|
of Caesar, praying restitution of the estate and return to their civil
|
|
rights. Such a petition, he had no doubt, would result in an
|
|
investigation by the imperial order, a proceeding of which the friends
|
|
of the family had no fear.
|
|
|
|
In reply the tribune stated circumstantially the discovery of the
|
|
women in the Tower, and permitted a reading of the memorandum he had
|
|
taken of their account of themselves; when leave to copy it was
|
|
prayed, he even permitted that.
|
|
|
|
Malluch thereupon hurried to Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
It were useless to attempt description of the effect the terrible
|
|
story had upon the young man. The pain was not relieved by tears or
|
|
passionate outcries! it was too deep for any expression. He sat
|
|
still a long time, with pallid face and labouring heart. Now and then,
|
|
as if to show the thoughts which were most poignant, he muttered-
|
|
|
|
"Lepers, lepers! They- my mother and Tirzah- they lepers! How
|
|
long, how long, O Lord!"
|
|
|
|
One moment he was torn by a virtuous rage of sorrow, next by a
|
|
longing for vengeance, which, it must be admitted, was scarcely less
|
|
virtuous.
|
|
|
|
At length he arose.
|
|
|
|
"I must look for them. They may be dying."
|
|
|
|
"Where will you look?" asked Malluch.
|
|
|
|
"There is but one place for them to go."
|
|
|
|
Malluch interposed, and finally prevailed so far as to have the
|
|
management of the further attempt intrusted to him. Together they went
|
|
to the gate over on the side opposite the Hill of Evil Counsel,
|
|
immemorially the lepers' begging-ground. There they stayed all day,
|
|
giving alms, asking for the two women, and offering rich rewards for
|
|
their discovery. So they did in repetition day after day through the
|
|
remainder of the fifth month, and all the sixth. There was diligent
|
|
scouring of the dread city on the hill by lepers to whom the rewards
|
|
offered were mighty incentives, for they were only dead in law. Over
|
|
and over again the gaping tomb down by the well was invaded, and its
|
|
tenants subjected to inquiry; but they kept their secret fast. The
|
|
result was failure. And now, the morning of the first day of the
|
|
seventh month, the extent of the additional information gained was
|
|
that not long before two leprous women had been stoned from the Fish
|
|
Gate by the authorities. A little pressing of the clue, together
|
|
with some shrewd comparison of dates, led to the sad assurance that
|
|
the sufferers were the Hurs, and left the old questions darker than
|
|
ever. Where were they? And what had become of them?
|
|
|
|
"It was not enough that my people should be made lepers," said the
|
|
son, over and over again, with what intensity of bitterness the reader
|
|
may imagine; "that was not enough. Oh no! They must be stoned from
|
|
their native city! My mother is dead! she has wandered to the
|
|
wilderness! she is dead! Tirzah is dead! I alone am left. And for
|
|
what? How long, O God, thou Lord God of my fathers, how long shall
|
|
this Rome endure?"
|
|
|
|
Angry, hopeless, vengeful, he entered the court of the khan, and
|
|
found it crowded with people come in during the night. While he ate
|
|
his breakfast, he listened to some of them. To one party he was
|
|
specially attracted. They were mostly young, stout, active, hardy men,
|
|
in manner and speech provincial. In their look, the certain
|
|
indefinable air, the pose of the head, glance of the eye, there was
|
|
a spirit which did not, as a rule, belong to the outward seeming of
|
|
the lower orders of Jerusalem; the spirit thought by some to be a
|
|
peculiarity of life in mountainous districts, but which may be more
|
|
surely traced to a life of healthful freedom. In a short time he
|
|
ascertained they were Galileans, in the city for various purposes, but
|
|
chiefly to take part in the Feast of Trumpets, set for that day.
|
|
They became to him at once objects of interest, as hailing from the
|
|
region in which he hoped to find readiest support in the work he was
|
|
shortly to set about.
|
|
|
|
While observing them, his mind running ahead in thought of
|
|
achievements possible to a legion of such spirits disciplined after
|
|
the severe Roman style, a man came into the court, his face much
|
|
flushed, his eyes bright with excitement.
|
|
|
|
"Why are you here?" he said to the Galileans. "The rabbis and elders
|
|
are going from the Temple to see Pilate. Come, make haste, and let
|
|
us go with them.
|
|
|
|
They surrounded him in a moment.
|
|
|
|
"To see Pilate! For what?"
|
|
|
|
"They have discovered a conspiracy. Pilate's new aqueduct is to be
|
|
paid for with money of the Temple."
|
|
|
|
"What, with the sacred treasure?"
|
|
|
|
They repeated the question to each other with flashing eyes.
|
|
|
|
"It is Corban- money of God. Let him touch a shekel of it if he
|
|
dare!"
|
|
|
|
"Come," cried the messenger. "The procession is by this time
|
|
across the bridge. The whole city is pouring after. We may be
|
|
needed. Make haste!"
|
|
|
|
As if the thought and the act were one, there was quick putting-away
|
|
of useless garments, and the party stood forth bareheaded, and in
|
|
the short sleeveless under-tunics they were used to wearing as reapers
|
|
in the field and boatmen on the lake- the garb in which they climbed
|
|
the hills following the herds, and plucked the ripened vintage,
|
|
careless of the sun. Lingering only to tighten their girdles, they
|
|
said, "We are ready."
|
|
|
|
Then Ben-Hur spoke to them.
|
|
|
|
"Men of Galilee," he said, "I am a son of Judah. Will you take me in
|
|
your company?"
|
|
|
|
"We may have to fight," they replied.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, then, I will not be first to run away!"
|
|
|
|
They took the retort in good-humour, and the messenger said-
|
|
|
|
"You seem stout enough. Come along."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur put off his outer garments.
|
|
|
|
"You think there may be fighting?" he asked, quietly, as he
|
|
tightened his girdle.
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"With whom?"
|
|
|
|
"The guard."
|
|
|
|
"Legionaries?"
|
|
|
|
"Whom else can a Roman trust?"
|
|
|
|
"What have you to fight with?"
|
|
|
|
They looked at him silently.
|
|
|
|
"Well," he continued, "we will have to do the best we can; but had
|
|
we not better choose a leader? The legionaries always have one, and so
|
|
are able to act with one mind."
|
|
|
|
The Galileans stared more curiously, as if the idea were new to
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
"Let us at least agree to stay together," he said. "Now I am
|
|
ready, if you are."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, let us go."
|
|
|
|
The khan, it should not be forgotten, was in Bezetha, the new
|
|
town; and to get to the Praetorium, as the Romans resonantly styled
|
|
the palace of Herod on Mount Zion, the party had to cross the lowlands
|
|
north and west of the Temple. By streets- if they may be so called-
|
|
trending north and south, with intersections hardly up to the
|
|
dignity of alleys, they passed rapidly round the Akra district to
|
|
the Tower of Mariamne, from which the way was short to the grand
|
|
gate of the walled heights. In going, they overtook, or were overtaken
|
|
by, people like themselves stirred to wrath by news of the proposed
|
|
desecration. When, at length, they reached the gate of the Praetorium,
|
|
the procession of elders and rabbis had passed in with a great
|
|
following, leaving a greater crowd clamouring outside.
|
|
|
|
A centurion kept the entrance with the guard drawn up full armed
|
|
under the beautiful marble battlements. The sun struck the soldiers
|
|
fervidly on helm and shield; but they kept their ranks indifferent
|
|
alike to its dazzle and to the mouthings of the rabble. Through the
|
|
open bronze gates a current of citizens poured in, while a much lesser
|
|
one poured out.
|
|
|
|
"What is going on?" one of the Galileans asked an outcomer.
|
|
|
|
"Nothing," was the reply. "The rabbis are before the door of the
|
|
palace asking to see Pilate. He has refused to come out. They have
|
|
sent one to tell him they will not go away till he has heard them.
|
|
They are waiting."
|
|
|
|
"Let us go in," said Ben-Hur, in his quiet way, seeing what his
|
|
companions probably did not, that there was not only a disagreement
|
|
between the suitors and the governor, but an issue joined, and a
|
|
serious question as to who should have his will.
|
|
|
|
Inside the gate there was a row of trees in leaf, with seats under
|
|
them. The people, whether going or coming, carefully avoided the shade
|
|
cast gratefully upon the white, clean-swept pavement; for, strange
|
|
as it may seem, a rabbinical ordinance, alleged to have been derived
|
|
from the law, permitted no green thing to be grown within the walls of
|
|
Jerusalem. Even the wise king, it was said, wanting a garden for his
|
|
Egyptian bride, was constrained to found it down in the
|
|
meeting-place of the valleys above En-rogel.
|
|
|
|
Through the tree-tops shone the outer fronts of the palace.
|
|
Turning to the right, the party proceeded a short distance to a
|
|
spacious square, on the west side of which stood the residence of
|
|
the governor. An excited multitude filled the square. Every face was
|
|
directed towards a portico built over a broad doorway which was
|
|
closed. Under the portico there was another array of legionaries.
|
|
|
|
The throng was so close the friends could not well have advanced
|
|
if such had been their desire; they remained therefore in the rear,
|
|
observers of what was going on. About the portico they could see the
|
|
high turbans of the rabbis, whose impatience communicated at times
|
|
to the mass behind them; a cry was frequent to the effect, "Pilate, if
|
|
thou be a governor, come forth, come forth!"
|
|
|
|
Once a man coming out pushed through the crowd, his face red with
|
|
anger.
|
|
|
|
"Israel is of no account here," he said, in a loud voice. "On this
|
|
holy ground we are no better than dogs of Rome."
|
|
|
|
"Will he not come out, think you?"
|
|
|
|
"Come? Has he not thrice refused?"
|
|
|
|
"What will the rabbis do?"
|
|
|
|
"As at Caesarea- camp here till he gives them ear."
|
|
|
|
"He will not dare touch the treasure, will he?" asked one of the
|
|
Galileans.
|
|
|
|
"Who can say? Did not a Roman profane the Holy of Holies? Is there
|
|
anything sacred from Romans?"
|
|
|
|
An hour passed, and though Pilate deigned them no answer, the rabbis
|
|
and crowd remained. Noon came, bringing a shower from the west, but no
|
|
change in the situation, except that the multitude was larger and much
|
|
noisier, and the feeling more decidedly angry. The shouting was almost
|
|
continuous, Come forth, come forth! The cry was sometimes with
|
|
disrespectful variations. Meanwhile Ben-Hur held his Galilean
|
|
friends together. He judged the pride of the Roman would eventually
|
|
get the better of his discretion, and that the end could not be far
|
|
off. Pilate was but waiting for the people to furnish him an excuse
|
|
for resort to violence.
|
|
|
|
And at last the end came. In the midst of the assemblage there was
|
|
heard the sound of blows, succeeded instantly by yells of pain and
|
|
rage, and a most furious commotion. The venerable men in front of
|
|
the portico faced about aghast. The common people in the rear at first
|
|
pushed forward; in the centre, the effort was to get out; and for a
|
|
short time the pressure of opposing forces was terrible. A thousand
|
|
voices made inquiry, raised all at once; as no one had time to answer,
|
|
the surprise speedily became a panic.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur kept his senses.
|
|
|
|
"You cannot see," he said to one of the Galileans.
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"I will raise you up."
|
|
|
|
He caught the man about the middle, and lifted him bodily.
|
|
|
|
"What is it?"
|
|
|
|
"I see now," said the man. "There are some armed with dubs, and they
|
|
are beating the people. They are dressed like Jews."
|
|
|
|
"Who are they?"
|
|
|
|
"Romans, as the Lord liveth! Romans in disguise. Their clubs fly
|
|
like flails! There, I saw a rabbi struck down- an old man! They
|
|
spare nobody!"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur let the man down.
|
|
|
|
"Men of Galilee," he said, "it is a trick of Pilate's. Now, will you
|
|
do what I say, we will get even with the club-men."
|
|
|
|
The Galilean spirit arose.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes!" they answered.
|
|
|
|
"Let us go back to the trees by the gate, and we may find the
|
|
planting of Herod, though unlawful, has some good in it after all.
|
|
Come!"
|
|
|
|
They ran back all of them fast as they could; and, by throwing their
|
|
united weight upon the limbs, tore them from the trunks. In a brief
|
|
time they, too, were armed. Returning, at the corner of the square
|
|
they met the crowd rushing madly for the gate. Behind, the clamour
|
|
continued- a medley of shrieks, groans, and execrations.
|
|
|
|
"To the wall!" Ben-Hur shouted. "To the wall!- and let the herd go
|
|
by!"
|
|
|
|
So, clinging to the masonry at their right hand, they escaped the
|
|
might of the rush, and little by little made headway until, at last,
|
|
the square was reached.
|
|
|
|
"Keep together now, and follow me!"
|
|
|
|
By this time Ben-Hur's leadership was perfect; and as he pushed into
|
|
the seething mob his party closed after him in a body. And when the
|
|
Romans, clubbing the people and making merry as they struck them down,
|
|
came hand to hand with the Galileans, lithe of limb, eager for the
|
|
fray, and equally armed, they were in turn surprised. Then the
|
|
shouting was close and fierce; the crash of sticks rapid and deadly;
|
|
the advance furious as hate could make it. No one performed his part
|
|
as well as Ben-Hur, whose training served him admirably; for, not
|
|
merely he knew to strike and guard; his long arm, perfect action,
|
|
and incomparable strength helped him, also, to success in every
|
|
encounter. He was at the same time fighting-man and leader. The club
|
|
he wielded was of goodly length and weighty, so had need to strike a
|
|
man but once. He seemed, moreover, to have eyes for each combat of his
|
|
friends, and the faculty of being at the right moment exactly where he
|
|
was most needed. In his fighting cry there were inspiration for his
|
|
party and alarm for his enemies. Thus surprised and equally matched,
|
|
the Romans at first retired, but finally turned their backs and fled
|
|
to the portico. The impetuous Galileans would have pursued them to the
|
|
steps, but Ben-Hur wisely restrained them.
|
|
|
|
"Stay, my men!" he said. "The centurion yonder is coming with the
|
|
guard. They have swords and shields; we cannot fight them. We have
|
|
done well; let us get back and out of the gate while we may."
|
|
|
|
They obeyed him, though slowly; for they had frequently to step over
|
|
their countrymen lying where they had been felled; some writhing and
|
|
groaning, some praying help, others mute as the dead. But the fallen
|
|
were not all Jews. In that there was consolation.
|
|
|
|
The centurion shouted to them as they went off; Ben-Hur laughed at
|
|
him, and replied in his own tongue, "If we are dogs of Israel, you are
|
|
Jackals of Rome. Remain here and we will come again."
|
|
|
|
The Galileans cheered, and, laughing, went on.
|
|
|
|
Outside the gate there was a multitude the like of which Ben-Hur had
|
|
never seen, not even in the circus at Antioch. The house-tops, the
|
|
streets, the slope of the hill, appeared densely covered with people
|
|
wailing and praying. The air was filled with their cries and
|
|
imprecations.
|
|
|
|
The party were permitted to pass without challenge by the outer
|
|
guard. But hardly were they out before the centurion in charge at
|
|
the portico appeared, and in the gateway called to Ben-Hur-
|
|
|
|
"Ho, insolent! Art thou a Roman or a Jew?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur answered, "I am a son of Judah, born here. What wouldst thou
|
|
with me?"
|
|
|
|
"Stay and fight."
|
|
|
|
"Singly?"
|
|
|
|
"As thou wilt!"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur laughed derisively.
|
|
|
|
"O brave Roman! Worthy son of the bastard Roman Jove! I have no
|
|
arms."
|
|
|
|
"Thou shalt have mine," the centurion answered. "I will borrow of
|
|
the guard here."
|
|
|
|
The people in hearing of the colloquy became silent; and from them
|
|
the hush spread afar. But lately Ben-Hur had beaten a Roman under
|
|
the eyes of Antioch and the Farther East; now, could he beat another
|
|
one under the eyes of Jerusalem, the honour might be vastly profitable
|
|
to the cause of the New King. He did not hesitate. Going frankly to
|
|
the centurion, he said, "I am. willing. Lend me thy sword and shield."
|
|
|
|
"And the helm and breastplate?" asked the Roman.
|
|
|
|
"Keep them. They might not fit me."
|
|
|
|
The arms were as frankly delivered, and directly the centurion was
|
|
ready. All this time the soldiers in rank close by the gate never
|
|
moved; they simply listened. As to the multitude, only when the
|
|
combatants advanced to begin the fight the question sped from mouth to
|
|
mouth, "Who is he?" And no one knew.
|
|
|
|
Now the Roman supremacy in arms lay in three things- submission to
|
|
discipline, the legionary formation of battle, and a peculiar use of
|
|
the short sword. In combat, they never struck, or cut; from first to
|
|
last they thrust- they advanced thrusting, they retired thrusting; and
|
|
generally their aim was at the foeman's face. All this was well
|
|
known to Ben-Hur. As they were about to engage he said-
|
|
|
|
"I told thee I was a son of Judah; but I did not tell that I am
|
|
lanista-taught. Defend thyself!"
|
|
|
|
At the last word Ben-Hur closed with his antagonist. A moment,
|
|
standing foot to foot, they glared at each other over the rims of
|
|
their embossed shields; then the Roman pushed forward and feinted an
|
|
under-thrust. The Jew laughed at him. A thrust at the face followed.
|
|
The Jew stepped lightly to the left; quick as the thrust was, the step
|
|
was quicker. Under the lifted arm of the foe he slid his shield,
|
|
advancing it until the sword and sword-arm were both caught on its
|
|
upper surface; another step, this time forward and left, and the man's
|
|
whole right side was offered to the point. The centurion fell
|
|
heavily on his breast, clanging the pavement, and Ben-Hur had won.
|
|
With his foot upon his enemy's back, he raised his shield overhead
|
|
after a gladiatorial custom, and saluted the imperturbable soldiers by
|
|
the gate.
|
|
|
|
When the people realized the victory they behaved like mad. On the
|
|
houses far as the Xystus, fast as the word could fly, they waved their
|
|
shawls and handkerchiefs and shouted; and if he had consented, the
|
|
Galileans would have carried Ben-Hur off upon their shoulders.
|
|
|
|
To a petty officer who then advanced from the gate he said, "Thy
|
|
comrade died like a soldier. I leave him undespoiled. Only his sword
|
|
and shield are mine."
|
|
|
|
With that he walked away. Off a little he spoke to the Galileans-
|
|
|
|
"Brethren, you have behaved well. Let us now separate, lest we be
|
|
pursued. Meet me to-night at the khan in Bethany. I have something
|
|
to propose to you of great interest to Israel."
|
|
|
|
"Who are you?" they asked him.
|
|
|
|
"A son of Judah," he answered, simply.
|
|
|
|
A throng eager to see him surged around the party.
|
|
|
|
"Will you come to Bethany?" he asked. "Yes, we will come." "Then
|
|
bring with you this sword and shield, that I may know you."
|
|
|
|
Pushing brusquely through the increasing crowd, he speedily
|
|
disappeared.
|
|
|
|
At the instance of Pilate, the people went up from the city and
|
|
carried off their dead and wounded, and there was much mourning for
|
|
them; but the grief was greatly lightened by the victory of the
|
|
unknown champion, who was everywhere sought, and by every one
|
|
extolled. The fainting spirit of the nation was revived by the brave
|
|
deed; insomuch that in the streets and up in the Temple even, amidst
|
|
the solemnities of the feast, old tales of the Maccabees were told
|
|
again, and thousands shook their heads, whispering wisely-
|
|
|
|
"A little longer, only a little longer, brethren, and Israel will
|
|
come to her own. Let there be faith in the Lord, and patience."
|
|
|
|
In such manner Ben-Hur obtained hold on Galilee, and paved the way
|
|
to greater services in the cause of the King Who Was Coming.
|
|
|
|
And with what result we shall see.
|
|
|
|
BOOK SEVENTH.
|
|
|
|
"And, waking, I beheld her there
|
|
|
|
Sea-dreaming in the moted air,
|
|
|
|
A siren lithe and debonair,
|
|
|
|
With wristlets woven of scarlet weeds,
|
|
|
|
And oblong lucent amber beads
|
|
|
|
Of sea-kelp shining in her hair."
|
|
|
|
-THOMAS BAILEY ALDRICH.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
JERUSALEM GOES OUT TO A PROPHET.
|
|
|
|
THE meeting took place in the khan of Bethany as appointed. Thence
|
|
Ben-Hur went with the Galileans into their country, where his exploits
|
|
up in the old Market-place gave him fame and influence. Before the
|
|
winter was gone he raised three legions, and organized them after
|
|
the Roman pattern. He could have had as many more, for the martial
|
|
spirit of that gallant people never slept. The proceeding, however,
|
|
required careful guarding as against both Rome and Herod Antipas.
|
|
Contenting himself for the present with the three, he strove to
|
|
train and educate them for systematic action. For that purpose he
|
|
carried the officers over into the lava-beds of Trachonitis, and
|
|
taught them the use of arms, particularly the javelin and sword, and
|
|
the manoeuvring peculiar to the legionary formation; after which he
|
|
sent them home as teachers. And soon the training became a pastime
|
|
of the people.
|
|
|
|
As may be thought, the task called for patience, skill, zeal, faith,
|
|
and devotion on his part- qualities into which the power of
|
|
inspiring others in matters of difficulty is always resolvable; and
|
|
never man possessed them in greater degree or used them to better
|
|
effect. How he laboured! And with utter denial of self! Yet withal
|
|
he would have failed but for the support he had from Simonides, who
|
|
furnished him arms and money, and from Ilderim, who kept watch and
|
|
brought him supplies. And still he would have failed but for the
|
|
genius of the Galileans.
|
|
|
|
Under that name were comprehended the four tribes- Asher, Zebulon,
|
|
Issachar, and Naphthali- and the districts originally set apart to
|
|
them. The Jew born in sight of the Temple despised these brethren of
|
|
the north; but the Talmud itself has said, "The Galilean loves honour,
|
|
and the Jew money."
|
|
|
|
Hating Rome fervidly as they loved their own country, in every
|
|
revolt they were first in the field and last to leave it. One
|
|
hundred and fifty thousand Galilean youths perished in the final war
|
|
with Rome. For the great festal days they went up to Jerusalem
|
|
marching and camping like armies; yet they were liberal in
|
|
sentiment, and even tolerant to heathenism. In Herod's beautiful
|
|
cities, which were Roman in all things, in Sepphoris and Tiberias
|
|
especially, they took pride, and in the building them gave loyal
|
|
support. They had for fellow-citizens men from the outside world
|
|
everywhere, and lived in peace with them. To the glory of the Hebrew
|
|
name they contributed poets like the singer of the Song of Songs,
|
|
and prophets like Hosea.
|
|
|
|
Upon such a people- so quick, so proud, so brave, so devoted, so
|
|
imaginative- a tale like that of the coming of the King was
|
|
all-powerful. That he was coming to put Rome down would have been
|
|
sufficient to enlist them in the scheme proposed by Ben-Hur; but when,
|
|
besides, they were assured he was to rule the world, more mighty
|
|
than Caesar, more magnificent than Solomon, and that the rule was to
|
|
last forever, the appeal was irresistible, and they vowed themselves
|
|
to the cause, body and soul. They asked Ben-Hur his authority for
|
|
the sayings, and he quoted the prophets, and told them of Balthasar in
|
|
waiting over in Antioch; and they were satisfied, for it was the old
|
|
much-loved legend of the Messiah, familiar to them almost as the
|
|
name of the Lord; the long-cherished dream with a time fixed for its
|
|
realization. The King was not merely coming now; he was at hand.
|
|
|
|
So with Ben-Hur the winter months rolled by, and spring came, with
|
|
gladdening showers blown over from the summering sea in the west;
|
|
and by that time so earnestly and successfully had he toiled that he
|
|
could say to himself and his followers, "Let the good King come. He
|
|
has only to tell us where he will have his throne set up. We have
|
|
the sword-hands to keep it for him."
|
|
|
|
And in all his dealings with the many men they knew him only as a
|
|
son of Judah, and by that name.
|
|
|
|
* * * * *
|
|
|
|
One evening, over in Trachonitis, Ben-Hur was sitting with some of
|
|
his Galileans at the mouth of the cave in which he quartered, when
|
|
an Arab courier rode to him, and delivered a letter. Breaking the
|
|
package, he read-
|
|
|
|
"JERUSALEM, Nisan IV.
|
|
|
|
"A prophet has appeared who men say is Elias. He has been in the
|
|
wilderness for years, and to our eyes he is a prophet; and such also
|
|
is his speech, the burden of which is of one much greater than
|
|
himself, who, he says, is to come presently, and for whom he is now
|
|
waiting on the eastern shore of the River Jordan. I have been to see
|
|
and hear him, and the one he is waiting for is certainly the King
|
|
you are awaiting. Come and Judge for yourself.
|
|
|
|
"All Jerusalem is going out to the prophet, and with many people
|
|
else the shore on which he abides is like Mount Olivet in the last
|
|
days of the Passover.
|
|
|
|
"MALLUCH."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur's face flushed with joy.
|
|
|
|
"By this word, O my friends," he said- "by this word, our waiting is
|
|
at end. The herald of the King has appeared and announced him."
|
|
|
|
Upon hearing the letter read, they also rejoiced at the promise it
|
|
held out.
|
|
|
|
"Get ready now," he added, "and in the morning set your faces
|
|
homeward; when arrived there, send word to those under you, and bid
|
|
them be ready to assemble as I may direct. For myself and you, I
|
|
will go see if the King be indeed at hand, and send you report. Let
|
|
us, in the meantime, live in the pleasure of the promise."
|
|
|
|
Going into the cave, he addressed a letter to Ilderim, and another
|
|
to Simonides, giving notice of the news received, and of his purpose
|
|
to go up immediately to Jerusalem. The letters he despatched by
|
|
swift messengers. When night fell, and the stars of direction came
|
|
out, he mounted, and with an Arab guide set out for the Jordan,
|
|
intending to strike the track of the caravans between Rabbath-Ammon
|
|
and Damascus.
|
|
|
|
The guide was sure, and Aldebaran swift; so by midnight the two were
|
|
out of the lava fastness speeding southward.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
NOONING BY THE POOL- IRAS.
|
|
|
|
IT was Ben-Hur's purpose to turn aside at the break of day, and find
|
|
a safe place in which to rest; but the dawn overtook him while out
|
|
in the desert, and he kept on, the guide promising to bring him
|
|
afterwhile to a vale shut in by great rocks, where there were a
|
|
spring, some mulberry-trees, and herbage in plenty for the horses.
|
|
|
|
As he rode, thinking of the wondrous events so soon to happen, and
|
|
of the changes they were to bring about in the affairs of men and
|
|
nations, the guide, ever on the alert, called attention to the
|
|
appearance of strangers behind them. Everywhere around the desert
|
|
stretched away in waves of sand, slowly yellowing in the growing
|
|
light, and without any green thing visible. Over on the left, but
|
|
still far off, a range of low mountains extended, apparently
|
|
interminable. In the vacancy of such a waste an object in motion could
|
|
not long continue a mystery.
|
|
|
|
"It is a camel with riders," the guide said, directly.
|
|
|
|
"Are there others behind?" said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"It is alone. No, there is a man on horseback- the driver,
|
|
probably."
|
|
|
|
A little later Ben-Hur himself could see the camel was white and
|
|
unusually large, reminding him of the wonderful animal he had seen
|
|
bring Balthasar and Iras to the fountain in the Grove of Daphne. There
|
|
could be no other like it. Thinking then of the fair Egyptian,
|
|
insensibly his gait became slower, and at length fell into the
|
|
merest loiter, until finally he could discern a curtained houdah,
|
|
and two persons seated within it. If they were Balthasar and Iras!
|
|
Should he make himself known to them? But it could not be: this was
|
|
the desert- and they were alone. But while he debated the question the
|
|
long swinging stride of the camel brought its riders up to him. He
|
|
heard the ringing of the tiny bells and beheld the rich housings which
|
|
had been so attractive to the crowd at the Castalian fount. He
|
|
beheld also the Ethiopian, always attendant upon the Egyptians. The
|
|
tall brute stopped close by his horse, and Ben-Hur, looking up, lo!
|
|
Iras herself under the raised curtain looking down at him, her great
|
|
swimming eyes bright with astonishment and inquiry!
|
|
|
|
"The blessing of the true God upon you!" said Balthasar, in his
|
|
tremulous voice.
|
|
|
|
"And to thee and thine be the peace of the Lord," Ben-Hur replied.
|
|
|
|
"My eyes are weak with years," said Balthasar; "but they approve you
|
|
that son of Hur whom lately I knew an honoured guest in the tent of
|
|
Ilderim the Generous."
|
|
|
|
"And thou art that Balthasar, the wise Egyptian, whose speech
|
|
concerning certain holy things in expectation is having so much to
|
|
do with the finding me in this waste place. What dost thou here?"
|
|
|
|
"He is never alone who is where God is- and God is everywhere,"
|
|
Balthasar answered, gravely; "but in the sense of your asking, there
|
|
is a caravan a short way behind us going to Alexandria; and as it is
|
|
to pass through Jerusalem, I thought best to avail myself of its
|
|
company as far as the Holy City, whither I am journeying. This
|
|
morning, however, in discontent with its slow movement- slower because
|
|
of a Roman cohort in attendance upon it- we rose early, and ventured
|
|
thus far in advance. As to robbers along the way, we are not afraid,
|
|
for I have here a signet of Sheik Ilderim; against beasts of prey, God
|
|
is our sufficient trust."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur bowed and said, "The good sheik's signet is a safe-guard
|
|
wherever the wilderness extends, and the lion shall be swift that
|
|
overtakes this king of his kind."
|
|
|
|
He patted the neck of the camel as he spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Yet," said Iras, with a smile which was not lost upon the youth,
|
|
whose eyes, it must be admitted, had several times turned to her
|
|
during the interchange of speeches with the elder.- "Yet even he would
|
|
be better if his fast were broken. Kings have hunger and headaches. If
|
|
you be, indeed, the Ben-Hur of whom my father has spoken, and whom
|
|
it was my pleasure to have known as well, you will be happy, I am
|
|
sure, to show us some near path to living water, that with its sparkle
|
|
we may grace a morning's meal in the desert."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur, nothing loath, hastened to answer.
|
|
|
|
"Fair Egyptian, I give you sympathy. Can you bear suffering a little
|
|
longer, we will find the spring you ask for, and I promise that its
|
|
draught shall be as sweet and cooling as that of the more famous
|
|
Castalia. With leave, we will make haste."
|
|
|
|
"I give you the blessing of the thirsty," she replied; "and offer
|
|
you in return a bit of bread from the city ovens, dipped in fresh
|
|
butter from the dewy meadows of Damascus."
|
|
|
|
"A most rare favour. Let us go on."
|
|
|
|
So saying, Ben-Hur rode forward with his guide, one of the
|
|
inconveniences of travelling with camels being, that it is necessarily
|
|
an interdiction of polite conversation.
|
|
|
|
Afterwhile the party came to a shallow wady, down which, turning
|
|
to the right hand, the guide led them. The bed of the cut was somewhat
|
|
soft from recent rains, and quite bold in its descent. Momentarily,
|
|
however, it widened; and erelong the sides became bluffs ribbed with
|
|
rocks much scarred by floods rushing to lower depths ahead. Finally,
|
|
from a narrow passage, the travellers entered a spreading vale which
|
|
was very delightful; but come upon suddenly from the yellow,
|
|
unrelieved, verdureless plain, it had the effect of a
|
|
freshly-discovered Paradise. The water-channels winding here and
|
|
there, definable by crisp white shingling, appeared like threads
|
|
tangled among islands green with grasses and fringed with reeds. Up
|
|
from the final depths of the valley of the Jordan some venturous
|
|
oleanders had crept, and with their large bloom now starred the sunken
|
|
place. One palm-tree arose in royal assertion. The bases of the
|
|
boundary-walls were cloaked with clambering vines, and under a leaning
|
|
cliff over on the left the mulberry grove had planted itself,
|
|
proclaiming the spring which the party were seeking. And thither the
|
|
guide conducted them, careless of whistling partridges and lesser
|
|
birds of brighter hues roused whirring from the reedy coverts.
|
|
|
|
The water started from a crack in the cliff which some loving hand
|
|
had enlarged into an arched cavity. Graven over it in bold Hebraic
|
|
letters was the word GOD. The graver had no doubt drunk there, and
|
|
tarried many days, and given thanks in that durable form. From the
|
|
arch the stream ran merrily over a flag spotted with bright moss,
|
|
and leaped into a pool glassy clear; thence it stole away between
|
|
grassy banks, nursing the trees before it vanished in the thirsty
|
|
sand. A few narrow paths were noticeable about the margin of the pool;
|
|
otherwise the space around was untrodden turf, at sight of which the
|
|
guide was assured of rest free from intrusion by men. The horses
|
|
were presently turned loose, and from the kneeling camel the Ethiopian
|
|
assisted Balthasar and Iras; whereupon the old man, turning his face
|
|
to the east, crossed his hands reverently upon his breast and prayed.
|
|
|
|
"Bring me a cup," Iras said, with some impatience.
|
|
|
|
From the houdah the slave brought her a crystal goblet; then she
|
|
said to Ben-Hur-
|
|
|
|
"I will be your servant at the fountain."
|
|
|
|
They walked to the pool together. He would have dipped the water for
|
|
her, but she refused his offer, and kneeling, held the cup to be
|
|
filled by the stream itself; nor yet content, when it was cooled and
|
|
overrunning, she tendered him the first draught.
|
|
|
|
"No," he said, putting the graceful hand aside, and seeing only
|
|
the large eyes half hidden beneath the arches of the upraised brows,
|
|
"be the service mine, I pray." She persisted in having her way.
|
|
|
|
"In my country, O son of Hur, we have a saying, 'Better a
|
|
cupbearer to the fortunate than minister to a king.'"
|
|
|
|
"Fortunate!" he said.
|
|
|
|
There were both surprise and inquiry in the tone of his voice and in
|
|
his look, and she said quickly-
|
|
|
|
"The gods give us success as a sign by which we may know them on our
|
|
side. Were you not winner in the Circus?"
|
|
|
|
His cheeks began to flush.
|
|
|
|
"That was one sign. There is another. In a combat with swords you
|
|
slew a Roman."
|
|
|
|
The flush deepened- not so much for the triumphs themselves as the
|
|
flattery there was in the thought that she had followed his career
|
|
with interest. A moment, and the pleasure was succeeded by a
|
|
reflection. The combat, he knew, was matter of report throughout the
|
|
East; but the name of the victor had been committed to a very few-
|
|
Malluch, Ilderim, and Simonides. Could they have made a confidante
|
|
of the woman? So with wonder and gratification he was confused; and
|
|
seeing it, she arose and said, holding the cup over the pool-
|
|
|
|
"O gods of Egypt! I give thanks for a hero discovered- thanks that
|
|
the victim in the Palace of Idernee was not my king of men. And so,
|
|
O holy gods, I pour and drink."
|
|
|
|
Part of the contents of the cup she returned to the stream, the rest
|
|
she drank. When she took the crystal from her lips, she laughed at
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
"O son of Hur, is it a fashion of the very brave to be so easily
|
|
overcome by a woman? Take the cup now, and see if you cannot find a
|
|
happy word in it for me!"
|
|
|
|
He took the cup, and stooped to refill it.
|
|
|
|
"A son of Israel has no gods whom he can libate," he said, playing
|
|
with the water to hide his amazement, now greater than before. What
|
|
more did the Egyptian know about him? Had she been told of his
|
|
relations with Simonides? And there was the treaty with Ilderim- had
|
|
she knowledge of that also? He was struck with mistrust. Somebody
|
|
had betrayed his secrets, and they were serious. And, besides, he
|
|
was going to Jerusalem, just then of all the world the place where
|
|
such intelligence possessed by an enemy might be most dangerous to
|
|
him, his associates, and the cause. But was she an enemy? It is well
|
|
for us that, while writing is slow, thought is instantaneous. When the
|
|
cup was fairly cooled, he filled it and arose, saying, with
|
|
indifference well affected-
|
|
|
|
"Most fair, were I an Egyptian or a Greek or a Roman, I would
|
|
say"- he raised the goblet overhead as he spoke- "O ye better gods!
|
|
I give thanks that there are yet left to the world, despite its wrongs
|
|
and sufferings, the charm of beauty and the solace of love, and I
|
|
drink to her who best represents them- to Iras, loveliest of the
|
|
daughters of the Nile!"
|
|
|
|
She laid her hand softly upon his shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"You have offended against the law. The gods you have drunk to are
|
|
false gods. Why shall I not tell the rabbis on you?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" he replied, laughing, "that is very little to tell for one who
|
|
knows so much else that is really important."
|
|
|
|
"I will go further- I will go to the little Jewess who makes the
|
|
roses grow and the shadows flame in the house of the great merchant
|
|
over in Antioch. To the rabbis I will accuse you of impenitence; to
|
|
her- "
|
|
|
|
"Well, to her?"
|
|
|
|
"I will repeat what you have said to me under the lifted cup, with
|
|
the gods for witnesses."
|
|
|
|
He was still a moment, as if waiting for the Egyptian to go on. With
|
|
quickened fancy he saw Esther at her father's side listening to the
|
|
despatches he had forwarded- sometimes reading them. In her presence
|
|
he had told Simonides the story of the affair in the Palace of
|
|
Idernee. She and Iras were acquainted; this one was shrewd and
|
|
worldly; the other was simple and affectionate, and therefore easily
|
|
won. Simonides could not have broken faith- nor Ilderim- for if not
|
|
held by honour, there was no one, unless it might be himself, to
|
|
whom the consequences of exposure were more serious and certain. Could
|
|
Esther have been the Egyptian's informant? He did not accuse her;
|
|
yet a suspicion was sown with the thought, and suspicions, as we all
|
|
know, are weeds of the mind which grow of themselves, and most rapidly
|
|
when least wanted. Before he could answer the allusion to the little
|
|
Jewess, Balthasar came to the pool.
|
|
|
|
"We are greatly indebted to you, son of Hur," he said, in his
|
|
grave manner. "This vale is very beautiful; the grass, the trees,
|
|
the shade, invite us to stay and rest, and the spring here has the
|
|
sparkle of diamonds in motion, and sings to me of a loving God. It
|
|
is not enough to thank you for the enjoyment we find; come sit with
|
|
us, and taste our bread."
|
|
|
|
"Suffer me first to serve you."
|
|
|
|
With that Ben-Hur filled the goblet, and gave it to Balthasar, who
|
|
lifted his eyes in thanksgiving.
|
|
|
|
Immediately the slave brought napkins; and after laving their
|
|
hands and drying them, the three seated themselves in Eastern style
|
|
under the tent which years before had served the Wise Men at the
|
|
meeting in the desert. And they ate heartily of the good things
|
|
taken from the camel's pack.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
THE LIFE OF A SOUL.
|
|
|
|
THE tent was cosily pitched beneath a tree where the gurgle of the
|
|
stream was constantly in ear. Overhead the broad leaves hung
|
|
motionless on their stems; the delicate reed-stalks off in the
|
|
pearly haze stood up arrowy-straight; occasionally a home-returning
|
|
bee shot humming athwart the shade, and a partridge, creeping from the
|
|
sedge, drank, whistled to his mate, and ran away. The restfulness of
|
|
the vale, the freshness of the air, the garden beauty, the Sabbath
|
|
stillness, seemed to have affected the spirits of the elder
|
|
Egyptian; his voice, gestures, and whole manner were unusually gentle;
|
|
and often as he bent his eyes upon Ben-Hur conversing with Iras,
|
|
they softened with pity.
|
|
|
|
"When we overtook you, son of Hur," he said, at the conclusion of
|
|
the repast, "it seemed your face was also turned towards Jerusalem.
|
|
May I ask, without offence, if you are going so far?"
|
|
|
|
"I am going to the Holy City."
|
|
|
|
"For the great need I have to spare myself prolonged toil, I will
|
|
further ask you, Is there a shorter road than that by Rabbath-Ammon?"
|
|
|
|
"A rougher route, but shorter, lies by Geresa and Rabbath-Gilead. It
|
|
is the one I design taking."
|
|
|
|
"I am impatient," said Balthasar. "Latterly my sleep has been
|
|
visited by dreams- or rather by the same dream in repetition. A voice-
|
|
it is nothing more- comes and tells me, 'Haste- arise! He whom thou
|
|
hast so long awaited is at hand.'"
|
|
|
|
"You mean he that is to be King of the Jews?" Ben-Hur asked,
|
|
gazing at the Egyptian in wonder.
|
|
|
|
"Even so."
|
|
|
|
"Then you have heard nothing of him?"
|
|
|
|
"Nothing, except the words of the voice in the dream."
|
|
|
|
"Here, then, are tidings to make you glad as they made me."
|
|
|
|
From his gown Ben-Hur drew the letter received from Malluch. The
|
|
hand the Egyptian held out trembled violently. He read aloud, and as
|
|
he read his feelings increased; the limp veins in his neck swelled and
|
|
throbbed. At the conclusion he raised his suffused eyes in
|
|
thanksgiving and prayer. He asked no questions, yet had no doubts.
|
|
|
|
"Thou hast been very good to me, O God," he said. "Give me, I pray
|
|
thee, to see the Saviour again, and worship him, and thy servant
|
|
will be ready to go in peace."
|
|
|
|
The words, the manner, the singular personality of the simple
|
|
prayer, touched Ben-Hur with a sensation new and abiding. God never
|
|
seemed so actual and so near by it was as if he were there bending
|
|
over them or sitting at their side- a Friend whose favours were to
|
|
be had by the most unceremonious asking- a Father to whom all his
|
|
children were alike in love- Father, not more of the Jew than of the
|
|
Gentile- the universal Father, who needed no intermediates, no rabbis,
|
|
no priests, no teachers. The idea that such a God might send mankind a
|
|
Saviour instead of a king appeared to Ben-Hur in a light not merely
|
|
new, but so plain that he could almost discern both the greater want
|
|
of such a gift and its greater consistency with the nature of such a
|
|
Deity. So he could not resist asking-
|
|
|
|
"Now that he has come, O Balthasar, you still think he is to be a
|
|
Saviour, and not a king?"
|
|
|
|
Balthasar gave him a look thoughtful as it was tender.
|
|
|
|
"How shall I understand you?" he asked, in return. "The Spirit,
|
|
which was the Star that was my guide of old, has not appeared to me
|
|
since I met you in the tent of the good sheik; that is to say, I
|
|
have not seen or heard it as formerly. I believe the voice that
|
|
spoke to me in my dreams was it; but other than that I have no
|
|
revelation."
|
|
|
|
"I will recall the difference between us," said Ben-Hur, with
|
|
deference. "You were of opinion that he would be a king, but not as
|
|
Caesar is; you thought his sovereignty would be spiritual, not of
|
|
the world."
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes," the Egyptian answered; "and I am of the same opinion
|
|
now. I see the divergence in our faith. You are going to meet a king
|
|
of men, I a Saviour of Souls."
|
|
|
|
He paused with the look often seen when people are struggling,
|
|
with introverted effort, to disentangle a thought which is either
|
|
too high for quick discernment or too subtle for simple expression.
|
|
|
|
"Let me try, O son of Hur," he said, directly, "and help you to a
|
|
clear understanding of my belief; then it may be, seeing how the
|
|
spiritual kingdom I expect him to set up can be more excellent in
|
|
every sense than anything of mere Caesarean splendour, you will better
|
|
understand the reason of the interest I take in the mysterious
|
|
person we are going to welcome.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot tell you when the idea of a Soul in every man had its
|
|
origin. Most likely the first parents brought it with them out of
|
|
the garden in which they had their first dwelling. We all do know,
|
|
however, that it has never perished entirely out of mind. By some
|
|
peoples it was lost, but not by all; in some ages it dulled and faded;
|
|
in others it was overwhelmed with doubts; but, in great goodness,
|
|
God kept sending us at intervals mighty intellects to argue it back to
|
|
faith and hope.
|
|
|
|
"Why should there be a Soul in every man? Look, O son of Hur- for
|
|
one moment look at the necessity of such a device. To lie down and
|
|
die, and be no more- no more forever- time never was when man wished
|
|
for such an end; nor has the man ever been who did not in his heart
|
|
promise himself something better. The monuments of the nations are all
|
|
protests against nothingness after death; so are statues and
|
|
inscriptions; so is history. The greatest of our Egyptian kings had
|
|
his effigy cut out of a hill of solid rock. Day after day he went with
|
|
a host in chariots to see the work; at last it was finished, never
|
|
effigy so grand, so enduring: it looked like him- the features were
|
|
his, faithful even in expression. Now may we not think of him saying
|
|
in that moment of pride, 'Let Death come; there is an after-life for
|
|
me!' He had his wish. The statue is there yet.
|
|
|
|
"But what is the after-life he thus secured? Only a recollection
|
|
by men- a glory unsubstantial as moonshine on the brow of the great
|
|
bust: a story in stone- nothing more. Meantime, what has become of the
|
|
king? There is an embalmed body up in the royal tombs which once was
|
|
his- an effigy not so fair to look at as the other out in the
|
|
desert. But where, O son of Hur, where is the king himself? Is he
|
|
fallen into nothingness? Two thousand years have gone since he was a
|
|
man alive as you and I are. Was his last breath the end of him?
|
|
|
|
"To say yes would be to accuse God; let us rather accept his
|
|
better plan of attaining life after death for us- actual life, I mean-
|
|
the something more than a place in mortal memory; life with going
|
|
and coming, with sensation, with knowledge, with power, and all
|
|
appreciation; life eternal in term, though it may be with changes of
|
|
condition.
|
|
|
|
"Ask you what God's plan is? The gift of a Soul to each of us at
|
|
birth, with this simple law- there shall be no immortality except
|
|
through the Soul. In that law see the necessity of which I spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Let us turn from the necessity now. A word as to the pleasure there
|
|
is in the thought of a Soul in each of us. In the first place, it robs
|
|
death of its terrors by making dying a change for the better, and
|
|
burial but the planting of a seed from which there will spring a new
|
|
life. In the next place, behold me as I am- weak, weary, old, shrunken
|
|
in body, and graceless; look at my wrinkled face, think of my
|
|
failing senses, listen to my shrilled voice. Ah! what happiness to
|
|
me in the promise that when the tomb opens, as soon it will, to
|
|
receive the worn-out husk I call myself, the now viewless doors of the
|
|
universe, which is but the palace of God, will swing wide ajar to
|
|
receive me, a liberated immortal Soul!
|
|
|
|
"I would I could tell the ecstasy there must be in that life to
|
|
come! Do not say I know nothing about it. This much I know, and it
|
|
is enough for me- the being a Soul implies conditions of divine
|
|
superiority. In such a being there is no dust, nor any gross thing; it
|
|
must be finer than air, more impalpable than light, purer than
|
|
essence- it is life in absolute purity.
|
|
|
|
"What now, O son of Hur? Knowing so much, shall I dispute with
|
|
myself or you about the unnecessaries- about the form of my Soul? Or
|
|
where it is to abide? Or whether it eats or drinks? Or is winged, or
|
|
wears this or that? No. It is more becoming to trust in God. The
|
|
beautiful in this world is all from his hand, declaring the perfection
|
|
of taste; he is the author of all form; he clothes the lily, he
|
|
colours the rose, he distils the dewdrop, he makes the music of
|
|
nature; in a word, he organized us for this life, and imposed its
|
|
conditions; and they are such guaranty to me that, trustful as a
|
|
little child, I leave to him the organization of my Soul, and every
|
|
arrangement for the life after death. I know he loves me."
|
|
|
|
The good man stopped and drank, and the hand carrying the cup to his
|
|
lips trembled; and both Iras and Ben-Hur shared his emotion and
|
|
remained silent. Upon the latter a light was breaking. He was
|
|
beginning to see, as never before, that there might be a spiritual
|
|
kingdom of more import to men than any earthly empire; and that
|
|
after all a Saviour would indeed be a more godly gift than the
|
|
greatest king.
|
|
|
|
"I might ask you now," said Balthasar, continuing, "whether this
|
|
human life, so troubled and brief, is preferable to the perfect and
|
|
everlasting life designed for the Soul? But take the question, and
|
|
think of it for yourself, formulating thus: Supposing both to be
|
|
equally happy, is one hour more desirable than one year? From that
|
|
then advance to the final inquiry, what are threescore and ten years
|
|
on earth to all eternity with God? By-and-by, son of Hur, thinking
|
|
in such manner, you will be filled with the meaning of the fact I
|
|
present you next, to me the most amazing of all events, and in its
|
|
effects the most sorrowful; it is, that the very idea of life as a
|
|
Soul is a light almost gone out in the world. Here and there, to be
|
|
sure, a philosopher may be found who will talk to you of a Soul,
|
|
likening it to a principle; but because philosophers take nothing upon
|
|
faith, they will not go the length of admitting a Soul to be a
|
|
being, and on that account its purpose is compressed darkness to them.
|
|
|
|
"Everything animate has a mind measurable by its wants. Is there
|
|
to you no meaning in the singularity that power in full degree to
|
|
speculate upon the future was given to man alone? By the sign as I see
|
|
it, God meant to make us know ourselves created for another and a
|
|
better life, such being in fact the greatest need of our nature.
|
|
But, alas! into what a habit the nations have fallen! They live for
|
|
the day, as if the present were the all in all, and go about saying,
|
|
'There is no to-morrow after death; or if there be, since we know
|
|
nothing about it, be it a care unto itself.' So when Death calls them,
|
|
'Come,' they may not enter into enjoyment of the glorious after-life
|
|
because of their unfitness. That is to say, the ultimate happiness
|
|
of man was everlasting life in the society of God. Alas, O son of Hur,
|
|
that I should say it! but as well yon sleeping camel constant in
|
|
such society as the holiest priests this day serving the highest
|
|
altars in the most renowned temples. So much men are given to this
|
|
lower earthly life! So nearly have they forgotten that other which
|
|
is to come!
|
|
|
|
"See now, I pray you, that which is to be saved to us.
|
|
|
|
"For my part, speaking with the holiness of truth, I would not
|
|
give one hour of life as a Soul for a thousand years of life as a
|
|
man."
|
|
|
|
Here the Egyptian seemed to become unconscious of companionship
|
|
and fall away into abstraction.
|
|
|
|
"This life has its problems," he said, "and there are men who
|
|
spend their days trying to solve them; but what are they to the
|
|
problems of the hereafter? What is there like knowing God? Not a
|
|
scroll of the mysteries, but the mysteries themselves would for that
|
|
hour at least lie before me revealed; even the innermost and most
|
|
awful- the power which now we shrink from thought of- which rimmed the
|
|
void with shores, and lighted the darkness, and out of nothing
|
|
appointed the universe. All places would be opened. I would be
|
|
filled with divine knowledge; I would see all glories, taste all
|
|
delights; I would revel in being. And, if at the end of the hour, it
|
|
should please God to tell me, 'I take thee into my service forever,'
|
|
the furthest limit of desire would be passed; after which the
|
|
attainable ambitions of this life, and its joys of whatever kind,
|
|
would not be so much as the tinkling of little bells."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar paused as if to recover from very ecstasy of feeling;
|
|
and to Ben-Hur it seemed the speech had been the delivery of a Soul
|
|
speaking for itself.
|
|
|
|
"I pray pardon, son of Hur," the good man continued, with a bow, the
|
|
gravity of which was relieved by the tender look that followed it.
|
|
"I meant to leave the life of a Soul, its conditions, pleasures,
|
|
superiority, to your own reflection and finding out. The joy of the
|
|
thought has betrayed me into much speech. I set out to show, though
|
|
ever so faintly, the reason of my faith. It grieves me that words
|
|
are so weak. But help yourself to truth. Consider first the excellence
|
|
of the existence which was reserved for us after death, and give
|
|
heed to the feelings and impulses the thought is sure to awaken in
|
|
you- heed them, I say, because they are your own Soul astir, doing
|
|
what it can to urge you in the right way. Consider next that the
|
|
after-life has become so obscured as to justify calling it a lost
|
|
light. If you find it, rejoice, O Son of Hur- rejoice as I do,
|
|
though in beggary of words. For then, besides the great gift which
|
|
is to be saved to us, you will have found the need of a Saviour so
|
|
infinitely greater than the need of a king; and he we are going to
|
|
meet will not longer hold place in your hope a warrior with a sword or
|
|
a monarch with a crown.
|
|
|
|
"A practical question presents itself- How shall we know him at
|
|
sight? If you continue in your belief as to his character- that he
|
|
is to be a king as Herod was- of course you will keep on until you
|
|
meet a man clothed in purple and with a sceptre. On the other hand, he
|
|
I look for will be one poor, humble, undistinguished- a man in
|
|
appearance as other men; and the sign by which I will know him will be
|
|
never so simple. He will offer to slow me and all mankind the way to
|
|
the eternal life; the beautiful pure Life of the Soul."
|
|
|
|
The company sat a moment in silence, which was broken by Balthasar.
|
|
|
|
"Let us arise now," he said- "let us arise and set forward again.
|
|
What I have said has caused a return of impatience to see him who is
|
|
ever in my thought; and if I seem to hurry you, O son of Hur- and you,
|
|
my daughter- be that my excuse."
|
|
|
|
At his signal the slave brought them wine in a skin bottle; and they
|
|
poured and drank, and shaking the lap-cloths out, arose.
|
|
|
|
While the slave restored the tent and wares to the box under the
|
|
houdah, and the Arab brought up the horses, the three principals laved
|
|
themselves in the pool.
|
|
|
|
In a little while they were retracing their steps back through the
|
|
wady, intending to overtake the caravan if it had passed them by.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR KEEPS WATCH WITH IRAS.
|
|
|
|
THE caravan, stretched out upon the desert, was very picturesque; in
|
|
motion, however, it was like a lazy serpent. By-and-by its stubborn
|
|
dragging became intolerably irksome to Balthasar, patient as he was;
|
|
so, at his suggestion, the party determined to go on by themselves.
|
|
|
|
If the reader be young, or if he yet has a sympathetic
|
|
recollection of the romanticisms of his youth, he will relish the
|
|
pleasure with which Ben-Hur, riding near the camel of the Egyptians,
|
|
gave a last look at the head of the straggling column almost out of
|
|
sight on the shimmering plain.
|
|
|
|
To be definite as may be, and perfectly confidential, Ben-Hur
|
|
found a certain charm in Iras's presence. If she looked down upon
|
|
him from her high place, he made haste to get near her; if she spoke
|
|
to him, his heart beat out of its usual time. The desire to be
|
|
agreeable to her was a constant impulse. Objects on the way though
|
|
ever so common, became interesting the moment she called attention
|
|
to them; a black swallow in the air pursued by her pointing finger
|
|
went off in a halo; if a bit of quartz or a flake of mica was seen
|
|
to sparkle in the drab sand under kissing of the sun, at a word he
|
|
turned aside and brought it to her; and if she threw it away in
|
|
disappointment, far from thinking of the trouble he had been put to,
|
|
he was sorry it proved so worthless, and kept a look-out for something
|
|
better- a ruby, perchance a diamond. So the purple of the far
|
|
mountains became intensely deep and rich if she distinguished it
|
|
with an exclamation of praise; and when, now and then, the curtain
|
|
of the houdah fell down, it seemed a sudden dullness had dropped
|
|
from the sky, bedraggling all the landscape. Thus disposed, yielding
|
|
to the sweet influence, what shall save him from the dangers there are
|
|
in days of the close companionship with the fair Egyptian incident
|
|
to the solitary journey they were entered upon?
|
|
|
|
For that there is no logic in love, nor the least mathematical
|
|
element, it is simply natural that she shall fashion the result who
|
|
has the wielding of the influence.
|
|
|
|
To quicken the conclusion, there were signs, too, that she well knew
|
|
the influence she was exercising over him. From some place under
|
|
hand she had since morning drawn a caul of golden coins, and
|
|
adjusted it so the gleaming strings fell over her forehead and upon
|
|
her cheeks, blending lustrously with the flowing of her blue-black
|
|
hair. From the same safe deposit she had also produced articles of
|
|
jewelry- rings for finger and ear, bracelets, a necklace of pearls-
|
|
also, a shawl embroidered with threads of fine gold- the effect of all
|
|
which she softened with a scarf of Indian lace skilfully folded
|
|
about her throat and shoulders. And so arrayed, she plied Ben-Hur with
|
|
countless coquetries of speech and manner; showering him with
|
|
smiles; laughing in flute-like tremolo- and all the while following
|
|
him with glances, now melting-tender, now sparkling-bright. By such
|
|
play Antony was weaned from his glory; yet she who wrought his ruin
|
|
was really not half so beautiful as this her countrywoman.
|
|
|
|
And so to them the nooning came, and the evening.
|
|
|
|
The sun, at his going down behind a spur of the old Bashan, left the
|
|
party halted by a pool of clear water of the rains out in the
|
|
Abilene Desert. There the tent was pitched, the supper eaten, and
|
|
preparations made for the night.
|
|
|
|
The second watch was Ben-Hur's; and he was standing spear in hand,
|
|
within arm-reach of the dozing camel, looking awhile at the stars,
|
|
then over the veiled land. The stillness was intense; only after
|
|
long spells a warm breath of wind would sough past, but without
|
|
disturbing him, for yet in thought he entertained the Egyptian,
|
|
recounting her charms, and sometimes debating how she came by his
|
|
secrets, the uses she might make of them, and the course he should
|
|
pursue with her. And through all the debate Love stood off but a
|
|
little way- a strong temptation, the stronger of a gleam of policy
|
|
behind. At the very moment he was most inclined to yield to the
|
|
allurement, a hand very fair even in the moonless gloaming was laid
|
|
softly upon his shoulder. The touch thrilled him; he started,
|
|
turned- and she was there.
|
|
|
|
"I thought you asleep," he said, presently.
|
|
|
|
"Sleep is for old people and little children, and I came out to look
|
|
at my friends, the stars of the south- those now holding the
|
|
curtains of midnight over the Nile. But confess yourself surprised!"
|
|
|
|
He took the hand which had fallen from his shoulder, and said,
|
|
"Well, was it by an enemy?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh no! To be an enemy is to hate, and hating is a sickness which
|
|
Isis will not suffer to come near me. She kissed me, you should
|
|
know, on the heart when I was a child."
|
|
|
|
"Your speech does not sound in the least like your father's. Are you
|
|
not of his faith?"
|
|
|
|
"I might have been"- and she laughed low- "I might have been had I
|
|
seen what he has. I may be when I get old like him. There should be no
|
|
religion for youth, only poetry and philosophy; and no poetry except
|
|
such as is the inspiration of wine and mirth and love, and no
|
|
philosophy that does not nod excuse for follies which cannot outlive a
|
|
season. My father's God is too awful for me. I failed to find him in
|
|
the Grove of Daphne. He was never heard of as present in the atria
|
|
of Rome. But, son of Hur, I have a wish."
|
|
|
|
"A wish! Where is he who could say it no?"
|
|
|
|
"I will try you."
|
|
|
|
"Tell it then."
|
|
|
|
"It is very simple. I wish to help you."
|
|
|
|
She drew closer as she spoke.
|
|
|
|
He laughed, and replied, lightly, "O Egypt!- I came near saying dear
|
|
Egypt!- does not the sphinx abide in your country?"
|
|
|
|
"Well?"
|
|
|
|
"You are one of its riddles. Be merciful, and give me a little
|
|
clue to help me understand you. In what do I need help? And how can
|
|
you help me?"
|
|
|
|
She took her hand from him, and, turning to the camel, spoke to it
|
|
endearingly, and patted its monstrous head as it were a thing of
|
|
beauty.
|
|
|
|
"O thou last and swiftest and stateliest of the herds of Job!
|
|
Sometimes thou, too, goest stumbling, because the way is rough and
|
|
stony and the burden grievous. How is it thou knowest the kind
|
|
intent by a word, and always makest answer gratefully, though the help
|
|
offered is from a woman? I will kiss thee, thou royal brute!"- she
|
|
stooped and touched its broad forehead with her lips, saying
|
|
immediately, "because in thy intelligence there is no suspicion!"
|
|
|
|
And Ben-Hur, restraining himself, said calmly, "The reproach has not
|
|
failed its mark, O Egypt! I seem to say thee no; may it not be because
|
|
I am under seal of honour, and by my silence cover the lives and
|
|
fortunes of others?"
|
|
|
|
"May be!" she said, quickly. "It is so."
|
|
|
|
He shrank a step, and asked, his voice sharp with amazement, "What
|
|
all knowest thou?"
|
|
|
|
She answered, after a laugh-
|
|
|
|
"Why do men deny that the senses of women are sharper than theirs?
|
|
Your face has been under my eyes all day. I had but to look at it to
|
|
see you bore some weight in mind; and to find the weight, what had I
|
|
to do more than recall your debates with my father? Son of Hur!"-
|
|
she lowered her voice with singular dexterity, and, going nearer,
|
|
spoke so her breath was warm upon his cheek- "son of Hur! he thou
|
|
art going to find is to be King of the Jews, is he not?"
|
|
|
|
His heart beat fast and hard.
|
|
|
|
"A King of the Jews like Herod, only greater," she continued.
|
|
|
|
He looked away- into the night, up to the stars; then his eyes met
|
|
hers, and lingered there; and her breath was on his lips, so near
|
|
was she.
|
|
|
|
"Since morning," she said, further, "we have been having visions.
|
|
Now if I tell you mine, will you serve me as well? What! silent
|
|
still?"
|
|
|
|
She pushed his hand away, and turned as if to go; but he caught her,
|
|
and said eagerly, "Stay- stay and speak!"
|
|
|
|
She went back, and with her hand upon his shoulder, leaned against
|
|
him; and he put his arm around her, and drew her close, very close;
|
|
and in the caress was the promise she asked.
|
|
|
|
"Speak, and tell me thy visions, O Egypt, dear Egypt! A prophet-
|
|
nay, not the Tishbite, not even the Lawgiver- could have refused an
|
|
asking of thine. I am at thy will. Be merciful- merciful, I pray."
|
|
|
|
The entreaty passed apparently unheard, for looking up and
|
|
nestling in his embrace, she said, slowly, "The vision which
|
|
followed me was of magnificent war- war on land and sea- with clashing
|
|
of arms and rush of armies, as if Caesar and Pompey were come again,
|
|
and Octavius and Antony. A cloud of dust and ashes arose and covered
|
|
the world, and Rome was not any more; all dominion returned to the
|
|
East; out of the cloud issued another race of heroes; and there were
|
|
vaster satrapies and brighter crowns for giving away than were ever
|
|
known. And, son of Hur, while the vision was passing, and after it was
|
|
gone, I kept asking myself, 'What shall he not have who served the
|
|
King earliest and best?'"
|
|
|
|
Again Ben-Hur recoiled. The question was the very question which had
|
|
been with him all day. Presently he fancied he had the clue he wanted.
|
|
|
|
"So," he said, "I have you now. The satrapies and crowns are the
|
|
things to which you would help me. I see, I see! And there never was
|
|
such queen as you would be, so shrewd, so beautiful, so royal-
|
|
never! But, alas, dear Egypt! by the vision as you show it me the
|
|
prizes are all of war, and you are but a woman, though Isis did kiss
|
|
you on the heart. And crowns are starry gifts beyond your power of
|
|
help, unless, indeed, you have a way to them more certain than that of
|
|
the sword. If so, O Egypt, Egypt, show it me, and I will walk in it,
|
|
if only for your sake."
|
|
|
|
She removed his arm, and said, "Spread your cloak upon the sand-
|
|
here, so I can rest against the camel. I will sit, and tell you a
|
|
story which came down the Nile to Alexandria, where I had it."
|
|
|
|
He did as she said, first planting the spear in the ground near by.
|
|
|
|
"And what shall I do?" he said, ruefully, when she was seated. "In
|
|
Alexandria is it customary for the listeners to sit or stand?"
|
|
|
|
From the comfortable place against the old domestic she answered,
|
|
laughing, "The audiences of story-tellers are willful, and sometimes
|
|
they do as they please."
|
|
|
|
Without more ado he stretched himself upon the sand, and put her arm
|
|
about his neck.
|
|
|
|
"I am ready," he said.
|
|
|
|
And directly she began-
|
|
|
|
HOW THE BEAUTIFUL CAME TO THE EARTH.
|
|
|
|
"You must know, in the first place, that Isis was- and, for that
|
|
matter, she may yet be- the most beautiful of deities; and, Osiris,
|
|
her husband, though wise and powerful, was sometimes stung with
|
|
jealousy of her, for only in their loves are the gods like mortals.
|
|
|
|
"The palace of the Divine Wife was of silver, crowning the tallest
|
|
mountain in the moon, and thence she passed often to the sun, in the
|
|
heart of which, a source of eternal light, Osiris kept his palace of
|
|
gold too shining for man to look at.
|
|
|
|
"One time- there are no days with the gods- while she was full
|
|
pleasantly with him on the roof of the golden palace, she chanced to
|
|
look, and afar, just on the line of the universe, saw Indra passing
|
|
with an army of simians, all borne upon the backs of flying eagles.
|
|
He, the Friend of Living Things- so much love is Indra called- was
|
|
returning from his final war with the hideous Rakshakas- returning
|
|
victorious; and in his suite were Rama, the hero, and Sita, his bride,
|
|
who, next to Isis herself, was the very most beautiful. And Isis
|
|
arose, and took off her girdle of stars, and waved it to Sita- to
|
|
Sita, mind you- waved it in glad salute. And instantly, between the
|
|
marching host and the two on the golden roof, a something of night
|
|
fell, and shut out the view; but it was not night- only the frown of
|
|
Osiris.
|
|
|
|
"It happened the subject of his speech that moment was such as
|
|
none else than they could think of; and he arose, and said,
|
|
majestically, 'Get thee home. I will do the work myself. To make a
|
|
perfectly happy being I do not need thy help. Get thee gone.'
|
|
|
|
"Now Isis had eyes large as those of the white cow which in the
|
|
temple eats sweet grasses from the hands of the faithful even while
|
|
they say their prayers; and her eyes were the colour of the cow's, and
|
|
quite as tender. And she too arose and said, smiling as she spoke,
|
|
so her look was little more than the glow of the moon in the hazy
|
|
harvest-month, 'Farewell, good my lord. You will call me presently,
|
|
I know; for without me you cannot make the perfectly happy creature of
|
|
which you were thinking, any more'- and she stopped to laugh,
|
|
knowing well the truth of the saying- 'any more, my lord, than you
|
|
yourself can be perfectly happy without me.'
|
|
|
|
"'We will see,' he said.
|
|
|
|
"And she went her way, and took her needles and her chair, and on
|
|
the roof of the silver palace sat watching and knitting.
|
|
|
|
"And the will of Osiris, at labour in his mighty breast, was as
|
|
the sound of the mills of all the other gods grinding at once, so loud
|
|
that the near stars rattled like seeds in a parched pod; and some
|
|
dropped out and were lost. And while the sound kept on she waited
|
|
and knit; nor lost she ever a stitch the while.
|
|
|
|
"Soon a spot appeared in the space over towards the sun; and it grew
|
|
until it was as great as the moon, and then she knew a world was
|
|
intended; but when, growing and growing, at last it cast her planet in
|
|
the shade, all save the little point lighted by her presence, she knew
|
|
how very angry he was; yet she knit away, assured that the end would
|
|
be as she had said.
|
|
|
|
And so came the earth, at first but a cold grey mass hanging
|
|
listless in the hollow void. Later she saw it separate into divisions;
|
|
here a plain, there a mountain, yonder a sea, all as yet without a
|
|
sparkle. And then, by a river-bank, something moved; and she stopped
|
|
her knitting for wonder. The something arose, and lifted its hands
|
|
to the sun in sign of knowledge whence it had its being. And this
|
|
First Man was beautiful to see. And about him were the creations we
|
|
call nature- the grass, the trees, birds, beasts, even the insects and
|
|
reptiles.
|
|
|
|
"And for a time the man went about happy in his life: it was easy to
|
|
see how happy he was. And in the lull of the sound of the labouring
|
|
will Isis heard a scornful laugh, and presently the words, blown
|
|
across from the sun:-
|
|
|
|
"'Thy help, indeed! Behold a creature perfectly happy!'
|
|
|
|
"And Isis fell to knitting again, for she was patient as Osiris
|
|
was strong; and if he could work, she could wait; and wait she did,
|
|
knowing that mere life is not enough to keep anything content.
|
|
|
|
"And sure enough. Not long until the Divine Wife could see a
|
|
change in the man. He grew listless, and kept to one place prone by
|
|
the river, and looked up but seldom, and then always with a moody
|
|
face. Interest was dying in him. And when she made sure of it, even
|
|
while she was saying to herself, 'The creature is sick of his
|
|
being,' there was a roar of the creative will at work again, and in
|
|
a twinkling the earth, theretofore all a thing of coldest grey, flamed
|
|
with colours; the mountains swam in purple, the plains bearing grass
|
|
and trees turned green, the sea blue, and the clouds varied
|
|
infinitely. And the man sprang up and clapped his hands, for he was
|
|
cured and happy again.
|
|
|
|
"And Isis smiled, and knit away, saying to herself, 'It was well
|
|
thought, and will do a little while; but mere beauty in a world is not
|
|
enough for such a being. My lord must try again.'
|
|
|
|
"With the last word, the thunder of the will at work shook the moon,
|
|
and, looking, Isis dropped her knitting and clapped her hands; for
|
|
theretofore everything on the earth but the man bad been fixed to a
|
|
given place; now all living, and much that was not living, received
|
|
the gift of Motion. The birds took to wing joyously; beasts great
|
|
and small went about, each in its way; the trees shook their verdurous
|
|
branches, nodding to the enamoured winds; the rivers ran to the
|
|
seas, and the seas tossed in their beds and rolled in crested waves,
|
|
and with surging and ebbing painted the shores with glistening foam;
|
|
and over all the clouds floated like sailed ships unanchored.
|
|
|
|
"And the man rose up happy as a child; whereat Osiris was pleased,
|
|
so that he shouted, Ha, ha! See how well I am doing without thee!'
|
|
|
|
"The good wife took up her work, and answered ever so quietly, 'It
|
|
was well thought, my lord- ever so well thought- and will serve
|
|
awhile.'
|
|
|
|
"And as before, so again. The sight of things in motion became to
|
|
the man as of course. The birds in flight, the rivers running, the
|
|
seas in tumult of action, ceased to amuse him, and he pined again even
|
|
worse.
|
|
|
|
"And Isis waited, saying to herself, 'Poor creature! He is more
|
|
wretched than ever.'
|
|
|
|
"And, as if he heard the thought, Osiris stirred, and the noise of
|
|
his will shook the universe; the sun in its central seat alone stood
|
|
firm. And Isis looked, but saw no change; then, while she was smiling,
|
|
assured that her lord's last invention was sped, suddenly the creature
|
|
arose, and seemed to listen; and his face brightened, and he clapped
|
|
his hands for joy, for Sounds were heard the first time on earth-
|
|
sounds dissonant, sounds harmonious. The winds murmured in the
|
|
trees; the birds sang, each kind a song of its own, or chattered in
|
|
speech; the rivulets running to the rivers became so many harpers with
|
|
harps of silver strings all tinkling together; and the rivers
|
|
running to the seas surged on in solemn accord, while the seas beat
|
|
the land to a tune of thunder. There was music, music everywhere,
|
|
and all the time; so the man could not but be happy.
|
|
|
|
"Then Isis mused, thinking how well, how wondrous well, her lord was
|
|
doing; but presently she shook her head: Colour, Motion, Sound- and
|
|
she repeated them slowly- there was no element else of beauty except
|
|
Form and Light, and to them the earth had been born. Now, indeed,
|
|
Osiris was done; and if the creature should again fall off into
|
|
wretchedness, her help must be asked; and her fingers flew- two,
|
|
three, five, even ten stitches she took at once.
|
|
|
|
"And the man was happy a long time- longer than ever before; it
|
|
seemed, indeed, he would never tire again. But Isis knew better; and
|
|
she waited and waited, nor minded the many laughs flung at her from
|
|
the sun; she waited and waited, and at last saw signs of the end.
|
|
Sounds became familiar to him, and in their range, from the chirruping
|
|
of the cricket under the roses to the roar of the seas and the
|
|
bellow of the clouds in storm, there was not anything unusual. And
|
|
he pined and sickened, and sought his place of moping by the river,
|
|
and at last fell down motionless.
|
|
|
|
"Then Isis in pity spoke.
|
|
|
|
"'My lord,' she said, 'the creature is dying.'
|
|
|
|
"But Osiris, though seeing it all, held his peace; he could do no
|
|
more.
|
|
|
|
"'Shall I help him?' she asked.
|
|
|
|
"Osiris was too proud to speak.
|
|
|
|
"Then Isis took the last stitch in her knitting, and gathering her
|
|
work in a roll of brilliance flung it off- flung it so it fell close
|
|
to the man. And he, hearing the sound of the fall so near by, looked
|
|
up, and lo! a Woman- the First Woman- was stooping to help him! She
|
|
reached a hand to him; he caught it and arose: and nevermore was
|
|
miserable, but evermore happy."
|
|
|
|
"Such, O son of Hur! is the genesis of the beautiful, as they tell
|
|
it on the Nile."
|
|
|
|
She paused.
|
|
|
|
"A pretty invention, and cunning," he said, directly; "but it is
|
|
imperfect. What did Osiris afterwards?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes," she replied. "He called the Divine Wife back to the sun,
|
|
and they went on all pleasantly together, each helping the other."
|
|
|
|
"And shall I not do as the first man?"
|
|
|
|
He carried the hand resting upon his neck to his lips. "In love-
|
|
in love!" he said.
|
|
|
|
His head dropped softly into her lap.
|
|
|
|
"You will find the King," she said, placing her other hand
|
|
caressingly upon his head. "You will go on and find the King and serve
|
|
him. With your sword you will earn his richest gifts; and his best
|
|
soldier will be my hero."
|
|
|
|
He turned his face, and saw hers close above. In all the sky there
|
|
was that moment nothing so bright to him as her eyes, enshadowed
|
|
though they were. Presently he sat up, and put his arms about her, and
|
|
kissed her passionately, saying, "O Egypt, Egypt! If the King has
|
|
crowns in gift, one shall be mine; and I will bring it and put it here
|
|
over the place my lips have marked. You shall be a queen- my queen- no
|
|
one more beautiful! And we will be ever, ever so happy!"
|
|
|
|
"And you will tell me everything, and let me help you in all?" she
|
|
said, kissing him in return.
|
|
|
|
The question chilled his fervour.
|
|
|
|
"Is it not enough that I love you?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Perfect love means perfect faith," she replied. "But never mind-
|
|
you will know me better."
|
|
|
|
She took her hand from him and arose.
|
|
|
|
"You are cruel," he said.
|
|
|
|
Moving away, she stopped by the camel, and touched its front face
|
|
with her lips.
|
|
|
|
"O thou noblest of thy kind!- that, because there is no suspicion in
|
|
thy love."
|
|
|
|
An instant, and she was gone.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
AT BETHABARA.
|
|
|
|
THE third day of the journey the party nooned by the river Jabbok,
|
|
where there were a hundred or more men, mostly of Peraea, resting
|
|
themselves and their beasts. Hardly had they dismounted, before a
|
|
man came to them with a pitcher of water and a bowl, and offered
|
|
them drink; as they received the attention with much courtesy, he
|
|
said, looking at the camel, "I am returning from the Jordan, where
|
|
just now there are many people from distant parts, travelling as you
|
|
are, illustrious friend; but they had none of them the equal of your
|
|
servant here. A very noble animal. May I ask of what breed he is
|
|
sprung?"
|
|
|
|
Balthasar answered, and sought his rest; but Ben-Hur, more
|
|
curious, took up the remark.
|
|
|
|
"At what place on the river are the people?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"At Bethabara."
|
|
|
|
"It used to be a lonesome ford," said Ben-Hur. "I cannot
|
|
understand how it can have become of such interest."
|
|
|
|
"I see," the stranger replied; "you, too, are from abroad, and
|
|
have not heard the good tidings."
|
|
|
|
"What tidings?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, a man has appeared out of the wilderness- a very holy man-
|
|
with his mouth full of strange words, which take hold of all who
|
|
hear them. He calls himself John the Nazarite, son of Zacharias, and
|
|
says he is the messenger sent before the Messiah."
|
|
|
|
Even Iras listened closely while the man continued-
|
|
|
|
"They say of this John that he has spent his life from childhood
|
|
in a cave down by En-gedi, praying and living more strictly than the
|
|
Essenes. Crowds go to hear him preach. I went to hear him with the
|
|
rest."
|
|
|
|
"Have all these, your friends, been there?"
|
|
|
|
"Most of them are going; a few are coming away."
|
|
|
|
"What does he preach?"
|
|
|
|
"A new doctrine- one never before taught in Israel, as all say. He
|
|
calls it repentance and baptism. The rabbis do not know what to make
|
|
of him; nor do we. Some have asked him if he is the Christ, others
|
|
if he is Elias; but to them all he has the answer, 'I am the voice
|
|
of one crying in the wilderness, Make straight the way of the Lord!'"
|
|
|
|
At this point the man was called away by his friends; as he was
|
|
going, Balthasar spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Good stranger!" he said, tremulously, "tell us if we shall find the
|
|
preacher at the place you left him."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, at Bethabara."
|
|
|
|
"Who should this Nazarite be?" said Ben-Hur to Iras, "if not the
|
|
herald of our King?"
|
|
|
|
In so short a time he had come to regard the daughter as more
|
|
interested in the mysterious personage he was looking for than the
|
|
aged father! Nevertheless, the latter with a positive glow in his
|
|
sunken eyes half arose, and said-
|
|
|
|
"Let us make haste. I am not tired."
|
|
|
|
They turned away to help the slave.
|
|
|
|
There was little conversation between the three at the
|
|
stopping-place for the night west of Ramoth-Gilead.
|
|
|
|
"Let us arise early, son of Hur," said the old man. "The Saviour may
|
|
come, and we not there."
|
|
|
|
"The King cannot be far behind his herald," Iras whispered, as she
|
|
prepared to take her place on the camel.
|
|
|
|
"To-morrow we will see!" Ben-Hur replied, kissing her hand.
|
|
|
|
Next day about the third hour, out of the pass through which,
|
|
skirting the base of Mount Gilead, they had journeyed since leaving
|
|
Ramoth, the party came upon the barren steppe east of the sacred
|
|
river. Opposite them they saw the upper limit of the old palm lands of
|
|
Jericho, stretching off to the hill-country of Judea. Ben-Hur's
|
|
blood ran quickly, for he knew the ford was close at hand.
|
|
|
|
"Content you, good Balthasar," he said; "we are almost there."
|
|
|
|
The driver quickened the camel's pace. Soon they caught sight of
|
|
booths and tents and tethered animals; and then of the river, and a
|
|
multitude collected down close by the bank, and yet another
|
|
multitude on the western shore. Knowing that the preacher was
|
|
preaching, they made greater haste; yet, as they were drawing near,
|
|
suddenly there was a commotion in the mass, and it began to break up
|
|
and disperse.
|
|
|
|
They were too late!
|
|
|
|
"Let us stay here," said Ben-Hur to Balthasar, who was wringing
|
|
his hands. "The Nazarite may come this way."
|
|
|
|
The people were too intent upon what they had heard, and too busy in
|
|
discussion, to notice the new-comers. When some hundreds were gone by,
|
|
and it seemed the opportunity to so much as see the Nazarite was
|
|
lost to the latter, up the river not far away they beheld a person
|
|
coming towards them of such singular appearance they forgot all else.
|
|
|
|
Outwardly the man was rude and uncouth, even savage. Over a thin,
|
|
gaunt visage of the hue of brown parchment, over his shoulders and
|
|
down his back below the middle, in witch-like locks, fell a covering
|
|
of sun-scorched hair. His eyes were burning-bright. All his right side
|
|
was naked, and of the colour of his face, and quite as meagre; a shirt
|
|
of the coarsest camel's hair- coarse as Bedouin tent-cloth- clothed
|
|
the rest of his person to the knees, being gathered at the waist by
|
|
a broad girdle of untanned leather. His feet were bare. A scrip,
|
|
also of untanned leather, was fastened to the girdle. He used a
|
|
knotted staff to help him forward. His movement was quick, decided,
|
|
and strangely watchful. Every little while he tossed the unruly hair
|
|
from his eyes, and peered round as if searching for somebody.
|
|
|
|
The fair Egyptian surveyed the son of the desert with surprise,
|
|
not to say disgust. Presently, raising the curtain of the houdah,
|
|
she spoke to Ben-Hur, who sat his horse near by.
|
|
|
|
"Is that the herald of thy King?"
|
|
|
|
"It is the Nazarite," he replied, without looking up.
|
|
|
|
In truth, he was himself more than disappointed. Despite his
|
|
familiarity with the ascetic colonists in En-gedi- their dress,
|
|
their indifference to all worldly opinion, their constancy to vows
|
|
which gave them over to every imaginable suffering of body, and
|
|
separated them from others of their kind as absolutely as if they
|
|
had not been born like them- and notwithstanding he had been
|
|
notified on the way to look for a Nazarite whose simple description of
|
|
himself was a Voice from the Wilderness- still Ben-Hur's dream of
|
|
the King who was to be so great and do so much had coloured all his
|
|
thought of him, so that he never doubted to find in the forerunner
|
|
some sign or token of the goodliness and royalty he was announcing.
|
|
Gazing at the savage figure before him, the long trains of courtiers
|
|
whom he had been used to see in the thermae and imperial corridors
|
|
at Rome arose before him, forcing a comparison. Shocked, shamed,
|
|
bewildered, he could only answer-
|
|
|
|
"It is the Nazarite."
|
|
|
|
With Balthasar it was very different. The ways of God, he knew, were
|
|
not as men would have them. He had seen the Saviour a child in a
|
|
manger, and was prepared by his faith for the rude and simple in
|
|
connection with the Divine reappearance. So he kept his seat, his
|
|
hands crossed upon his breast, his lips moving in prayer. He was not
|
|
expecting a king.
|
|
|
|
In this time of such interest to the new-comers, and in which they
|
|
were so differently moved, another man had been sitting by himself
|
|
on a stone at the edge of the river, thinking yet, probably, of the
|
|
sermon he had been hearing. Now, however, he arose, and walked
|
|
slowly up from the shore, in a course to take him across the line
|
|
the Nazarite was pursuing and bring him near the camel.
|
|
|
|
And the two- the preacher and the stranger- kept on until they came,
|
|
the former within twenty yards of the animal, the latter within ten
|
|
feet. Then the preacher stopped, and flung the hair from his eyes,
|
|
looked at the stranger, threw his hands up as a signal to all the
|
|
people in sight; and they also stopped, each in the pose of a
|
|
listener; and when the hush was perfect, slowly the staff in the
|
|
Nazarite's right hand came down pointed at the stranger.
|
|
|
|
All those who before were but listeners became watchers also.
|
|
|
|
At the same instant, under the same impulse, Balthasar and Ben-Hur
|
|
fixed their gaze upon the man pointed out, and both took the same
|
|
impression, only in different degree. He was moving slowly towards
|
|
them in a clear space a little to their front, a form slightly above
|
|
the average in stature, and slender, even delicate. His action was
|
|
calm and deliberate, like that habitual to men much given to serious
|
|
thought upon grave subjects; and it well became his costume, which was
|
|
an under-garment full-sleeved and reaching to the ankles, and an outer
|
|
robe called the talith; on his left arm he carried the usual
|
|
handkerchief for the head, the red fillet swinging loose down his
|
|
side. Except the fillet and a narrow border of blue at the lower
|
|
edge of the talith his attire was of linen yellowed with dust and
|
|
road-stains. Possibly the exception should be extended to the tassels,
|
|
which were blue and white, as prescribed by law for rabbis. His
|
|
sandals were of the simplest kind. He was without scrip or girdle or
|
|
staff.
|
|
|
|
These points of appearance, however, the three beholders observed
|
|
briefly, and rather as accessories to the head and face of the man,
|
|
which- especially the latter- were the real sources of the spell
|
|
they caught in common with all who stood looking at him.
|
|
|
|
The head was open to the cloudless light, except as it was draped
|
|
with hair long and slightly waved, and parted in the middle, and
|
|
auburn in tint, with a tendency to reddish golden where most
|
|
strongly touched by the sun. Under a broad, low forehead, under
|
|
black well-arched brows, beamed eyes dark-blue and large, and softened
|
|
to exceeding tenderness by lashes of the great length sometimes seen
|
|
on children, but seldom, if ever, on men. As to the other features, it
|
|
would have been difficult to decide whether they were Greek or Jewish.
|
|
The delicacy of the nostrils and mouth was unusual to the latter type;
|
|
and when it was taken into account with the gentleness of the eyes,
|
|
the pallor of the complexion, the fine texture of the hair, and the
|
|
softness of the beard, which fell in waves over his throat to his
|
|
breast, never a soldier but would have laughed at him in encounter,
|
|
never a woman who would not have confided in him at sight, never a
|
|
child that would not, with quick instinct, have given him its hand and
|
|
whole artless trust; nor might any one have said it was not beautiful.
|
|
|
|
The features, it should be further said, were ruled by a certain
|
|
expression which, as the viewer chose, might with equal correctness
|
|
have been called the effect of intelligence, love, pity, or sorrow;
|
|
though, in better speech, it was a blending of them all- a look easy
|
|
to fancy as the mark of a sinless soul doomed to the sight and
|
|
understanding of the utter sinfulness of those among whom it was
|
|
passing; yet withal no one could have observed the face with a thought
|
|
of weakness in the man; so, at least, would not they who know that the
|
|
qualities mentioned- love, sorrow, pity- are the results of a
|
|
consciousness of strength to bear suffering oftener than strength to
|
|
do: such has been the might of martyrs and devotees and the myriads
|
|
written down in saintly calendars. And such, indeed, was the air of
|
|
this one.
|
|
|
|
Slowly he drew near- nearer the three.
|
|
|
|
Now Ben-Hur, mounted and spear in hand, was an object to claim the
|
|
glance of a king; yet the eyes of the man approaching were all the
|
|
time raised above him- and not to Iras, whose loveliness has been so
|
|
often remarked, but to Balthasar, the old and unserviceable.
|
|
|
|
The hush was profound.
|
|
|
|
Presently the Nazarite, still pointing with his staff, cried, in a
|
|
loud voice-
|
|
|
|
"Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world!"
|
|
|
|
The many standing still, arrested by the action of the speaker,
|
|
and listening for what might follow, were struck with awe by words
|
|
so strange and past their understanding; upon Balthasar they were
|
|
overpowering. He was there to see once more the Redeemer of men. The
|
|
faith which had brought him the singular privileges of the time long
|
|
gone abode yet in his heart; and if now it gave him a power of
|
|
vision above that of his fellows- a power to see and know him for whom
|
|
he was looking- better than calling the power a miracle, let it be
|
|
thought of as the faculty of a soul not yet entirely released from the
|
|
divine relations to which it had been formerly admitted, or as the
|
|
fitting reward of a life in that age so without examples of holiness-
|
|
a life itself a miracle. The ideal of his faith was before him,
|
|
perfect in face, form, dress, action, age; and he was in its view, and
|
|
the view was recognition. Ah, now if something should happen to
|
|
identify the stranger beyond all doubt!
|
|
|
|
And that was what did happen.
|
|
|
|
Exactly at the fitting moment, as if to assure the trembling
|
|
Egyptian, the Nazarite repeated the outcry-
|
|
|
|
"Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world!"
|
|
|
|
Balthasar fell upon his knees. For him there was no need of
|
|
explanation; and as if the Nazarite knew it, he turned to those more
|
|
immediately about him staring in wonder, and continued-
|
|
|
|
"This is he of whom I said, After me cometh a man which is preferred
|
|
before me; for he was before me. And I knew him not: but that he
|
|
should be manifest to Israel, therefore am I come baptizing with
|
|
water. I saw the Spirit descending from heaven like a dove, and it,
|
|
abode upon him. And I knew him not: but he that sent me to baptize
|
|
with water, the same said unto me, Upon whom thou shalt see the Spirit
|
|
descending and remaining on him, the same is he which batizeth with
|
|
the Holy Ghost. And I saw and bare record, that this"- he paused,
|
|
his staff still pointing at the stranger in the white garments, as
|
|
if to give a more absolute certainty to both his words and the
|
|
conclusions intended- "I bare record, that this is the SON OF GOD!"
|
|
|
|
"It is he, it is he!" Balthasar cried, with upraised tearful eyes.
|
|
Next moment he sank down insensible.
|
|
|
|
In this time it should be remembered, Ben-Hur was studying the
|
|
face of the stranger, though with an interest entirely different. He
|
|
was not insensible to its purity of feature, and its thoughtfulness,
|
|
tenderness, humility, and holiness; but just then there was room in
|
|
his mind for but one thought- Who is this man? And what? Messiah or
|
|
king? Never was apparition more unroyal. Nay, looking at that calm,
|
|
benignant countenance, the very idea of war and conquest, and lust
|
|
of dominion, smote him like a profanation. He said, as if speaking
|
|
to his own heart, Balthasar must be right and Simonides wrong. This
|
|
man has not come to rebuild the throne of Solomon; he has neither
|
|
the nature nor the genius of Herod; king he may be, but not of another
|
|
and greater than Rome.
|
|
|
|
It should be understood now that this was not a conclusion with
|
|
Ben-Hur, but an impression merely; and while it was forming, while yet
|
|
he gazed at the wonderful countenance, his memory began to throe and
|
|
struggle. "Surely," he said to himself, "I have seen the man; but
|
|
where and when?" That the look, so calm, so pitiful, so loving, had
|
|
somewhere in a past time beamed upon him as that moment it was beaming
|
|
upon Balthasar became an assurance. Faintly at first, at last a
|
|
clear light, a burst of sunshine, the scene by the well at Nazareth
|
|
that time the Roman guard was dragging him to the galleys returned,
|
|
and all his being thrilled. Those hands had helped him when he was
|
|
perishing. The face was one of the pictures he had carried in mind
|
|
ever since. In the effusion of feeling excited, the explanation of the
|
|
preacher was lost by him, all but the last words- words so
|
|
marvellous that the world yet rings with them-
|
|
|
|
" -this is the SON OF GOD!"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur leaped from his horse to render homage to his benefactor;
|
|
but Iras cried to him, "Help, son of Hur, help, or my father will
|
|
die!"
|
|
|
|
He stopped, looked back, then hurried to her assistance. She gave
|
|
him a cup; and leaving the slave to bring the camel to its knees, he
|
|
ran to the river for water. The stranger was gone when he came back.
|
|
|
|
At last Balthasar was restored to consciousness. Stretching forth
|
|
his hands, he asked, feebly, "Where is he?"
|
|
|
|
"Who?" asked Iras.
|
|
|
|
An intense instant interest shone upon the good man's face, as if
|
|
a last wish had been gratified, and he answered-
|
|
|
|
"He- the Redeemer- the Son of God, whom I have seen again."
|
|
|
|
"Believest thou so?" Iras asked, in a low voice, of Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"The time is full of wonders; let us wait," was all he said.
|
|
|
|
And next day, while the three were listening to him, the Nazarite
|
|
broke off in mid-speech, saying reverently, "Behold the Lamb of God!"
|
|
|
|
Looking to where he pointed, they beheld the stranger again. As
|
|
Ben-Hur surveyed the slender figure, and holy, beautiful countenance
|
|
compassionate to sadness, a new idea broke upon him.
|
|
|
|
"Balthasar is right- so is Simonides. May not the Redeemer be a king
|
|
also?"
|
|
|
|
And he asked one at his side, "Who is the man walking yonder?"
|
|
|
|
The other laughed mockingly, and replied-
|
|
|
|
"He is the son of a carpenter over in Nazareth."
|
|
|
|
BOOK EIGHTH.
|
|
|
|
"Who could resist? Who in this universe?
|
|
|
|
She did so breathe ambrosia, so immerse
|
|
|
|
My fine existence in a golden clime.
|
|
|
|
She took me like a child of suckling-time,
|
|
|
|
And cradled me in roses. Thus condemn'd,
|
|
|
|
The current of my former life was stemm'd,
|
|
|
|
And to this arbitrary queen of sense
|
|
|
|
I bow'd a tranced vassal." -KEATS, Endymion.
|
|
|
|
"I am the resurrection and the life."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
GUESTS IN THE HOUSE OF HUR.
|
|
|
|
ESTHER- Esther! Speak to the servant below that he may bring me a
|
|
cup of water."
|
|
|
|
"Would you not rather have wine, father?"
|
|
|
|
"Let him bring both."
|
|
|
|
This was in the summer-house upon the roof of the old palace of
|
|
the Hurs in Jerusalem. From the parapet overlooking the courtyard
|
|
Esther called to a man in waiting there; at the same moment another
|
|
man-servant came up the steps and saluted respectfully.
|
|
|
|
"A package for the master," he said, giving her a letter enclosed in
|
|
linen cloth, tied and sealed.
|
|
|
|
For the satisfaction of the reader, we stop to say that it is the
|
|
twenty-first day of March, nearly three years after the annunciation
|
|
of the Christ at Bethabara.
|
|
|
|
In the meanwhile, Malluch, acting for Ben-Hur, who could not
|
|
longer endure the emptiness and decay of his father's house, had
|
|
bought it from Pontius Pilate; and, in process of repair, gates,
|
|
courts, lewens, stairways, terraces, rooms, and roof had been cleansed
|
|
and thoroughly restored; not only was there no reminder left of the
|
|
tragic circumstances so ruinous to the family, but the refurnishment
|
|
was in a style richer than before. At every point, indeed, a visitor
|
|
was met by evidences of the higher tastes acquired by the young
|
|
proprietor during his years of residence in the villa by Misenum and
|
|
in the Roman capital.
|
|
|
|
Now it should not be inferred from this explanation that Ben-Hur had
|
|
publicly assumed ownership of the property. In his opinion, the hour
|
|
for that was not yet come. Neither had he yet taken his proper name.
|
|
Passing the time in the labours of preparation in Galilee, he waited
|
|
patiently the action of the Nazarene, who became daily more and more a
|
|
mystery to him, and by prodigies done, often before his eyes, kept him
|
|
in a state of anxious doubt both as to his character and mission.
|
|
Occasionally he came up to the Holy City, stopping at the paternal
|
|
house; always, however, as a stranger and a guest.
|
|
|
|
The visits of Ben-Hur, it should also be observed, were for more
|
|
than mere rest from labour. Balthasar and Iras made their home in
|
|
the palace; and the charm of the daughter was still upon him with
|
|
all its original freshness, while the father, though feebler in
|
|
body, held him an unflagging listener to speeches of astonishing
|
|
power, urging the divinity of the wandering miracle-worker of whom
|
|
they were all so expectant.
|
|
|
|
As to Simonides and Esther, they had arrived from Antioch, only a
|
|
few days before this their reappearance- a wearisome journey to the
|
|
merchant, borne, as he had been, in a palanquin swung between two
|
|
camels, which, in their careening, did not always keep the same
|
|
step. But now that he was come, the good man, it seemed, could not see
|
|
enough of his native land. He delighted in the perch upon the roof,
|
|
and spent most of his day hours there seated in an arm-chair, the
|
|
duplicate of that one kept for him in the cabinet over the store-house
|
|
by the Orontes. In the shade of the summer-house he could drink
|
|
fully of the inspiring air lying lightly upon the familiar hills; he
|
|
could better watch the sun rise, run its course, and set as it, used
|
|
to in the far-gone, not a habit lost; and with Esther by him it was so
|
|
much easier, up there close to the sky, to bring back the other
|
|
Esther, his love in youth, his wife, dearer growing with the passage
|
|
of years. And yet he was not unmindful of business. Every day a
|
|
messenger brought him a despatch from Sanballat, in charge of the
|
|
big commerce behind; and every day a despatch left him for Sanballat
|
|
with directions of such minuteness of detail as to exclude all
|
|
judgment save his own, and all chances except those the Almighty has
|
|
refused to submit to the most mindful of men.
|
|
|
|
As Esther started in return to the summer-house, the sunlight fell
|
|
softly upon the dustless roof, showing her a woman now- small,
|
|
graceful in form, of regular features, rosy with youth and health,
|
|
bright with intelligence, beautiful with the outshining of a devoted
|
|
nature- a woman to be loved because loving was a habit of life
|
|
irrepressible with her.
|
|
|
|
She looked at the package as she turned, paused, looked at it a
|
|
second time more closely than at first; and the blood rose reddening
|
|
her cheeks- the seal was Ben-Hur's. With quickened steps she
|
|
hastened on.
|
|
|
|
Simonides held the package a moment while he also inspected the
|
|
seal. Breaking it open, he gave her the roll it contained.
|
|
|
|
"Read," he said.
|
|
|
|
His eyes were upon her as he spoke, and instantly a troubled
|
|
expression fell upon his own face.
|
|
|
|
"You know who it is from, I see, Esther."
|
|
|
|
"Yes- from- our master."
|
|
|
|
Though the manner was halting, she met his gaze with modest
|
|
sincerity. Slowly his chin sank into the roll of flesh puffed out
|
|
under it like a cushion.
|
|
|
|
"You love him, Esther?" he said, quietly.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"Have you thought well of what you do?"
|
|
|
|
"I have tried not to think of him, father, except as the master to
|
|
whom I am dutifully bound. The effort has not helped me to strength."
|
|
|
|
"A good girl, a good girl, even as thy mother was," he said,
|
|
dropping into reverie, from which she roused him by unrolling the
|
|
paper.
|
|
|
|
"The Lord forgive me, but- but thy love might not have been vainly
|
|
given had I kept fast hold of all I had, as I might have done- such
|
|
power is there in money!"
|
|
|
|
"It would have been worse for me had you done so, father; for then I
|
|
had been unworthy a look from him, and without pride in you. Shall I
|
|
not read now?"
|
|
|
|
"In a moment," he said. "Let me, for your sake, my child, show you
|
|
the worst. Seeing it with me may make it less terrible to you. His
|
|
love, Esther, is all bestowed."
|
|
|
|
"I know it," she said, calmly.
|
|
|
|
"The Egyptian has him in her net," he continued. "She has the
|
|
cunning of her race, with beauty to help her- much beauty, great
|
|
cunning; but, like her race again, no heart. The daughter who despises
|
|
her father will bring her husband to grief."
|
|
|
|
"Does she that?"
|
|
|
|
Simonides went on-
|
|
|
|
"Balthasar is a wise man who has been wonderfully favoured for a
|
|
Gentile, and his faith becomes him; yet she makes a jest of it. I
|
|
heard her say, speaking of him yesterday, 'The follies of youth are
|
|
excusable; nothing is admirable in the aged except wisdom, and when
|
|
that goes from them, they should die.' A cruel speech, fit for a
|
|
Roman. I applied it to myself, knowing a feebleness like her
|
|
father's will come to me also- nay, it is not far off. But you,
|
|
Esther, will never say of me- no, never- 'It were better he were
|
|
dead.' No, your mother was a daughter of Judah."
|
|
|
|
With half-formed tears she kissed him, and said, "I am my mother's
|
|
child."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, and my daughter- my daughter, who is to me all the Temple
|
|
was to Solomon."
|
|
|
|
After a silence, he laid his hand upon her shoulder, and resumed-
|
|
"When he has taken the Egyptian to wife, Esther, he will think of
|
|
you with repentance and much calling of the spirit; for at last he
|
|
will awake to find himself but the minister of her bad ambition.
|
|
Rome is the centre of all her dreams. To her he is the son of Arrius
|
|
the duumvir, not the son of Hur, Prince of Jerusalem."
|
|
|
|
Esther made no attempt to conceal the effect of these words.
|
|
|
|
"Save him, father! It is not too late!" she said, entreatingly.
|
|
|
|
He answered, with a dubious smile, "A man drowning may be saved; not
|
|
so a man in love."
|
|
|
|
"But you have influence with him. He is alone in the world. Show him
|
|
his danger. Tell him what a woman she is."
|
|
|
|
"That might save him from her. Would it give him to you, Esther?
|
|
No," and his brows fell darkly over his eyes. "I am a servant, as my
|
|
fathers were for generations; yet I could not say to him, 'Lo, master,
|
|
my daughter! She is fairer than the Egyptian, and loves thee
|
|
better.' I have caught too much from years of liberty and direction.
|
|
The words would blister my tongue. The stones upon the old hills
|
|
yonder would turn in their beds for shame when I go out to them. No,
|
|
by the patriarchs, Esther, I would rather lay us both with your mother
|
|
to sleep as she sleeps!"
|
|
|
|
A blush burned Esther's whole face.
|
|
|
|
"I did not mean you to tell him so, father. I was concerned for
|
|
him alone- for his happiness, not mine. Because I have dared love him,
|
|
I shall keep myself worthy his respect; so only can I excuse my folly.
|
|
Let me read his letter now."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, read it."
|
|
|
|
She began at once, in haste to conclude the distasteful subject.
|
|
|
|
"Nisan 8th day.
|
|
|
|
"On the road from Galilee to Jerusalem.
|
|
|
|
"The Nazarene is on the way also. With him, though without his
|
|
knowledge, I am bringing a full legion of mine. A second legion
|
|
follows. The Passover will excuse the multitude. He said upon
|
|
setting out, 'We will go up to Jerusalem, and all things that are
|
|
written by the prophets concerning me shall be accomplished.'
|
|
|
|
"Our waiting draws to an end.
|
|
|
|
"In haste.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to thee, Simonides. "BEN-HUR."
|
|
|
|
Esther returned the letter to her father, while a choking
|
|
sensation gathered in her throat. There was not a word in the
|
|
missive for her- not even in the salutation had she a share- and it
|
|
would have been so easy to have written "and to thine, peace." For the
|
|
first time in her life she felt the smart of a jealous sting.
|
|
|
|
"The eighth day," said Simonides, "the eighth day; and this, Esther,
|
|
this is the- "
|
|
|
|
"The ninth," she replied.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, then, they may be in Bethany now."
|
|
|
|
"And possibly we may see him to-night," she added, pleased into
|
|
momentary forgetfulness.
|
|
|
|
"It may be, it may be! To-morrow is the Feast of Unleavened Bread,
|
|
and he may wish to celebrate it; so may the Nazarene; and we may see
|
|
him- we may see both of them, Esther."
|
|
|
|
At this point the servant appeared with the wine and water. Esther
|
|
helped her father, and in the midst of the service Iras came upon
|
|
the roof.
|
|
|
|
To the Jewess the Egyptian never appeared so very, very beautiful as
|
|
at that moment. Her gauzy garments fluttered about her like a little
|
|
cloud of mist; her forehead, neck, and arms glittered with the massive
|
|
jewelry so affected by her people. Her countenance was suffused with
|
|
pleasure. She moved with buoyant steps, and self-conscious, though
|
|
without affectation. Esther at the sight shrank within herself, and
|
|
nestled closer to her father.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you, Simonides, and to the pretty Esther peace," said
|
|
Iras, inclining her head to the latter. "You remind me, good master-
|
|
if I may say it without offence- you remind me of the priests in
|
|
Persia who climb their temples at the decline of day to send prayers
|
|
after the departing sun. Is there anything in the worship you do not
|
|
know, let me call my father. He is Magian-bred."
|
|
|
|
"Fair Egyptian," the merchant replied, nodding with grave
|
|
politeness, "your father is a good man who would not be offended if he
|
|
knew I told you his Persian lore is the least part of his wisdom."
|
|
|
|
Iras's lip curled slightly.
|
|
|
|
"To speak like a philosopher, as you invite me," she said, "the
|
|
least part always implies a greater. Let me ask what you esteem the
|
|
greater part of the rare quality you are pleased to attribute to him."
|
|
|
|
Simonides turned upon her somewhat sternly.
|
|
|
|
"Pure wisdom always directs itself towards God; the purest wisdom is
|
|
knowledge of God; and no man of my acquaintance has it in higher
|
|
degree, or makes it more manifest in speech and act, than the good
|
|
Balthasar."
|
|
|
|
To end the parley, he raised the cup and drank.
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian turned to Esther a little testily.
|
|
|
|
"A man who has millions in store, and fleets of ships at sea, cannot
|
|
discern in what simple women like us find amusement. Let us leave him.
|
|
By the wall yonder we can talk."
|
|
|
|
They went to the parapet then, stopping at the place where, years
|
|
before, Ben-Hur loosed the broken tile upon the head of Gratus.
|
|
|
|
"You have not been to Rome?" Iras began, toying the while with one
|
|
of her unclasped bracelets.
|
|
|
|
"No," said Esther, demurely.
|
|
|
|
"Have you not wished to go?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, how little there has been of your life!"
|
|
|
|
The sigh that succeeded the exclamation could not have been more
|
|
piteously expressive had the loss been the Egyptian's own. Next moment
|
|
her laugh might have been heard in the street below; and she said,
|
|
"Oh, oh, my pretty simpleton! The half-fledged birds nested in the ear
|
|
of the great bust on the Memphian sands know nearly as much as you."
|
|
|
|
Then, seeing Esther's confusion, she changed her manner, and said,
|
|
in a confiding tone, "You must not take offence. Oh, no! I was
|
|
playing. Let me kiss the hurt, and tell you what I would not to any
|
|
other- not if Simbel himself asked it of me, offering a lotus-cup of
|
|
the spray of the Nile!"
|
|
|
|
Another laugh, masking excellently the look she turned sharply
|
|
upon the Jewess, and she said, "The King is coming."
|
|
|
|
Esther gazed at her in innocent surprise.
|
|
|
|
"The Nazarene," Iras continued- "he whom our fathers have been
|
|
talking about so much, whom Ben-Hur has been serving and toiling for
|
|
so long"- her voice dropped several tones lower- "the Nazarene will be
|
|
here to-morrow, and Ben-Hur to-night."
|
|
|
|
Esther struggled to maintain her composure, but failed; her eyes
|
|
fell, the tale-tell blood surged to her cheek and forehead, and she
|
|
was saved sight of the triumphant smile that passed, like a gleam,
|
|
over the face of the Egyptian.
|
|
|
|
"See, here is his promise."
|
|
|
|
And from her girdle she took a roll.
|
|
|
|
"Rejoice with me, O my friend! He will be here to-night! On the
|
|
Tiber there is a house, a royal property, which he has pledged to
|
|
me; and to be its mistress is to be- "
|
|
|
|
A sound of someone walking swiftly along the street below
|
|
interrupted the speech, and she leaned over the parapet to see. Then
|
|
she drew back, and cried, with hands-clasped above her head, "Now
|
|
blessed be Isis! 'Tis he- Ben-Hur himself! That he should appear while
|
|
I had such thought of him! There are no gods if it be not a good omen.
|
|
Put your arms about me, Esther- and a kiss!"
|
|
|
|
The Jewess looked up. Upon each cheek there was a glow; her eyes
|
|
sparkled with a light more nearly of anger than ever her nature
|
|
emitted before. Her gentleness had been too roughly overridden. It was
|
|
not enough for her to be forbidden more than fugitive dreams of the
|
|
man she loved; a boastful rival must tell her in confidence of her
|
|
better success, and of the brilliant promises which were its
|
|
rewards. Of her, the servant of a servant, there had been no hint of
|
|
remembrance; this other could show his letter, leaving her to
|
|
imagine all it breathed. So she said-
|
|
|
|
"Dost thou love him so much then, or Rome so much better?"
|
|
|
|
The Egyptian drew back a step; then she bent her haughty head
|
|
quite near her questioner.
|
|
|
|
"What is he to thee, daughter of Simonides?"
|
|
|
|
Esther, all thrilling, began, "He is my- "
|
|
|
|
A thought blasting as lightning stayed the words: she paled,
|
|
trembled, recovered, and answered-
|
|
|
|
"He is my father's friend."
|
|
|
|
Her tongue had refused to admit her servile condition.
|
|
|
|
Iras laughed more lightly than before.
|
|
|
|
"Not more than that?" she said. "Ah, by the lover-gods of Egypt,
|
|
thou mayst keep thy kisses- keep them. Thou hast taught me but now
|
|
that there are others vastly more estimable waiting me here in
|
|
Judea; and"- she turned away, looking back over her shoulder- "I
|
|
will go get them. Peace to thee."
|
|
|
|
Esther saw her disappear down the steps, when, putting her hands
|
|
over her face, she burst into tears so they ran scalding through her
|
|
fingers- tears of shame and choking passion. And, to deepen the
|
|
paroxysm to her even temper so strange, up with a new meaning of
|
|
withering force rose her father's words- "Thy love might not have been
|
|
vainly given had I kept fast hold of all I had, as I might have done."
|
|
|
|
And all the stars were out, burning low above the city and the
|
|
dark wall of mountains about it, before she recovered enough to go
|
|
back to the summer-house, and in silence take her accustomed place
|
|
at her father's side, humbly waiting his pleasure. To such duty it
|
|
seemed her youth, if not her life, must be given. And, let the truth
|
|
be said, now that the pang was spent, she went not unwillingly back to
|
|
the duty.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR TELLS OF THE NAZARENE.
|
|
|
|
AN hour or thereabouts after the scene upon the roof, Balthasar
|
|
and Simonides, the latter attended by Esther, met in the great chamber
|
|
of the palace; and while they were talking, Ben-Hur and Iras came in
|
|
together.
|
|
|
|
The young Jew, advancing in front of his companion, walked first
|
|
to Balthasar, and saluted him, and received his reply; then he
|
|
turned to Simonides, but paused at sight of Esther.
|
|
|
|
It is not often we have hearts roomy enough for more than one of the
|
|
absorbing passions at the same time; in its blaze the others may
|
|
continue to live, but only as lesser lights. So with Ben-Hur, much
|
|
study of possibilities, indulgence of hopes and dreams, influences
|
|
born of the condition of his country, influences more direct- that
|
|
of Iras for example- had made him in the broadest worldly sense
|
|
ambitious; and as he had given the passion place, allowing it to
|
|
become a rule, and finally an imperious governor, the resolves and
|
|
impulses of former days faded imperceptibly out of being, and at
|
|
last almost out of recollection. It is at best so easy to forget our
|
|
youth; in his case it was but natural that his own sufferings and
|
|
the mystery darkening the fate of his family should move him less
|
|
and less as, in hope at least, he approached nearer and nearer the
|
|
goals which occupied all his visions. Only let us not judge him too
|
|
harshly.
|
|
|
|
He paused in surprise at seeing Esther a woman now, and so
|
|
beautiful; and as he stood looking at her a still voice reminded him
|
|
of broken vows and duties undone: almost his old self returned.
|
|
|
|
For an instant he was startled; but recovering, he went to Esther,
|
|
and said, "Peace to thee, sweet Esther- peace; and thou, Simonides"-
|
|
he looked to the merchant as he spoke- "the blessing of the Lord be
|
|
thine, if only because thou hast been a good father to the
|
|
fatherless."
|
|
|
|
Esther heard him with downcast face; Simonides answered-
|
|
|
|
"I repeat the welcome of the good Balthasar, son of Hur- welcome
|
|
to thy father's house; and sit, and tell us of thy travels, and of thy
|
|
work, and of the wonderful Nazarene- who he is, and what. If thou
|
|
art not at ease here, who shall be? Sit, I pray- there, between us,
|
|
that we may all hear."
|
|
|
|
Esther stepped out quickly and brought a covered stool, and set it
|
|
for him.
|
|
|
|
"Thanks," he said to her, gratefully.
|
|
|
|
When seated, after some other conversation he addressed himself to
|
|
the men.
|
|
|
|
"I have come to tell you of the Nazarene."
|
|
|
|
The two became instantly attentive.
|
|
|
|
"For many days now I have followed him with such watchfulness as one
|
|
may give another upon whom he is waiting so anxiously. I have seen him
|
|
under all circumstances said to be trials and tests of men; and
|
|
while I am certain he is a man as I am, not less certain am I that
|
|
he is something more."
|
|
|
|
"What more?" asked Simonides.
|
|
|
|
"I will tell you- "
|
|
|
|
Some one coming into the room interrupted him; he turned, and
|
|
arose with extended hands.
|
|
|
|
"Amrah! Dear old Amrah!" he cried.
|
|
|
|
She came forward; and they, seeing the joy in her face, thought
|
|
not once how wrinkled and tawny it was. She knelt at his feet, clasped
|
|
his knees, and kissed his hands over and over; and when he could he
|
|
put the lank grey hair from her cheeks, and kissed them, saying, "Good
|
|
Amrah, have you nothing, nothing of them- not a word- not one little
|
|
sign?"
|
|
|
|
Then she broke into sobbing which made him answer plainer ever
|
|
than the spoken word.
|
|
|
|
"God's will has been done," he next said, solemnly, in a tone to
|
|
make each listener know he had no hope more of finding his people.
|
|
In his eyes there were tears which he would not have them see, because
|
|
he was a man.
|
|
|
|
When he could again, he took seat, and said, "Come, sit by me,
|
|
Amrah- here. No? then at my feet; for I have much to say to these good
|
|
friends of a wonderful man come into the world."
|
|
|
|
But she went off, and stooping with her back to the wall, joined her
|
|
hands before her knees, content, they all thought, with seeing him.
|
|
Then Ben-Hur, bowing to the old men, began again-
|
|
|
|
"I fear to answer the question asked me about the Nazarene without
|
|
first telling you some of the things I have seen him do; and to that I
|
|
am the more inclined, my friends, because to-morrow he will come to
|
|
the city, and go up into the Temple, which he calls his father's
|
|
house, where, it is further said, he will proclaim himself. So,
|
|
whether you are right, O Balthasar, or you, Simonides, we and Israel
|
|
shall know to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar rubbed his hands tremulously together, and asked, "Where
|
|
shall I go to see him?"
|
|
|
|
"The pressure of the crowd will be very great. Better, I think, that
|
|
you all go upon the roof above the cloisters- say upon the Porch of
|
|
Solomon."
|
|
|
|
"Can you be with us?"
|
|
|
|
"No," said Ben-Hur, "my friends will require me, perhaps, in the
|
|
procession."
|
|
|
|
"Procession!" exclaimed Simonides. "Does he travel in state?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur saw the argument in mind.
|
|
|
|
"He brings twelve men with him, fishermen, tillers of the soil,
|
|
one a publican, all of the humbler class; and he and they make their
|
|
journeys on foot, careless of wind, cold, rain, or sun. Seeing them
|
|
stop by the wayside at nightfall to break bread or lie down to
|
|
sleep, I have been reminded of a party of shepherds going back to
|
|
their flocks from market, not of nobles and kings. Only when he
|
|
lifts the corners of his handkerchief to look at some' one or shake
|
|
the dust from his head, I am made known he is their teacher as well as
|
|
their companion- their superior not less than their friend.
|
|
|
|
"You are shrewd men," Ben-Hur resumed, after a pause. "You know what
|
|
creatures of certain master motives we are, and that it has become
|
|
little less than a law of our nature to spend life in eager pursuit of
|
|
certain objects; now appealing to that law as something by which we
|
|
may know ourselves, what would you say of a man who could be rich by
|
|
making gold of the stones under his feet, yet is poor of choice?"
|
|
|
|
"The Greeks would call him a philosopher," said Iras.
|
|
|
|
"Nay, daughter," said Balthasar, "the philosophers had never the
|
|
power to do such thing."
|
|
|
|
"How know you this man has?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur answered quickly, "I saw him turn water into wine."
|
|
|
|
"Very strange, very strange," said Simonides; "but it is not so
|
|
strange to me as that he should prefer to live poor when he could be
|
|
so rich. Is he poor?"
|
|
|
|
"He owns nothing, and envies nobody his owning. He pities the rich.
|
|
But passing that, what would you say to see a man multiply seven
|
|
loaves and two fishes, all his store, into enough to feed five
|
|
thousand people, and have full baskets over? That I saw the Nazarene
|
|
do."
|
|
|
|
"You saw it?" exclaimed Simonides.
|
|
|
|
"Ay, and ate of the bread and fish."
|
|
|
|
"More marvellous still," Ben-Hur continued, "what would you say of a
|
|
man in whom there is such healing virtue that the sick have but to
|
|
touch the hem of his garment to be cured, or cry to him afar? That,
|
|
too, I witnessed, not once, but many times. As we came out of
|
|
Jericho two blind men by the wayside called to the Nazarene, and he
|
|
touched their eyes, and they saw. So they brought a palsied man to
|
|
him, and he said merely, 'Go unto thy house,' and the man went away
|
|
well. What say you to these things?"
|
|
|
|
The merchant had no answer.
|
|
|
|
"Think you now, as I have heard others argue, that what I have
|
|
told you are tricks of jugglery? Let me answer by recalling greater
|
|
things which I have seen him do. Look first to that curse of God-
|
|
comfortless, as you all know, except by death- leprosy."
|
|
|
|
At these words Amrah dropped her hands to the floor, and in her
|
|
eagerness to hear him half arose.
|
|
|
|
"What would you say," said Ben-Hur, with increased earnestness-
|
|
"what would you say to have seen that I now tell you? A leper came
|
|
to the Nazarene while I was with him down in Galilee, and said, 'Lord,
|
|
if thou wilt, thou canst make me clean.' He heard the cry, and touched
|
|
the outcast with his hand, saying, 'Be thou clean;' and forthwith
|
|
the man was himself again, healthful as any of us who beheld the cure,
|
|
and we were a multitude."
|
|
|
|
Here Amrah arose, and with her gaunt fingers held the wiry locks
|
|
from her eyes. The brain of the poor creature had long since gone to
|
|
heart, and she was troubled to follow the speech.
|
|
|
|
"Then, again," said Ben-Hur, without stop, "ten lepers came to him
|
|
one day in a body, and falling at his feet, called out- I saw and
|
|
heard it all- called out, 'Master, Master, have mercy upon us!' He
|
|
told them, 'Go, show yourselves to the priest, as the law requires;
|
|
and before you are come there ye shall be healed.'"
|
|
|
|
"And were they?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. On the road going their infirmity left them, so that there was
|
|
nothing to remind us of it except their polluted clothes."
|
|
|
|
"Such thing was never heard before- never in all Israel!" said
|
|
Simonides, in undertone.
|
|
|
|
And then, while he was speaking, Amrah turned away, and walked
|
|
noiselessly to the door, and went out; and none of the company saw her
|
|
go.
|
|
|
|
"The thoughts stirred by such things done under my eyes I leave
|
|
you to imagine," said Ben-Hur, continuing; "but my doubts, my
|
|
misgivings, my amazement, were not yet at the full. The people of
|
|
Galilee are, as you know, impetuous and rash; after years of waiting
|
|
their swords burned their hands; nothing would do them but action. 'He
|
|
is slow to declare himself; let us force him,' they cried to me. And I
|
|
too became impatient. If he is to be king, why not now? The legions
|
|
are ready. So as he was once teaching by the seaside we would have
|
|
crowned him whether or not; but he disappeared, and was next seen on a
|
|
ship departing from the shore. Good Simonides, the desires that make
|
|
other men mad- riches, power, even kingships offered out of great love
|
|
by a great people- move this one not at all. What say you?"
|
|
|
|
The merchant's chin was low upon his breast; raising his head, he
|
|
replied, resolutely, "The Lord liveth, and so do the words of the
|
|
prophets. Time is in the green yet; let to-morrow answer."
|
|
|
|
"Be it so," said Balthasar, smiling.
|
|
|
|
And Ben-Hur said, "Be it so." Then he went on- "But I have not yet
|
|
done. From these things, not too great to be above suspicion by such
|
|
as did not see them in performance as I did, let me carry you now to
|
|
others infinitely greater, acknowledged since the world began to be
|
|
past the power of man. Tell me, has any one to your knowledge ever
|
|
reached out and taken from Death what Death has made his own? Who ever
|
|
gave again the breath of a life lost? Who but- "
|
|
|
|
"God!" said Balthasar, reverently.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur bowed.
|
|
|
|
"O wise Egyptian! I may not refuse the name you lend me. What
|
|
would you- or you, Simonides- what would you either or both have
|
|
said had you seen as I did, a man, with few words and no ceremony,
|
|
without effort more than a mother's when she speaks to wake her
|
|
child asleep, undo the work of Death? It was down at Nain. We were
|
|
about going into the gate, when a company came out bearing a dead man.
|
|
The Nazarene stopped to let the train pass. There was a woman among
|
|
them crying. I saw his face soften with pity. He spoke to her, then
|
|
went and touched the bier, and said to him who lay upon it dressed for
|
|
burial, 'Young man, I say unto thee, Arise!' And instantly the dead
|
|
sat up and talked."
|
|
|
|
"God only is so great," said Balthasar to Simonides.
|
|
|
|
"Mark you," Ben-Hur proceeded, "I do but tell you things of which
|
|
I was a witness, together with a cloud of other men. On the way hither
|
|
I saw another act still more mighty. In Bethany there was a man
|
|
named Lazarus, who died and was buried; and after he had lain four
|
|
days in a tomb, shut in by a great stone, the Nazarene was shown to
|
|
the place. Upon rolling the stone away, we beheld the man lying inside
|
|
bound and rotting. There were many people standing by, and we all
|
|
heard what the Nazarene said, for he spoke in a loud voice,
|
|
'Lazarus, come forth!' I cannot tell you my feelings when in answer,
|
|
as it were, the man arose and came out to us with all his cerements
|
|
about him. 'Loose him,' said the Nazarene next, 'loose him, and let
|
|
him go.' And when the napkin was taken from the face of the
|
|
resurrected, lo, my friends! the blood ran anew through the wasted
|
|
body, and he was exactly as he had been in life before the sickness
|
|
that took him off. He lives yet, and is hourly seen and spoken to. You
|
|
may go see him to-morrow. And now, as nothing more is needed for the
|
|
purpose, I ask you that which I came to ask, it being but a repetition
|
|
of what you asked me O Simonides, What more than a man is this
|
|
Nazarene?"
|
|
|
|
The question was put solemnly, and long after midnight the company
|
|
sat and debated it; Simonides being yet unwilling to give up his
|
|
understanding of the sayings of the prophets, and Ben-Hur contending
|
|
that the elder disputants were both right- that the Nazarene was the
|
|
Redeemer, as claimed by Balthasar, and also the destined king the
|
|
merchant would have.
|
|
|
|
"To-morrow we will see. Peace to you all."
|
|
|
|
So saying, Ben-Hur took his leave, intending to return to Bethany.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
THE LEPERS LEAVE THEIR TOMB.
|
|
|
|
THE first person to go out of the city upon the opening of the
|
|
Sheep's Gate next morning was Amrah, basket on arm. No questions
|
|
were asked her by the keepers, since the morning itself had not been
|
|
more regular in coming than she; they knew her somebody's faithful
|
|
servant, and that was enough for them.
|
|
|
|
Down the eastern valley she took her way. The side of Olivet, darkly
|
|
green, was spotted with white tents recently put up by people
|
|
attending the feasts; the hour, however, was too early for the
|
|
strangers to be abroad; still, had it not been so, no one would have
|
|
troubled her. Past Gethsemane; past the tombs at the meeting of the
|
|
Bethany roads; past the sepuchral village of Siloam she went.
|
|
Occasionally the decrepit little body staggered; once she sat down
|
|
to get her breath; rising shortly, she struggled on with renewed
|
|
haste. The great rocks on either hand, if they had had ears, might
|
|
have heard her mutter to herself; could they have seen, it would
|
|
have been to observe how frequently she looked up over the Mount,
|
|
reproving the dawn for its promptness; if it had been possible for
|
|
them to gossip, not improbably they would have said to each other,
|
|
"Our friend is in a hurry this morning; the mouths she goes to feed
|
|
must be very hungry."
|
|
|
|
When at last she reached the King's Garden she slackened her gait;
|
|
for then the grim city of the lepers was in view, extending far
|
|
round the pitted south hill of Hinnom.
|
|
|
|
As the reader must by this time have surmised, she was going to
|
|
her mistress, whose tomb, it will be remembered, overlooked the well
|
|
En-rogel.
|
|
|
|
Early as it was, the unhappy woman was up and sitting outside,
|
|
leaving Tirzah asleep within. The course of the malady had been
|
|
terribly swift in the three years. Conscious of her appearance, with
|
|
the refined instincts of her nature, she kept her whole person
|
|
habitually covered. Seldom as possible she permitted even Tirzah to
|
|
see her.
|
|
|
|
This morning she was taking the air with bared head, knowing there
|
|
was no one to be shocked by the exposure. The light was not full,
|
|
but enough to show the ravages to which she had been subject. Her hair
|
|
was snow-white and unmanageably coarse, falling over her back and
|
|
shoulders like so much silver wire. The eyelids, the lips, the
|
|
nostrils, the flesh of the cheeks, were either gone or reduced to
|
|
fetid rawness. The neck was a mass of ash-coloured scales. One hand
|
|
lay outside the folds of her habit rigid as that of a skeleton; the
|
|
nails had been eaten away; the joints of the fingers, if not bare to
|
|
the bone, were swollen knots crusted with red secretion. Head, face,
|
|
neck, and hand indicated all too plainly the condition of the whole
|
|
body. Seeing her thus, it was easy to understand how the once fair
|
|
widow of the princely Hur had been able to maintain her incognito so
|
|
well through such a period of years.
|
|
|
|
When the sun would gild the crest of Olivet and the Mount of Offence
|
|
with light sharper and more brilliant in that old land than in the
|
|
West, she knew Amrah would come, first to the well, then to a stone
|
|
midway the well and the foot of the hill on which she had her abode,
|
|
and that the good servant would there deposit the food she carried
|
|
in the basket, and fill the water-jar afresh for the day. Of her
|
|
former plentitude of happiness, that brief visit was all that remained
|
|
to the unfortunate. She could then ask about her son, and be told of
|
|
his welfare, with such bits of news concerning him as the messenger
|
|
could glean. Usually the information was meagre enough, yet
|
|
comforting; at times she heard he was at home; then she would issue
|
|
from her dreary cell at break of day, and sit till noon, and from noon
|
|
to set of sun, a motionless figure draped in white, looking,
|
|
statue-like, invariably to one point- over the Temple to the spot
|
|
under the rounded sky where the old house stood, dear in memory, and
|
|
dearer because he was there. Nothing else was left her. Tirzah she
|
|
counted of the dead; and as for herself, she simply waited the end,
|
|
knowing every hour of life was an hour of dying- happily, of
|
|
painless dying.
|
|
|
|
The things of nature about the hill to keep her sensitive to the
|
|
world's attractions were wretchedly scant; beasts and birds avoided
|
|
the place as if they knew its history and present use; every green
|
|
thing perished in its first season; the winds warred upon the shrubs
|
|
and venturous grasses, leaving to drought such as they could not
|
|
uproot. Look where she would, the view was made depressingly
|
|
suggestive by tombs- tombs above her, tombs below, tombs opposite
|
|
her own tomb- all now freshly whitened in warning to visiting
|
|
pilgrims. In the sky- clear, fair, inviting- one would think she might
|
|
have found some relief to her ache of mind; but, alas! in making the
|
|
beautiful elsewhere the sun served her never so unfriendly- it did but
|
|
disclose her growing hideousness. But for the sun she would not have
|
|
been the horror she was to herself, nor been waked so cruelly from
|
|
dreams of Tirzah as she used to be. The gift of seeing can be
|
|
sometimes a dreadful curse.
|
|
|
|
Does one ask why she did not make an end to her sufferings?
|
|
|
|
The Law forbade her!
|
|
|
|
A Gentile may smile at the answer; but so will not a son of Israel.
|
|
|
|
While she sat there peopling the dusky solitude with thoughts even
|
|
more cheerless, suddenly a woman came up the hill staggering and spent
|
|
with exertion.
|
|
|
|
The widow arose hastily, and covering her head, cried, in a voice
|
|
unnaturally harsh, "Unclean, unclean!"
|
|
|
|
In a moment, heedless of the notice, Amrah was at her feet. All
|
|
the long-pent love of the simple creature burst forth: with tears
|
|
and passionate exclamations she kissed her mistress's garments, and
|
|
for a while the latter strove to escape from her; then, seeing she
|
|
could not, she waited till the violence of the paroxysm was over.
|
|
|
|
"What have you done, Amrah?" she said. "Is it by such disobedience
|
|
you prove your love for us? Wicked woman! You are lost; and he- your
|
|
master- you can never, never go back to him."
|
|
|
|
Amrah grovelled sobbing in the dust.
|
|
|
|
"The ban of the Law is upon you, too; you cannot return to
|
|
Jerusalem. What will become of us? Who will bring us bread? O
|
|
wicked, wicked Amrah! We are all, all undone alike!"
|
|
|
|
"Mercy, mercy!" Amrah answered from the ground.
|
|
|
|
"You should have been merciful to yourself, and by so doing been
|
|
most merciful to us. Now where can we fly? There is no one to help us.
|
|
O false servant! The wrath of the Lord was already too heavy upon us."
|
|
|
|
Here Tirzah, awakened by the noise, appeared at the door of the
|
|
tomb. The pen shrinks from the picture she presented. In the half-clad
|
|
apparition, patched with scales, lividly seamed, nearly blind, its
|
|
limbs and extremities swollen to grotesque largeness, familiar eyes
|
|
however sharpened by love could not have recognized the creature of
|
|
grace and purity we first beheld her.
|
|
|
|
"Is it Amrah, mother?"
|
|
|
|
The servant tried to crawl to her also.
|
|
|
|
"Stay, Amrah!' the widow cried, imperiously. "I forbid you
|
|
touching her. Rise, and get you gone before any at the well see you
|
|
here. Nay, I forgot- it is too late! You must remain now and share our
|
|
doom. Rise, I say!"
|
|
|
|
Amrah rose to her knees, and said, brokenly and with clasped
|
|
hands, "O good mistress! I am not false- I am not wicked. I bring
|
|
you good tidings."
|
|
|
|
"Of Judah?" and as she spoke, the widow half withdrew the cloth from
|
|
her head.
|
|
|
|
"There is a wonderful man," Amrah continued, "who has power to
|
|
cure you. He speaks a word, and the sick are made well, and even the
|
|
dead come to life. I have come to take you to him."
|
|
|
|
"Poor Amrah!" said Tirzah, compassionately.
|
|
|
|
"No," cried Amrah, detecting the doubt underlying the expression-
|
|
"no, as the Lord lives, even the Lord of Israel, my God as well as
|
|
yours, I speak the truth. Go with me, I pray, and lose no time. This
|
|
morning he will pass by on his way to the city. See! the day is at
|
|
hand. Take the food here- eat, and let us go."
|
|
|
|
The mother listened eagerly. Not unlikely she had heard of the
|
|
wonderful man, for by this time his fame had penetrated every nook
|
|
in the land.
|
|
|
|
"Who is he?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"A Nazarene."
|
|
|
|
"Who told you about him?"
|
|
|
|
"Judah."
|
|
|
|
"Judah told you? Is he at home?"
|
|
|
|
"He came last night."
|
|
|
|
The widow, trying to still the beating of her heart, was silent
|
|
awhile.
|
|
|
|
"Did Judah send you to tell us this?" she next asked.
|
|
|
|
"No. He believes you dead."
|
|
|
|
"There was a prophet once who cured a leper," the mother said
|
|
thoughtfully to Tirzah; "but he had his power from God." Then
|
|
addressing Amrah, she asked, "How does my son know this man so
|
|
possessed?"
|
|
|
|
"He was travelling with him, and heard the lepers call, and saw them
|
|
go away well. First there was one man; then there were ten; and they
|
|
were all made whole."
|
|
|
|
The elder listener was silent again. The skeleton hand shook. We may
|
|
believe she was struggling to give the story the sanction of faith,
|
|
which is always an absolutist in demand, and that it was with her as
|
|
with the men of the day, eye-witnesses of what was done by the Christ,
|
|
as well as the myriads who have succeeded them. She did not question
|
|
the performance, for her own son was the witness testifying through
|
|
the servant; but she strove to comprehend the power by which work so
|
|
astonishing could be done by a man. Well enough to make inquiry as
|
|
to the fact; to comprehend the power, on the other hand, it is first
|
|
necessary to comprehend God; and he who waits for that will die
|
|
waiting. With her, however, the hesitation was brief. To Tirzah she
|
|
said-
|
|
|
|
"This must be the Messiah!"
|
|
|
|
She spoke not coldly, like one reasoning a doubt away, but as a
|
|
woman of Israel familiar with the promises of God to her race- a woman
|
|
of understanding, ready to be glad over the least sign of the
|
|
realization of the promises.
|
|
|
|
"There was a time when Jerusalem and all Judea were filled with a
|
|
story that he was born. I remember it. By this time he should be a
|
|
man. It must be- it is he. Yes," she said to Amrah, "we will go with
|
|
you. Bring the water which you will find in the tomb in a jar, and set
|
|
the food for us. We will eat and be gone."
|
|
|
|
The breakfast, partaken under excitement, was soon despatched, and
|
|
the three women set out on their extraordinary journey. As Tirzah
|
|
had caught the confident spirit of the others, there was but one
|
|
fear that troubled the party. Bethany, Amrah said, was the town the
|
|
man was coming from; now from that to Jerusalem there were three
|
|
roads, or rather paths- one over the first summit of Olivet, a
|
|
second at its base, a third between the second summit and the Mount of
|
|
Offence. The three were not far apart; far enough, however, to make it
|
|
possible for the unfortunates to miss the Nazarene if they failed
|
|
the one he chose to come by.
|
|
|
|
A little questioning satisfied the mother that Amrah knew nothing of
|
|
the country beyond the Cedron, and even less of the intentions of
|
|
the man they were going to see, if they could. She discerned, also,
|
|
that both Amrah and Tirzah- the one from confirmed habits of
|
|
servitude, the other from natural dependence- looked to her for
|
|
guidance; and she accepted the charge.
|
|
|
|
"We will go first to Bethphage," she said to them. "There, if the
|
|
Lord favour us, we may learn what else to do."
|
|
|
|
They descended the hill to Tophet and the King's Garden, and
|
|
paused in the deep trail furrowed through them by centuries of
|
|
wayfaring.
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid of the road," the matron said. "Better that we keep
|
|
to the country among the rocks and trees. This is feast-day, and on
|
|
the hill-sides yonder I see signs of a great multitude in
|
|
attendance. By going across the Mount of Offence here we may avoid
|
|
them."
|
|
|
|
Tirzah had been walking with great difficulty; upon hearing this her
|
|
heart began to fail her.
|
|
|
|
"The mount is steep, mother! I cannot climb it."
|
|
|
|
"Remember, we are going to find health and life. See, my child,
|
|
how the day brightens around us! And yonder are women coming this
|
|
way to the well. They will stone us if we stay here. Come, be strong
|
|
this once."
|
|
|
|
Thus the mother, not less tortured herself, sought to inspire the
|
|
daughter; and Amrah came to her aid. To this time the latter had not
|
|
touched the persons of the afflicted, nor they her; now, in
|
|
disregard of consequences as well as of command, the faithful creature
|
|
went to Tirzah, and put her arm over her shoulder, and whispered,
|
|
"Lean on me. I am strong, though I am old; and it is but a little
|
|
way off. There- now we can go."
|
|
|
|
The face of the hill they essayed to cross was somewhat broken
|
|
with pits, and ruins of old structures; but when at last they stood
|
|
upon the top to rest, and looked at the spectacle presented them
|
|
over in the north-west- at the Temple and its courtly terraces, at
|
|
Zion, at the enduring towers white beetling into the sky beyond- the
|
|
mother was strengthened with a love of life for life's sake.
|
|
|
|
"Look, Tirzah," she said- "look at the plates of gold on the Gate
|
|
Beautiful. How they give back the flames of the sun, brightness for
|
|
brightness! Do you remember we used to go up there? Will it not be
|
|
pleasant to do so again? And think- home is but a little way off. I
|
|
can almost see it over the roof of the Holy of Holies; and Judah
|
|
will be there to receive us!"
|
|
|
|
From the side of the middle summit, garnished green with myrtle
|
|
and olive trees, they saw, upon looking that way next, thin columns of
|
|
smoke rising lightly and straight up into the pulseless morning,
|
|
each a warning of restless pilgrims astir, and of the flight of the
|
|
pitiless hours, and the need of haste.
|
|
|
|
Though the good servant toiled faithfully to lighten the labour in
|
|
descending the hill-side, not sparing herself in the least, the girl
|
|
moaned at every step; sometimes in extremity of anguish she cried out.
|
|
Upon reaching the road- that is, the road between the Mount of Offence
|
|
and the middle or second summit of Olivet- she fell down exhausted.
|
|
|
|
"Go on with Amrah, mother, and leave me here," she said, faintly.
|
|
|
|
"No, no, Tirzah. What would the gain be to me if I were healed and
|
|
you not? When Judah asks for you, as he will, what would I have to say
|
|
to him were I to leave you?"
|
|
|
|
"Tell him I loved him."
|
|
|
|
The elder leper arose from bending over the fainting sufferer, and
|
|
gazed about her with that sensation of hope perishing which is more
|
|
nearly like annihilation of the soul than anything else. The supremest
|
|
joy of the thought of cure was inseparable from Tirzah, who was not
|
|
too old to forget, in the happiness of healthful life to come, the
|
|
years of misery by which she had been so reduced in body and broken in
|
|
spirit. Even as the brave woman was about leaving the venture they
|
|
were engaged in to the determination of God, she saw a man on foot
|
|
coming rapidly up the road from the east.
|
|
|
|
"Courage, Tirzah! Be of cheer," she said. "Yonder I know is one to
|
|
tell us of the Nazarene."
|
|
|
|
Amrah helped the girl to a sitting posture, and supported her
|
|
while the man advanced.
|
|
|
|
"In your goodness, mother, you forget what we are. The stranger will
|
|
go around us; his best gift to us will be a curse, if not a stone."
|
|
|
|
"We will see."
|
|
|
|
There was no other answer to be given, since the mother was too well
|
|
and sadly acquainted with the treatment outcasts of the class to which
|
|
she belonged were accustomed to at the hands of her countrymen.
|
|
|
|
As has been said, the road at the edge of which the group was posted
|
|
was little more than a worn path or trail, winding crookedly through
|
|
tumuli of limestone. If the stranger kept it, he must meet them face
|
|
to face; and he did so, until near enough to hear the cry she was
|
|
bound to give. Then, uncovering her head, a further demand of the law,
|
|
she shouted shrilly-
|
|
|
|
"Unclean! unclean!"
|
|
|
|
To her surprise, the man came steadily on.
|
|
|
|
"What would you have?" he asked, stopping opposite them not four
|
|
yards off.
|
|
|
|
"Thou seest us. Have a care," the mother said, with dignity.
|
|
|
|
"Woman, I am the courier of him who speaketh but once to such as
|
|
thou and they are healed. I am not afraid."
|
|
|
|
"The Nazarene?"
|
|
|
|
"The Messiah," he said.
|
|
|
|
"Is it true that he cometh to the city to-day?"
|
|
|
|
"He is now at Bethphage."
|
|
|
|
"On what road, master?"
|
|
|
|
"This one."
|
|
|
|
She clasped her hands, and looked up thankfully.
|
|
|
|
"For whom takest thou him?" the man asked, with pity.
|
|
|
|
"The Son of God," she replied.
|
|
|
|
"Stay thou here then; or, as there is a multitude with him, take thy
|
|
stand by the rock yonder, the white one under the tree; and as he
|
|
goeth by fail not to call to him; call, and fear not. If thy faith but
|
|
equal thy knowledge, he will hear thee though all the heavens thunder.
|
|
I go to tell Israel, assembled in and about the city, that he is at
|
|
hand, and to make ready to receive him. Peace to thee and thine,
|
|
woman."
|
|
|
|
The stranger moved on.
|
|
|
|
"Did you hear, Tirzah? Did you hear? The Nazarene is on the road, on
|
|
this one, and he will hear us. Once more, my child- oh, only once! and
|
|
let us to the rock. It is but a step."
|
|
|
|
Thus encouraged, Tirzah took Amrah's hand and arose; but as they
|
|
were going, Amrah said, "Stay; the man is returning." And they
|
|
waited for him.
|
|
|
|
"I pray your grace, woman," he said, upon overtaking them.
|
|
"Remembering that the sun will be hot before the Nazarene arrives, and
|
|
that the city is near by to give me refreshment should I need it, I
|
|
thought this water would do thee better than it will me. Take it and
|
|
be of good cheer. Call to him as he passes."
|
|
|
|
He followed the words by offering her a gourd full of water, such as
|
|
foot-travellers sometimes carried with them in their journeys across
|
|
the hills; and instead of placing the gift on the ground for her to
|
|
take up when he was at a safe distance, he gave it into her hand.
|
|
|
|
"Art thou a Jew?" she asked, surprised.
|
|
|
|
"I am that, and better; I am a disciple of the Christ who teacheth
|
|
daily by word and example this thing which I have done unto you. The
|
|
world hath long known the word charity without understanding it. Again
|
|
I say, peace and good cheer to thee and thine."
|
|
|
|
He went on, and they went slowly to the rock he had pointed out to
|
|
them, high as their heads, and scarcely thirty yards from the road
|
|
on the right. Standing in front of it, the mother satisfied herself
|
|
they could be seen and heard plainly by passers-by whose notice they
|
|
desired to attract. There they cast themselves under the tree in its
|
|
shade, and drank of the gourd, and rested refreshed. Ere long Tirzah
|
|
slept, and fearing to disturb her, the others held their peace.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
THE MIRACLE.
|
|
|
|
DURING the third hour the road in front of the resting-place of
|
|
the lepers became gradually more and more frequented by people going
|
|
in the direction of Bethphage and Bethany; now, however, about the
|
|
commencement of the fourth hour, a great crowd appeared over the crest
|
|
of Olivet, and as it defiled down the road thousands in number, the
|
|
two watchers noticed with wonder that every one in it carried a
|
|
palm-branch freshly cut. As they sat absorbed by the novelty, the
|
|
noise of another multitude approaching from the east drew their eyes
|
|
that way. Then the mother awoke Tirzah.
|
|
|
|
"What is the meaning of it all?" the latter asked.
|
|
|
|
"He is coming," answered the mother. "These we see are from the city
|
|
going to meet him; those we hear in the east are his friends bearing
|
|
him company; and it will not be strange if the processions meet here
|
|
before us."
|
|
|
|
"I fear, if they do, we cannot be heard."
|
|
|
|
The same thought was in the elder's mind.
|
|
|
|
"Amrah," she asked, "when Judah spoke of the healing of the ten,
|
|
in what words did he say they called to the Nazarene?"
|
|
|
|
"Either they said, 'Lord, have mercy upon us,' or 'Master, have
|
|
mercy.'"
|
|
|
|
"Only that"
|
|
|
|
"No more that I heard."
|
|
|
|
"Yet it was enough," the mother added, to herself.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said Amrah, "Judah said he saw them go away well."
|
|
|
|
Meantime the people in the east came up slowly. When at length the
|
|
foremost of them were in sight, the gaze of the lepers fixed upon a
|
|
man riding in the midst of what seemed a chosen company which sang and
|
|
danced about him in extravagance of joy. The rider was bareheaded
|
|
and clad all in white. When he was in distance to be more clearly
|
|
observed, these, looking anxiously, saw an olive-hued face shaded by
|
|
long chestnut hair slightly sunburned and parted in the middle. He
|
|
looked neither to the right nor left. In the noisy abandon of his
|
|
followers he appeared to have no part; nor did their favour disturb
|
|
him in the least, or raise him out of the profound melancholy into
|
|
which, as his countenance showed, he was plunged. The sun beat upon
|
|
the back of his head, and lighting up the floating hair gave it a
|
|
delicate likeness to a golden nimbus. Behind him the irregular
|
|
procession, pouring forward with continuous singing and shouting,
|
|
extended out of view. There was no need of any one to tell the
|
|
lepers that this was he- the wonderful Nazarene!
|
|
|
|
"He is here, Tirzah," the mother said; "he is here. Come, my child."
|
|
|
|
As she spoke she glided in front of the white rock and fell upon her
|
|
knees.
|
|
|
|
Directly the daughter and servant were by her side. Then at sight of
|
|
the procession in the east, the thousands from the city halted, and
|
|
began to wave their green branches, shouting, or rather chanting
|
|
(for it was all in one voice)-
|
|
|
|
"Blessed is the King of Israel that cometh in the name of the Lord!"
|
|
|
|
And all the thousands who were of the rider's company, both those
|
|
near and those afar, replied so the air shook with the sound, which
|
|
was as a great wind threshing the side of the hill. Amidst the din,
|
|
the cries of the poor lepers were not more than the twittering of
|
|
dazed sparrows.
|
|
|
|
The moment of the meeting of the hosts was come, and with it the
|
|
opportunity the sufferers were seeking; if not taken, it would be lost
|
|
for ever, and they would be lost as well.
|
|
|
|
"Nearer, my child- let us get nearer. He cannot hear us," said the
|
|
mother.
|
|
|
|
She arose, and staggered forward. Her ghastly hands were up, and she
|
|
screamed with horrible shrillness. The people saw her- saw her hideous
|
|
face, and stopped awe-struck- an effect for which extreme human
|
|
misery, visible as in this instance, is as potent as majesty in purple
|
|
and gold. Tirzah, behind her a little way, fell down too faint and
|
|
frightened to follow farther.
|
|
|
|
"The lepers! the lepers!"
|
|
|
|
"Stone them!"
|
|
|
|
"The accursed of God! Kill them!"
|
|
|
|
These, with other yells of like import, broke in upon the hosannas
|
|
of the part of the multitude too far removed to see and understand the
|
|
cause of the interruption. Some there were, however, near by
|
|
familiar with the nature of the man to whom the unfortunates were
|
|
appealing- some who, by long intercourse with him, had caught somewhat
|
|
of his divine compassion: they gazed at him, and were silent while, in
|
|
fair view, he rode up and stopped in front of the woman. She also
|
|
beheld his face- calm, pitiful, and of exceeding beauty, the large
|
|
eyes tender with benignant purpose.
|
|
|
|
And this was the colloquy that ensued-
|
|
|
|
"O Master, Master! Thou seest our need; thou canst make us clean.
|
|
Have mercy upon us- mercy!"
|
|
|
|
"Believest thou I am able to do this?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Thou art he of whom the prophets spake- thou art the Messiah!"
|
|
she replied.
|
|
|
|
His eyes grew radiant, his manner confident.
|
|
|
|
"Woman," he said, "great is thy faith; be it unto thee even as
|
|
thou wilt."
|
|
|
|
He lingered an instant after, apparently unconscious of the presence
|
|
of the throng- an instant- then he rode away.
|
|
|
|
To the heart divinely original, yet so human in all the better
|
|
elements of humanity, going with sure prevision to a death of all
|
|
the inventions of men the foulest and most cruel, breathing even
|
|
then in the forecast shadow of the awful event, and still as hungry
|
|
and thirsty for love and faith as in the beginning, how precious and
|
|
ineffably soothing the farewell exclamation of the grateful woman-
|
|
|
|
"To God in the highest, glory! Blessed, thrice blessed, the Son whom
|
|
he hath given us!"
|
|
|
|
Immediately both the hosts, that from the city and that from
|
|
Bethphage, closed around him with their joyous demonstrations, with
|
|
hosannas and waving of palms, and so he passed from the lepers
|
|
forever. Covering her head, the elder hastened to Tirzah, and folded
|
|
her in her arms, crying, "Daughter, look up! I have his promise; he is
|
|
indeed the Messiah. We are saved- saved!" And the two remained
|
|
kneeling while the procession, slowly going, disappeared over the
|
|
mount. When the noise of its singing afar was a sound scarcely heard
|
|
the miracle began.
|
|
|
|
There was first in the hearts of the lepers a freshening of the
|
|
blood; then it flowed faster and stronger, thrilling their wasted
|
|
bodies with an infinitely sweet sense of painless healing. Each felt
|
|
the scourge going from her; their strength revived; they were
|
|
returning to be themselves. Directly, as if to make the purification
|
|
complete, from body to spirit the quickening ran, exalting them to a
|
|
very fervour of ecstasy. The power possessing them to this good end
|
|
was most nearly that of a draught of swift and happy effect; yet it
|
|
was unlike and superior in that its healing and cleansing were
|
|
absolute, and not merely a delicious consciousness while in
|
|
progress, but the planting, growing, and maturing all at once of a
|
|
recollection so singular and so holy that the simple thought of it
|
|
should be of itself ever after a formless yet perfect thanksgiving.
|
|
|
|
To this transformation- for such it may be called quite as
|
|
properly as a cure- there was a witness other than Amrah. The reader
|
|
will remember the constancy with which Ben-Hur had followed the
|
|
Nazarene throughout his wanderings; and now, recalling the
|
|
conversation of the night before, there will be little surprise at
|
|
learning that the young Jew was present when the leprous woman
|
|
appeared in the path of the pilgrims. He heard her prayer, and saw her
|
|
disfigured face; he heard the answer also, and was not so accustomed
|
|
to incidents of the kind, frequent as they had been, as to have lost
|
|
interest in them. Had such thing been possible with him, still the
|
|
bitter disputation always excited by the simplest display of the
|
|
Master's curative gift would have sufficed to keep his curiosity
|
|
alive. Besides that, if not above it as an incentive, his hope to
|
|
satisfy himself upon the vexed question of the mission of the
|
|
mysterious man was still upon him strong as in the beginning; we might
|
|
indeed say even stronger, because of a belief that now quickly, before
|
|
the sun went down, the man himself would make all known by public
|
|
proclamation. At the close of the scene, consequently, Ben-Hur had
|
|
withdrawn from the procession, and seated himself upon a stone to wait
|
|
its passage.
|
|
|
|
From his place he nodded recognition to many of the people-
|
|
Galileans in his league, carrying short swords under their long abbas.
|
|
After a little a swarthy Arab came up leading two horses; at a sign
|
|
from Ben-Hur he also drew out.
|
|
|
|
"Stay here," the young master said, when all were gone by, even
|
|
the laggards. "I wish to be at the city early, and Aldebaran must do
|
|
me service."
|
|
|
|
He stroked the broad forehead of the horse, now in his prime of
|
|
strength and beauty, then crossed the road towards the two women.
|
|
|
|
They were to him, it should be borne in mind, strangers in whom he
|
|
felt interest only as they were subjects of a superhuman experiment,
|
|
the result of which might possibly help him to solution of the mystery
|
|
that had so long engaged him. As he proceeded, he glanced casually
|
|
at the figure of the little woman over by the white rock, standing
|
|
there, her face hidden in her hands.
|
|
|
|
"As the Lord liveth, it is Amrah!" he said to himself.
|
|
|
|
He hurried on, and passing by the mother and daughter, still without
|
|
recognizing them, he stopped before the servant.
|
|
|
|
"Amrah," he said to her, "Amrah, what do you here?"
|
|
|
|
She rushed forward, and fell upon her knees before him, blinded by
|
|
her tears, nigh speechless with contending joy and fear.
|
|
|
|
"O master, master! Thy God and mine, how good he is!"
|
|
|
|
The knowledge we gain from much sympathy with others passing through
|
|
trials is but vaguely understood; strangely enough, it enables us,
|
|
among other things, to merge our identity into theirs often so
|
|
completely that their sorrows and their delights become our own. So
|
|
poor Amrah, aloof and hiding her face, knew the transformation the
|
|
lepers were undergoing without a word spoken to her- knew it, and
|
|
shared all their feeling to the full. Her countenance, her words,
|
|
her whole manner, betrayed her condition; and with swift
|
|
presentiment he connected it with the women he had just passed: he
|
|
felt her presence there at that time was in some way associated with
|
|
them, and turned hastily as they arose to their feet. His heart
|
|
stood still; he became rooted in his tracks- dumb past outcry-
|
|
awe-struck.
|
|
|
|
The woman he had seen before the Nazarene was standing with her
|
|
hands clasped and eyes streaming, looking towards heaven. The mere
|
|
transformation would have been a sufficient surprise; but it was the
|
|
least of the causes of his emotion. Could he be mistaken? Never was
|
|
there in life a stranger so like his mother; and like her as she was
|
|
the day the Roman snatched her from him. There was but one
|
|
difference to mar the identity- the hair of this person was a little
|
|
streaked with grey; yet that was not impossible of reconcilement,
|
|
since the intelligence which had directed the miracle might have taken
|
|
into consideration the natural effects of the passage of years. And
|
|
who was it by her side, if not Tirzah?- fair, beautiful, perfect, more
|
|
mature, but in all other respects exactly the same in appearance as
|
|
when she looked with him over the parapet the morning of the
|
|
accident to Gratus. He had given them over as dead, and time had
|
|
accustomed him to the bereavement; he had not ceased mourning for
|
|
them, yet, as something distinguishable, they had simply dropped out
|
|
of his plans and dreams. Scarcely believing his senses, he laid his
|
|
hand upon the servant's head, and asked, tremulously-
|
|
|
|
"Amrah, Amrah- my mother! Tirzah! tell me if I see aright."
|
|
|
|
"Speak to them, O master, speak to them!" she said.
|
|
|
|
He waited no longer, but ran, with outstretched arms, crying,
|
|
"Mother! mother! Tirzah! Here I am!"
|
|
|
|
They heard his call, and with a cry as loving started to meet him.
|
|
Suddenly the mother stopped, drew back, and uttered the old alarm-
|
|
|
|
"Stay, Judah, my son; come not nearer. Unclean, unclean!"
|
|
|
|
The utterance was not from habit, grown since the dread disease
|
|
struck her, as much as fear; and the fear was but another form of
|
|
the ever-thoughtful maternal love. Though they were healed in
|
|
person, the taint of the scourge might be in their garments ready
|
|
for communication. He had no such thought. They were before him; he
|
|
had called them, they had answered. Who or what should keep them
|
|
from him now? Next moment the three, so long separated, were
|
|
mingling their tears in each other's arms.
|
|
|
|
The first ecstasy over, the mother said, "In this happiness, O my
|
|
children, let us not be ungrateful. Let us begin life anew by
|
|
acknowledgment of him to whom we are all so indebted."
|
|
|
|
They fell upon their knees, Amrah with the rest; and the prayer of
|
|
the elder outspoken was as a psalm.
|
|
|
|
Tirzah repeated it word for word; so did Ben-Hur, but not with the
|
|
same clear mind and questionless faith; for when they were risen, he
|
|
asked-
|
|
|
|
"In Nazareth, where the man was born, mother, they call him the
|
|
son of a carpenter. What is he?"
|
|
|
|
Her eyes rested upon him with all their old tenderness, and she
|
|
answered as she had answered the Nazarene himself-
|
|
|
|
"He is the Messiah."
|
|
|
|
"And whence has he his power?"
|
|
|
|
"We may know by the use he makes of it. Can you tell me any he has
|
|
done?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"By that sign then I answer. He has his power from God."
|
|
|
|
It is not an easy thing to shake off in a moment the expectations
|
|
nurtured through years until they have become essentially a part of
|
|
us; and though Ben-Hur asked himself what the vanities of the world
|
|
were to such a one, his ambition was obdurate and would not down. He
|
|
persisted as men do yet every day in measuring the Christ by
|
|
himself. How much better if we measured ourselves by the Christ!
|
|
|
|
Naturally, the mother was the first to think of the cares of life.
|
|
|
|
"What shall we do now, my son? Where shall we go?"
|
|
|
|
Then Ben-Hur, recalled to duty, observed how completely every
|
|
trace of the scourge had disappeared from his restored people; that
|
|
each had back her perfection of person; that, as with Naaman when he
|
|
came up out of the water, their flesh had come again like unto the
|
|
flesh of a little child; and he took off his cloak, and threw it
|
|
over Tirzah.
|
|
|
|
"Take it," he said, smiling; "the eye of the stranger would have
|
|
shunned you before; now it shall not offend you."
|
|
|
|
The act exposed a sword belted to his side.
|
|
|
|
"Is it a time of war?" asked the mother, anxiously.
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Why, then, are you armed?"
|
|
|
|
"It may be necessary to defend the Nazarene."
|
|
|
|
Thus Ben-Hur evaded the whole truth.
|
|
|
|
"Has he enemies? Who are they?"
|
|
|
|
"Alas, mother, they are not all Romans!"
|
|
|
|
"Is he not of Israel, and a man of peace?"
|
|
|
|
"There was never one more so; but in the opinion of the rabbis and
|
|
teachers he is guilty of a great crime."
|
|
|
|
"What crime?"
|
|
|
|
"In his eyes the uncircumcised Gentile is as worthy favour as a
|
|
Jew of the strictest habit. He preaches a new dispensation."
|
|
|
|
The mother was silent, and they moved to the shade of the tree by
|
|
the rock. Calming his impatience to have them home again and hear
|
|
their story, he showed them the necessity of obedience to the law
|
|
governing in cases like theirs, and in conclusion called the Arab,
|
|
bidding him take the horses to the gate by Bethesda and await him
|
|
there; whereupon they set out by the way of the Mount of Offence.
|
|
The return was very different from the coming; they walked rapidly and
|
|
with ease, and in good time reached a tomb newly made near that of
|
|
Absalom, overlooking the depths of Cedron. Finding it unoccupied,
|
|
the women took possession, while he went on hastily to make the
|
|
preparations required for their new condition.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
PILGRIMS TO THE PASSOVER.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR pitched two tents out on the Upper Cedron east a short space
|
|
of the Tombs of the Kings, and furnished them with every comfort at
|
|
his command; and thither, without loss of time, he conducted his
|
|
mother and sister, to remain until the examining priest could
|
|
certify their perfect cleansing.
|
|
|
|
In course of the duty, the young man had subjected himself to such
|
|
serious defilement as to debar him from participation in the
|
|
ceremonies of the great feast, then near at hand. He could not enter
|
|
the least sacred of the courts of the Temple. Of necessity, not less
|
|
than choice, therefore, he stayed at the tents with his beloved
|
|
people. There was a great deal to hear from them, and a great deal
|
|
to tell them of himself.
|
|
|
|
Stories such as theirs- sad experiences extending through a lapse of
|
|
years, sufferings of body, acuter sufferings of mind- are usually long
|
|
in the telling, the incidents seldom following each other in
|
|
threaded connection. He listened to the narrative and all they told
|
|
him, with outward patience masking inward feelings. In fact, his
|
|
hatred of Rome and Romans reached a higher mark than ever; his
|
|
desire for vengeance became a thirst which attempts at reflection only
|
|
intensified. In the almost savage bitterness of his humour many mad
|
|
impulses took hold of him. The opportunities of the highways presented
|
|
themselves with singular force of temptation; he thought seriously
|
|
of insurrection in Galilee; even the sea, ordinarily a retrospective
|
|
horror to him, stretched itself map-like before his fancy, laced and
|
|
interlaced with lines of passage crowded with imperial plunder and
|
|
imperial travellers; but the better judgment matured in calmer hours
|
|
was happily too firmly fixed to be supplanted by present passion
|
|
however strong. Each mental venture in reach of new expedients brought
|
|
him back to the old conclusion- that there could be no sound success
|
|
except in a war involving all Israel in solid union; and all musing
|
|
upon the subject, all inquiry, all hope, ended where they began- in
|
|
the Nazarene and his purposes.
|
|
|
|
At odd moments the excited schemer found a pleasure in fashioning
|
|
a speech for that person-
|
|
|
|
"Hear, O Israel! I am he, the promised of God, born King of the
|
|
Jews- come to you with the dominion spoken of by the prophets. Rise
|
|
now, and lay hold on the world!"
|
|
|
|
Would the Nazarene but speak these few words, what a tumult would
|
|
follow! How many mouths performing the office of trumpets would take
|
|
them up and blow them abroad for the massing of armies!
|
|
|
|
Would he speak them?
|
|
|
|
And eager to begin the work, and answering in the worldly way,
|
|
Ben-Hur lost sight of the double nature of the man, and of the other
|
|
possibility, that the divine in him might transcend the human. In
|
|
the miracle of which Tirzah and his mother were the witnesses even
|
|
more nearly than himself, he saw and set apart and dwelt upon a
|
|
power ample enough to raise and support a Jewish crown over the wrecks
|
|
of the Italian, and more than ample to remodel society, and convert
|
|
mankind into one purified happy family; and when that work was done,
|
|
could any one say the peace which might then be ordered without
|
|
hindrance was not a mission worthy a son of God? Could any one then
|
|
deny the Redeemership of the Christ? And discarding all
|
|
consideration of political consequences, what unspeakable personal
|
|
glory there would then be to him as a man? It was not in the nature of
|
|
any mere mortal to refuse such a career.
|
|
|
|
Meantime down the Cedron, and in towards Bezetha, especially on
|
|
the roadsides quite up to the Damascus Gate, the country filled
|
|
rapidly with all kinds of temporary shelters for pilgrims to the
|
|
Passover. Ben-Hur visited the strangers and talked with them; and
|
|
returning to his tents, he was each time more and more astonished at
|
|
the vastness of their numbers. And when he further discovered that
|
|
every part of the world was represented among them- cities upon both
|
|
shores of the Mediterranean far off as the Pillars of the West,
|
|
river-towns in distant India, provinces in northernmost Europe; and
|
|
that, though they frequently saluted him with tongues unacquainted
|
|
with a syllable of the old Hebrew of the fathers, these
|
|
representatives had all the same object- celebration of the notable
|
|
feast- an idea tinged mistily with superstitious fancy forced itself
|
|
upon him. Might he not after all have misunderstood the Nazarene?
|
|
Might not that person by patient waiting be covering silent
|
|
preparation, and proving his fitness for the glorious task before him?
|
|
How much better this time for the movement than that other when, by
|
|
Gennesaret, the Galileans would have forced assumption of the crown?
|
|
Then the support would have been limited to a few thousands; now his
|
|
proclamation would be responded to by millions- who could say how
|
|
many? Pursuing this theory to its conclusions, Ben-Hur moved amidst
|
|
brilliant promises, and glowed with the thought that the melancholy
|
|
man, under gentle seeming and wondrous self-denial, was in fact
|
|
carrying in disguise the subtlety of a politician and the genius of
|
|
a soldier.
|
|
|
|
Several times also, in the meanwhile, low-set, brawny men,
|
|
bare-headed and black-bearded, came and asked for Ben-Hur at the tent:
|
|
his interviews with them were always apart; and to his mother's
|
|
questions who they were he answered-
|
|
|
|
"Some good friends of mine from Galilee."
|
|
|
|
Through them he kept informed of the movements of the Nazarene,
|
|
and of the schemes of the Nazarene's enemies, Rabbinical and Roman.
|
|
That the good man's life was in danger he knew; but that there were
|
|
any bold enough to attempt to take it at that time he could not
|
|
believe. It seemed too securely intrenched in a great fame and an
|
|
assured popularity. The very vastness of the attendance in and about
|
|
the city brought with it a seeming guaranty of safety. And yet, to say
|
|
truth, Ben-Hur's confidence rested most certainly upon the
|
|
miraculous power of the Christ. Pondering the subject in the purely
|
|
human view, that the master of such authority over life and death,
|
|
used so frequently for the good of others, would not exert it in
|
|
care of himself, was simply as much past belief as it was past
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
Nor should it be forgotten that all these were incidents of
|
|
occurrence between the twenty-first day of March- counting by the
|
|
modern calendar- and the twenty-fifth. The evening of the latter day
|
|
Ben-Hur yielded to his impatience, and rode to the city, leaving
|
|
behind him a promise to return in the night.
|
|
|
|
The horse was fresh, and choosing his own gait, sped swiftly. The
|
|
eyes of the clambering vines winked at the rider from the garden
|
|
fences on the way; there was nothing else to see him, nor child nor
|
|
woman nor man. Through the rocky float in the hollows of the road
|
|
the agate hoofs drummed, ringing like cups of steel; but without
|
|
notice from any stranger. In the houses passed there were no
|
|
tenants; the fires by the tent-doors were out; the road was
|
|
deserted; for this was the first Passover eve, and the hour "between
|
|
the evenings" when the visiting millions crowded the city, and the
|
|
slaughter of lambs in offering reeked the fore-courts of the Temple,
|
|
and the priests in ordered lines caught the flowing blood and
|
|
carried it swiftly to the dripping altars- when all was haste and
|
|
hurry, racing with the stars fast coming with the signal after which
|
|
the roasting and the eating and the singing might go on, but not the
|
|
preparation more.
|
|
|
|
Through the great northern gate the rider rode, and lo! Jerusalem
|
|
before the fall, in ripeness of glory, illuminated for the Lord.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
A SERPENT OF THE NILE.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR alighted at the gate of the khan from which the three Wise
|
|
Men more than thirty years before departed, going down to Bethlehem.
|
|
There, in keeping of his Arab followers, he left the horse, and
|
|
shortly after was at the wicket of his father's house, and in a yet
|
|
briefer space in the great chamber. He called for Malluch first;
|
|
that worthy being out, he sent a salutation to his friends, the
|
|
merchant and the Egyptian. They were being carried abroad to see the
|
|
celebration. The latter, he was informed, was very feeble, and in a
|
|
state of deep dejection.
|
|
|
|
Young people of that time who were supposed hardly to know their own
|
|
hearts indulged the habit of politic indirection quite as much as
|
|
young people in the same condition indulge it in this time; so when
|
|
Ben-Hur inquired for the good Balthasar, and with grave courtesy
|
|
desired to know if he would be pleased to see him, he really addressed
|
|
the daughter a notice of his arrival. While the servant was
|
|
answering for the elder, the curtain of the doorway was drawn aside,
|
|
and the younger Egyptian came in, and walked- or floated, upborne in a
|
|
white cloud of the gauzy raiment she so loved and lived in- to the
|
|
centre of the chamber, where the light cast by lamps from the
|
|
seven-armed brazen stick planted upon the floor was the strongest.
|
|
With her there was no fear of light.
|
|
|
|
The servant left the two alone.
|
|
|
|
In the excitement occasioned by the events of the few days past
|
|
Ben-Hur had scarcely given a thought to the fair Egyptian. If she came
|
|
to his mind at all, it was merely as a briefest pleasure, a suggestion
|
|
of a delight which could wait for him, and was waiting.
|
|
|
|
But now the influence of the woman revived with all its force the
|
|
instant Ben-Hur beheld her. He advanced to her eagerly, but stopped
|
|
and gazed. Such a change he had never seen!
|
|
|
|
Theretofore she had been a lover studious to win him- in manner
|
|
all warmth, each glance an admission, each action an avowal. She had
|
|
showered him with incense of flattery. While he was present, she had
|
|
impressed him with her admiration; going away, he carried the
|
|
impression with him to remain a delicious expectancy hastening his
|
|
return. It was for him the painted eyelids drooped lowest over the
|
|
lustrous almond eyes; for him the love-stories caught from the
|
|
professionals abounding in the streets of Alexandria were repeated
|
|
with emphasis and lavishment of poetry; for him endless exclamations
|
|
of sympathy, and smiles, and little privileges with hand and hair
|
|
and cheek and lips, and songs of the Nile, and displays of jewelry,
|
|
and subtleties of lace in veils and scarfs, and other subtleties not
|
|
less exquisite in flosses of Indian silk. The idea, old as the
|
|
oldest of peoples, that beauty is the reward of the hero had never
|
|
such realism as she contrived for his pleasure; insomuch that he could
|
|
not doubt he was her hero; she avouched it in a thousand artful ways
|
|
as natural with her as her beauty- winsome ways reserved, it would
|
|
seem, by the passionate genius of old Egypt for its daughters.
|
|
|
|
Such the Egyptian had been to Ben-Hur from the night of the
|
|
boat-ride on the lake in the Orchard of Palms. But now!
|
|
|
|
Elsewhere in this volume the reader may have observed a term of
|
|
somewhat indefinite meaning used reverently in a sacred connection; we
|
|
repeat it now with a general application. There are few persons who
|
|
have not a double nature, the real and the acquired, the latter a kind
|
|
of addendum resulting from education, which in time often perfects
|
|
it into a part of the being as unquestionable as the first. Leaving
|
|
the thought to the thoughtful, we proceed to say that now the real
|
|
nature of the Egyptian made itself manifest.
|
|
|
|
It was not possible for her to have received a stranger with
|
|
repulsion more incisive; yet she was apparently as passionless as a
|
|
statue, only the small head was a little tilted, the nostrils a little
|
|
drawn, and the sensuous lower lip pushed the upper the least bit out
|
|
of its natural curvature. She was the first to speak.
|
|
|
|
"Your coming is timely, O son of Hur," she said, in a voice
|
|
sharply distinct. "I wish to thank you for hospitality; after
|
|
to-morrow I may not have the opportunity to do so."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur bowed slightly without taking his eyes from her.
|
|
|
|
"I have heard of a custom which the dice-players observe with good
|
|
result among themselves," she continued. "When the game is over,
|
|
they refer to their tablets and cast up their accounts; then they
|
|
libate the gods and put a crown upon the happy winner. We have had a
|
|
game- it has lasted through many days and nights. Why, now that it
|
|
is at an end, shall not we see to which the chaplet belongs?"
|
|
|
|
Yet very watchful, Ben-Hur answered, lightly, "A man may not balk
|
|
a woman bent on having her way."
|
|
|
|
"Tell me," she continued, inclining her head, and permitting the
|
|
sneer to become positive- "tell me, O prince of Jerusalem, where is
|
|
he, that son of the carpenter of Nazareth, and son not less of God,
|
|
from whom so lately such mighty things were expected?"
|
|
|
|
He waved his hand impatiently, and replied, "I am not his keeper."
|
|
|
|
The beautiful head sank forward yet lower.
|
|
|
|
"Has he broken Rome to pieces?"
|
|
|
|
Again, but with anger, Ben-Hur raised his hand in deprecation.
|
|
|
|
"Where has he seated his capital?" she proceeded. "Cannot I go see
|
|
his throne and its lions of bronze? And his palace- he raised the
|
|
dead; and to such a one, what is it to raise a golden house? He has
|
|
but to stamp his foot and say the word, and the house is, pillared
|
|
like Karnak, and wanting nothing."
|
|
|
|
There was by this time slight ground left to believe her playing;
|
|
the questions were offensive, and her manner pointed with
|
|
unfriendliness; seeing which, he on his side became more wary, and
|
|
said, with good-humour, "O Egypt, let us wait another day, even
|
|
another week, for him, the lions, and the palace."
|
|
|
|
She went on without noticing the suggestion.
|
|
|
|
"And how is it I see you in that garb? Such is not the habit of
|
|
governors in India or vice-kings elsewhere. I saw the satrap of
|
|
Teheran once, and he wore a turban of silk and a cloak of cloth of
|
|
gold, and the hilt and scabbard of his sword made me dizzy with
|
|
their splendour of precious stones. I thought Osiris had lent him a
|
|
glory from the sun. I fear you have not entered upon your kingdom- the
|
|
kingdom I was to share with you."
|
|
|
|
"The daughter of my wise guest is kinder than she imagines
|
|
herself; she is teaching me that Isis may kiss a heart without
|
|
making it better."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur spoke with cold courtesy, and Iras, after playing with the
|
|
pendent solitaire of her necklace of coins, rejoined, "For a Jew,
|
|
the son of Hur is clever. I saw your dreaming Caesar make his entry
|
|
into Jerusalem. You told us he would that day proclaim himself King of
|
|
the Jews from the steps of the Temple. I beheld the procession descend
|
|
the mountain bringing him. I heard their singing. They were
|
|
beautiful with palms in motion. I looked everywhere among them for a
|
|
figure with a promise of royalty- a horseman in purple, a chariot with
|
|
a driver in shining brass, a stately warrior behind an orbed shield,
|
|
rivalling his spear in stature. I looked for his guard. It would
|
|
have been pleasant to have seen a prince of Jerusalem and a cohort
|
|
of the legions of Galilee."
|
|
|
|
She flung her listener a glance of provoking disdain, then laughed
|
|
heartily, as if the ludicrousness of the picture in her mind were
|
|
too strong for contempt.
|
|
|
|
"Instead of a Sesostris returning in triumph or a Caesar helmed
|
|
and sworded- ha, ha, ha!- I saw a man with a woman's face and hair,
|
|
riding an ass's colt, and in tears. The King! the son of God! the
|
|
Redeemer of the world! Ha, ha, ha!"
|
|
|
|
In spite of himself, Ben-Hur winced.
|
|
|
|
"I did not quit my place, O prince of Jerusalem," she said, before
|
|
he could recover. "I did not laugh. I said to myself, 'Wait. In the
|
|
Temple he will glorify himself as becomes a hero about to take
|
|
possession of the world.' I saw him enter the Gate of Shushan and
|
|
the Court of the Women. I saw him stop and stand before the Gate
|
|
Beautiful. There were people with me on the porch and in the courts,
|
|
and on the cloisters and on the steps of the three sides of the Temple
|
|
there were other people- I will say a million of people, all waiting
|
|
breathlessly to hear his proclamation. The pillars were not more still
|
|
than we. Ha, ha, ha! I fancied I heard the axles of the mighty Roman
|
|
machine begin to crack. Ha, ha, ha! O prince, by the soul of
|
|
Solomon, your King of the World drew his gown about him and walked
|
|
away, and out by the farthest gate, nor opened his mouth to say a
|
|
word; and- the Roman machine is running yet!"
|
|
|
|
In simple homage to a hope that instant lost- a hope which, as it
|
|
began to fall and while it was falling, he unconsciously followed with
|
|
a parting look down to its disappearance- Ben-Hur lowered his eyes.
|
|
|
|
At no previous time, whether when Balthasar was plying him with
|
|
arguments, or when miracles were being done before his face, had the
|
|
disputed nature of the Nazarene been so plainly set before him. The
|
|
best way, after all, to reach an understanding of the divine is by
|
|
study of the human. In the things superior to men we may always look
|
|
to find God. So with the picture given by the Egyptian of the scene
|
|
when the Nazarene turned from the Gate Beautiful; its central theme
|
|
was an act utterly beyond performance by a man under control of merely
|
|
human inspirations. A parable to a parable-loving people, it taught
|
|
what the Christ had so often asserted- that his mission was not
|
|
political. There was not much more time for thought of all this than
|
|
that allowed for a common respiration; yet the idea took fast hold
|
|
of Ben-Hur, and in the same instant he followed his hope of
|
|
vengeance out of sight, and the man with the woman's face and hair,
|
|
and in tears, came near to him- near enough to leave something of
|
|
his spirit behind.
|
|
|
|
"Daughter of Balthasar," he said, with dignity, "if this be the game
|
|
of which you spoke to me, take the chaplet- I accord it yours. Only
|
|
let us make an end of words. That you have a purpose I am sure. To it,
|
|
I pray, and I will answer you; then let us go our several ways, and
|
|
forget we ever met. Say on; I will listen, but not to more of that
|
|
which you have given me."
|
|
|
|
She regarded him intently a moment, as if determining what to do-
|
|
possibly she might have been measuring his will- then she said,
|
|
coldly, "You have my leave- go."
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you," he responded, and walked away.
|
|
|
|
As he was about passing out of the door, she called to him.
|
|
|
|
"A word."
|
|
|
|
He stopped where he was, and looked back.
|
|
|
|
"Consider all I know about you."
|
|
|
|
"O most fair Egyptian," he said, returning, "what all do you know
|
|
about me?"
|
|
|
|
She looked at him absently.
|
|
|
|
"You are more of a Roman, son of Hur, than any of your Hebrew
|
|
brethren."
|
|
|
|
"Am I so unlike my countrymen?" he asked, indifferently.
|
|
|
|
"The demi-gods are all Roman now," she rejoined.
|
|
|
|
"And therefore you will tell me what more you know about me?"
|
|
|
|
"The likeness is not lost upon me. It might induce me to save you."
|
|
|
|
"Save me!"
|
|
|
|
The pink-stained fingers toyed daintily with the lustrous pendent at
|
|
the throat, and her voice was exceeding low and soft; only a tapping
|
|
on the floor with her silken sandal admonished him to have a care.
|
|
|
|
"There was a Jew, an escaped galley-slave, who killed a man in the
|
|
Palace of Idernee," she began, slowly.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur was startled.
|
|
|
|
"The same Jew slew a Roman soldier before the Market-place here in
|
|
Jerusalem; the same Jew has three trained legions from Galilee to
|
|
seize the Roman governor to-night; the same Jew has alliances
|
|
perfected for war upon Rome, and Ilderim the Sheik is one of his
|
|
partners."
|
|
|
|
Drawing nearer him, she almost whispered-
|
|
|
|
"You have lived in Rome. Suppose these things repeated in ears we
|
|
know of. Ah! you change colour."
|
|
|
|
He drew back from her with somewhat of the look which may be
|
|
imagined upon the face of a man who, thinking to play with a kitten,
|
|
has run upon a tiger; and she proceeded-
|
|
|
|
"You are acquainted in the antechamber, and know the Lord Sejanus.
|
|
Suppose it were told him with the proofs in hand- or without the
|
|
proofs- that the same Jew is the richest man in the East- nay, in
|
|
all the empire. The fishes of the Tiber would have fattening other
|
|
than that they dig out of its ooze, would they not? And while they
|
|
were feeding- ha! son of Hur!- what splendour there would be on
|
|
exhibition in the Circus! Amusing the Roman people is a fine art;
|
|
getting the money to keep them amused is another art even finer; and
|
|
was there ever an artist the equal of the Lord Sejanus?"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur was not too much stirred by the evident baseness of the
|
|
woman for recollection. Not infrequently, when all the other faculties
|
|
are numb and failing, memory does its offices with the greatest
|
|
fidelity. The scene at the spring on the way to the Jordan
|
|
reproduced itself; and he remembered thinking then that Esther had
|
|
betrayed him, and thinking so now, he said, calmly as he could-
|
|
|
|
"To give you pleasure, daughter of Egypt, I acknowledge your
|
|
cunning, and that I am at your mercy. It may also please you to hear
|
|
me acknowledge I have no hope of your favour. I could kill you, but
|
|
you are a woman. The desert is open to receive me; and though Rome
|
|
is a good hunter of men, there she would follow long and far before
|
|
she caught me, for in its heart there are wildernesses of spears as
|
|
well as wildernesses of sand, and it is not unlovely to the
|
|
unconquered Parthian. In the toils as I am- dupe that I have been- yet
|
|
there is one thing my due: who told you all you know about me? In
|
|
flight or captivity, dying even, there will be consolation in
|
|
leaving the traitor the curse of a man who has lived knowing nothing
|
|
but wretchedness. Who told you all you know about me?"
|
|
|
|
It might have been a touch of art, or might have been sincere-
|
|
that as it may- the expression of the Egyptian's face became
|
|
sympathetic.
|
|
|
|
"There are in my country, O son of Hur," she said, presently,
|
|
"workmen who make pictures by gathering vari-coloured shells here
|
|
and there on the sea-shore after storms, and cutting them up, and
|
|
patching the pieces as inlaying on marble slabs. Can you not see the
|
|
hint there is in the practice to such as go gathering for secrets?
|
|
Enough that from this person I gathered a handful of little
|
|
circumstances, and from that other yet another handful, and that
|
|
afterwhile I put them together, and was happy as a woman can be who
|
|
has at disposal the fortune and life of a man whom"- she stopped and
|
|
beat the floor with her foot, and looked away as if to hide a sudden
|
|
emotion from him; with an air of even painful resolution she presently
|
|
finished the sentence- "whom she is at loss what to do with."
|
|
|
|
"No, it is not enough," Ben-Hur said, unmoved by the play- "it is
|
|
not enough. To-morrow you will determine what to do with me. I may
|
|
die."
|
|
|
|
"True," she rejoined quickly and with emphasis, "I had something
|
|
from Sheik Ilderim as he lay with my father in a grove out in the
|
|
desert. The night was still, very still, and the walls of the tent,
|
|
sooth to say, were poor ward against ears outside listening to-
|
|
birds and beetles flying through the air."
|
|
|
|
She smiled at the conceit, but proceeded:-
|
|
|
|
"Some other things- bits of shell for the picture- I had from- "
|
|
|
|
"Whom?"
|
|
|
|
"The son of Hur himself."
|
|
|
|
"Was there no other who contributed?"
|
|
|
|
"No, not one."
|
|
|
|
Hur drew a breath of relief, and said, lightly, "Thanks. It were not
|
|
well to keep the Lord Sejanus waiting for you. The desert is not so
|
|
sensitive. Again, O Egypt, peace!"
|
|
|
|
To this time he had been standing uncovered; now he took the
|
|
handkerchief from his arm where it had been hanging, and adjusting
|
|
it upon his head, turned to depart. But she arrested him; in her
|
|
eagerness, she even reached a hand to him.
|
|
|
|
"Stay," she said.
|
|
|
|
He looked back at her, but without taking the hand, though it was
|
|
very noticeable for its sparkling of jewels; and he knew by her manner
|
|
that the reserved point of the scene which was so surprising to him
|
|
was now to come.
|
|
|
|
"Stay, and do not distrust me, O son of Hur, if I declare I know why
|
|
the noble Arrius took you for his heir. And, by Iris! by all the
|
|
gods of Egypt! I swear I tremble to think of you, so brave and
|
|
generous, under the hand of the remorseless minister. You have left
|
|
a portion of your youth in the atria of the great capital; consider,
|
|
as I do, what the desert will be to you in contrast of life. Oh, I
|
|
give you pity- pity! And if you but do what I say, I will save you.
|
|
That, also, I swear, by our holy Isis!"
|
|
|
|
Words of entreaty and prayer these, poured forth volubly and with
|
|
earnestness and the mighty sanction of beauty.
|
|
|
|
"Almost- almost I believe you," Ben-Hur said, yet hesitatingly,
|
|
and in a voice low and indistinct; for a doubt remained with him
|
|
grumbling against the yielding tendency of the man- a good sturdy
|
|
doubt, such a one as has saved many a life and fortune.
|
|
|
|
"The perfect life for a woman is to live in love; the greatest
|
|
happiness for a man is the conquest of himself; and that, O prince, is
|
|
what I have to ask of you."
|
|
|
|
She spoke rapidly, and with animation; indeed, she had never
|
|
appeared to him so fascinating.
|
|
|
|
"You had once a friend," she continued. "It was in your boyhood.
|
|
There was a quarrel, and you and he became enemies. He did you
|
|
wrong. After many years you met him again in the Circus at Antioch."
|
|
|
|
"Messala!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Messala. You are his creditor. Forgive the past; admit him
|
|
to friendship again; restore the fortune he lost in the great wager;
|
|
rescue him. The six talents are as nothing to you; not so much as a
|
|
bud lost upon a tree already in full leaf; but to him- Ah, he must
|
|
go about with a broken body; wherever you meet him he must look up
|
|
to you from the ground. O Ben-Hur, noble prince! to a Roman
|
|
descended as he is beggary is the other most odious name for death.
|
|
Save him from beggary!"
|
|
|
|
If the rapidity with which she spoke was a cunning invention to keep
|
|
him from thinking, either she never knew or else had forgotten that
|
|
there are convictions which derive nothing from thought, but drop into
|
|
place without leave or notice. It seemed to him, when at last she
|
|
paused to have his answer, that he could see Messala himself peering
|
|
at him over her shoulder; and in its expression the countenance of the
|
|
Roman was not that of a mendicant or a friend; the sneer was as
|
|
patrician as ever, and the fine edge of the hauteur as flawless and
|
|
irritating.
|
|
|
|
"The appeal has been decided then, and for once a Messala takes
|
|
nothing. I must go and write it in my book of great occurrences- a
|
|
judgment by a Roman against a Roman! But did he- did Messala send
|
|
you to me with this request, O Egypt?"
|
|
|
|
"He has a noble nature, and judged you by it."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur took the hand upon his arm.
|
|
|
|
"As you know him in such friendly way, fair Egyptian, tell me, would
|
|
he do for me, there being a reversal of the conditions, that he asks
|
|
of me? Answer, by Isis! Answer, for the truth's sake!"
|
|
|
|
There was insistence in the touch of his hand, and in his look also.
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" she began, "he is- "
|
|
|
|
"A Roman, you were about to say; meaning that I, a Jew, must not
|
|
determine dues from me to him by any measure of dues from him to me;
|
|
being a Jew, I must forgive him my winnings because he is a Roman.
|
|
If you have more to tell me, daughter of Balthasar, speak quickly,
|
|
quickly; for by the Lord God of Israel, when this heat of blood,
|
|
hotter waxing, attains its highest, I may not be able longer to see
|
|
that you are a woman, and beautiful! I may see but the spy of a master
|
|
the more hateful because the master is a Roman. Say on, and quickly."
|
|
|
|
She threw his hand off and stepped back into the full light, with
|
|
all the evil of her nature collected in her eyes and voice.
|
|
|
|
"Thou drinker of lees, feeder upon husks! To think I could love
|
|
thee, having seen Messala! Such as thou were born to serve him. He
|
|
would have been satisfied with release of the six talents; but I say
|
|
to the six thou shalt add twenty- twenty, dost thou hear? The kissings
|
|
of my little finger which thou hast taken from him, though with my
|
|
consent, shall be paid for; and that I have followed thee with
|
|
affectation of sympathy, and endured thee so long, enter into the
|
|
account not less because I was serving him. The merchant here is thy
|
|
keeper of moneys. If by to-morrow at noon he has not thy order acted
|
|
upon in favour of my Messala for six-and-twenty talents- mark the
|
|
sum!- thou shalt settle with the Lord Sejanus. Be wise and- farewell."
|
|
|
|
As she was going to the door, he put himself in her way.
|
|
|
|
"The old Egypt lives in you," he said. "Whether you see Messala
|
|
to-morrow or the next day, here or in Rome, give him this message.
|
|
Tell him I have back the money, even the six talents, he robbed me
|
|
of by robbing my father's estate; tell him I survived the galleys to
|
|
which he had me sent, and in my strength rejoice in his beggary and
|
|
dishonour; tell him I think the affliction of body which he has from
|
|
my hand is the curse of our Lord God of Israel upon him, more fit than
|
|
death for his crimes against the helpless; tell him my mother and
|
|
sister whom he had sent to a cell in Antonia that they might die of
|
|
leprosy, are alive and well, thanks to the power of the Nazarene
|
|
whom you so despise; tell him that, to fill my measure of happiness,
|
|
they are restored to me, and that I will go hence to their love, and
|
|
find in it more than compensation for the impure passions which you
|
|
leave me to take to him; tell him- this for your comfort, O cunning
|
|
incarnate, as much as his- tell him that when the Lord Sejanus comes
|
|
to despoil me he will find nothing; for the inheritance I had from the
|
|
duumvir, including the villa by Misenum, has been sold, and the
|
|
money from the sale is out of reach, afloat in the marts of the
|
|
world as bills of exchange; and that this house and the goods and
|
|
merchandise, and the ships and caravans with which Simonides plies his
|
|
commerces with such princely profits, are covered by imperial
|
|
safeguards- a wise head having found the price of the favour, and
|
|
the Lord Sejanus preferring a reasonable gain in the way of gift to
|
|
much gain fished from pools of blood and wrong; tell him if all this
|
|
were not so, if the money and property were all mine, yet should he
|
|
not have the least part of it, for when he finds our Jewish bills, and
|
|
forces them to give up their values, there is yet another resort
|
|
left me- a deed of gift to Caesar- so much, O Egypt, I found out in
|
|
the atria of the great capital; tell him that along with my defiance I
|
|
do not send him a curse in words, but, as a better expression of my
|
|
undying hate, I send him one who will prove to him the sum of all
|
|
curses; and when he looks at you repeating this my message, daughter
|
|
of Balthasar, his Roman shrewdness will tell him all I mean. Go now-
|
|
and I will go."
|
|
|
|
He conducted her to the door, and, with ceremonious politeness, held
|
|
back the curtain while she passed out.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you," he said, as she disappeared.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
BEN-HUR RETURNS TO ESTHER.
|
|
|
|
WHEN Ben-Hur left the guest-chamber, there was not nearly so much
|
|
life in his action as when he entered it; his steps were slower, and
|
|
he went along with his head quite upon his breast. Having made
|
|
discovery that a man with a broken back may yet have a sound brain, he
|
|
was reflecting upon the discovery.
|
|
|
|
Forasmuch as it is easy after a calamity has befallen to look back
|
|
and see the proofs of its coming strewn along the way, the thought
|
|
that he had not even suspected the Egyptian as in Messala's
|
|
interest, but had gone blindly on through whole years putting
|
|
himself and his friends more and more at her mercy, was a sore wound
|
|
to the young man's vanity. "I remember," he said to himself, "she
|
|
had no word of indignation for the perfidious Roman at the Fountain of
|
|
Castalia! I remember she extolled him at the boat-ride on the lake
|
|
in the Orchard of Palms! And, ah!"- he stopped, and beat his left hand
|
|
violently with his right- "ah! that mystery about the appointment
|
|
she made with me at the Palace of Idernee is no mystery now!"
|
|
|
|
The wound, it should be observed, was to his vanity; and fortunately
|
|
it is not often that people die of such hurts, or even continue a long
|
|
time sick. In Ben-Hur's case, moreover, there was a compensation;
|
|
for presently he exclaimed aloud, "Praised be the Lord God that the
|
|
woman took not a more lasting hold of me! I see I did not love her."
|
|
|
|
Then, as if he had already parted with not a little of the weight on
|
|
his mind, he stepped forward more lightly; and, coming to the place on
|
|
the terrace where one stairway led down to the court-yard below, and
|
|
another ascended to the roof, he took the latter and began to climb.
|
|
As he made the last step in the flight he stopped again.
|
|
|
|
"Can Balthasar have been her partner in the long mask she has been
|
|
playing? No, no. Hypocrisy seldom goes with wrinkled age like that.
|
|
Balthasar is a good man."
|
|
|
|
With this decided opinion he stepped upon the roof. There was a full
|
|
moon overhead, yet the vault of the sky at the moment was lurid with
|
|
light cast up from the fires burning in the streets and open places of
|
|
the city, and the chanting and chorusing of the old psalmody of Israel
|
|
filled it with plaintive harmonies to which he could not but listen.
|
|
The countless voices bearing the burden seemed to say, "Thus, O Son of
|
|
Judah, we prove our worshipfulness of the Lord God, and our loyalty to
|
|
the land he gave us. Let a Gideon appear, or a David, or a Maccabaeus,
|
|
and we are ready."
|
|
|
|
That seemed an introduction; for next he saw the man of Nazareth.
|
|
|
|
In certain moods the mind is disposed to mock itself with inapposite
|
|
fancies.
|
|
|
|
The tearful woman-like face of the Christ stayed with him while he
|
|
crossed the roof to the parapet above the street on the north side
|
|
of the house, and there was in it no sign of war; but rather as the
|
|
heavens of the calm evenings look peace upon everything, so it looked,
|
|
provoking the old question, What manner of man is he?
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur permitted himself one glance over the parapet, then turned
|
|
and walked mechanically towards the summer-house.
|
|
|
|
"Let them do their worst," he said, as he went slowly on. "I will
|
|
not forgive the Roman. I will not divide my fortune with him, nor will
|
|
I fly from this city of my fathers; I will call on Galilee first,
|
|
and here make the fight. By brave deeds I will bring the tribes to our
|
|
side. He who raised up Moses will find us a leader, if I fail. If
|
|
not the Nazarene, then some one of the many ready to die for freedom."
|
|
|
|
The interior of the summer-house, when Ben-Hur, slow sauntering,
|
|
came to it, was murkily lighted. The faintest of shadows lay along the
|
|
floor from the pillars on the north and west sides. Looking in, he saw
|
|
the arm-chair usually occupied by Simonides drawn to a spot from which
|
|
a view of the city over towards the Market-place could be best had.
|
|
|
|
"The good man is returned. I will speak with him, unless he be
|
|
asleep."
|
|
|
|
He walked in, and with a quiet step approached the chair. Peering
|
|
over the high back, he beheld Esther nestled in the seat asleep- a
|
|
small figure snugged away under her father's lap-robe. The hair
|
|
dishevelled fell over her face. Her breathing was low and irregular.
|
|
Once it was broken by a long sigh, ending in a sob. Something- it
|
|
might have been the sigh or the loneliness in which he found her-
|
|
imparted to him the idea that the sleep was a rest from sorrow
|
|
rather than fatigue. Nature kindly sends such relief to children,
|
|
and he was used to thinking Esther scarcely more than a child. He
|
|
put his arms upon the back of the chair, and thought.
|
|
|
|
"I will not wake her. I have nothing to tell her- nothing unless-
|
|
unless it be my love.... She is a daughter of Judah, and beautiful,
|
|
and so unlike the Egyptian; for there it is all vanity, here all
|
|
truth; there ambition, here duty; there selfishness, here
|
|
self-sacrifice.... Nay, the question is not do I love her, but does
|
|
she love me? She was my friend from the beginning. The night on the
|
|
terrace at Antioch, how childlike she begged me not to make Rome my
|
|
enemy, and had me tell her of the villa by Misenum, and of the life
|
|
there! That she should not see I saw her cunning drift I kissed her.
|
|
Can she have forgotten the kiss? I have not. I love her.... They do
|
|
not know in the city that I have back my people. I shrank from telling
|
|
it to the Egyptian; but this little one will rejoice with me over
|
|
their restoration, and welcome them with love and sweet services of
|
|
hand and heart. She will be to my mother another daughter; in Tirzah
|
|
she will find her other self. I would wake her and tell her these
|
|
things, but- out on the sorceress of Egypt! Of that folly I could
|
|
not command myself to speak. I will go away, and wait another and a
|
|
better time. I will wait. Fair Esther, dutiful child, daughter of
|
|
Judah!"
|
|
|
|
He retired silently as he came.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.
|
|
|
|
GETHSEMANE- "WHOM SEEK YE?"
|
|
|
|
THE streets were full of people going and coming, or grouped about
|
|
the fires roasting meat, and feasting and singing, and happy. The
|
|
odour of scorching flesh mixed with the odour of cedar-wood aflame and
|
|
smoking loaded the air; and as this was the occasion when every son of
|
|
Israel was full brother to every other son of Israel, and
|
|
hospitality was without bounds, Ben-Hur was saluted at every step,
|
|
while the groups by the fires insisted, "Stay and partake with us.
|
|
We are brethren in the love of the Lord." But with thanks to them he
|
|
hurried on, intending to take horse at the khan and return to the
|
|
tents on the Cedron.
|
|
|
|
To make the place, it was necessary for him to cross the
|
|
thoroughfare so soon to receive sorrowful Christian perpetuation.
|
|
There also the pious celebration was at its height. Looking up the
|
|
street, he noticed the flames of torches in motion streaming out
|
|
like pennons; then he observed that the singing ceased where the
|
|
torches came. His wonder rose to its highest, however, when he
|
|
became certain that amidst the smoke and dancing sparks he saw the
|
|
keener sparkling of burnished spear-tips, arguing the presence of
|
|
Roman soldiers. What were they, the scoffing legionaries, doing in a
|
|
Jewish religious procession? The circumstance was unheard of, and he
|
|
stayed to see the meaning of it.
|
|
|
|
The moon was shining its best; yet, as if the moon and the
|
|
torches, and the fires in the street, and the rays streaming from
|
|
windows and open doors were not enough to make the way clear, some
|
|
of the processionists carried lighted lanterns; and fancying he
|
|
discovered a special purpose in the use of such equipments, Ben-Hur
|
|
stepped into the street, so close to the line of march as to bring
|
|
every one of the company under view while passing. The torches and the
|
|
lanterns were being borne by servants, each of whom was armed with a
|
|
bludgeon or a sharpened stave. Their present duty seemed to be to pick
|
|
out the smoothest paths among the rocks in the street for certain
|
|
dignitaries among them- elders and priests; rabbis with long beards,
|
|
heavy brows, and beaked noses; men of the class potential in the
|
|
councils of Caiaphas and Hannas. Where could they be going? Not to the
|
|
Temple, certainly, for the route to the sacred house from Zion, whence
|
|
these appeared to be coming, was by the Xystus. And their business- if
|
|
peaceful, why the soldiers?
|
|
|
|
As the procession began to go by Ben-Hur, his attention was
|
|
particularly called to three persons walking together. They were
|
|
well towards the front, and the servants who went before them with
|
|
lanterns appeared unusually careful in the service. In the person
|
|
moving on the left of this group he recognized a chief policeman of
|
|
the Temple; the one on the right was a priest; the middle man was
|
|
not at first so easily placed, as he walked leaning heavily upon the
|
|
arms of the others, and carried his head so low upon his breast as
|
|
to hide his face. His appearance was that of a prisoner not yet
|
|
recovered from the fright of arrest, or being taken to something
|
|
dreadful- to torture or death. The dignitaries helping him on the
|
|
right and left, and the attention they gave him, made it clear that if
|
|
he were not himself the object moving the party, he was at least in
|
|
some way connected with the object- a witness or a guide, possibly
|
|
an informer. So if it could be found who he was the business in hand
|
|
might be shrewdly guessed. With great assurance, Ben-Hur fell in on
|
|
the right of the priest, and walked along with him. Now if the man
|
|
would lift his head! And presently he did so, letting the light of the
|
|
lanterns strike full in his face- pale, dazed, pinched with dread; the
|
|
beard roughed; the eyes filmy, sunken, and despairing. In much going
|
|
about following the Nazarene, Ben-Hur had come to know his disciples
|
|
as well as the Master; and now, at sight of the dismal countenance, he
|
|
cried out- "The 'Scariot!"
|
|
|
|
Slowly the head of the man turned until his eyes settled upon
|
|
Ben-Hur, and his lips moved as if he were about to speak; but the
|
|
priest interfered.
|
|
|
|
"Who art thou? Begone!" he said to Ben-Hur, pushing him away.
|
|
|
|
The young man took the push good-naturedly, and, waiting an
|
|
opportunity, fell into the procession again. Thus he was carried
|
|
passively along down the street, through the crowded lowlands
|
|
between the hill Bezetha and the Castle of Antonia, and on by the
|
|
Bethesda reservoir to the Sheep Gate. There were people everywhere,
|
|
and everywhere the people were engaged in sacred observances.
|
|
|
|
It being Passover night, the valves of the Gate stood open. The
|
|
keepers were off somewhere feasting. In front of the procession as
|
|
it passed out unchallenged was the deep gorge of the Cedron, with
|
|
Olivet beyond, its dressing of cedar and olive trees darker of the
|
|
moonlight silvering all the heavens. Two roads met and merged into the
|
|
street at the gate- one from the north-east, the other from Bethany.
|
|
Ere Ben-Hur could finish wondering whether he were to go farther,
|
|
and if so, which road was to be taken, he was led off down into the
|
|
gorge. And still no hint of the purpose of the midnight march.
|
|
|
|
Down the gorge and over the bridge at the bottom of it. There was
|
|
a great clatter on the floor as the crowd, now a struggling rabble,
|
|
passed over, beating and pounding with their clubs and staves. A
|
|
little farther, and they turned off to the left in the direction of an
|
|
olive orchard enclosed by a stone wall in view from the road.
|
|
Ben-Hur knew there was nothing in the place but old gnarled trees, the
|
|
grass, and a trough hewn out of a rock for the treading of oil after
|
|
the fashion of the country. While, yet more wonder-struck, he was
|
|
thinking what could bring such a company at such an hour to a
|
|
quarter so lonesome, they were all brought to a stand-still. Voices
|
|
called out excitedly in front; a chill sensation ran from man to
|
|
man; there was a rapid falling-back, and a blind stumbling over each
|
|
other. The soldiers alone kept their order.
|
|
|
|
It took Ben-Hur but a moment to disengage himself from the mob and
|
|
run forward. There he found a gateway without a gate admitting to
|
|
the orchard, and he halted to take in the scene.
|
|
|
|
A man in white clothes, and bareheaded, was standing outside the
|
|
entrance, his hands crossed before him- a slender, stooping figure,
|
|
with long hair and thin face- in an attitude of resignation and
|
|
waiting.
|
|
|
|
It was the Nazarene!
|
|
|
|
Behind him, next the gateway, were the disciples in a group; they
|
|
were excited, but no man was ever calmer than he. The torch-light beat
|
|
redly upon him, giving his hair a tint ruddier than was natural to it;
|
|
yet the expression of the countenance was as usual, all gentleness and
|
|
pity.
|
|
|
|
Opposite this most unmartial figure stood the rabble, gaping,
|
|
silent, awed, cowering- ready at a sign of anger from him to break and
|
|
run. And from him to them- then at Judas, conspicuous in their
|
|
midst- Ben-Hur looked- one quick glance, and the object of the visit
|
|
lay open to his understanding. Here was the betrayer, there the
|
|
betrayed; and these with clubs and staves, and the legionaries, were
|
|
brought to take him.
|
|
|
|
A man may not always tell what he will do until the trial is upon
|
|
him. This was the emergency for which Ben-Hur had been for years
|
|
preparing. The man to whose security he had devoted himself, and
|
|
upon whose life he had been building so largely, was in personal
|
|
peril; yet he stood still. Such contradictions are there in human
|
|
nature! To say truth, O reader, he was not entirely recovered from the
|
|
picture of the Christ before the Gate Beautiful as it had been given
|
|
by the Egyptian; and, besides that, the very calmness with which the
|
|
mysterious person confronted the mob held him in restraint by
|
|
suggesting the possession of a power in reserve more than sufficient
|
|
for the peril. Peace and good-will, and love and nonresistance, had
|
|
been the burden of the Nazarene's teaching; would he put his preaching
|
|
into practice? He was master of life; he could restore it when lost;
|
|
he could take it at pleasure. What use would he make of the power now?
|
|
Defend himself? And how? A word- a breath- a thought were
|
|
sufficient. That there would be some signal exhibition of
|
|
astonishing force beyond the natural Ben-Hur believed, and in that
|
|
faith waited. And in all this he was still measuring the Nazarene by
|
|
himself- by the human standard.
|
|
|
|
Presently the clear voice of the Christ arose.
|
|
|
|
"Whom seek ye?"
|
|
|
|
"Jesus of Nazareth," the priest replied.
|
|
|
|
"I am he."
|
|
|
|
At these simplest of words, spoken without passion or alarm, the
|
|
assailants fell back several steps, the timid among them cowering to
|
|
the ground; and they might have let him alone and gone away had not
|
|
Judas walked over to him.
|
|
|
|
"Hail, master!"
|
|
|
|
With this friendly speech he kissed him.
|
|
|
|
"Judas," said the Nazarene, mildly, "betrayest thou the Son of man
|
|
with a kiss? Wherefore art thou come?"
|
|
|
|
Receiving no reply, the Master spoke to the crowd again.
|
|
|
|
"Whom seek ye?"
|
|
|
|
"Jesus of Nazareth."
|
|
|
|
"I have told you that I am he. If, therefore, you seek me, let these
|
|
go their way."
|
|
|
|
At these words of entreaty the rabbis advanced upon him; and, seeing
|
|
their intent, some of the disciples for whom he interceded drew
|
|
nearer; one of them cut off a man's ear, but without saving the Master
|
|
from being taken. And yet Ben-Hur stood still! Nay, while the officers
|
|
were making ready with their ropes the Nazarene was doing his greatest
|
|
charity- not the greatest in deed, but the very greatest in
|
|
illustration of his forbearance, so far surpassing that of men.
|
|
|
|
"Suffer ye thus far," he said to the wounded man, and healed him
|
|
with a touch.
|
|
|
|
Both friends and enemies were confounded- one side that he could
|
|
do such a thing, the other that he would do it under the
|
|
circumstances.
|
|
|
|
"Surely he will not allow them to bind him!"
|
|
|
|
Thus thought Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"Put up thy sword into the sheath; the cup which my Father hath
|
|
given me, shall I not drink it?" From the offending follower, the
|
|
Nazarene turned to his captors. "Are you come out as against a
|
|
thief, with swords and staves to take me? I was daily with you in
|
|
the Temple, and you took me not; but this is your hour, and the
|
|
power of darkness."
|
|
|
|
The posse plucked up courage and closed about him; and when
|
|
Ben-Hur looked for the faithful they were gone- not one of them
|
|
remained.
|
|
|
|
The crowd about the deserted man seemed very busy with tongue, hand,
|
|
and foot. Over their heads, between the torch-sticks, through the
|
|
smoke, sometimes in openings between the restless men, Ben-Hur
|
|
caught momentary glimpses of the prisoner. Never had anything struck
|
|
him as so piteous, so unfriended, so forsaken! Yet, he thought, the
|
|
man could have defended himself- he could have slain his enemies
|
|
with a breath, but he would not. What was the cup his father had given
|
|
him to drink? And who was the father to be so obeyed? Mystery upon
|
|
mystery- not one, but many.
|
|
|
|
Directly the mob started in return to the city, the soldiers in
|
|
the lead. Ben-Hur became anxious; he was not satisfied with himself.
|
|
Where the torches were in the midst of the rabble he knew the Nazarene
|
|
was to be found. Suddenly he resolved to see him again. He would ask
|
|
him one question.
|
|
|
|
Taking off his long outer garment and the handkerchief from his
|
|
head, he threw them upon the orchard wall, and started after the
|
|
posse, which he boldly joined. Through the stragglers he made way, and
|
|
by littles at length reached the man who carried the ends of the
|
|
rope with which the prisoner was bound.
|
|
|
|
The Nazarene was walking slowly, his head down, his hands bound
|
|
behind him; the hair fell thickly over his face, and he stooped more
|
|
than usual; apparently he was oblivious to all going on around him. In
|
|
advance a few steps were priests and elders talking and occasionally
|
|
looking back. When, at length, they were all near the bridge in the
|
|
gorge, Ben-Hur took the rope from the servant who had it, and
|
|
stepped past him.
|
|
|
|
"Master, master!" he said, hurriedly, speaking close to the
|
|
Nazarene's ear. "Dost thou hear, master? A word- one word. Tell me- "
|
|
|
|
The fellow from whom he had taken the rope now claimed it.
|
|
|
|
"Tell me," Ben-Hur continued, "goest thou with these of thine own
|
|
accord?"
|
|
|
|
The people were come up now, and in his own ears asking angrily,
|
|
"Who art thou, man?"
|
|
|
|
"O master," Ben-Hur made haste to say, his voice sharp with anxiety,
|
|
"I am thy friend and lover. Tell me, I pray thee, if I bring rescue,
|
|
wilt thou accept it?"
|
|
|
|
The Nazarene never so much as looked up or allowed the slightest
|
|
sign of recognition; yet the something which when we are suffering
|
|
is always telling it to such as look at us, though they be
|
|
strangers, failed not now. "Let him alone," it seemed to say; "he
|
|
has been abandoned by his friends; the world has denied him; in
|
|
bitterness of spirit he has taken farewell of men; he is going he
|
|
knows not where, and he cares not. Let him alone."
|
|
|
|
And to that Ben-Hur was now driven. A dozen hands were upon him, and
|
|
from all sides there was shouting, "He is one of them. Bring him
|
|
along; club him- kill him!"
|
|
|
|
With a gust of passion which gave him many times his ordinary force,
|
|
Ben-Hur raised himself, turned once about with his arms
|
|
outstretched, shook the hands off, and rushed through the circle which
|
|
was fast hemming him in. The hands snatching at him as he passed
|
|
tore his garments from his back, so he ran off the road naked; and the
|
|
gorge, in keeping of the friendly darkness, darker there than
|
|
elsewhere, received him safe.
|
|
|
|
Reclaiming his handkerchief and outer garments from the orchard
|
|
wall, he followed back to the city gate; thence he went to the khan,
|
|
and on the good horse rode to the tents of his people out by the Tombs
|
|
of the Kings.
|
|
|
|
As he rode, he promised himself to see the Nazarene on the morrow-
|
|
promised it, not knowing that the unfriended man was taken straightway
|
|
to the house of Hannas to be tried that night.
|
|
|
|
The heart the young man carried to his couch beat so heavily he
|
|
could not sleep; for now clearly his renewed Judean kingdom resolved
|
|
itself into what it was- only a dream. It is bad enough to see our
|
|
castles overthrown one after another with an interval between in which
|
|
to recover from the shock, or at least let the echoes of the fall
|
|
die away; but when they go altogether- go as ships sink, as houses
|
|
tumble in earthquakes- the spirits which endure it calmly are made
|
|
of stuffs sterner than common, and Ben-Hur's was not of them.
|
|
Through vistas in the future he began to catch glimpses of a life
|
|
serenely beautiful, with a home instead of a palace of state, and
|
|
Esther its mistress. Again and again through the leaden-footed hours
|
|
of the night he saw the villa by Misenum, and with his little
|
|
countrywoman strolled through the garden, and rested in the panelled
|
|
atrium; overhead the Neapolitan sky, at their feet the sunniest of
|
|
sun-lands and the bluest of bays.
|
|
|
|
In plainest speech, he was entering upon a crisis with which
|
|
to-morrow and the Nazarene will have everything to do.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.
|
|
|
|
THE GOING TO CALVARY.
|
|
|
|
NEXT morning, about the second hour, two men rode full speed to
|
|
the doors of Ben-Hur's tents, and dismounting, asked to see him. He
|
|
was not yet risen, but gave directions for their admission.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you, brethren," he said, for they were of his Galileans,
|
|
and trusted officers. "Will you be seated?"
|
|
|
|
"Nay," the senior replied, bluntly, "to sit and be at ease is to let
|
|
the Nazarene die. Rise, son of Judah, and go with us. The judgment has
|
|
been given. The tree of the cross is already at Golgotha."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur stared at them.
|
|
|
|
"The cross!" was all he could for the moment say.
|
|
|
|
"They took him last night, and tried him," the man continued. "At
|
|
dawn they led him before Pilate. Twice the Roman denied his guilt;
|
|
twice he refused to give him over. At last he washed his hands, and
|
|
said, 'Be it upon you then;' and they answered- "
|
|
|
|
"Who answered?"
|
|
|
|
"They- the priests and people- 'His blood be upon us and our
|
|
children.'"
|
|
|
|
"Holy father Abraham!" cried Ben-Hur; "a Roman kinder to an
|
|
Israelite than his own kin! And if- ah, if he should indeed be the son
|
|
of God, what shall ever wash his blood from their children? It must
|
|
not be- 'tis time to fight!"
|
|
|
|
His face brightened with resolution, and he clapped his hands.
|
|
|
|
"The horses- and quickly!" he said to the Arab who answered the
|
|
signal. "And bid Amrah send me fresh garments, and bring my sword!
|
|
It is time to die for Israel, my friends. Tarry without till I come."
|
|
|
|
He ate a crust, drank a cup of wine, and was soon upon the road.
|
|
|
|
"Whither would you go first?" asked the Galilean.
|
|
|
|
"To collect the legions."
|
|
|
|
"Alas!" the man replied, throwing up his hands.
|
|
|
|
"Why alas?"
|
|
|
|
"Master"- the man spoke with shame- "master, I and my friend here
|
|
are all that are faithful. The rest do follow the priests."
|
|
|
|
"Seeking what?" and Ben-Hur drew rein.
|
|
|
|
"To kill him."
|
|
|
|
"Not the Nazarene?"
|
|
|
|
"You have said it."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur looked slowly from one man to the other. He was hearing
|
|
again the question of the night before- "The cup my Father hath
|
|
given me, shall I not drink it?" In the ear of the Nazarene he was
|
|
putting his own question, "If I bring thee rescue, wilt thou accept
|
|
it?" He was saying to himself, "This death may not be averted. The man
|
|
has been travelling towards it with full knowledge from the day he
|
|
began his mission: it is imposed by a will higher than his; whose
|
|
but the Lord's! If he is consenting, if he goes to it voluntarily,
|
|
what shall another do?" Nor less did Ben-Hur see the failure of the
|
|
scheme he had built upon the fidelity of the Galileans; their
|
|
desertion, in fact, left nothing more of it. But how singular it
|
|
should happen that morning of all others! A dread seized him. It was
|
|
possible his scheming, and labour, and expenditure of treasure might
|
|
have been but blasphemous contention with God. When he picked up the
|
|
reins and said, "Let us go, brethren," all before him was uncertainty.
|
|
The faculty of resolving quickly, without which one cannot be a hero
|
|
in the midst of stirring scenes, was numb within him.
|
|
|
|
"Let us go, brethren; let us to Golgotha."
|
|
|
|
They passed through excited crowds of people going south, like
|
|
themselves. All the country north of the city seemed aroused and in
|
|
motion.
|
|
|
|
Hearing that the procession with the condemned might be met with
|
|
somewhere near the great white towers left by Herod, the three friends
|
|
rode thither, passing round south-east of Akra. In the valley below
|
|
the Pool of Hezekiah, passage-way against the multitude became
|
|
impossible, and they were compelled to dismount, and take shelter
|
|
behind the corner of a house and wait.
|
|
|
|
The waiting was as if they were on a river bank, watching a flood go
|
|
by, for such the people seemed.
|
|
|
|
There are certain chapters in the First Book of this story which
|
|
were written to give the reader an idea of the composition of the
|
|
Jewish nationality as it was in the time of Christ. They were also
|
|
written in anticipation of this hour and scene; so that he who has
|
|
read them with attention can now see all Ben-Hur saw of the going to
|
|
the crucifixion- a rare and wonderful sight!
|
|
|
|
Half-an-hour- an hour- the flood surged by Ben-Hur and his
|
|
companions, within arm's reach, incessant, undiminished. At the end of
|
|
that time he could have said, "I have seen all the castes of
|
|
Jerusalem, all the sects of Judea, all the tribes of Israel, and all
|
|
the nationalities of earth represented by them." The Libyan Jew went
|
|
by, and the Jew of Egypt, and the Jew from the Rhine; in short, Jews
|
|
from all East countries and all West countries, and all islands within
|
|
commercial connection; they went by on foot, on horseback, on
|
|
camels, in litters and chariots, and with an infinite variety of
|
|
costumes, yet with the same marvellous similitude of features which
|
|
to-day particularizes the children of Israel, tried as they have
|
|
been by climates and modes of life; they went by speaking all known
|
|
tongues, for by that means only were they distinguishable group for
|
|
group; they went by in haste- eager, anxious, crowding- all to
|
|
behold one poor Nazarene die, a felon between felons.
|
|
|
|
These were the many, but they were not all.
|
|
|
|
Borne along with the stream were thousands not Jews- thousands
|
|
hating and despising them- Greeks, Romans, Arabs, Syrians, Africans,
|
|
Egyptians, Easterns. So that, studying the mass, it seemed the whole
|
|
world was to be represented, and, in that sense, present at the
|
|
crucifixion.
|
|
|
|
The going was singularly quiet. A hoof-stroke upon a rock, the glide
|
|
and rattle of revolving wheels, voices in conversation, and now and
|
|
then a calling voice, were all the sounds heard above the rustle of
|
|
the mighty movement. Yet was there upon every countenance the look
|
|
with which men make haste to see some dreadful sight, some sudden
|
|
wreck, or ruin, or calamity of war. And by such signs Ben-Hur judged
|
|
that these were the strangers in the city come up to the Passover, who
|
|
had had no part in the trial of the Nazarene, and might be his
|
|
friends.
|
|
|
|
At length, from the direction of the great towers, Ben-Hur heard, at
|
|
first faint in the distance, a shouting of many men.
|
|
|
|
"Hark! they are coming now," said one of his friends.
|
|
|
|
The people in the street halted to hear; but as the cry rang on over
|
|
their heads, they looked at each other, and in shuddering silence
|
|
moved along.
|
|
|
|
The shouting drew nearer each moment; and the air was already full
|
|
of it and trembling, when Ben-Hur saw the servants of Simonides coming
|
|
with their master in his chair, and Esther walking by his side; a
|
|
covered litter was next behind them.
|
|
|
|
"Peace to you, O Simonides- and to you, Esther," said Ben-Hur,
|
|
meeting them. "If you are for Golgotha, stay until the procession
|
|
passes; I will then go with you. There is room to turn in by the house
|
|
here."
|
|
|
|
The merchant's large head rested heavily upon his breast; rousing
|
|
himself, he answered, "Speak to Balthasar; his pleasure will be
|
|
mine. He is in the litter."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur hastened to draw aside the curtain. The Egyptian was lying
|
|
within, his wan face so pinched as to appear like a dead man's. The
|
|
proposal was submitted to him.
|
|
|
|
"Can we see him?" he inquired, faintly.
|
|
|
|
"The Nazarene? yes; he must pass within a few feet of us."
|
|
|
|
"Dear Lord!" the old man cried, fervently. "Once more, once more!
|
|
Oh, it is a dreadful day for the world!"
|
|
|
|
Shortly the whole party were in waiting under shelter of the
|
|
house. They said but little, afraid, probably, to trust their thoughts
|
|
to each other; everything was uncertain, and nothing so much so as
|
|
opinions. Balthasar drew himself feebly from the litter, and stood
|
|
supported by a servant; Esther and Ben-Hur kept Simonides company.
|
|
|
|
Meantime the flood poured along, if anything, more densely than
|
|
before; and the shouting came nearer, shrill up in the air, hoarse
|
|
along the earth, and cruel. At last the procession was up.
|
|
|
|
"See!" said Ben-Hur, bitterly; "that which cometh now is Jerusalem."
|
|
|
|
The advance was in possession of an army of boys, hooting and
|
|
screaming, "The King of the Jews! Room, room for the King of the
|
|
Jews!"
|
|
|
|
Simonides watched them as they whirled and danced along, like a
|
|
cloud of summer insects, and said, gravely, "When these come to
|
|
their inheritance, son of Hur, alas for the city of Solomon!"
|
|
|
|
A band of legionaries fully armed followed next, marching in
|
|
sturdy indifference, the glory of burnished brass about them the
|
|
while.
|
|
|
|
Then came the NAZARENE.
|
|
|
|
He was nearly dead. Every few steps he staggered as if he would
|
|
fall. A stained gown badly torn hung from his shoulders over a
|
|
seamless under-tunic. His bare feet left red splotches upon the
|
|
stones. An inscription on a board was tied to his neck. A crown of
|
|
thorns had been crushed hard down upon his head, making cruel wounds
|
|
from which streams of blood, now dry and blackened, had run over his
|
|
face and neck. The long hair, tangled in the thorns, was clotted
|
|
thick. The skin, where it could be seen, was ghastly white. His
|
|
hands were tied before him. Back somewhere in the city he had fallen
|
|
exhausted under the transverse beam of his cross, which, as a
|
|
condemned person, custom required him to bear to the place of
|
|
execution; now a countryman carried the burden in his stead. Four
|
|
soldiers went with him as a guard against the mob, who sometimes,
|
|
nevertheless, broke through, and struck him with sticks, and spit upon
|
|
him. Yet no sound escaped him, neither remonstrance nor groan; nor did
|
|
he look up until he was nearly in front of the house sheltering
|
|
Ben-Hur and his friends, all of whom were moved with quick compassion.
|
|
Esther clung to her father; and he, strong of will as he was,
|
|
trembled. Balthasar fell down speechless. Even Ben-Hur cried out, "O
|
|
my God! my God!" Then, as if he divined their feelings or heard the
|
|
exclamation, the Nazarene turned his wan face towards the party, and
|
|
looked at them each one, so they carried the look in memory through
|
|
life. They could see he was thinking of them, not himself, and the
|
|
dying eyes gave them the blessing he was not permitted to speak.
|
|
|
|
"Where are thy legions, son of Hur?" asked Simonides, aroused.
|
|
|
|
"Hannas can tell thee better than I."
|
|
|
|
"What, faithless?"
|
|
|
|
"All but these two."
|
|
|
|
"Then all is lost, and this good man must die!"
|
|
|
|
The face of the merchant knit convulsively as he spoke, and his head
|
|
sank upon his breast. He had borne his part in Ben-Hur's labours well,
|
|
and he had been inspired by the same hopes, now blown out never to
|
|
be rekindled.
|
|
|
|
Two other men succeeded the Nazarene, bearing cross-beams.
|
|
|
|
"Who are these?" Ben-Hur asked of the Galileans.
|
|
|
|
"Thieves appointed to die with the Nazarene," they replied.
|
|
|
|
Next in the procession stalked a mitred figure clad all in the
|
|
golden vestments of the high-priest. Policemen from the Temple
|
|
curtained him round about; and after him, in order, strode the
|
|
sanhedrim, and a long array of priests, the latter in their plain
|
|
white garments overwrapped by abnets of many folds and gorgeous
|
|
colours.
|
|
|
|
"The son-in-law of Hannas," said Ben-Hur, in a low voice.
|
|
|
|
"Caiaphas! I have seen him," Simonides replied, adding, after a
|
|
pause during which he thoughtfully watched the haughty pontiff, "and
|
|
now am I convinced. With such assurance as proceeds from clear
|
|
enlightenment of the spirit- with absolute assurance- now know I
|
|
that he who first goes yonder with the inscription about his neck is
|
|
what the inscription proclaims him- KING OF THE JEWS. A common man, an
|
|
impostor, a felon was never thus waited upon. For look! Here are the
|
|
nations- Jerusalem, Israel. Here is the ephod, here the blue robe with
|
|
its fringe, and purple pomegranates, and golden bells, not seen in the
|
|
street since the day Jaddua went out to meet the Macedonian- proofs
|
|
all that this Nazarene is King. Would I could rise and go after him!"
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur listened surprised; and directly, as if himself awakening to
|
|
his unusual display of feeling, Simonides said, impatiently-
|
|
|
|
"Speak to Balthasar, I pray you, and let us begone. The vomit of
|
|
Jerusalem is coming."
|
|
|
|
Then Esther spoke.
|
|
|
|
"I see some women there, and they are weeping. Who are they?"
|
|
|
|
Following the pointing of her hand, the party beheld four women in
|
|
tears; one of them leaned upon the arm of a man of aspect not unlike
|
|
the Nazarene's. Presently Ben-Hur answered-
|
|
|
|
"The man is the disciple whom the Nazarene loves the best of all;
|
|
she who leans upon his arm is Mary, the Master's mother; the others
|
|
are friendly women of Galilee."
|
|
|
|
Esther pursued the mourners with glistening eyes, until the
|
|
multitude received them out of sight.
|
|
|
|
It may be the reader will fancy the foregoing snatches of
|
|
conversation were had in quiet; but it was not so. The talking was,
|
|
for the most part, like that indulged by people at the seaside under
|
|
the sound of the surf; for to nothing else can the clamour of this
|
|
division of the mob be so well likened.
|
|
|
|
The demonstration was the forerunner of those in which, scarce
|
|
thirty years later, under rule of the factions, the Holy City was torn
|
|
to pieces; it was quite as great in numbers, as fanatical and
|
|
bloodthirsty; boiled and raved, and had in it exactly the same
|
|
elements- servants, camel-drivers, marketmen, gate-keepers, gardeners,
|
|
dealers in fruits and wines, proselytes, and foreigners not
|
|
proselytes, watchmen and menials from the Temple, thieves, robbers,
|
|
and the myriad not assignable to any class, but who, on such occasions
|
|
as this, appeared no one could say whence, hungry and smelling of
|
|
caves and old tombs- bareheaded wretches with naked arms and legs,
|
|
hair and beard in uncombed mats, and each with one garment the
|
|
colour of clay; beasts with abysmal mouths, in outcry effective as
|
|
lions calling each other across desert spaces. Some of them had
|
|
swords; a greater number flourished spears and javelins; though the
|
|
weapons of the many were staves and knotted clubs, and slings, for
|
|
which latter selected stones were stored in scrips, and sometimes in
|
|
sacks improvised from the foreskirt of their dirty tunics. Among the
|
|
mass here and there appeared persons of high degree- scribes,
|
|
elders, rabbis, Pharisees with broad fringing, Sadducees in fine
|
|
cloaks- serving for the time as prompters and directors. If a throat
|
|
tired of one cry, they invented another for it; if brassy lungs showed
|
|
signs of collapse, they set them going again; and yet the clamour,
|
|
loud and continuous as it was, could have been reduced to a few
|
|
syllables- King of the Jews!- Room for the King of the Jews!-
|
|
Defiler of the Temple!- Blasphemer of God!- Crucify him, crucify
|
|
him! And of these cries the last one seemed in greatest favour,
|
|
because, doubtless, it was more directly expressive of the wish of the
|
|
mob, and helped to better articulate its hatred of the Nazarene.
|
|
|
|
"Come," said Simonides, when Balthasar was ready to proceed-
|
|
"come, let us forward."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur did not hear the call. The appearance of the part of the
|
|
procession then passing, its brutality and hunger for life, were
|
|
reminding him of the Nazarene- his gentleness, and the many
|
|
charities he had seen him do for suffering men. Suggestions beget
|
|
suggestions, so he remembered suddenly his own great indebtedness to
|
|
the man; the time he himself was in the hands of a Roman guard
|
|
going, as was supposed, to a death as certain and almost as terrible
|
|
as this one of the cross; the cooling drink he had at the well by
|
|
Nazareth, and the divine expression of the face of him who gave it;
|
|
the later goodness, the miracle of Palm-Sunday; and with these
|
|
recollections, the thought of his present powerlessness to give back
|
|
help for help or make return in kind stung him keenly, and he
|
|
accused himself. He had not done all he might; he could have watched
|
|
with the Galileans, and kept them true and ready; and this- ah! this
|
|
was the moment to strike! A blow well given now would not merely
|
|
disperse the mob and set the Nazarene free; it would be a trumpet-call
|
|
to Israel, and precipitate the long-dreamt-of war for freedom. The
|
|
opportunity was going; the minutes were bearing it away; and if
|
|
lost! God of Abraham! Was there nothing to be done- nothing?
|
|
|
|
That instant a party of Galileans caught his eye. He rushed
|
|
through the press and overtook them.
|
|
|
|
"Follow me," he said. "I would have speech with you."
|
|
|
|
The men obeyed him, and when they were under shelter of the house,
|
|
he spoke again-
|
|
|
|
"You are of those who took my swords, and agreed with me to strike
|
|
for freedom and the King who was coming. You have the swords now,
|
|
and now is the time to strike with them. Go, look everywhere, and find
|
|
our brethren, and tell them to meet me at the tree of the cross making
|
|
ready for the Nazarene. Haste all of you! Nay, stand not so! The
|
|
Nazarene is the King, and freedom dies with him."
|
|
|
|
They looked at him respectfully, but did not move.
|
|
|
|
"Hear you?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
Then one of them replied-
|
|
|
|
"Son of Judah"- by that name they knew him- "son of Judah, it is you
|
|
who are deceived, not we or our brethren who have your swords. The
|
|
Nazarene is not the King; neither has he the spirit of a king. We were
|
|
with him when he came into Jerusalem; we saw him in the Temple; he
|
|
failed himself, and us, and Israel; at the Gate Beautiful he turned
|
|
his back upon God and refused the throne of David. He is not King, and
|
|
Galilee is not with him. He shall die the death. But hear you, son
|
|
of Judah. We have your swords, and we are ready now to draw them and
|
|
strike for freedom; and so is Galilee. Be it for freedom, O son of
|
|
Judah, for freedom! and we will meet you at the tree of the cross."
|
|
|
|
The sovereign moment of his life was upon Ben-Hur. Could he have
|
|
taken the offer and said the word, history might have been other
|
|
than it is; but then it would have been history ordered by men, not
|
|
God- something that never was, and never will be. A confusion fell
|
|
upon him; he knew not how, though afterwards he attributed it to the
|
|
Nazarene; for when the Nazarene was risen, he understood the death was
|
|
necessary to faith in the resurrection, without which Christianity
|
|
would be an empty husk. The confusion, as has been said, left him
|
|
without the faculty of decision; he stood, helpless- wordless even.
|
|
Covering his face with his hand, he shook with the conflict between
|
|
his wish, which was what he would have ordered, and the power that was
|
|
upon him.
|
|
|
|
"Come; we are waiting for you," said Simonides, the fourth time.
|
|
|
|
Thereupon he walked mechanically after the chair and the litter.
|
|
Esther walked with him. Like Balthasar and his friends, the Wise
|
|
Men, the day they went to the meeting in the desert, he was being
|
|
led along the way.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.
|
|
|
|
THE CRUCIFIXION.
|
|
|
|
WHEN the party- Balthasar, Simonides, Ben-Hur, Esther, and the two
|
|
faithful Galileans- reached the place of crucifixion, Ben-Hur was in
|
|
advance leading them. How they had been able to make way through the
|
|
great press of excited people, he never knew; no more did he know
|
|
the road by which they came or the time it took them to come. He had
|
|
walked in total unconsciousness, neither hearing nor seeing anybody or
|
|
anything, and without a thought of where he was going, or the
|
|
ghostliest semblance of a purpose in his mind. In such condition a
|
|
little child could have done as much as he to prevent the awful
|
|
crime he was about to witness. The intentions of God are always
|
|
strange to us; but not more so than the means by which they are
|
|
wrought out, and at last made plain to our belief.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur came to a stop; those following him also stopped. As a
|
|
curtain rises before an audience, the spell holding him in its
|
|
sleep- awake rose, and he saw with a clear understanding.
|
|
|
|
There was a space upon the top of a low knoll rounded like a
|
|
skull, and dry, dusty, and without vegetation, except some scrubby
|
|
hyssop. The boundary of the space was a living wall of men, with men
|
|
behind struggling, some to look over, others to look through it. An
|
|
inner wall of Roman soldiery held the dense outer wall rigidly to
|
|
its place. A centurion kept eye upon the soldiers. Up to the very line
|
|
so vigilantly guarded Ben-Hur had been led; at the line he now
|
|
stood, his face to the north-west. The knoll was the old Aramaic
|
|
Golgotha- in Latin, Calvaria; anglicized, Calvary; translated, The
|
|
Skull.
|
|
|
|
On its slopes, in the low places, on the swells and higher hills,
|
|
the earth sparkled with a strange enamelling. Look where he would
|
|
outside the walled space, he saw no patch of brown soil, no rock, no
|
|
green thing; he saw only thousands of eyes in ruddy faces; off a
|
|
little way in the perspective only ruddy faced without eyes; off a
|
|
little farther only a broad, broad circle, which the nearer view
|
|
instructed him was also of faces. And this was the ensemble of three
|
|
millions of people; under it three millions of hearts throbbing with
|
|
passionate interest in what was taking place upon the knoll;
|
|
indifferent as to the thieves, caring only for the Nazarene, and for
|
|
him only as he was an object of hate or fear or curiosity- he who
|
|
loved them all, and was about to die for them.
|
|
|
|
In the spectacle of a great assemblage of people there are always
|
|
the bewilderment and fascination one feels while looking over a
|
|
stretch of sea in agitation, and never had this one been exceeded; yet
|
|
Ben-Hur gave it but a passing glance, for that which was going on in
|
|
the space described would permit no division of his interest.
|
|
|
|
Up on the knoll so high as to be above the living wall, and
|
|
visible over the heads of an attending company of notables,
|
|
conspicuous because of his mitre and vestments and his haughty air,
|
|
stood the high-priest. Up the knoll still higher, up quite to the
|
|
round summit, so as to be seen far and near, was the Nazarene, stooped
|
|
and suffering, but silent. The wit among the guard had complemented
|
|
the crown upon his head by putting a reed in his hand for a sceptre.
|
|
Clamours blew upon him like blasts- laughter- execrations- sometimes
|
|
both together indistinguishably. A man- only a man, O reader, would
|
|
have charged the blasts with the remainder of his love for the race,
|
|
and let it go forever.
|
|
|
|
All the eyes then looking were fixed upon the Nazarene. It may
|
|
have been pity with which he was moved; whatever the cause, Ben-Hur
|
|
was conscious of a change in his feelings. A conception of something
|
|
better than the best of this life- something so much better that it
|
|
could serve a weak man with strength to endure agonies of spirit as
|
|
well as of body; something to make death welcome- perhaps another life
|
|
purer than this one- perhaps the spirit-life which Balthasar held to
|
|
so fast, began to dawn upon his mind clearer and clearer, bringing
|
|
to him a certain sense that, after all, the mission of the Nazarene
|
|
was that of guide across the boundary for such as loved him; across
|
|
the boundary to where his kingdom was set up and waiting for him.
|
|
Then, as something borne through the air out of the almost
|
|
forgotten, he heard again, or seemed to hear, the saying of the
|
|
Nazarene-
|
|
|
|
"I AM THE RESURRECTION AND THE LIFE."
|
|
|
|
And the words repeated themselves over and over, and took form, and
|
|
the dawn touched them with its light, and filled them with a new
|
|
meaning. And as men repeat a question to grasp and fix the meaning, he
|
|
asked, gazing at the figure on the hill fainting under its crown,
|
|
Who the Resurrection? and who the Life?
|
|
|
|
"I AM,"
|
|
|
|
the figure seemed to say- and say it for him; for instantly he was
|
|
sensible of a peace such as he had never known- the peace which is the
|
|
end of doubt and mystery, and the beginning of faith and love and
|
|
clear understanding.
|
|
|
|
From this dreamy state Ben-Hur was aroused by the sound of
|
|
hammering. On the summit of the knoll he observed then what had
|
|
escaped him before- some soldiers and workmen preparing the crosses.
|
|
The holes for planting the trees were ready, and now the transverse
|
|
beams were being fitted to their places.
|
|
|
|
"Bid the men make haste," said the high-priest to the centurion.
|
|
"These"- and he pointed to the Nazarene- "must be dead by the
|
|
going-down of the sun, and buried, that the land may not be defiled.
|
|
Such is the Law."
|
|
|
|
With a better mind, a soldier went to the Nazarene and offered him
|
|
something to drink, but he refused the cup. Then another went to him
|
|
and took from his neck the board with the inscription upon it, which
|
|
he nailed to the tree of the cross- and the preparation was complete.
|
|
|
|
"The crosses are ready," said the centurion to the pontiff, who
|
|
received the report with a wave of the hand and the reply-
|
|
|
|
"Let the blasphemer go first. The Son of God should be able to
|
|
save himself. We will see."
|
|
|
|
The people to whom the preparation in its several stages was
|
|
visible, and who to this time had assailed the hill with incessant
|
|
cries of impatience, permitted a lull which directly became a
|
|
universal hush. The part of the infliction most shocking, at least
|
|
to the thought, was reached- the men were to be nailed to their
|
|
crosses. When for that purpose the soldiers laid their hands upon
|
|
the Nazarene first, a shudder passed through the great concourse;
|
|
the most brutalized shrank with dread. Afterwards there were those who
|
|
said the air suddenly chilled and made them shiver.
|
|
|
|
"How very still it is!" Esther said, as she put her arm about her
|
|
father's neck.
|
|
|
|
And remembering the torture he himself had suffered, he drew her
|
|
face down upon his breast, and sat trembling.
|
|
|
|
"Avoid it, Esther, avoid it!" he said, "I know not but all who stand
|
|
and see it- the innocent as well as the guilty- may be cursed from
|
|
this hour."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar sank upon his knees.
|
|
|
|
"Son of Hur," said Simonides, with increasing excitement- "son of
|
|
Hur, if Jehovah stretch not forth his hand, and quickly, Israel is
|
|
lost- and we are lost."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur answered, calmly, "I have been in a dream, Simonides, and
|
|
heard in it why all this should be, and why it should go on. It is the
|
|
will of the Nazarene- it is God's will. Let us do as the Egyptian
|
|
here- let us hold our peace and pray."
|
|
|
|
As he looked up on the knoll again, the words were wafted to him
|
|
through the awful stillness-
|
|
|
|
"I AM THE RESURRECTION AND THE LIFE."
|
|
|
|
He bowed reverently as to a person speaking.
|
|
|
|
Up on the summit meantime the work went on. The guard took the
|
|
Nazarene's clothes from him; so that he stood before the millions
|
|
naked. The stripes of the scourging he had received in the early
|
|
morning were still bloody upon his back; yet he was laid pitilessly
|
|
down, and stretched upon the cross- first, the arms upon the
|
|
transverse beam; the spikes were sharp- a few blows, and they were
|
|
driven through the tender palms; next, they drew his knees up until
|
|
the soles of the feet rested flat upon the tree; then they placed
|
|
one foot upon the other, and one spike fixed both of them fast. The
|
|
dulled sound of the hammering was heard outside the guarded space; and
|
|
such as could not hear, yet saw the hammer as it fell, shivered with
|
|
fear. And withal not a groan, or cry, or word of remonstrance from the
|
|
sufferer: nothing at which an enemy could laugh; nothing a lover could
|
|
regret.
|
|
|
|
"Which way wilt thou have him faced?" asked a soldier, bluntly.
|
|
|
|
"Towards the Temple," the pontiff replied. "In dying I would have
|
|
him see the holy house hath not suffered by him."
|
|
|
|
The workmen put their hands to the cross, and carried it, burden and
|
|
all, to the place of planting. At a word they dropped the tree, into
|
|
the hole; and the body of the Nazarene also dropped heavily and hung
|
|
by the bleeding hands. Still no cry of pain- only the exclamation
|
|
divinest of all recorded exclamations-
|
|
|
|
"Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do."
|
|
|
|
The cross, reared now above all other objects, and standing singly
|
|
out against the sky, was greeted with a burst of delight; and all
|
|
who could see and read the writing upon the board over the
|
|
Nazarene's head made haste to decipher it. Soon as read, the legend
|
|
was adopted by them and communicated, and presently the whole mighty
|
|
concourse was ringing the salutation from side to side, and
|
|
repeating it with laughter and groans-
|
|
|
|
"King of the Jews! Hail, King of the Jews!"
|
|
|
|
The pontiff, with a clearer idea of the import of the inscription,
|
|
protested against it, but in vain; so the titled King, looking from
|
|
the knoll with dying eyes, must have had the city of his fathers at
|
|
rest below him- she who had so ignominiously cast him out.
|
|
|
|
The sun was rising rapidly to noon; the hills bared their brown
|
|
breasts lovingly to it; the more distant mountains rejoiced in the
|
|
purple with which it so regally dressed them. In the city, the
|
|
temples, palaces, towers, pinnacles, and all points of beauty and
|
|
prominence, seemed to lift themselves into the unrivalled
|
|
brilliance, as if they knew the pride they were giving the many who
|
|
from time to time turned to look at them. Suddenly a dimness began
|
|
to fill the sky and cover the earth- at first no more than a scarce
|
|
perceptible fading of the day; a twilight out of time; an evening
|
|
gliding in upon the splendours of noon. But it deepened, and
|
|
directly drew attention; whereat the noise of the shouting and
|
|
laughter fell off, and men, doubting their senses, gazed at each other
|
|
curiously: then they looked to the sun again; then at the mountains,
|
|
getting farther away; at the sky and the near landscape, sinking in
|
|
shadow; at the hill upon which the tragedy was enacting; and from
|
|
all these they gazed at each other again, and turned pale, and held
|
|
their peace.
|
|
|
|
"It is only a mist or passing cloud," Simonides said soothingly to
|
|
Esther, who was alarmed. "It will brighten presently."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur did not think so.
|
|
|
|
"It is not a mist or a cloud," he said. "The spirits who live in the
|
|
air- the prophets and saints- are at work in mercy to themselves and
|
|
nature. I say to you, O Simonides, truly as God lives, he who hangs
|
|
yonder is the Son of God."
|
|
|
|
And leaving Simonides lost in wonder at such a speech from him, he
|
|
went where Balthasar was kneeling near by, and laid his hand upon
|
|
the good man's shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"O wise Egyptian, hearken! Thou alone wert right- the Nazarene is
|
|
indeed the Son of God."
|
|
|
|
Balthasar drew him down to him, and replied, feebly "I saw him a
|
|
child in the manger where he was first laid; it is not strange that
|
|
I knew him sooner than thou; but oh that I should live to see this
|
|
day! Would I had died with my brethren! Happy Melchior! Happy, happy
|
|
Gaspar!"
|
|
|
|
"Comfort thee!" said Ben-Hur. "Doubtless they too are here."
|
|
|
|
The dimness went on deepening into obscurity, and that into positive
|
|
darkness, but without deterring the bolder spirits upon the knoll. One
|
|
after the other the thieves were raised on their crosses, and the
|
|
crosses planted. The guard was then withdrawn, and the people set free
|
|
closed in upon the height, and surged up it, like a converging wave. A
|
|
man might take a look, when a new-comer would push him on, and take
|
|
his place, to be in turn pushed on- and there were laughter and
|
|
ribaldry and revilements, all for the Nazarene.
|
|
|
|
"Ha, ha! If thou be King of the Jews, save thyself," a soldier
|
|
shouted.
|
|
|
|
"Ay," said a priest, "if he will come down to us now, we will
|
|
believe in him."
|
|
|
|
Others wagged their heads wisely saying, "He would destroy the
|
|
Temple, and rebuild it in three days, but cannot save himself."
|
|
|
|
Others still- "He called himself the Son of God; let us see if God
|
|
will have him."
|
|
|
|
What all there is in prejudice no one has ever said. The Nazarene
|
|
had never harmed the people; far the greater part of them had never
|
|
seen him except in this his hour of calamity; yet- singular
|
|
contrariety!- they loaded him with their curses, and gave their
|
|
sympathy to the thieves.
|
|
|
|
The supernatural night, dropped thus from the heavens, affected
|
|
Esther as it began to affect thousands of others braver and stronger.
|
|
|
|
"Let us go home," she prayed- twice, three times- saying, "it is the
|
|
frown of God, father. What other dreadful things may happen, who can
|
|
tell? I am afraid."
|
|
|
|
Simonides was obstinate. He said little, but was plainly under great
|
|
excitement. Observing, about the end of the first hour, that the
|
|
violence of the crowding up on the knoll was somewhat abated, at his
|
|
suggestion the party advanced to take position nearer the crosses.
|
|
Ben-Hur gave his arm to Balthasar; yet the Egyptian made the ascent
|
|
with difficulty. From their new stand the Nazarene was imperfectly
|
|
visible, appearing to them not more than a dark suspended figure. They
|
|
could hear him, however- hear his sighing, which showed an endurance
|
|
or exhaustion greater than that of his fellow-sufferers; for they
|
|
filled every lull in the noises with their groans and entreaties.
|
|
|
|
The second hour after the suspension passed like the first one. To
|
|
the Nazarene they were hours of insult, provocation, and slow dying.
|
|
He spoke but once in the time. Some women came and knelt at the foot
|
|
of his cross. Among them he recognized his mother with the beloved
|
|
disciple.
|
|
|
|
"Woman," he said, raising his voice, "behold thy son!" And to the
|
|
disciple, "Behold thy mother!"
|
|
|
|
The third hour came, and still the people surged round the hill,
|
|
held to it by some strange attraction, with which, in probability, the
|
|
night in midday had much to do. They were quieter than in the
|
|
preceding hour; yet at intervals they could be heard off in the
|
|
darkness shouting to each other, multitude calling unto multitude.
|
|
It was noticeable, also, that coming now to the Nazarene, they
|
|
approached his cross in silence, took the look in silence, and so
|
|
departed. This change extended even to the guard, who so shortly
|
|
before had cast lots for the clothes of the crucified; they stood with
|
|
their officers a little apart, more watchful of the one convict than
|
|
of the throngs coming and going. If he but breathed heavily, or tossed
|
|
his head in a paroxysm of pain, they were instantly on the alert. Most
|
|
marvellous of all, however, was the altered behaviour of the
|
|
high-priest and his following, the wise men who had assisted him in
|
|
the trial in the night, and, in the victim's face, kept place by him
|
|
with zealous approval. When the darkness began to fall, they began
|
|
to lose their confidence. There were among them many learned in
|
|
astronomy, and familiar with the apparitions so terrible in those days
|
|
to the masses; much of the knowledge was descended to them from
|
|
their fathers far back; some of it had been brought away at the end of
|
|
the Captivity; and the necessities of the Temple service kept it all
|
|
bright. These closed together when the sun commenced to fade before
|
|
their eyes, and the mountains and hills to recede; they drew
|
|
together in a group around their pontiff, and debated what they saw.
|
|
"The moon is at its full," they said, with truth, "and this cannot
|
|
be an eclipse." Then, as no one could answer the question common
|
|
with them all- as no one could account for the darkness, or for its
|
|
occurrence at that particular time- in their secret hearts they
|
|
associated it with the Nazarene, and yielded to an alarm which the
|
|
long continuance of the phenomenon steadily increased. In their
|
|
place behind the soldiers they noted every word and motion of the
|
|
Nazarene, and hung with fear upon his sighs, and talked in whispers.
|
|
The man might be the Messiah, and then- But they would wait and see!
|
|
|
|
In the meantime Ben-Hur was not once visited by the old spirit.
|
|
The perfect peace abode with him. He prayed simply that the end
|
|
might be hastened. He knew the condition of Simonides' mind- that he
|
|
was hesitating on the verge of belief. He could see the massive face
|
|
weighed down by solemn reflection. He noticed him casting inquiring
|
|
glances at the sun, as seeking the cause of the darkness. Nor did he
|
|
fail to notice the solicitude with which Esther clung to him,
|
|
smothering her fears to accommodate his wishes.
|
|
|
|
"Be not afraid," he heard him say to her; "but stay and watch with
|
|
me. Thou mayst live twice the span of my life, and see nothing of
|
|
human interest equal to this; and there may be revelations more. Let
|
|
us stay to the close."
|
|
|
|
When the third hour was about half gone, some men of the rudest
|
|
class- wretches from the tombs about the city- came and stopped in
|
|
front of the centre cross.
|
|
|
|
"This is he, the new King of the Jews," said one of them.
|
|
|
|
The others cried, with laughter, "Hail, all hail, King of the Jews!"
|
|
|
|
Receiving no reply, they went closer.
|
|
|
|
"If thou be King of the Jews, or Son of God, come down," they
|
|
said, loudly.
|
|
|
|
At this, one of the thieves quit groaning, and called to the
|
|
Nazarene, "Yes, if thou be Christ, save thyself and us."
|
|
|
|
The people laughed and applauded; then, while they were listening
|
|
for a reply, the other felon was heard to say to the first one,
|
|
"Dost thou not fear God? We receive the due rewards of our deeds;
|
|
but this man hath done nothing amiss."
|
|
|
|
The bystanders were astonished; in the midst of the hush which
|
|
ensued, the second felon spoke again, but this time to the Nazarene-
|
|
|
|
"Lord," he said, "remember me when thou comest into thy kingdom."
|
|
|
|
Simonides gave a great start. "When thou comest into thy kingdom!"
|
|
It was the very point of doubt in his mind; the point he had so
|
|
often debated with Balthasar.
|
|
|
|
"Didst thou hear?" said Ben-Hur to him. "The kingdom cannot be of
|
|
this world. Yon witness saith the King is but going to his kingdom;
|
|
and, in effect, I heard the same in my dream."
|
|
|
|
"Hush!" said Simonides, more imperiously than ever before in
|
|
speech to Ben-Hur. "Hush, I pray thee. If the Nazarene should
|
|
answer- "
|
|
|
|
And as he spoke the Nazarene did answer, in a clear voice, full of
|
|
confidence-
|
|
|
|
"Verily I say unto thee, To-day shalt thou be with me in Paradise!"
|
|
|
|
Simonides waited to hear if that were all; then he folded his
|
|
hands and said, "No more, no more, Lord! The darkness is gone; I see
|
|
with other eyes- even as Balthasar, I see with eyes of perfect faith."
|
|
|
|
The faithful servant had at last his fitting reward. His broken body
|
|
might never be restored; nor was there riddance of the recollection of
|
|
his sufferings, or recall of the years imbittered by them; but
|
|
suddenly a new life was shown him, with assurance that it was for him-
|
|
a new life lying just beyond this one- and its name was Paradise.
|
|
There he would find the Kingdom of which he had been dreaming, and the
|
|
King. A perfect peace fell upon him.
|
|
|
|
Over the way, in front of the cross, however, there were surprise
|
|
and consternation. The cunning casuists there put the assumption
|
|
underlying the question and the admission underlying the answer
|
|
together. For saying through the land that he was the Messiah, they
|
|
had brought the Nazarene to the cross; and, lo! on the cross, more
|
|
confidently than ever, he had not only reasserted himself, but
|
|
promised enjoyment of his Paradise to a malefactor. They trembled at
|
|
what they were doing. The pontiff, with all his pride, was afraid.
|
|
Where got the man his confidence except from Truth? And what should
|
|
the Truth be but God? A very little now would put them all to flight.
|
|
|
|
The breathing of the Nazarene grew harder; his sighs became great
|
|
gasps. Only three hours upon the cross, and he was dying!
|
|
|
|
The intelligence was carried from man to man, until every one knew
|
|
it; and then everything hushed; the breeze faltered and died; a
|
|
stifling vapour loaded the air; heat was superadded to darkness; nor
|
|
might any one unknowing the fact have thought that off the hill, out
|
|
under the overhanging pall, there were three millions of people
|
|
waiting awe-struck what should happen next- they were so still!
|
|
|
|
Then there went out through the gloom, over the heads of such as
|
|
were on the hill within hearing of the dying man, a cry of despair, if
|
|
not reproach-
|
|
|
|
"My God! my God! why hast thou forsaken me?"
|
|
|
|
The voice startled all who heard it. One it touched uncontrollably.
|
|
|
|
The soldiers in coming had brought with them a vessel of wine and
|
|
water, and set it down a little way from Ben-Hur. With a sponge dipped
|
|
into the liquor, and put on the end of a stick, they could moisten the
|
|
tongue of a sufferer at their pleasure. Ben-Hur thought of the draught
|
|
he had had at the well near Nazareth; an impulse seized him;
|
|
catching up the sponge, he dipped it into the vessel, and started
|
|
for the cross.
|
|
|
|
"Let him be!" the people in the way shouted, angrily. "Let him be!"
|
|
|
|
Without minding them, he ran on, and put the sponge to the
|
|
Nazarene's lips. Too late, too late!
|
|
|
|
The face then plainly seen by Ben-Hur, bruised and black with
|
|
blood and dust as it was, lighted nevertheless with a sudden glow; the
|
|
eyes opened wide, and fixed upon some one visible to them alone in the
|
|
far heavens; and there were content and relief, even triumph, in the
|
|
shout the victim gave-
|
|
|
|
"It is finished! It is finished!"
|
|
|
|
So a hero, dying in the doing a great deed, celebrates his success
|
|
with a last cheer.
|
|
|
|
The light in the eyes went out; slowly the crowned head sank upon
|
|
the labouring breast. Ben-Hur thought the struggle over; but the
|
|
fainting soul recollected itself, so that he and those around him
|
|
caught the other and last words, spoken in a low voice, as if to one
|
|
listening close by-
|
|
|
|
"Father, into thy hands I commend my spirit."
|
|
|
|
A tremor shook the tortured body; there was a scream of fiercest
|
|
anguish, and the mission and the earthly life were over at once. The
|
|
heart, with all its love, was broken; for of that, O reader, the man
|
|
died!
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur went back to his friends, saying, simply, "It is over; he is
|
|
dead."
|
|
|
|
In a space incredibly short the multitude was informed of the
|
|
circumstance. No one repeated it aloud; there was a murmur which
|
|
spread from the knoll in every direction; a murmur that was little
|
|
more than a whispering, "He is dead! he is dead!" and that was all.
|
|
The people had their wish; the Nazarene was dead; yet they stared at
|
|
each other aghast. His blood was upon them! And while they stood
|
|
staring at each other, the ground commenced to shake; each man took
|
|
hold of his neighbour to support himself; in a twinkling the
|
|
darkness disappeared, and the sun came out; and everybody, as with the
|
|
same glance, beheld the crosses upon the hill all reeling drunken-like
|
|
in the earthquake. They beheld all three of them; but the one in the
|
|
centre was arbitrary; it alone would be seen; and for that it seemed
|
|
to extend itself upwards, and lift its burden, and swing it to and fro
|
|
higher and higher in the blue of the sky. And every man among them who
|
|
had jeered at the Nazarene; every one who had struck him; every one
|
|
who had voted to crucify him; every one who had marched in the
|
|
procession from the city; every one who had in his heart wished him
|
|
dead, and they were as ten to one, felt that he was in some way
|
|
individually singled out from the many, and that if he would live he
|
|
must get away quickly as possible from that menace in the sky. They
|
|
started to run; they ran with all their might; on horseback, and
|
|
camels, and in chariots they ran, as well as on foot; but then, as
|
|
if it were mad at them for what they had done, and had taken up the
|
|
cause of the unoffending and friendless dead, the earthquake pursued
|
|
them, and tossed them about, and flung them down, and terrified them
|
|
yet more by the horrible noise of great rocks grinding and rending
|
|
beneath them. They beat their breasts and shrieked with fear. His
|
|
blood was upon them! The home-bred and the foreign, priest and layman,
|
|
beggar, Sadducee, Pharisee, were overtaken in the race, and tumbled
|
|
about indiscriminately. If they called on the Lord, the outraged earth
|
|
answered for him in fury, and dealt them all alike. It did not even
|
|
know wherein the high-priest was better than his guilty brethren;
|
|
overtaking him, it tripped him up also, and smirched the fringing of
|
|
his robe, and filled the golden bells with sand, and his mouth with
|
|
dust. He and his people were alike in the one thing at least- the
|
|
blood of the Nazarene was upon them all!
|
|
|
|
When the sunlight broke upon the crucifixion, the mother of the
|
|
Nazarene, the disciple, and the faithful women of Galilee, the
|
|
centurion and his soldiers, and Ben-Hur and his party, were all who
|
|
remained upon the hill. These had not time to observe the flight of
|
|
the multitude; they were too loudly called upon to take care of
|
|
themselves.
|
|
|
|
"Seat thyself here," said Ben-Hur to Esther, making a place for
|
|
her at her father's feet. "Now cover thine eyes, and look not up;
|
|
but put thy trust in God, and the spirit of yon just man so foully
|
|
slain."
|
|
|
|
"Nay," said Simonides, reverently, "Let us henceforth speak of him
|
|
as the Christ."
|
|
|
|
"Be it so," said Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
Presently a wave of the earthquake struck the hill. The shrieks of
|
|
the thieves upon the reeling crosses were terrible to hear. Though
|
|
giddy with the movements of the ground, Ben-Hur had time to look at
|
|
Balthasar, and beheld him prostrate and still. He ran to him and
|
|
called- there was no reply. The good man was dead! Then Ben-Hur
|
|
remembered to have heard a cry in answer, as it were, to the scream of
|
|
the Nazarene in his last moment; but he had not looked to see from
|
|
whom it had proceeded; and ever after he believed the spirit of the
|
|
Egyptian accompanied that of his Master over the boundary into the
|
|
kingdom of Paradise. The idea rested not only upon the cry heard,
|
|
but upon the exceeding fitness of the distinction. If faith were
|
|
worthy reward in the person of Gaspar, and love in that of Melchior,
|
|
surely he should have some special meed who through a long life had so
|
|
excellently illustrated the three virtues in combination- Faith, Love,
|
|
and Good Works.
|
|
|
|
The servants of Balthasar had deserted their master; but when all
|
|
was over, the two Galileans bore the old man in his litter back to the
|
|
city.
|
|
|
|
It was a sorrowful procession that entered the south gate of the
|
|
palace of the Hurs about the set of sun that memorable day. About
|
|
the same hour the body of the Christ was taken down from the cross.
|
|
|
|
The remains of Balthasar were carried to the guest-chamber. All
|
|
the servants hastened weeping to see him; for he had the love of every
|
|
living thing with which he had in anywise to do; but when they
|
|
beheld his face, and the smile upon it, they dried their tears,
|
|
saying, "It is well. He is happier this evening than when he went
|
|
out in the morning."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur would not trust a servant to inform Iras what had befallen
|
|
her father. He went himself to see her and bring her to the body. He
|
|
imagined her grief; she would now be alone in the world; it was a time
|
|
to forgive and pity her. He remembered he had not asked why she was
|
|
not of the party in the morning, or where she was; he remembered he
|
|
had not thought of her; and, from shame, he was ready to make any
|
|
amends, the more so as he was about to plunge her into such acute
|
|
grief.
|
|
|
|
He shook the curtains of her door; and though he heard the ringing
|
|
of the little bells echoing within, he had no response; he called
|
|
her name, and again he called- still no answer. He drew the curtain
|
|
aside and went into the room; she was not there. He ascended hastily
|
|
to the roof in search of her; nor was she there. He questioned the
|
|
servants; none of them had seen her during the day. After a long quest
|
|
everywhere through the house, Ben-Hur returned to the guest-chamber,
|
|
and took the place by the dead which should have been hers; and he
|
|
bethought him there how merciful the Christ had been to his aged
|
|
servant. At the gate of the kingdom of Paradise happily the
|
|
afflictions of this life, even its desertions, are left behind and
|
|
forgotten by those who go in and rest.
|
|
|
|
When the gloom of the burial was nigh gone, on the ninth day after
|
|
the healing, the law being fulfilled, Ben-Hur brought his mother and
|
|
Tirzah home; and from that day, in that house the most sacred names
|
|
possible of utterance by men were always coupled worshipfully
|
|
together-
|
|
|
|
GOD THE FATHER AND CHRIST THE SON.
|
|
|
|
About five years after the crucifixion, Esther, the wife of Ben-Hur,
|
|
sat in her room in the beautiful villa by Misenum. It was noon, with a
|
|
warm Italian sun making summer for the roses and vines outside.
|
|
Everything in the apartment was Roman, except that Esther wore the
|
|
garments of a Jewish matron. Tirzah and two children at play upon a
|
|
lion's skin on the floor were her companions; and one had only to
|
|
observe how carefully she watched them to know that the little ones
|
|
were hers.
|
|
|
|
Time had treated her generously. She was more than ever beautiful,
|
|
and in becoming mistress of the villa, she had realized one of her
|
|
cherished dreams.
|
|
|
|
In the midst of this simple, home-like scene, a servant appeared
|
|
in the doorway, and spoke to her.
|
|
|
|
"A woman in the atrium to speak with the mistress."
|
|
|
|
"Let her come. I will receive her here."
|
|
|
|
Presently the stranger entered. At sight of her the Jewess arose,
|
|
and was about to speak; then she hesitated, changed colour, and
|
|
finally drew back, saying, "I have known you, good woman. You are- "
|
|
|
|
"I was Iras, the daughter of Balthasar."
|
|
|
|
Esther conquered her surprise, and bade the servant bring the
|
|
Egyptian a seat.
|
|
|
|
"No," said Iras, coldly. "I will retire directly."
|
|
|
|
The two gazed at each other. We know what Esther presented- a
|
|
beautiful woman, a happy mother, a contented wife. On the other
|
|
side, it was very plain that fortune had not dealt so gently with
|
|
her former rival. The tall figure remained, with some of its grace;
|
|
but an evil life had tainted the whole person. The face was coarse;
|
|
the large eyes were red and pursed beneath the lower lids; there was
|
|
no colour in her cheeks. The lips were cynical and hard, and general
|
|
neglect was leading rapidly to premature old age. Her attire was ill
|
|
chosen and draggled. The mud of the road clung to her sandals. Iras
|
|
broke the painful silence.
|
|
|
|
"These are thy children?"
|
|
|
|
Esther looked at them, and smiled.
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Will you not speak to them?"
|
|
|
|
"I would scare them," Iras replied. Then she drew closer to
|
|
Esther, and seeing her shrink, said, "Be not afraid. Give thy
|
|
husband a message for me. Tell him his enemy is dead, and that for the
|
|
much misery he brought me I slew him."
|
|
|
|
"His enemy!"
|
|
|
|
"The Messala. Further, tell thy husband that for the harm I sought
|
|
to do him I have been punished until even he would pity me."
|
|
|
|
Tears arose in Esther's eyes, and she was about to speak.
|
|
|
|
"Nay," said Iras, "I do not want pity or tears. Tell him, finally, I
|
|
have found that to be a Roman is to be a brute. Farewell."
|
|
|
|
She moved to go. Esther followed her.
|
|
|
|
"Stay, and see my husband. He has no feeling against you. He
|
|
sought for you everywhere. He will be your friend. I will be your
|
|
friend. We are Christians."
|
|
|
|
The other was firm.
|
|
|
|
"No; I am what I am of choice. It will be over shortly."
|
|
|
|
"But"- Esther hesitated- "have we nothing you would wish; nothing
|
|
to- to- "
|
|
|
|
The countenance of the Egyptian softened; something like a smile
|
|
played about her lips. She looked at the children upon the floor.
|
|
|
|
"There is something," she said.
|
|
|
|
Esther followed her eyes, and with quick perception answered, "It is
|
|
yours."
|
|
|
|
Iras went to them, and knelt on the lion's skin, and kissed them
|
|
both. Rising slowly, she looked at them; then passed to the door and
|
|
out of it without a parting word. She walked rapidly, and was gone
|
|
before Esther could decide what to do.
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur, when he was told of the visit, knew certainly what he had
|
|
long surmised- that on the day of the crucifixion Iras had deserted
|
|
her father for Messala. Nevertheless, he set out immediately and
|
|
hunted for her vainly; they never saw her more, or heard of her. The
|
|
blue bay, with all its laughing under the sun, has yet its dark
|
|
secrets. Had it a tongue, it might tell us of the Egyptian.
|
|
|
|
Simonides lived to be a very old man. In the tenth year of Nero's
|
|
reign he gave up the business so long centred in the warehouse at
|
|
Antioch. To the last he kept a clear head and a good heart, and was
|
|
successful.
|
|
|
|
One evening, in the year named, he sat in his arm-chair on the
|
|
terrace of the warehouse. Ben-Hur and Esther, and their three
|
|
children, were with him. The last of the ships swung at mooring in the
|
|
current of the river; all the rest had been sold. In the long interval
|
|
between this and the day of the crucifixion but one sorrow had
|
|
befallen them; that was when the mother of Ben-Hur died; and then
|
|
and now their grief would have been greater but for their Christian
|
|
faith.
|
|
|
|
The ship spoken of had arrived only the day before, bringing
|
|
intelligence of the persecution of Christians begun by Nero in Rome,
|
|
and the party on the terrace were talking of the news when Malluch,
|
|
who was still in their service, approached and delivered a package
|
|
to Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
"Who brings this?" the latter asked, after reading.
|
|
|
|
"An Arab."
|
|
|
|
"Where is he?"
|
|
|
|
"He left immediately."
|
|
|
|
"Listen," said Ben-Hur to Simonides.
|
|
|
|
He read then the following letter:-
|
|
|
|
"I, Ilderim the Generous, and sheik of the tribe of Ilderim, to
|
|
Judah, son of Hur.
|
|
|
|
"Know, O friend of my father's, how my father loved you. Read what
|
|
is herewith sent, and you will know. His will is my will; therefore
|
|
what he gave is thine.
|
|
|
|
"All the Parthians took from him in the great battle in which they
|
|
slew him I have retaken- this writing, with other things, and
|
|
vengeance, and all the brood of that Mira who in his time was mother
|
|
of so many stars.
|
|
|
|
"Peace be to you and all yours."
|
|
|
|
"This voice out of the desert is the voice of "ILDERIM, Sheik."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur next unrolled a scrap of papyrus yellow as the withered
|
|
mulberry leaf. It required the daintiest handling. Proceeding, he
|
|
read-
|
|
|
|
"Ilderim, surnamed the Generous, sheik of the tribe of Ilderim, to
|
|
the son who succeeds me.
|
|
|
|
"All I have, O son, shall be thine in the day of thy succession,
|
|
except that property by Antioch known as the Orchard of Palms; and
|
|
it shall be to the son of Hur who brought us such glory in the Circus-
|
|
to him and his forever.
|
|
|
|
"Dishonour not thy father. "ILDERIM THE GENEROUS, Sheik."
|
|
|
|
"What say you?" asked Ben-Hur, of Simonides.
|
|
|
|
Esther took the papers pleased, and read them to herself.
|
|
Simonides remained silent. His eyes were upon the ship; but he was
|
|
thinking. At length he spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Son of Hur," he said, gravely, "the Lord has been good to you in
|
|
these later years. You have much to be thankful for. Is it not time to
|
|
decide finally the meaning of the gift of the great fortune now all in
|
|
your hand, and growing?"
|
|
|
|
"I decided that long ago. The fortune was meant for the service of
|
|
the giver; not a part, Simonides, but all of it. The question with
|
|
me has been, How can I make it most useful in his cause? And of that
|
|
tell me, I pray you."
|
|
|
|
Simonides answered-
|
|
|
|
"The great sums you have given to the Church here in Antioch, I am
|
|
witness to. Now, instantly almost with this gift of the generous
|
|
sheik's, comes the news of the persecution of the brethren in Rome. It
|
|
is the opening of a new field. The light must not go out in the
|
|
capital."
|
|
|
|
"Tell me how I can keep it alive."
|
|
|
|
"I will tell you. The Romans, even this Nero, hold two things
|
|
sacred- I know of no others they so hold- they are the ashes of the
|
|
dead and all places of burial. If you cannot build temples for the
|
|
worship of the Lord above ground, then build them below the ground;
|
|
and to keep them from profanation, carry to them the bodies of all who
|
|
die in the faith."
|
|
|
|
Ben-Hur arose excitedly.
|
|
|
|
"It is a great idea," he said. "I will not wait to begin it. Time
|
|
forbids waiting. The ship that brought the news of the suffering of
|
|
our brethren shall take me to Rome. I will sail to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
He turned to Malluch.
|
|
|
|
"Get the ship ready, Malluch, and be thou ready to go with me."
|
|
|
|
"It is well," said Simonides.
|
|
|
|
"And thou, Esther, what sayest thou?" asked Ben-Hur.
|
|
|
|
Esther came to his side, and put her hand on his arm, and answered-
|
|
|
|
"So wilt thou best serve the Christ. O my husband, let me not
|
|
hinder, but go with thee and help."
|
|
|
|
* * * * *
|
|
|
|
If any of my readers visiting Rome, will make the short journey to
|
|
the Catacomb of San Calixto, which is more ancient than that of San
|
|
Sebastiano, he will see what became of the fortune of Ben-Hur, and
|
|
give him thanks. Out of that vast tomb Christianity issued to
|
|
supersede the Caesars.
|
|
|
|
THE END
|
|
.
|